This is a modern-English version of Letters on Demonology and Witchcraft, originally written by Scott, Walter.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
LETTERS ON DEMONOLOGY AND WITCHCRAFT
By Sir Walter Scott, Bart.
With An Introduction By Henry Morley Ll.d., Professor Of English Literature At University College, London
London George Routledge And Sons, Broadway, Ludgate Hill
1884
CONTENTS
TABLE OF CONTENTS
INTRODUCTION.
Sir Walter Scott’s “Letters on Demonology and Witchcraft” were his contribution to a series of books, published by John Murray, which appeared between the years 1829 and 1847, and formed a collection of eighty volumes known as “Murray’s Family Library.” The series was planned to secure a wide diffusion of good literature in cheap five-shilling volumes, and Scott’s “Letters,” written and published in 1830, formed one of the earlier books in the collection.
Sir Walter Scott's "Letters on Demonology and Witchcraft" was his contribution to a series of books released by John Murray between 1829 and 1847, which created a collection of eighty volumes known as "Murray's Family Library." The series aimed to make quality literature widely available in affordable five-shilling volumes, and Scott's "Letters," written and published in 1830, was one of the earlier titles in the collection.
The Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge had been founded in the autumn of 1826, and Charles Knight, who had then conceived a plan of a National Library, was entrusted, in July, 1827, with the superintendence of its publications. Its first treatises appeared in sixpenny numbers, once a fortnight. Its “British Almanac” and “Companion to the Almanac” first appeared at the beginning of 1829. Charles Knight started also in that year his own “Library of Entertaining Knowledge.” John Murray’s “Family Library” was then begun, and in the spring of 1832—the year of the Reform Bill—the advance of civilization by the diffusion of good literature, through cheap journals as well as cheap books, was sought by the establishment of “Chambers’s Edinburgh Journal” in the North, and in London of “The Penny Magazine.”
The Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge was established in the fall of 1826, and Charles Knight, who had a vision for a National Library, was appointed to oversee its publications in July 1827. Its first publications came out in sixpenny installments every two weeks. The “British Almanac” and “Companion to the Almanac” were first released at the start of 1829. That same year, Charles Knight also launched his own “Library of Entertaining Knowledge.” John Murray’s “Family Library” was started around that time, and in the spring of 1832—the year of the Reform Bill—the goal of advancing civilization through the spread of good literature, via affordable journals and books, was pursued with the launch of “Chambers’s Edinburgh Journal” in the North and “The Penny Magazine” in London.
In the autumn of that year, 1832, on the 21st of September, Sir Walter Scott died. The first warning of death had come to him in February, 1830, with a stroke of apoplexy. He had been visited by an old friend who brought him memoirs of her father, which he had promised to revise for the press. He seemed for half an hour to be bending over the papers at his desk, and reading them; then he rose, staggered into the drawing-room, and fell, remaining speechless until he had been bled. Dieted for weeks on pulse and water, he so far recovered that to friends outside his family but little change in him was visible. In that condition, in the month after his seizure, he was writing these Letters, and also a fourth series of the “Tales of a Grandfather.” The slight softening of the brain found after death had then begun. But the old delight in anecdote and skill in story-telling that, at the beginning of his career, had caused a critic of his “Border Minstrelsy” to say that it contained the germs of a hundred romances, yet survived. It gave to Scott’s “Letters on Demonology and Witchcraft” what is for us now a pathetic charm. Here and there some slight confusion of thought or style represents the flickering of a light that flashes yet with its old brilliancy. There is not yet the manifest suggestion of the loss of power that we find presently afterwards in “Count Robert of Paris” and “Castle Dangerous,” published in 1831 as the Fourth Series of “Tales of My Landlord,” with which he closed his life’s work at the age of sixty.
In the fall of that year, 1832, on September 21st, Sir Walter Scott passed away. His first warning of death came in February 1830 when he had a stroke. He had been visited by an old friend who brought him memoirs of her father, which he had promised to edit for publication. For about half an hour, he seemed to be engrossed in the papers at his desk, reading them; then he got up, staggered into the drawing room, and collapsed, remaining speechless until he was bled. He was put on a strict diet of pulses and water for weeks but managed to recover enough that to friends outside his family, there seemed to be little change in him. In the month following his stroke, he was writing these Letters, as well as a fourth series of the “Tales of a Grandfather.” The slight softening of the brain found after his death had already begun. However, his old love for anecdotes and talent for storytelling, which had led a critic to say that his “Border Minstrelsy” contained the seeds of a hundred romances at the start of his career, still remained. This gave Scott's “Letters on Demonology and Witchcraft” a now poignant charm. Occasionally, some slight confusion in thought or style shows the flickering of a light that still shines with its old brilliance. There is not yet the clear indication of loss of power that we later find in “Count Robert of Paris” and “Castle Dangerous,” published in 1831 as the Fourth Series of “Tales of My Landlord,” with which he concluded his life's work at the age of sixty.
Milton has said that he who would not be frustrate of his hope to write well in laudable things, ought himself to be a true poem. Scott’s life was a true poem, of which the music entered into all he wrote. If in his earlier days the consciousness of an unlimited productive power tempted him to make haste to be rich, that he might work out, as founder of a family, an ideal of life touched by his own genius of romance, there was not in his desire for gain one touch of sordid greed, and his ideal of life only brought him closer home to all its duties. Sir Walter Scott’s good sense, as Lord Cockburn said, was a more wonderful gift than his genius. When the mistake of a trade connection with James Ballantyne brought ruin to him in 1826, he repudiated bankruptcy, took on himself the burden of a debt of £130,000, and sacrificed his life to the successful endeavour to pay off all. What was left unpaid at his death was cleared afterwards by the success of his annotated edition of his novels. No tale of physical strife in the battlefield could be as heroic as the story of the close of Scott’s life, with five years of a death-struggle against adversity, animated by the truest sense of honour. When the ruin was impending he wrote in his diary, “If things go badly in London, the magic wand of the Unknown will be shivered in his grasp. The feast of fancy will be over with the feeling of independence. He shall no longer have the delight of waking in the morning with bright ideas in his mind, hasten to commit them to paper, and count them monthly, as the means of planting such scaurs and purchasing such wastes; replacing dreams of fiction by other prospective visions of walks by
Milton said that anyone who wants to write well about worthy things should embody a true poem themselves. Scott's life was a true poem, and its rhythm flowed into everything he wrote. Although in his early years the awareness of his limitless creative potential encouraged him to rush to wealth, so he could establish a family and realize an ideal of life shaped by his own romantic genius, his desire for financial success lacked any hint of greed, and this ideal only drew him closer to fulfilling his responsibilities. As Lord Cockburn remarked, Sir Walter Scott’s good sense was a more extraordinary gift than his talent. When a business mistake with James Ballantyne led to his downfall in 1826, he rejected bankruptcy, took on the burden of a £130,000 debt, and dedicated his life to the relentless pursuit of paying it off. Whatever remained unpaid at his death was eventually settled through the success of his annotated edition of his novels. No account of physical struggle on the battlefield could match the heroism of the final chapter of Scott’s life, which was marked by five years of battling adversity, fueled by the deepest sense of honor. As disaster loomed, he wrote in his diary, “If things go poorly in London, the magic wand of the Unknown will shatter in his hand. The feast of imagination will end with a loss of independence. He will no longer wake up with bright ideas racing through his mind, eager to get them on paper, counting them monthly as the means of planting such cliffs and acquiring such barren fields; trading dreams of fiction for new visions of walks by
'Fountain-heads, and pathless groves; Places which pale passion loves.’
'Fountainheads and untamed groves; Places that pale passion loves.'
This cannot be; but I may work substantial husbandry—i.e. write history, and such concerns.” It was under pressure of calamity like this that Sir Walter Scott was compelled to make himself known as the author of “Waverley.” Closely upon this followed the death of his wife, his thirty years’ companion. “I have been to her room,” he wrote in May, 1826; “there was no voice in it—no stirring; the pressure of the coffin was visible on the bed, but it had been removed elsewhere; all was neat as she loved it, but all was calm—calm as death. I remembered the last sight of her: she raised herself in bed, and tried to turn her eyes after me, and said with a sort of smile, ‘You have all such melancholy faces.’ These were the last words I ever heard her utter, and I hurried away, for she did not seem quite conscious of what she said; when I returned, immediately departing, she was in a deep sleep. It is deeper now. This was but seven days since. They are arranging the chamber of death—that which was long the apartment of connubial happiness, and of whose arrangement (better than in richer houses) she was so proud. They are treading fast and thick. For weeks you could have heard a footfall. Oh, my God!”
This can’t be; but I might as well work on meaningful agriculture—i.e. write history and related matters.” It was during a crisis like this that Sir Walter Scott had to reveal himself as the author of “Waverley.” Soon after this, his wife, his partner for thirty years, passed away. “I went to her room,” he wrote in May 1826; “there was no sound—no movement; the outline of the coffin was visible on the bed, but it had been moved elsewhere; everything was tidy as she liked it, but all was still—still as death. I recalled the last time I saw her: she sat up in bed, tried to turn her gaze towards me, and said with a sort of smile, ‘You all have such sad faces.’ Those were the last words I ever heard her say, and I quickly left, for she didn’t seem fully aware of what she was saying; when I came back, just passing through, she was in a deep sleep. It’s deeper now. That was only seven days ago. They are preparing the death chamber—that which was once the room of marital happiness, and of which she took such pride in arranging (better than in fancier homes). They are moving about quickly. For weeks, you could have heard a single footstep. Oh, my God!”
A few years yet of his own battle, while the shadows of night and death were gathering about him, and they were re-united. In these “Letters upon Demonology and Witchcraft,” addressed to his son-in-law, written under the first grasp of death, the old kindliness and good sense, joined to the old charm in story-telling, stand firm yet against every assault; and even in the decay that followed, when the powers were broken of the mind that had breathed, and is still breathing, its own health into the minds of tens of thousands of his countrymen, nothing could break the fine spirit of love and honour that was in him. When the end was very near, and the son-in-law to whom these Letters were addressed found him one morning entirely himself, though in the last extreme of feebleness: his eye was clear and calm—every trace of the wild fire of delirium was extinguished: “Lockhart,” he said, “I may have but a minute to speak to you. My dear, be a good man—be virtuous, be religious—be a good man. Nothing else will give you any comfort when you come to lie here.”
A few years later, during his own struggle, as the shadows of night and death closed in around him, he was reunited with them. In these “Letters on Demonology and Witchcraft,” written to his son-in-law while he was facing death, his old kindness and common sense, along with his storytelling charm, remained strong against every challenge; even as he deteriorated, when the mind that had nurtured the thoughts of thousands of his fellow countrymen began to falter, nothing could diminish the beautiful spirit of love and honor within him. As the end approached, his son-in-law found him one morning very much himself, despite his extreme weakness: his eyes were clear and calm—every trace of delirium had vanished: “Lockhart,” he said, “I might only have a minute to talk to you. My dear, be a good man—be virtuous, be religious—be a good man. Nothing else will bring you comfort when it’s your turn to lie here.”
Another volume of this Library may give occasion to recall Scott in the noontide of his strength, companion of
Another volume of this Library might remind us of Scott at the peak of his power, a companion of
“The blameless Muse who trains her sons For hope and calm enjoyment.”
“The faultless Muse who guides her children for hope and peaceful enjoyment.”
Here we remember only how from among dark clouds the last light of his genius shone on the path of those who were endeavouring to make the daily bread of intellectual life—good books—common to all. H.M. February, 1884.
Here we only remember how, from behind dark clouds, the last light of his genius illuminated the path for those trying to make the daily bread of intellectual life—good books—accessible to everyone. H.M. February, 1884.
LETTERS
ON
DEMONOLOGY AND WITCHCRAFT
To J.G. LOCKHART, ESQ.
LETTER I.
Origin of the general Opinions respecting Demonology among Mankind—The Belief in the Immortality of the Soul is the main inducement to credit its occasional re-appearance—The Philosophical Objections to the Apparition of an Abstract Spirit little understood by the Vulgar and Ignorant—The situations of excited Passion incident to Humanity, which teach Men to wish or apprehend Supernatural Apparitions—They are often presented by the Sleeping Sense—Story of Somnambulism—The Influence of Credulity contagious, so that Individuals will trust the Evidence of others in despite of their own Senses—Examples from the “Historia Verdadera” of Bernal Dias del Castillo, and from the Works of Patrick Walker—The apparent Evidence of Intercourse with the Supernatural World is sometimes owing to a depraved State of the bodily Organs—Difference between this Disorder and Insanity, in which the Organs retain their tone, though that of the Mind is lost—Rebellion of the Senses of a Lunatic against the current of his Reveries—Narratives of a contrary Nature, in which the Evidence of the Eyes overbore the Conviction of the Understanding—Example of a London Man of Pleasure—Of Nicolai, the German Bookseller and Philosopher—Of a Patient of Dr. Gregory—Of an Eminent Scottish Lawyer, deceased—Of this same fallacious Disorder are other instances, which have but sudden and momentary endurance—Apparition of Maupertuis—Of a late illustrious modern Poet—The Cases quoted chiefly relating to false Impressions on the Visual Nerve, those upon the Ear next considered—Delusions of the Touch chiefly experienced in Sleep—Delusions of the Taste—And of the Smelling—Sum of the Argument.
Origin of the general opinions about demonology among people—the belief in the immortality of the soul primarily drives the idea of its occasional return—philosophical objections to the appearance of an abstract spirit are often not understood by the common and uneducated—strong emotions humans experience often lead them to wish for or fear supernatural appearances—they are frequently revealed through dreams—story of sleepwalking—the influence of gullibility is contagious, leading people to trust the evidence of others over their own senses—examples from the “Historia Verdadera” by Bernal Dias del Castillo and the works of Patrick Walker—the apparent evidence of interaction with the supernatural sometimes results from an impaired state of the body’s organs—difference between this disorder and insanity, where the organs maintain their function while the mind does not—the rebellion of the senses of a lunatic against the flow of his fantasies—narratives of a different nature, where what the eyes perceive overwhelms the understanding—example of a London socialite—of Nicolai, the German bookseller and philosopher—of a patient of Dr. Gregory—of a prominent Scottish lawyer who has passed away—other instances of this misleading disorder are often brief and fleeting—appearance of Maupertuis—of a recent famous modern poet—the cases discussed mainly involve false impressions on the visual nerve, while those on the ear will be examined next—delusions of touch are usually experienced in sleep—delusions of taste and smell—summary of the argument.
You have asked of me, my dear friend, that I should assist the “Family Library” with the history of a dark chapter in human nature, which the increasing civilization of all well-instructed countries has now almost blotted out, though the subject attracted no ordinary degree of consideration in the older times of their history.
You’ve asked me, my dear friend, to help the “Family Library” with the story of a dark period in human nature, which the growing civilization of all educated countries has nearly erased, even though this topic received a lot of attention in the earlier times of their history.
Among much reading of my earlier days, it is no doubt true that I travelled a good deal in the twilight regions of superstitious disquisitions. Many hours have I lost—“I would their debt were less!”—in examining old as well as more recent narratives of this character, and even in looking into some of the criminal trials so frequent in early days, upon a subject which our fathers considered as a matter of the last importance. And, of late years, the very curious extracts published by Mr. Pitcairn, from the Criminal Records of Scotland, are, besides their historical value, of a nature so much calculated to illustrate the credulity of our ancestors on such subjects, that, by perusing them, I have been induced more recently to recall what I had read and thought upon the subject at a former period.
During my earlier reading days, it’s true that I spent a lot of time exploring the shadowy areas of superstitious discussions. I lost many hours—“I wish their debt were less!”—looking into both old and more recent stories of this kind, and even delving into some of the criminal trials that were common in earlier times, regarding a topic that our ancestors deemed extremely important. In recent years, the fascinating excerpts published by Mr. Pitcairn from the Criminal Records of Scotland are not only historically valuable but also clearly show how gullible our ancestors were about these matters. Reading them has led me to revisit what I had read and thought about the topic before.
As, however, my information is only miscellaneous, and I make no pretensions, either to combat the systems of those by whom I am anticipated in consideration of the subject, or to erect any new one of my own, my purpose is, after a general account of Demonology and Witchcraft, to confine myself to narratives of remarkable cases, and to the observations which naturally and easily arise out of them;—in the confidence that such a plan is, at the present time of day, more likely to suit the pages of a popular miscellany, than an attempt to reduce the contents of many hundred tomes, from the largest to the smallest size, into an abridgement, which, however compressed, must remain greatly too large for the reader’s powers of patience.
Since my information is just a collection of varied bits, and I don't claim to challenge the views of those who have already discussed this topic or to create a new one of my own, my goal is to provide a general overview of Demonology and Witchcraft. I will then focus on noteworthy cases and the insights that come from them, believing that this approach is, in today's world, more fitting for a popular magazine than trying to summarize the content of hundreds of books, which, no matter how condensed, would still be too overwhelming for the reader's patience.
A few general remarks on the nature of Demonology, and the original cause of the almost universal belief in communication betwixt mortals and beings of a power superior to themselves, and of a nature not to be comprehended by human organs, are a necessary introduction to the subject.
A few general comments on the nature of Demonology and the original reason behind the nearly universal belief in communication between humans and beings that are more powerful than themselves, and of a nature that cannot be understood by human senses, are an essential introduction to the topic.
The general, or, it may be termed, the universal belief of the inhabitants of the earth, in the existence of spirits separated from the encumbrance and incapacities of the body, is grounded on the consciousness of the divinity that speaks in our bosoms, and demonstrates to all men, except the few who are hardened to the celestial voice, that there is within us a portion of the divine substance, which is not subject to the law of death and dissolution, but which, when the body is no longer fit for its abode, shall seek its own place, as a sentinel dismissed from his post. Unaided by revelation, it cannot be hoped that mere earthly reason should be able to form any rational or precise conjecture concerning the destination of the soul when parted from the body; but the conviction that such an indestructible essence exists, the belief expressed by the poet in a different sense, Non omnis moriar must infer the existence of many millions of spirits who have not been annihilated, though they have become invisible to mortals who still see, hear, and perceive, only by means of the imperfect organs of humanity. Probability may lead some of the most reflecting to anticipate a state of future rewards and punishments; as those experienced in the education of the deaf and dumb find that their pupils, even while cut off from all instruction by ordinary means, have been able to form, out of their own unassisted conjectures, some ideas of the existence of a Deity, and of the distinction between the soul and body—a circumstance which proves how naturally these truths arise in the human mind. The principle that they do so arise, being taught or communicated, leads to further conclusions.
The general, or what might be called the universal belief of the people on Earth, in the existence of spirits separate from the limitations of the body, is based on the inner awareness of the divine that speaks to us and shows everyone—except for a few hardened individuals— that there is within us a part of the divine that isn't bound by death and decay. When the body is no longer suitable for it, this part seeks its own place, like a guard being relieved from duty. Without revelation, it’s unrealistic to expect that mere earthly logic can provide any clear idea about where the soul goes after it separates from the body. However, the belief in such an indestructible essence exists, and as the poet expresses in a different way, Non omnis moriar, this suggests there are millions of spirits that haven't been destroyed, even though they've become invisible to those of us who still see, hear, and perceive through the imperfect faculties of humanity. Some thoughtful individuals may speculate about a future state of rewards and punishments; just as those who teach the deaf and mute find their students, despite being isolated from ordinary education, manage to form ideas about the existence of a Deity and the difference between the soul and body on their own. This shows how naturally these truths emerge in the human mind. The idea that they arise naturally, whether through teaching or communication, leads to further conclusions.
These spirits, in a state of separate existence, being admitted to exist, are not, it may be supposed, indifferent to the affairs of mortality, perhaps not incapable of influencing them. It is true that, in a more advanced state of society, the philosopher may challenge the possibility of a separate appearance of a disembodied spirit, unless in the case of a direct miracle, to which, being a suspension of the laws of nature, directly wrought by the Maker of these laws, for some express purpose, no bound or restraint can possibly be assigned. But under this necessary limitation and exception, philosophers might plausibly argue that, when the soul is divorced from the body, it loses all those qualities which made it, when clothed with a mortal shape, obvious to the organs of its fellow-men. The abstract idea of a spirit certainly implies that it has neither substance, form, shape, voice, or anything which can render its presence visible or sensible to human faculties. But these sceptic doubts of philosophers on the possibility of the appearance of such separated spirits, do not arise till a certain degree of information has dawned upon a country, and even then only reach a very small proportion of reflecting and better-informed members of society. To the multitude, the indubitable fact, that so many millions of spirits exist around and even amongst us, seems sufficient to support the belief that they are, in certain instances at least, by some means or other, able to communicate with the world of humanity. The more numerous part of mankind cannot form in their mind the idea of the spirit of the deceased existing, without possessing or having the power to assume the appearance which their acquaintance bore during his life, and do not push their researches beyond this point.
These spirits, existing separately, are believed to exist and are likely not indifferent to human affairs; they might even influence them. It's true that, in a more advanced society, philosophers might question the possibility of a disembodied spirit appearing, unless it’s due to a direct miracle—a suspension of natural laws that the Creator performs for a specific purpose, which has no defined limitations. However, with this necessary exception, philosophers could argue that when the soul separates from the body, it loses all the traits that made it recognizable to others while it was in a physical form. The concept of a spirit suggests it lacks substance, shape, voice, or anything that would make it visible or perceptible to human senses. Nevertheless, these skeptical doubts from philosophers about the appearance of such spirits only emerge when a certain level of knowledge has developed in a society, and even then, they only reach a small fraction of thoughtful and informed individuals. For the majority of people, the undeniable reality that millions of spirits exist around and among us supports the belief that they can, in some cases, communicate with the human world. Most people can't imagine the spirit of the deceased existing without being able to take on the appearance they had in life, and they don’t explore this idea any further.
Enthusiastic feelings of an impressive and solemn nature occur both in private and public life, which seem to add ocular testimony to an intercourse betwixt earth and the world beyond it. For example, the son who has been lately deprived of his father feels a sudden crisis approach, in which he is anxious to have recourse to his sagacious advice—or a bereaved husband earnestly desires again to behold the form of which the grave has deprived him for ever—or, to use a darker yet very common instance, the wretched man who has dipped his hand in his fellow-creature’s blood, is haunted by the apprehension that the phantom of the slain stands by the bedside of his murderer. In all or any of these cases, who shall doubt that imagination, favoured by circumstances, has power to summon up to the organ of sight, spectres which only exist in the mind of those by whom their apparition seems to be witnessed?
Strong emotions that are both impressive and serious happen in both private and public life, seeming to provide visual evidence of a connection between our world and the one beyond it. For instance, a son who has recently lost his father feels a crisis coming on, where he desperately wishes he could seek his father’s wise counsel again—or a grieving husband longs to see the figure that death has taken away from him forever—or, to mention a darker yet common scenario, the tortured man who has taken another’s life is haunted by the fear that the ghost of his victim stands next to his bed. In any of these situations, who can deny that imagination, aided by circumstances, can bring forth images that exist only in the minds of those who seem to witness their appearance?
If we add, that such a vision may take place in the course of one of those lively dreams in which the patient, except in respect to the single subject of one strong impression, is, or seems, sensible of the real particulars of the scene around him, a state of slumber which often occurs; if he is so far conscious, for example, as to know that he is lying on his own bed, and surrounded by his own familiar furniture at the time when the supposed apparition is manifested, it becomes almost in vain to argue with the visionary against the reality of his dream, since the spectre, though itself purely fanciful, is inserted amidst so many circumstances which he feels must be true beyond the reach of doubt or question. That which is undeniably certain becomes, in a manner, a warrant for the reality of the appearance to which doubt would have been otherwise attached. And if any event, such as the death of the person dreamt of, chances to take place, so as to correspond with the nature and the time of the apparition, the coincidence, though one which must be frequent, since our dreams usually refer to the accomplishment of that which haunts our minds when awake, and often presage the most probable events, seems perfect, and the chain of circumstances touching the evidence may not unreasonably be considered as complete. Such a concatenation, we repeat, must frequently take place, when it is considered of what stuff dreams are made—how naturally they turn upon those who occupy our mind while awake, and, when a soldier is exposed to death in battle, when a sailor is incurring the dangers of the sea, when a beloved wife or relative is attacked by disease, how readily our sleeping imagination rushes to the very point of alarm, which when waking it had shuddered to anticipate. The number of instances in which such lively dreams have been quoted, and both asserted and received as spiritual communications, is very great at all periods; in ignorant times, where the natural cause of dreaming is misapprehended and confused with an idea of mysticism, it is much greater. Yet, perhaps, considering the many thousands of dreams which must, night after night, pass through the imagination of individuals, the number of coincidences between the vision and real event are fewer and less remarkable than a fair calculation of chances would warrant us to expect. But in countries where such presaging dreams are subjects of attention, the number of those which seemed to be coupled with the corresponding issue, is large enough to spread a very general belief of a positive communication betwixt the living and the dead.
If we add that such a vision might occur during one of those vivid dreams where the person, aside from one strong impression, is aware of the real details of their surroundings, it becomes almost pointless to argue with the dreamer about the reality of their dream. This is especially true if they are conscious enough to know they are lying in their own bed, surrounded by familiar furniture when the supposed apparition appears. The imagined specter is set against so many true aspects that they feel are undeniable, lending credibility to the appearance that otherwise might provoke doubt. If any event, like the death of the person they dreamt about, happens to correspond with the nature and timing of the vision, the coincidence seems perfect, even though it must be common since our dreams typically reflect what preoccupies our minds while awake and often predict the most likely outcomes. This connection between dreams and reality frequently occurs, considering what dreams are made of—how they naturally revolve around those we think about during the day. When a soldier faces death in battle, when a sailor confronts the dangers of the sea, or when a beloved spouse or relative falls ill, our sleeping minds quickly focus on the fears we dread when awake. There are numerous instances of such vivid dreams being reported and accepted as spiritual messages throughout history, especially in times of ignorance when the real cause of dreaming is misunderstood and linked to mysticism. However, considering the countless dreams that pass through individuals' minds night after night, there are likely fewer noteworthy coincidences between dreams and real events than one might expect. In cultures where prophetic dreams are taken seriously, there seem to be enough occurrences linked to actual outcomes to foster a widespread belief in a direct connection between the living and the dead.
Somnambulism and other nocturnal deceptions frequently lend their aid to the formation of such phantasmata as are formed in this middle state, betwixt sleeping and waking. A most respectable person, whose active life had been spent as master and part owner of a large merchant vessel in the Lisbon trade, gave the writer an account of such an instance which came under his observation. He was lying in the Tagus, when he was put to great anxiety and alarm by the following incident and its consequences. One of his crew was murdered by a Portuguese assassin, and a report arose that the ghost of the slain man haunted the vessel. Sailors are generally superstitious, and those of my friend’s vessel became unwilling to remain on board the ship; and it was probable they might desert rather then return to England with the ghost for a passenger. To prevent so great a calamity, the captain determined to examine the story to the bottom. He soon found that, though all pretended to have seen lights and heard noises, and so forth, the weight of the evidence lay upon the statement of one of his own mates, an Irishman and a Catholic, which might increase his tendency to superstition, but in other respects a veracious, honest, and sensible person, whom Captain ——— had no reason to suspect would wilfully deceive him. He affirmed to Captain S——— with the deepest obtestations, that the spectre of the murdered man appeared to him almost nightly, took him from his place in the vessel, and, according to his own expression, worried his life out. He made these communications with a degree of horror which intimated the reality of his distress and apprehensions. The captain, without any argument at the time, privately resolved to watch the motions of the ghost-seer in the night; whether alone, or with a witness, I have forgotten. As the ship bell struck twelve, the sleeper started up, with a ghastly and disturbed countenance, and lighting a candle, proceeded to the galley or cook-room of the vessel. He sate down with his eyes open, staring before him as on some terrible object which he beheld with horror, yet from which he could not withhold his eyes. After a short space he arose, took up a tin can or decanter, filled it with water, muttering to himself all the while—mixed salt in the water, and sprinkled it about the galley. Finally, he sighed deeply, like one relieved from a heavy burden, and, returning to his hammock, slept soundly. In the next morning the haunted man told the usual precise story of his apparition, with the additional circumstances, that the ghost had led him to the galley, but that he had fortunately, he knew not how, obtained possession of some holy water, and succeeded in getting rid of his unwelcome visitor. The visionary was then informed of the real transactions of the night, with so many particulars as to satisfy him he had been the dupe of his imagination; he acquiesced in his commander’s reasoning, and the dream, as often happens in these cases, returned no more after its imposture had been detected. In this case, we find the excited imagination acting upon the half-waking senses, which were intelligent enough for the purpose of making him sensible where he was, but not sufficiently so to judge truly of the objects before him.
Sleepwalking and other nighttime illusions often contribute to the creation of such phantasmata that arise in this in-between state between sleeping and waking. A very respectable individual, who spent his active life as the master and part owner of a large merchant ship in the Lisbon trade, shared an account of such an instance that he witnessed. He was anchored in the Tagus when he was filled with anxiety and alarm by the following incident and its aftermath. One of his crew was murdered by a Portuguese assassin, and a rumor spread that the ghost of the murdered man haunted the ship. Sailors are generally superstitious, and the crew of my friend's vessel became unwilling to stay on board; there was a real possibility they might desert rather than return to England with a ghost as a passenger. To prevent such a disaster, the captain decided to investigate the story thoroughly. He quickly discovered that, although everyone claimed to have seen lights and heard noises, the strongest evidence came from one of his own mates, an Irishman and a Catholic, which might increase his tendency toward superstition but was otherwise a truthful, honest, and sensible person, whom Captain —— had no reason to believe would deliberately deceive him. He swore to Captain S——— with deep sincerity that the ghost of the murdered man appeared to him almost every night, pulled him from his spot on the ship, and, in his own words, tormented him endlessly. He shared these revelations with such horror that it suggested the reality of his distress and fears. The captain, without arguing at the time, privately resolved to observe the ghost-seer during the night; whether he did this alone or with a witness, I’ve forgotten. As the ship's bell struck twelve, the sleeper suddenly sat up, looking pale and disturbed, and lit a candle before heading to the galley or cookroom. He sat down with his eyes wide open, staring ahead at something terrifying that he couldn’t look away from. After a short while, he rose, picked up a tin can or decanter, filled it with water while muttering to himself, mixed in salt, and sprinkled it around the galley. Finally, he let out a deep sigh, as if relieved from a heavy burden, and went back to his hammock, sleeping soundly. The next morning, the haunted man recounted his usual detailed story of the apparition, adding that the ghost had led him to the galley but that he had luckily, he wasn't sure how, gotten hold of some holy water and managed to get rid of his unwanted visitor. The visionary was then informed of the actual events from the night, with enough details to convince him that he had been fooled by his imagination; he accepted his captain’s reasoning, and the dream, as often happens in these cases, didn’t return after its deception had been exposed. In this case, we see the excited imagination influencing the half-awake senses, which were aware enough to recognize where he was, but not sufficiently alert to accurately perceive the objects around him.
But it is not only private life alone, or that tenor of thought which has been depressed into melancholy by gloomy anticipations respecting the future, which disposes the mind to mid-day fantasies, or to nightly apparitions—a state of eager anxiety, or excited exertion, is equally favourable to the indulgence of such supernatural communications. The anticipation of a dubious battle, with all the doubt and uncertainty of its event, and the conviction that it must involve his own fate and that of his country, was powerful enough to conjure up to the anxious eye of Brutus the spectre of his murdered friend Cæsar, respecting whose death he perhaps thought himself less justified than at the Ides of March, since, instead of having achieved the freedom of Rome, the event had only been the renewal of civil wars, and the issue might appear most likely to conclude in the total subjection of liberty. It is not miraculous that the masculine spirit of Marcus Brutus, surrounded by darkness and solitude, distracted probably by recollection of the kindness and favour of the great individual whom he had put to death to avenge the wrongs of his country, though by the slaughter of his own friend, should at length place before his eyes in person the appearance which termed itself his evil genius, and promised again to meet him at Philippi. Brutus’ own intentions, and his knowledge of the military art, had probably long since assured him that the decision of the civil war must take place at or near that place; and, allowing that his own imagination supplied that part of his dialogue with the spectre, there is nothing else which might not be fashioned in a vivid dream or a waking reverie, approaching, in absorbing and engrossing character, the usual matter of which dreams consist. That Brutus, well acquainted with the opinions of the Platonists, should be disposed to receive without doubt the idea that he had seen a real apparition, and was not likely to scrutinize very minutely the supposed vision, may be naturally conceived; and it is also natural to think, that although no one saw the figure but himself, his contemporaries were little disposed to examine the testimony of a man so eminent, by the strict rules of cross-examination and conflicting evidence, which they might have thought applicable to another person, and a less dignified occasion.
But it’s not just private life or the kind of thinking that gets weighed down by gloomy thoughts about the future that leads the mind to daytime daydreams or nighttime visions. A state of anxious anticipation or excited activity can also encourage such supernatural experiences. The worry about an uncertain battle, filled with doubt about its outcome, and the understanding that it could determine both his fate and that of his country, was strong enough to bring forth the ghost of his murdered friend Caesar in the anxious mind of Brutus. He might have felt even less justified about Caesar’s death than on the Ides of March, since instead of gaining Rome's freedom, it had only led to a resurgence of civil wars, and the outcome seemed likely to end in a complete loss of liberty. It’s not surprising that Marcus Brutus, with his strong spirit, surrounded by darkness and solitude, and likely distracted by memories of the kindness and support of the great man he had killed to avenge his country’s wrongs—by killing his own friend—should eventually see before him the figure that called itself his evil genius, promising to meet him again at Philippi. Brutus had probably long known, thanks to his own military knowledge, that the decision of the civil war would take place at or near that location; and even if his imagination filled in some parts of his conversation with the ghost, there’s nothing unusual in that which could not be imagined in a vivid dream or waking reverie, deeply engrossing and similar to the usual themes of dreams. Given that Brutus was familiar with the views of the Platonists, it’s understandable that he would readily accept the idea of having seen a real apparition and wouldn’t likely scrutinize the supposed vision too closely. It’s also reasonable to think that even though no one else saw the figure but him, his contemporaries wouldn’t be inclined to question the testimony of such an esteemed person against the strict standards of cross-examination and conflicting evidence they might have applied to someone else in a lesser situation.
Even in the field of death, and amid the mortal tug of combat itself, strong belief has wrought the same wonder, which we have hitherto mentioned as occurring in solitude and amid darkness; and those who were themselves on the verge of the world of spirits, or employed in dispatching others to these gloomy regions, conceived they beheld the apparitions of those beings whom their national mythology associated with such scenes. In such moments of undecided battle, amid the violence, hurry, and confusion of ideas incident to the situation, the ancients supposed that they saw their deities, Castor and Pollux, fighting in the van for their encouragement; the heathen Scandinavian beheld the Choosers of the slain; and the Catholics were no less easily led to recognize the warlike Saint George or Saint James in the very front of the strife, showing them the way to conquest. Such apparitions being generally visible to a multitude, have in all times been supported by the greatest strength of testimony. When the common feeling of danger, and the animating burst of enthusiasm, act on the feelings of many men at once, their minds hold a natural correspondence with each other, as it is said is the case with stringed instruments tuned to the same pitch, of which, when one is played, the chords of the others are supposed to vibrate in unison with the tones produced. If an artful or enthusiastic individual exclaims, in the heat of action, that he perceives an apparition of the romantic kind which has been intimated, his companions catch at the idea with emulation, and most are willing to sacrifice the conviction of their own senses, rather than allow that they did not witness the same favourable emblem, from which all draw confidence and hope. One warrior catches the idea from another; all are alike eager to acknowledge the present miracle, and the battle is won before the mistake is discovered. In such cases, the number of persons present, which would otherwise lead to detection of the fallacy, becomes the means of strengthening it.
Even in the face of death, and amidst the chaos of battle itself, strong belief has created the same wonder we’ve previously discussed in solitude and darkness. Those who were on the brink of the spirit world, or who were in the act of sending others to those dark realms, imagined they saw the apparitions of beings tied to such moments in their national mythology. In these undecided battles, amidst the violence, urgency, and confusion of thoughts caused by the situation, the ancients believed they saw their gods, Castor and Pollux, fighting at the front to inspire them. The pagan Scandinavians saw the Valkyries, or Choosers of the Slain; and Catholics easily identified the warrior Saint George or Saint James at the forefront of the conflict, guiding them toward victory. These apparitions were often visible to many, supported by powerful testimonies throughout history. When a shared sense of danger and a surge of enthusiasm act on the feelings of many at once, their minds resonate with each other, much like stringed instruments tuned to the same pitch, where playing one causes the others to vibrate in harmony. If a charismatic or passionate individual claims, in the heat of battle, that they see a romantic apparition, their companions eagerly embrace the idea, and most are willing to doubt their own senses instead of admitting they didn’t see the same encouraging symbol that gives them all confidence and hope. One warrior influences another; all are eager to acknowledge the miracle at hand, and the battle is won before the illusion is uncovered. In these situations, the presence of many people, which could otherwise expose the falsehood, actually serves to reinforce it.
Of this disposition, to see as much of the supernatural as is seen by others around, or, in other words, to trust to the eyes of others rather than to our own, we may take the liberty to quote two remarkable instances.
In this attitude, to witness as much of the supernatural as others do, or in other words, to rely on the perceptions of those around us instead of our own, we can cite two notable examples.
The first is from the “Historia Verdadera” of Don Bernal Dias del Castillo, one of the companions of the celebrated Cortez in his Mexican conquest. After having given an account of a great victory over extreme odds, he mentions the report inserted in the contemporary Chronicle of Gomara, that Saint Iago had appeared on a white horse in van of the combat, and led on his beloved Spaniards to victory. It is very curious to observe the Castilian cavalier’s internal conviction that the rumour arose out of a mistake, the cause of which he explains from his own observation; whilst, at the same time, he does not venture to disown the miracle. The honest Conquestador owns that he himself did not see this animating vision; nay, that he beheld an individual cavalier, named Francisco de Morla, mounted on a chestnut horse, and fighting strenuously in the very place where Saint James is said to have appeared. But instead of proceeding to draw the necessary inference, the devout Conquestador exclaims—“Sinner that I am, what am I that I should have beheld the blessed apostle!”
The first is from the “Historia Verdadera” by Don Bernal Díaz del Castillo, one of the companions of the famous Cortés during his conquest of Mexico. After recounting a significant victory against overwhelming odds, he refers to a report in the contemporary Chronicle of Gomara, stating that Saint James appeared on a white horse leading his beloved Spaniards to victory. It's interesting to note the Castilian knight's internal belief that the rumor was a misunderstanding, which he explains based on his own observations; however, he doesn’t dismiss the miracle. The honest Conquistador admits that he didn't see this inspiring vision himself; rather, he saw a fellow knight named Francisco de Morla riding a chestnut horse and fighting hard in the very spot where Saint James is said to have appeared. But instead of drawing the obvious conclusion, the devout Conquistador exclaims—“Sinner that I am, what am I that I should have seen the blessed apostle!”
The other instance of the infectious character of superstition occurs in a Scottish book, and there can be little doubt that it refers, in its first origin, to some uncommon appearance of the aurora borealis, or the northern lights, which do not appear to have been seen in Scotland so frequently as to be accounted a common and familiar atmospherical phenomenon, until the beginning of the eighteenth century. The passage is striking and curious, for the narrator, Peter Walker, though an enthusiast, was a man of credit, and does not even affect to have seen the wonders, the reality of which he unscrupulously adopts on the testimony of others, to whose eyes he trusted rather than to his own. The conversion of the sceptical gentleman of whom he speaks is highly illustrative of popular credulity carried away into enthusiasm, or into imposture, by the evidence of those around, and at once shows the imperfection of such a general testimony, and the ease with which it is procured, since the general excitement of the moment impels even the more cold-blooded and judicious persons present to catch up the ideas and echo the exclamations of the majority, who, from the first, had considered the heavenly phenomenon as a supernatural weapon-schaw, held for the purpose of a sign and warning of civil wars to come.
The other instance of the contagious nature of superstition comes from a Scottish book, and it's quite clear that it originally refers to some unusual sighting of the aurora borealis, or northern lights, which don't seem to have been seen in Scotland often enough to be considered a common atmospheric phenomenon until the early eighteenth century. The passage is both striking and interesting because the narrator, Peter Walker, although an enthusiast, was a credible man and doesn’t even pretend to have seen the wonders he discusses. He takes the reality of these events solely on the word of others, trusting their accounts more than his own observations. The conversion of the skeptical gentleman he mentions illustrates how popular belief can be swept up into enthusiasm or deception by the evidence presented by those around them. It highlights both the shortcomings of such collective testimony and how easily it can be swayed, as the general excitement of the moment encourages even the more reserved and sensible individuals present to adopt the ideas and mirror the reactions of the majority who thought the heavenly phenomenon was a supernatural sign, signaling impending civil wars.
“In the year 1686, in the months of June and July,” says the honest chronicler, “many yet alive can witness that about the Crossford Boat, two miles beneath Lanark, especially at the Mains, on the water of Clyde, many people gathered together for several afternoons, where there were showers of bonnets, hats, guns, and swords, which covered the trees and the ground; companies of men in arms marching in order upon the waterside; companies meeting companies, going all through other, and then all falling to the ground and disappearing; other companies immediately appeared, marching the same way. I went there three afternoons together, and, as I observed, there were two-thirds of the people that were together saw, and a third that saw not; and, though I could see nothing, there was such a fright and trembling on those that did see, that was discernible to all from those that saw not. There was a gentleman standing next to me who spoke as too many gentlemen and others speak, who said, ‘A pack of damned witches and warlocks that have the second sight! the devil ha’t do I see;’ and immediately there was a discernible change in his countenance. With as much fear and trembling as any woman I saw there, he called out, ‘All you that do not see, say nothing; for I persuade you it is matter of fact, and discernible to all that is not stone-blind.’ And those who did see told what works (i.e., locks) the guns had, and their length and wideness, and what handles the swords had, whether small or three-barr’d, or Highland guards, and the closing knots of the bonnets, black or blue; and those who did see them there, whenever they went abroad, saw a bonnet and a sword drop in the way."1
“In the year 1686, in June and July,” says the honest chronicler, “many people who are still alive can testify that around the Crossford Boat, two miles below Lanark, especially at the Mains on the Clyde River, many gathered for several afternoons. There were showers of bonnets, hats, guns, and swords covering the trees and the ground; groups of armed men marched in formation along the waterside; different groups met each other, then all collapsed to the ground and vanished; and other groups appeared right away, marching the same way. I went there for three afternoons in a row, and from what I observed, about two-thirds of the people present saw something, while a third did not; and, though I could see nothing, the fear and trembling of those who did see were noticeable to everyone else. There was a gentleman next to me who spoke like many gentlemen and others do, saying, ‘A bunch of cursed witches and warlocks who have second sight! The devil knows I can’t see anything;’ and immediately a noticeable change came over his face. With as much fear and trembling as any woman I saw there, he exclaimed, ‘All of you who can’t see, say nothing; because I assure you it’s a matter of fact, and obvious to anyone who isn’t stone-blind.’ Those who did see described what kinds of locks the guns had, their lengths and widths, what type of handles the swords had, whether they were small or had three barrels, or Highland guards, and the fastenings on the bonnets, whether black or blue; and those who saw them, whenever they went out, noticed a bonnet and a sword drop in front of them."1
1 (return)
[ Walker’s “Lives,”
Edinburgh, 1827, vol. i. p. xxxvi. It is evident that honest Peter
believed in the apparition of this martial gear on the principle of
Partridge’s terror for the ghost of Hamlet—not that he was afraid
himself, but because Garrick showed such evident marks of terror.]
1 (return)
[ Walker’s “Lives,” Edinburgh, 1827, vol. i. p. xxxvi. It's clear that honest Peter believed in the appearance of this battle gear based on the idea of Partridge’s fear of the ghost of Hamlet—not because he was scared himself, but because Garrick displayed such obvious signs of fear.]
This singular phenomenon, in which a multitude believed, although only two-thirds of them saw what must, if real, have been equally obvious to all, may be compared with the exploit of the humourist, who planted himself in an attitude of astonishment, with his eyes riveted on the well-known bronze lion that graces the front of Northumberland House in the Strand, and having attracted the attention of those who looked at him by muttering, “By heaven it wags! it wags again!” contrived in a few minutes to blockade the whole street with an immense crowd, some conceiving that they had absolutely seen the lion of Percy wag his tail, others expecting’ to witness the same phenomenon.
This unusual situation, where a large group believed something even though only two-thirds actually saw it, which should have been obvious to everyone if it were real, can be compared to the trick of a comedian. He positioned himself in a state of shock, staring at the famous bronze lion in front of Northumberland House on the Strand. By drawing the attention of passersby and muttering, “By heaven, it wags! It wags again!” he managed to quickly gather a massive crowd in the street, with some genuinely believing they had seen the Percy lion wag its tail, while others were just hoping to see the same thing happen.
On such occasions as we have hitherto mentioned, we have supposed that the ghost-seer has been in full possession of his ordinary powers of perception, unless in the case of dreamers, in whom they may have been obscured by temporary slumber, and the possibility of correcting vagaries of the imagination rendered more difficult by want of the ordinary appeal to the evidence of the bodily senses. In other respects their blood beat temperately, they possessed the ordinary capacity of ascertaining the truth or discerning the falsehood of external appearances by an appeal to the organ of sight. Unfortunately, however, as is now universally known and admitted, there certainly exists more than one disorder known to professional men of which one important symptom is a disposition to see apparitions.
On occasions we've mentioned before, we assumed that the person seeing ghosts was fully aware and functioning normally, except in the case of those dreaming, where their perception might be clouded by sleep. In those cases, it becomes harder to correct the wild flights of imagination since they can’t rely on their physical senses as usual. Otherwise, their blood flowed normally, and they had the usual ability to determine the truth or falsehood of what they saw through their eyesight. Unfortunately, as is now widely recognized, there are indeed several disorders known to professionals, one significant symptom of which is a tendency to see apparitions.
This frightful disorder is not properly insanity, although it is somewhat allied to that most horrible of maladies, and may, in many constitutions, be the means of bringing it on, and although such hallucinations are proper to both. The difference I conceive to be that, in cases of insanity, the mind of the patient is principally affected, while the senses, or organic system, offer in vain to the lunatic their decided testimony against the fantasy of a deranged imagination. Perhaps the nature of this collision—between a disturbed imagination and organs of sense possessed of their usual accuracy—cannot be better described than in the embarrassment expressed by an insane patient confined in the Infirmary of Edinburgh. The poor man’s malady had taken a gay turn. The house, in his idea, was his own, and he contrived to account for all that seemed inconsistent with his imaginary right of property—there were many patients in it, but that was owing to the benevolence of his nature, which made him love to see the relief of distress. He went little, or rather never abroad—but then his habits were of a domestic and rather sedentary character. He did not see much company—but he daily received visits from the first characters in the renowned medical school of this city, and he could not therefore be much in want of society. With so many supposed comforts around him—with so many visions of wealth and splendour—one thing alone disturbed the peace of the poor optimist, and would indeed have confounded most bons vivants. “He was curious,” he said, “in his table, choice in his selection of cooks, had every day a dinner of three regular courses and a dessert; and yet, somehow or other, everything he eat tasted of porridge.” This dilemma could be no great wonder to the friend to whom the poor patient communicated it, who knew the lunatic eat nothing but this simple aliment at any of his meals. The case was obvious. The disease lay in the extreme vivacity of the patient’s imagination, deluded in other instances, yet not absolutely powerful enough to contend with the honest evidence of his stomach and palate, which, like Lord Peter’s brethren in “The Tale of a Tub,” were indignant at the attempt to impose boiled oatmeal upon them, instead of such a banquet as Ude would have displayed when peers were to partake of it. Here, therefore, is one instance of actual insanity, in which the sense of taste controlled and attempted to restrain the ideal hypothesis adopted by a deranged imagination. But the disorder to which I previously alluded is entirely of a bodily character, and consists principally in a disease of the visual organs, which present to the patient a set of spectres or appearances which have no actual existence. It is a disease of the same nature which renders many men incapable of distinguishing colours; only the patients go a step further, and pervert the external form of objects. In their case, therefore, contrary to that of the maniac, it is not the mind, or rather the imagination, which imposes upon and overpowers the evidence of the senses, but the sense of seeing (or hearing) which betrays its duty and conveys false ideas to a sane intellect.
This frightening disorder isn’t exactly insanity, although it's somewhat related to that terrible illness and can trigger it in many people. Both conditions share hallucinations, but I believe the difference lies in the effect on the patient. In cases of insanity, the patient's mind is primarily impacted, while their senses or bodily functions continually present evidence against the delusions of an unbalanced mind. Perhaps the best way to describe this clash—between a disrupted imagination and senses that are otherwise functioning well—is through the distress shown by an insane patient at the Edinburgh Infirmary. This man’s condition had taken a more cheerful turn. He believed the building was his own and rationalized anything that contradicted his imagined ownership—there were many patients there, but that was simply because of his kind nature, which made him enjoy helping those in distress. He rarely went outside—he was more of a homebody. He didn’t see much company, but he had daily visits from leading figures in the city’s famous medical school, so he wasn’t lacking in social interaction. With all these supposed comforts around him—with so many visions of wealth and luxury—only one thing disturbed this poor optimist’s peace, a concern that would confuse most people. “He was particular,” he said, “about his meals, selective with his cooks, enjoyed a three-course dinner and dessert every day; yet somehow, everything he ate tasted like porridge.” This dilemma wouldn’t have surprised his friend, who knew the patient only ate this simple food at every meal. The issue was clear. His disease lay in the extreme liveliness of his imagination, which misled him in other ways, but wasn’t quite strong enough to overpower the honest feedback from his stomach and taste buds, which, like Lord Peter's brothers in “The Tale of a Tub,” were offended by the idea of being served boiled oatmeal instead of an exquisite feast like the one Ude would have presented to nobles. Here, then, is one instance of genuine insanity, where taste was able to control and challenge the ideal concepts adopted by a distorted imagination. But the disorder I previously mentioned is purely physical and primarily affects the visual organs, presenting the patient with shapes or images that don’t actually exist. It’s similar to the condition that causes some people to struggle with distinguishing colors; however, these patients go even further and distort the actual appearance of objects. In their case, unlike with a maniac, it’s not the mind, or rather the imagination, that overrides and dominates the sensory evidence, but the sense of sight (or hearing) that fails in its duty and transmits false ideas to a rational mind.
More than one learned physician, who have given their attestations to the existence of this most distressing complaint, have agreed that it actually occurs, and is occasioned by different causes. The most frequent source of the malady is in the dissipated and intemperate habits of those who, by a continued series of intoxication, become subject to what is popularly called the Blue Devils, instances of which mental disorder may be known to most who have lived for any period of their lives in society where hard drinking was a common vice. The joyous visions suggested by intoxication when the habit is first acquired, in time disappear, and are supplied by frightful impressions and scenes, which destroy the tranquillity of the unhappy debauchee. Apparitions of the most unpleasant appearance are his companions in solitude, and intrude even upon his hours of society: and when by an alteration of habits, the mind is cleared of these frightful ideas, it requires but the slightest renewal of the association to bring back the full tide of misery upon the repentant libertine.
More than one knowledgeable doctor, who has confirmed the existence of this troubling issue, agrees that it actually happens and is caused by various factors. The most common source of the problem is the reckless and excessive behavior of those who, through continuous drinking, become prone to what is commonly referred to as the Blue Devils. Many people who have spent any time in a society where heavy drinking is a norm are familiar with this type of mental disorder. The joyful visions that come with intoxication when the habit first starts eventually fade away and are replaced by terrifying thoughts and images that disrupt the peace of the unfortunate drinker. Disturbing apparitions become their companions in solitude and invade their social interactions; and when a change in habits clears the mind of these terrifying thoughts, it only takes the smallest reminder to bring back the overwhelming misery for the remorseful libertine.
Of this the following instance was told to the author by a gentleman connected with the sufferer. A young man of fortune, who had led what is called so gay a life as considerably to injure both his health and fortune, was at length obliged to consult the physician upon the means of restoring, at least, the former. One of his principal complaints was the frequent presence of a set of apparitions, resembling a band of figures dressed in green, who performed in his drawing-room a singular dance, to which he was compelled to bear witness, though he knew, to his great annoyance, that the whole corps de ballet existed only in his own imagination. His physician immediately informed him that he had lived upon town too long and too fast not to require an exchange to a more healthy and natural course of life. He therefore prescribed a gentle course of medicine, but earnestly recommended to his patient to retire to his own house in the country, observe a temperate diet and early hours, practising regular exercise, on the same principle avoiding fatigue, and assured him that by doing so he might bid adieu to black spirits and white, blue, green, and grey, with all their trumpery. The patient observed the advice, and prospered. His physician, after the interval of a month, received a grateful letter from him, acknowledging the success of his regimen. The greens goblins had disappeared, and with them the unpleasant train of emotions to which their visits had given rise, and the patient had ordered his town-house to be disfurnished and sold, while the furniture was to be sent down to his residence in the country, where he was determined in future to spend his life, without exposing himself to the temptations of town. One would have supposed this a well-devised scheme for health. But, alas! no sooner had the furniture of the London drawing-room been placed in order in the gallery of the old manor-house, than the former delusion returned in full force: the green figurantés, whom the patient’s depraved imagination had so long associated with these moveables, came capering and frisking to accompany them, exclaiming with great glee, as if the sufferer should have been rejoiced to see them, “Here we all are—here we all are!” The visionary, if I recollect right, was so much shocked at their appearance, that he retired abroad, in despair that any part of Britain could shelter him from the daily persecution of this domestic ballet.
A gentleman connected to the person in distress told the author the following story. A young man with wealth, who had lived an extravagant life that severely harmed both his health and finances, finally had to seek help from a doctor to restore at least his health. One of his main issues was the constant appearance of a group of ghostly figures dressed in green, who performed a strange dance in his living room. He was forced to watch this, even though it annoyed him to know that the entire troupe was just in his head. His doctor quickly informed him that he had lived in the city too long and too indulgently, and needed to switch to a healthier, more natural lifestyle. He prescribed a mild medication and strongly advised the young man to go back to his country home, eat a balanced diet, keep early hours, and exercise regularly, while avoiding fatigue. The doctor assured him that by doing this, he could say goodbye to the black spirits and all their colorful antics. The patient followed the advice and thrived. A month later, the doctor received a thankful letter from him, acknowledging the success of his regimen. The green goblins had vanished along with the unpleasant emotions their visits had caused, and he had arranged to sell his city house and move all the furniture to his country home, where he planned to live in peace, away from the temptations of the city. One would think this was a well-thought-out plan for good health. But, alas! No sooner had the London furniture been set up in the old manor house gallery than the delusion came back stronger than ever: the green figures that his twisted imagination had long connected with those belongings returned dancing and prancing around, cheerfully exclaiming, "Here we all are—here we all are!" The poor man was so shocked by their appearance that he fled abroad, despairing that any part of Britain could offer him refuge from this constant domestic ballet.
There is reason to believe that such cases are numerous, and that they may perhaps arise not only from the debility of stomach brought on by excess in wine or spirits, which derangement often sensibly affects the eyes and sense of sight, but also because the mind becomes habitually predominated over by a train of fantastic visions, the consequence of frequent intoxication; and is thus, like a dislocated joint, apt again to go wrong, even when a different cause occasions the derangement.
There are good reasons to think that cases like these are common, and they might occur not just from the weakness of the stomach caused by too much wine or alcohol—something that clearly impacts the eyes and vision—but also because the mind can become continually dominated by a series of bizarre imaginations due to frequent intoxication. This situation, similar to a dislocated joint, can easily go off track again, even when a different factor causes the issue.
It is easy to be supposed that habitual excitement by means of any other intoxicating drug, as opium, or its various substitutes, must expose those who practise the dangerous custom to the same inconvenience. Very frequent use of the nitrous oxide which affects the senses so strongly, and produces a short but singular state of ecstasy, would probably be found to occasion this species of disorder. But there are many other causes which medical men find attended with the same symptom, of embodying before the eyes of a patient imaginary illusions which are visible to no one else. This persecution of spectral deceptions is also found to exist when no excesses of the patient can be alleged as the cause, owing, doubtless, to a deranged state of the blood or nervous system.
It's easy to assume that regular use of any other intoxicating drug, like opium or its various substitutes, would put people who engage in this risky habit at the same disadvantage. Frequent use of nitrous oxide, which strongly affects the senses and creates a brief but unique state of euphoria, would likely lead to this type of disorder as well. However, there are many other factors that medical professionals find can also result in the same symptom—bringing forth imaginary illusions that only the patient can see. This experience of seeing spectral deceptions can occur even when the patient hasn't indulged excessively, likely due to an imbalance in the blood or nervous system.
The learned and acute Dr. Ferriar of Manchester was the first who brought before the English public the leading case, as it may be called, in this department, namely, that of Mons. Nicolai, the celebrated bookseller of Berlin. This gentleman was not a man merely of books, but of letters, and had the moral courage to lay before the Philosophical Society of Berlin an account of his own sufferings, from having been, by disease, subjected to a series of spectral illusions. The leading circumstances of this case may be stated very shortly, as it has been repeatedly before the public, and is insisted on by Dr. Ferriar, Dr. Hibbert, and others who have assumed Demonology as a subject. Nicolai traces his illness remotely to a series of disagreeable incidents which had happened to him in the beginning of the year 1791. The depression of spirits which was occasioned by these unpleasant occurrences, was aided by the consequences of neglecting a course of periodical bleeding which he had been accustomed to observe. This state of health brought on the disposition to see phantasmata, who visited, or it may be more properly said frequented, the apartments of the learned bookseller, presenting crowds of persons who moved and acted before him, nay, even spoke to and addressed him. These phantoms afforded nothing unpleasant to the imagination of the visionary either in sight or expression, and the patient was possessed of too much firmness to be otherwise affected by their presence than with a species of curiosity, as he remained convinced from the beginning to the end of the disorder, that these singular effects were merely symptoms of the state of his health, and did not in any other respect regard them as a subject of apprehension. After a certain time, and some use of medicine, the phantoms became less distinct in their outline, less vivid in their colouring, faded, as it were, on the eye of the patient, and at length totally disappeared.
The knowledgeable and sharp Dr. Ferriar from Manchester was the first to present to the English public the main case in this area, which is known as that of Mons. Nicolai, the famous bookseller from Berlin. This individual was not just a man of books, but also of letters, and had the courage to share with the Philosophical Society of Berlin an account of his own suffering from a series of visual disturbances caused by illness. The key details of this case can be briefly summarized, as it has been discussed numerous times and is emphasized by Dr. Ferriar, Dr. Hibbert, and others who have taken up the study of Demonology. Nicolai attributes his illness to a sequence of unfortunate events that occurred at the beginning of 1791. The resulting depression was made worse by neglecting a regular routine of bloodletting that he had been following. This decline in health led to his seeing phantoms that visited—or perhaps more accurately, frequented—the rooms of the learned bookseller, presenting a multitude of figures who moved and acted before him, even speaking to him. These phantoms did not disturb the visionary's imagination in any negative way, and he had too much composure to feel anything other than curiosity about their presence. From the start to the finish of his disorder, he remained convinced that these unusual effects were simply symptoms of his health issues and did not regard them as a cause for concern. After some time and a bit of medication, the phantoms became less defined in shape, less vivid in color, faded from the patient's sight, and eventually disappeared entirely.
The case of Nicolai has unquestionably been that of many whose love of science has not been able to overcome their natural reluctance to communicate to the public the particulars attending the visitation of a disease so peculiar. That such illnesses have been experienced, and have ended fatally, there can be no doubt; though it is by no means to be inferred, that the symptom of importance to our present discussion has, on all occasions, been produced from the same identical cause.
The situation with Nicolai is definitely similar to that of many people whose passion for science hasn’t been enough to outweigh their natural hesitation to share with the public the details surrounding a disease that is so unusual. There’s no doubt that such illnesses have occurred and have been fatal; however, it should not be assumed that the symptom that is important to our current discussion has always resulted from the exact same cause.
Dr. Hibbert, who has most ingeniously, as well as philosophically, handled this subject, has treated it also in a medical point of view, with science to which we make no pretence, and a precision of detail to which our superficial investigation affords us no room for extending ourselves.
Dr. Hibbert, who has cleverly and thoughtfully addressed this topic, has also approached it from a medical perspective, using a depth of knowledge we don’t claim to possess, and with a level of detail that our brief examination doesn’t allow us to expand upon.
The visitation of spectral phenomena is described by this learned gentleman as incidental to sundry complaints; and he mentions, in particular, that the symptom occurs not only in plethora, as in the case of the learned Prussian we have just mentioned, but is a frequent hectic symptom—often an associate of febrile and inflammatory disorders—frequently accompanying inflammation of the brain—a concomitant also of highly excited nervous irritability—equally connected with hypochondria—and finally united in some cases with gout, and in others with the effects of excitation produced by several gases. In all these cases there seems to be a morbid degree of sensibility, with which this symptom is ready to ally itself, and which, though inaccurate as a medical definition, may be held sufficiently descriptive of one character of the various kinds of disorder with which this painful symptom may be found allied.
The occurrence of ghostly phenomena is described by this knowledgeable man as related to various complaints; he specifically notes that the symptom appears not only in cases of excess, like in the aforementioned learned Prussian, but is also a common sign of illness—often associated with fever and inflammatory conditions—frequently linked to brain inflammation—a companion to heightened nervous sensitivity—equally tied to hypochondria—and in some cases related to gout, while in others connected to the effects of stimulation caused by different gases. In all these instances, there seems to be an unhealthy level of sensitivity that this symptom readily associates with, which, although not completely accurate as a medical definition, can be considered a fairly adequate description of one aspect of the various disorders that this painful symptom might be linked to.
A very singular and interesting illustration of such combinations as Dr. Hibbert has recorded of the spectral illusion with an actual disorder, and that of a dangerous kind, was frequently related in society by the late learned and accomplished Dr. Gregory of Edinburgh, and sometimes, I believe, quoted by him in his lectures. The narrative, to the author’s best recollection, was as follows:—A patient of Dr. Gregory, a person, it is understood, of some rank, having requested the doctor’s advice, made the following extraordinary statement of his complaint. “I am in the habit,” he said, “of dining at five, and exactly as the hour of six arrives I am subjected to the following painful visitation. The door of the room, even when I have been weak enough to bolt it, which I have sometimes done, flies wide open; an old hag, like one of those who haunted the heath of Forres, enters with a frowning and incensed countenance, comes straight up to me with every demonstration of spite and indignation which could characterize her who haunted the merchant Abudah in the Oriental tale; she rushes upon me, says something, but so hastily that I cannot discover the purport, and then strikes me a severe blow with her staff. I fall from my chair in a swoon, which is of longer or shorter endurance. To the recurrence of this apparition I am daily subjected. And such is my new and singular complaint.” The doctor immediately asked whether his patient had invited any one to sit with him when he expected such a visitation. He was answered in the negative. The nature of the complaint, he said, was so singular, it was so likely to be imputed to fancy, or even to mental derangement, that he had shrunk from communicating the circumstance to any one. “Then,” said the doctor, “with your permission, I will dine with you to-day, téte-à-téte, and we will see if your malignant old woman will venture to join our company.” The patient accepted the proposal with hope and gratitude, for he had expected ridicule rather than sympathy. They met at dinner, and Dr. Gregory, who suspected some nervous disorder, exerted his powers of conversation, well known to be of the most varied and brilliant character, to keep the attention of his host engaged, and prevent him from thinking on the approach of the fated hour, to which he was accustomed to look forward with so much terror. He succeeded in his purpose better than he had hoped. The hour of six came almost unnoticed, and it was hoped might pass away without any evil consequence; but it was scarce a moment struck when the owner of the house exclaimed, in an alarmed voice, “The hag comes again!” and dropped back in his chair in a swoon, in the way he had himself described. The physician caused him to be let blood, and satisfied himself that the periodical shocks of which his patient complained arose from a tendency to apoplexy.
A very unique and interesting example of the combinations that Dr. Hibbert noted between a spectral illusion and a real, potentially dangerous disorder was often recounted in social circles by the late, scholarly, and accomplished Dr. Gregory of Edinburgh, and I believe he sometimes quoted it in his lectures. To the best of the author’s recollection, the story went like this: A patient of Dr. Gregory, a man of some standing, sought the doctor’s advice and made this extraordinary claim about his ailment. “I usually have dinner at five, and right at six o'clock, I experience this painful episode. The door to the room, even when I've been foolish enough to bolt it, which I have occasionally done, flings wide open; an old woman, like one of those who haunted the heath of Forres, enters with a scowling and angry face, approaches me with every sign of malice and indignation one might expect from the spirit that troubled the merchant Abudah in the Eastern tale; she rushes at me, says something, but so quickly that I can’t grasp what she means, and then hits me hard with her staff. I collapse from my chair in a faint, which lasts for varying amounts of time. I face this apparition every day. That is my strange and new complaint.” The doctor immediately inquired if his patient had invited anyone to sit with him when expecting such a visit. He replied no. The nature of the complaint was so unusual that it could easily be attributed to imagination or even mental instability, so he had hesitated to share this with anyone. “Then,” the doctor said, “if you don’t mind, I will join you for dinner today, just the two of us, and we’ll see if your malevolent old woman dares to join us.” The patient accepted this suggestion with hope and gratitude, as he had anticipated mockery instead of sympathy. They had dinner together, and Dr. Gregory, suspecting a nervous disorder, used his well-known skills in conversation, which were varied and brilliant, to keep his host engaged and distract him from the daunting hour he was so afraid of. He succeeded better than expected. The hour of six approached almost unnoticed, and they hoped it would pass without incident. But just as it struck, the homeowner cried out in a panicked voice, “The hag is back!” and fell back in his chair in a faint, just as he had described. The doctor had him bled and concluded that the periodic fainting spells his patient reported were due to a tendency for apoplexy.
The phantom with the crutch was only a species of machinery, such as that with which fancy is found to supply the disorder called Ephialtes, or nightmare, or indeed any other external impression upon our organs in sleep, which the patient’s morbid imagination may introduce into the dream preceding the swoon. In the nightmare an oppression and suffocation is felt, and our fancy instantly conjures up a spectre to lie on our bosom. In like manner it may be remarked, that any sudden noise which the slumberer hears, without being actually awakened by it—any casual touch of his person occurring in the same manner—becomes instantly adopted in his dream, and accommodated to the tenor of the current train of thought, whatever that may happen to be; and nothing is more remarkable than the rapidity with which imagination supplies a complete explanation of the interruption, according to the previous train of ideas expressed in the dream, even when scarce a moment of time is allowed for that purpose. In dreaming, for example, of a duel, the external sound becomes, in the twinkling of an eye, the discharge of the combatants’ pistols;—is an orator haranguing in his sleep, the sound becomes the applause of his supposed audience;—is the dreamer wandering among supposed ruins, the noise is that of the fall of some part of the mass. In short, an explanatory system is adopted during sleep with such extreme rapidity, that supposing the intruding alarm to have been the first call of some person to awaken the slumberer, the explanation, though requiring some process of argument or deduction, is usually formed and perfect before the second effort of the speaker has restored the dreamer to the waking world and its realities. So rapid and intuitive is the succession of ideas in sleep, as to remind us of the vision of the prophet Mahommed, in which he saw the whole wonders of heaven and hell, though the jar of water which fell when his ecstasy commenced, had not spilled its contents when he returned to ordinary existence.
The ghost with the crutch was just a kind of mechanism, like what our imagination creates to fill in the chaos known as Ephialtes, or nightmares, or any other outside influence on our senses while we sleep, which the person’s disturbed mind might insert into the dream before the blackout. In nightmares, we often feel pressure and suffocation, causing our imagination to instantly create a specter that lays on our chest. Similarly, it can be noted that any sudden noise heard by someone sleeping—without actually waking them up—any random touch they feel in the same way—immediately gets integrated into their dream and adapted to whatever train of thought they’re currently experiencing; and nothing is more striking than how quickly the imagination comes up with a complete explanation for the interruption, based on the ideas already expressed in the dream, even when there’s hardly any time allowed for that. For example, if dreaming of a duel, a sound from the outside becomes, in the blink of an eye, the firing of the combatants’ guns; if a person is giving a speech in their sleep, the noise turns into the applause from an imagined audience; if the dreamer is wandering through supposed ruins, the noise might be the sound of something crumbling. In short, a system of explanation is adopted in sleep with such incredible speed, that if the unwelcome noise were the first call of someone trying to wake the sleeper, the explanation—although it may require some reasoning or deduction—is usually fully formed before the second attempt by the speaker brings the dreamer back to the waking world and its realities. The speed and instinctiveness of the flow of ideas during sleep are reminiscent of the vision of the prophet Muhammad, where he witnessed the entire marvels of heaven and hell, even though the splash of water from a fallen jar, which marked the start of his ecstasy, hadn’t spilled its contents by the time he returned to normal consciousness.
A second, and equally remarkable instance, was communicated to the author by the medical man under whose observation it fell, but who was, of course, desirous to keep private the name of the hero of so singular a history. Of the friend by whom the facts were attested I can only say, that if I found myself at liberty to name him, the rank which he holds in his profession, as well as his attainments in science and philosophy, form an undisputed claim to the most implicit credit.
A second equally remarkable example was shared with the author by the doctor who observed it, but, of course, he wanted to keep the name of the person involved private. As for the friend who confirmed the facts, I can only say that if I were allowed to name him, his standing in his profession and his knowledge in science and philosophy would give him an undeniable claim to complete trust.
It was the fortune of this gentleman to be called in to attend the illness of a person now long deceased, who in his lifetime stood, as I understand, high in a particular department of the law, which often placed the property of others at his discretion and control, and whose conduct, therefore, being open to public observation, he had for many years borne the character of a man of unusual steadiness, good sense, and integrity. He was, at the time of my friend’s visits, confined principally to his sick-room, sometimes to bed, yet occasionally attending to business, and exerting his mind, apparently with all its usual strength and energy, to the conduct of important affairs intrusted to him; nor did there, to a superficial observer, appear anything in his conduct, while so engaged, that could argue vacillation of intellect, or depression of mind. His outward symptoms of malady argued no acute or alarming disease. But slowness of pulse, absence of appetite, difficulty of digestion, and constant depression of spirits, seemed to draw their origin from some hidden cause, which the patient was determined to conceal. The deep gloom of the unfortunate gentleman—the embarrassment, which he could not conceal from his friendly physician—the briefness and obvious constraint with which he answered the interrogations of his medical adviser, induced my friend to take other methods for prosecuting his inquiries. He applied to the sufferer’s family, to learn, if possible, the source of that secret grief which was gnawing the heart and sucking the life-blood of his unfortunate patient. The persons applied to, after conversing together previously, denied all knowledge of any cause for the burden which obviously affected their relative. So far as they knew—and they thought they could hardly be deceived—his worldly affairs were prosperous; no family loss had occurred which could be followed with such persevering distress; no entanglements of affection could be supposed to apply to his age, and no sensation of severe remorse could be consistent with his character. The medical gentleman had finally recourse to serious argument with the invalid himself, and urged to him the folly of devoting himself to a lingering and melancholy death, rather than tell the subject of affliction which was thus wasting him. He specially pressed upon him the injury which he was doing to his own character, by suffering it to be inferred that the secret cause of his dejection and its consequences was something too scandalous or flagitious to be made known, bequeathing in this manner to his family a suspected and dishonoured name, and leaving a memory with which might be associated the idea of guilt, which the criminal had died without confessing. The patient, more moved by this species of appeal than by any which had yet been urged, expressed his desire to speak out frankly to Dr.——. Every one else was removed, and the door of the sick-room made secure, when he began his confession in the following manner:—
It happened that this gentleman was called in to help a person who has since passed away, someone who was, as I understand, quite influential in a specific area of the law during his lifetime, often handling the properties of others at his discretion. Because of this, he had maintained a reputation for many years as a person of exceptional reliability, common sense, and integrity. At the time my friend visited him,
“You cannot, my dear friend, be more conscious than I, that I am in the course of dying under the oppression of the fatal disease which consumes my vital powers; but neither can you understand the nature of my complaint, and manner in which it acts upon me, nor, if you did, I fear, could your zeal and skill avail to rid me of it.”—“It is possible,” said the physician, “that my skill may not equal my wish of serving you; yet medical science has many resources, of which those unacquainted with its powers never can form an estimate. But until you plainly tell me your symptoms of complaint, it is impossible for either of us to say what may or may not be in my power, or within that of medicine.”—“I may answer you,” replied the patient, “that my case is not a singular one, since we read of it in the famous novel of Le Sage. You remember, doubtless, the disease of which the Duke d’Olivarez is there stated to have died?”—“Of the idea,” answered the medical gentleman, “that he was haunted by an apparition, to the actual existence of which he gave no credit, but died, nevertheless, because he was overcome and heart-broken by its imaginary presence.”—“I, my dearest doctor,” said the sick man, “am in that very case; and so painful and abhorrent is the presence of the persecuting vision, that my reason is totally inadequate to combat the effects of my morbid imagination, and I am sensible I am dying, a wasted victim to an imaginary disease.” The medical gentleman listened with anxiety to his patient’s statement, and for the present judiciously avoiding any contradiction of the sick man’s preconceived fancy, contented himself with more minute inquiry into the nature of the apparition with which he conceived himself haunted, and into the history of the mode by which so singular a disease had made itself master of his imagination, secured, as it seemed, by strong powers of the understanding, against an attack so irregular. The sick person replied by stating that its advances were gradual, and at first not of a terrible or even disagreeable character. To illustrate this, he gave the following account of the progress of his disease:—
“You can't be more aware than I am that I'm slowly dying from this awful disease that's draining my strength; but you also can't fully grasp what I'm going through or how it affects me. Even if you did, I worry that your skills and dedication wouldn't be enough to cure me.” —“It's possible,” the doctor replied, “that my abilities might not match my desire to help you; however, medical science has many tools that those who aren't familiar with it can't truly appreciate. Until you clearly describe your symptoms, neither of us can determine what I can do or what medicine can accomplish.” —“I can tell you,” the patient said, “that my situation isn't unique, as we read about it in the famous novel by Le Sage. You remember the illness that the Duke d’Olivarez supposedly died from?” —“The belief,” the doctor answered, “that he was tormented by a ghost he didn't truly believe existed, yet he died from the grief and despair caused by its imagined presence.” —“I, my dear doctor,” the patient said, “am in exactly that situation; the tormenting vision is so painful and repulsive that I can't fight the effects of my disturbed imagination, and I know I'm dying, a mere victim to a false illness.” The doctor listened anxiously to his patient's words and, wisely avoiding any contradiction of the man's firmly held belief, focused instead on asking more detailed questions about the nature of the vision he thought he was seeing and how such an unusual condition had taken control of his mind, which seemed strongly resistant to such an unusual attack. The sick man responded by explaining that its manifestation was gradual, initially not terrifying or even unpleasant. To illustrate this, he provided the following account of his illness:—
“My visions,” he said, “commenced two or three years since, when I found myself from time to time embarrassed by the presence of a large cat, which came and disappeared I could not exactly tell how, till the truth was finally forced upon me, and I was compelled to regard it as no domestic household cat, but as a bubble of the elements, which had no existence save in my deranged visual organs or depraved imagination. Still I had not that positive objection to the animal entertained by a late gallant Highland chieftain, who has been seen to change to all the colours of his own plaid if a cat by accident happened to be in the room with him, even though he did not see it. On the contrary, I am rather a friend to cats, and endured with so much equanimity the presence of my imaginary attendant, that it had become almost indifferent to me; when, within the course of a few months, it gave place to, or was succeeded by, a spectre of a more important sort, or which at least had a more imposing appearance. This was no other than the apparition of a gentleman-usher, dressed as if to wait upon a Lord Lieutenant of Ireland, a Lord High Commissioner of the Kirk, or any other who bears on his brow the rank and stamp of delegated sovereignty.
"My visions," he said, "started two or three years ago when I occasionally found myself troubled by the presence of a large cat that would come and go in a way I couldn't quite understand. Eventually, I had to accept that it wasn't just a regular house cat, but rather a figment of my imagination or a trick of my mind. Still, I didn't react as negatively to the animal as a certain late Highland chieftain, who was known to change colors like his plaid if a cat happened to be in the room, even if he didn't see it. On the contrary, I actually like cats, and I tolerated my imaginary companion with such calm that it became almost unnoticeable to me. Then, after a few months, it was replaced by a specter of greater significance, or at least one that looked more impressive. This was nothing less than the apparition of a gentleman-usher, dressed as if he were waiting on a Lord Lieutenant of Ireland, a Lord High Commissioner of the Kirk, or anyone else with the mark of authority on their brow."
“This personage, arrayed in a court dress, with bag and sword, tamboured waistcoat, and chapeau-bras, glided beside me like the ghost of Beau Nash; and, whether in my own house or in another, ascended the stairs before me, as if to announce me in the drawing-room, and at sometimes appeared to mingle with the company, though it was sufficiently evident that they were not aware of his presence, and that I alone was sensible of the visionary honours which this imaginary being seemed desirous to render me. This freak of the fancy did not produce much impression on me, though it led me to entertain doubts on the nature of my disorder and alarm for the effect it might produce on my intellects. But that modification of my disease also had its appointed duration. After a few months the phantom of the gentleman-usher was seen no more, but was succeeded by one horrible to the sight and distressing to the imagination, being no other than the image of death itself—the apparition of a skeleton. Alone or in company,” said the unfortunate invalid, “the presence of this last phantom never quits me. I in vain tell myself a hundred times over that it is no reality, but merely an image summoned up by the morbid acuteness of my own excited imagination and deranged organs of sight. But what avail such reflections, while the emblem at once and presage of mortality is before my eyes, and while I feel myself, though in fancy only, the companion of a phantom representing a ghastly inhabitant of the grave, even while I yet breathe on the earth? Science, philosophy, even religion, has no cure for such a disorder; and I feel too surely that I shall die the victim to so melancholy a disease, although I have no belief whatever in the reality of the phantom which it places before me.”
“This person, dressed in formal attire with a bag and sword, embroidered waistcoat, and fancy hat, glided beside me like the ghost of Beau Nash. Whether in my own house or elsewhere, he ascended the stairs in front of me, as if to introduce me in the drawing room, and sometimes seemed to mix with the guests, even though it was clear they were unaware of his presence, and I was the only one aware of the imaginary honors this figure seemed eager to bestow upon me. This oddity didn’t leave much of an impression on me, but it did lead me to question the nature of my condition and worry about its possible effects on my mind. However, that phase of my illness also had its time limit. After a few months, the phantom of the gentleman usher vanished, replaced by something horrific and unsettling: the image of death itself—a skeleton. Whether alone or in company,” said the unfortunate patient, “the presence of this last phantom never leaves me. I tell myself repeatedly that it’s not real, just a vision created by the heightened sensitivity of my troubled imagination and flawed sight. But what good are such reflections when the symbol and omen of mortality is right before my eyes, and I feel myself, even if only in my mind, the companion of a ghostly figure representing a gruesome inhabitant of the grave, even while I still breathe on this earth? Science, philosophy, even religion have no remedy for this ailment; and I fear that I will die a victim to such a sorrowful illness, even though I don't believe in the reality of the phantom that appears before me.”
The physician was distressed to perceive, from these details, how strongly this visionary apparition was fixed in the imagination of his patient. He ingeniously urged the sick man, who was then in bed, with questions concerning the circumstances of the phantom’s appearance, trusting he might lead him, as a sensible man, into such contradictions and inconsistencies as might bring his common-sense, which seemed to be unimpaired, so strongly into the field as might combat successfully the fantastic disorder which produced such fatal effects. “This skeleton, then,” said the doctor, “seems to you to be always present to your eyes?” “It is my fate, unhappily,” answered the invalid, “always to see it.” “Then I understand,” continued the physician, “it is now present to your imagination?” “To my imagination it certainly is so,” replied the sick man. “And in what part of the chamber do you now conceive the apparition to appear?” the physician inquired. “Immediately at the foot of my bed. When the curtains are left a little open,” answered the invalid, “the skeleton, to my thinking, is placed between them, and fills the vacant space.” “You say you are sensible of the delusion,” said his friend; “have you firmness to convince yourself of the truth of this? Can you take courage enough to rise and place yourself in the spot so seeming to be occupied, and convince yourself of the illusion?” The poor man sighed, and shook his head negatively. “Well,” said the doctor, “we will try the experiment otherwise.” Accordingly, he rose from his chair by the bedside, and placing himself between the two half-drawn curtains at the foot of the bed, indicated as the place occupied by the apparition, asked if the spectre was still visible? “Not entirely so,” replied the patient, “because your person is betwixt him and me; but I observe his skull peering above your shoulder.”
The doctor was troubled to see, from these details, how deeply this vision was ingrained in his patient's mind. He cleverly asked the sick man, who was in bed, questions about the circumstances of the phantom's appearance, hoping to guide him, as a rational person, into contradictions and inconsistencies that might bring his common sense, which appeared intact, strongly into play to successfully combat the bizarre disorder causing such harmful effects. “So this skeleton,” said the doctor, “always seems to be right in front of you?” “Unfortunately, it is my fate,” the sick man replied, “to always see it.” “I see,” the doctor continued, “so it is now active in your imagination?” “It certainly is,” the patient answered. “And where in the room do you imagine the apparition appears?” the physician asked. “Directly at the foot of my bed. When the curtains are left a little open,” the invalid replied, “the skeleton, as I see it, is positioned between them, filling the empty space.” “You say you recognize the delusion,” the doctor said; “do you have the strength to convince yourself of the truth? Can you gather the courage to get up and stand in the spot that seems to be occupied, and prove to yourself it’s an illusion?” The poor man sighed and shook his head. “Alright,” the doctor said, “let's try the experiment another way.” He got up from his chair by the bedside and positioned himself between the two partially drawn curtains at the foot of the bed, which was indicated as the location of the apparition, and asked if the specter was still visible. “Not completely,” replied the patient, “because your body is between him and me; but I can see his skull peering over your shoulder.”
It is alleged the man of science started on the instant, despite philosophy, on receiving an answer ascertaining, with such minuteness, that the ideal spectre was close to his own person. He resorted to other means of investigation and cure, but with equally indifferent success. The patient sunk into deeper and deeper dejection, and died in the same distress of mind in which he had spent the latter months of his life; and his case remains a melancholy instance of the power of imagination to kill the body, even when its fantastic terrors cannot overcome the intellect, of the unfortunate persons who suffer under them. The patient, in the present case, sunk under his malady; and the circumstances of his singular disorder remaining concealed, he did not, by his death and last illness, lose any of his well-merited reputation for prudence and sagacity which had attended him during the whole course of his life.
It is said that the scientist reacted immediately, despite philosophy, upon receiving an answer that confirmed, in great detail, that the ideal phantom was close to him. He tried other methods of investigation and treatment, but with equally poor results. The patient fell into deeper and deeper despair and died in the same mental anguish that had plagued him in the final months of his life; his case stands as a sad example of how imagination can harm the body, even when its strange fears fail to overpower the intellect of those who suffer from them. In this instance, the patient succumbed to his illness; and since the details of his unusual condition remained hidden, he did not lose any of the well-deserved reputation for wisdom and sound judgment that he had maintained throughout his life due to his death and final illness.
Having added these two remarkable instances to the general train of similar facts quoted by Ferriar, Hibbert, and other writers who have more recently considered the subject, there can, we think, be little doubt of the proposition, that the external organs may, from various causes, become so much deranged as to make false representations to the mind; and that, in such cases, men, in the literal sense, really see the empty and false forms and hear the ideal sounds which, in a more primitive state of society, are naturally enough referred to the action of demons or disembodied spirits. In such unhappy cases the patient is intellectually in the condition of a general whose spies have been bribed by the enemy, and who must engage himself in the difficult and delicate task of examining and correcting, by his own powers of argument, the probability of the reports which are too inconsistent to be trusted to.
Having added these two remarkable examples to the overall collection of similar facts cited by Ferriar, Hibbert, and other writers who have recently addressed the topic, we believe there is little doubt about the idea that external organs can become so disturbed for various reasons that they misrepresent reality to the mind. In such situations, individuals genuinely see empty and false shapes and hear imaginary sounds, which, in a more primitive society, would likely be attributed to the actions of demons or disembodied spirits. In these unfortunate cases, the patient is mentally similar to a general whose spies have been bribed by the enemy, having to engage in the difficult and sensitive task of assessing and correcting, using their own reasoning abilities, the reliability of reports that are too inconsistent to be trusted.
But there is a corollary to this proposition, which is worthy of notice. The same species of organic derangement which, as a continued habit of his deranged vision, presented the subject of our last tale with the successive apparitions of his cat, his gentleman-usher, and the fatal skeleton, may occupy, for a brief or almost momentary space, the vision of men who are otherwise perfectly clear-sighted. Transitory deceptions are thus presented to the organs which, when they occur to men of strength of mind and of education, give way to scrutiny, and their character being once investigated, the true takes the place of the unreal representation. But in ignorant times those instances in which any object is misrepresented, whether through the action of the senses, or of the imagination, or the combined influence of both, for however short a space of time, may be admitted as direct evidence of a supernatural apparition; a proof the more difficult to be disputed if the phantom has been personally witnessed by a man of sense and estimation, who, perhaps satisfied in the general as to the actual existence of apparitions, has not taken time or trouble to correct his first impressions. This species of deception is so frequent that one of the greatest poets of the present time answered a lady who asked him if he believed in ghosts:—“No, madam; I have seen too many myself.” I may mention one or two instances of the kind, to which no doubt can be attached.
But there’s a related point to this idea that deserves attention. The same kind of mental disturbance that caused the protagonist of our last story to see his cat, his butler, and the dreaded skeleton might also briefly affect the perception of otherwise clear-minded people. These fleeting illusions can occur in the minds of strong and educated individuals, but they often give way to examination; once the reality is explored, the true image replaces the false one. However, in times of ignorance, any instance where an object is misinterpreted—whether due to the senses, imagination, or a mix of both, even for a moment—can be accepted as solid proof of a supernatural sighting. This evidence becomes even harder to dispute if the illusion is witnessed by someone respected and rational, who, perhaps convinced in general about the existence of such apparitions, hasn’t taken the time to reconsider their first impressions. This kind of misunderstanding occurs so often that one of the greatest poets of our time responded to a woman who asked if he believed in ghosts: “No, madam; I’ve seen too many myself.” I can share a couple of examples of this type that are undeniably true.
The first shall be the apparition of Maupertuis to a brother professor in the Royal Society of Berlin.
The first will be the appearance of Maupertuis to a fellow professor at the Royal Society of Berlin.
This extraordinary circumstance appeared in the Transactions of the Society, but is thus stated by M. Thiebault in his “Recollections of Frederick the Great and the Court of Berlin.” It is necessary to premise that M. Gleditsch, to whom the circumstance happened, was a botanist of eminence, holding the professorship of natural philosophy at Berlin, and respected as a man of an habitually serious, simple, and tranquil character.
This remarkable situation was mentioned in the Transactions of the Society, but M. Thiebault describes it in his “Recollections of Frederick the Great and the Court of Berlin.” It's important to note that M. Gleditsch, to whom this event happened, was a renowned botanist, serving as a professor of natural philosophy in Berlin, and was respected for being serious, straightforward, and calm.
A short time after the death of Maupertuis,2 M. Gleditsch being obliged to traverse the hall in which the Academy held its sittings, having some arrangements to make in the cabinet of natural history, which was under his charge, and being willing to complete them on the Thursday before the meeting, he perceived, on entering the hall, the apparition of M. de Maupertuis, upright and stationary, in the first angle on his left hand, having his eyes fixed on him. This was about three o’clock, afternoon. The professor of natural philosophy was too well acquainted with physical science to suppose that his late president, who had died at Bâle, in the family of Messrs. Bernoullie, could have found his way back to Berlin in person. He regarded the apparition in no other light than as a phantom produced by some derangement of his own proper organs. M. Gleditsch went to his own business, without stopping longer than to ascertain exactly the appearance of that object. But he related the vision to his brethren, and assured them that it was as defined and perfect as the actual person of Maupertuis could have presented. When it is recollected that Maupertuis died at a distance from Berlin, once the scene of his triumphs—overwhelmed by the petulant ridicule of Voltaire, and out of favour with Frederick, with whom to be ridiculous was to be worthless—we can hardly wonder at the imagination even of a man of physical science calling up his Eidolon in the hall of his former greatness.
A short time after Maupertuis's death, M. Gleditsch had to walk through the hall where the Academy held its meetings. He needed to make some arrangements in the natural history cabinet that he was in charge of, and he wanted to finish them on the Thursday before the meeting. As he entered the hall around three o’clock in the afternoon, he saw the figure of M. de Maupertuis standing upright and still in the first corner on his left, staring at him. The professor of natural philosophy understood enough about physical science to know that his late president, who had died in Bâle, at the Bernoulli family's residence, couldn’t have returned to Berlin in person. He didn't view the appearance as anything more than a phantom created by some disturbance in his own senses. M. Gleditsch continued with his work without lingering, aside from taking note of that object’s appearance. He later told his colleagues about the vision, insisting it was as clear and vivid as the real Maupertuis would have been. Considering that Maupertuis passed away far from Berlin, the place where he had once enjoyed great success—having been overwhelmed by Voltaire's mocking and fallen out of favor with Frederick, for whom being ridiculous meant being worthless—it’s not surprising that even a man of science could conjure up his ghost in the hall of his past glories.
2 (return)
[ Long the president of the
Berlin Academy, and much favoured by Frederick II., till he was
overwhelmed by the ridicule of Voltaire. He retired, in a species of
disgrace, to his native country of Switzerland, and died there shortly
afterwards.]
2 (return)
[ He was the long-time president of the Berlin Academy and was favored by Frederick II. until he was hit hard by Voltaire's ridicule. He eventually retired, somewhat disgraced, to his home country of Switzerland, where he died shortly after.]
The sober-minded professor did not, however, push his investigation to the point to which it was carried by a gallant soldier, from whose mouth a particular friend of the author received the following circumstances of a similar story.
The serious professor didn’t take his investigation as far as a brave soldier did, from whom a close friend of the author learned about the following details of a similar story.
Captain C—— was a native of Britain, but bred in the Irish Brigade. He was a man of the most dauntless courage, which he displayed in some uncommonly desperate adventures during the first years of the French Revolution, being repeatedly employed by the royal family in very dangerous commissions. After the King’s death he came over to England, and it was then the following circumstance took place.
Captain C—— was from Britain but grew up in the Irish Brigade. He was incredibly brave, showing his courage during some extremely risky adventures in the early years of the French Revolution, where he was often sent on dangerous missions by the royal family. After the King died, he moved to England, and it was then that the following event occurred.
Captain C—— was a Catholic, and, in his hour of adversity at least, sincerely attached to the duties of his religion. His confessor was a clergyman who was residing as chaplain to a man of rank in the west of England, about four miles from the place where Captain C—— lived. On riding over one morning to see this gentleman, his penitent had the misfortune to find him very ill from a dangerous complaint. He retired in great distress and apprehension of his friend’s life, and the feeling brought back upon him many other painful and disagreeable recollections. These occupied him till the hour of retiring to bed, when, to his great astonishment, he saw in the room the figure of the absent confessor. He addressed it, but received no answer—the eyes alone were impressed by the appearance. Determined to push the matter to the end, Captain C—— advanced on the phantom, which appeared to retreat gradually before him. In this manner he followed it round the bed, when it seemed to sink down on an elbow-chair, and remain there in a sitting posture. To ascertain positively the nature of the apparition, the soldier himself sate down on the same chair, ascertaining thus, beyond question, that the whole was illusion; yet he owned that, had his friend died about the same time, he would not well have known what name to give to his vision. But as the confessor recovered, and, in Dr. Johnson’s phrase, “nothing came of it,” the incident was only remarkable as showing that men of the strongest nerves are not exempted from such delusions.
Captain C—— was a Catholic and, at least during his tough times, genuinely committed to his religious duties. His confessor was a clergyman serving as a chaplain to a nobleman in the west of England, about four miles from where Captain C—— lived. One morning, when he rode over to see this gentleman, his penitent found him seriously ill with a dangerous illness. Distressed and worried about his friend's life, Captain C—— was flooded with painful and unpleasant memories. These thoughts occupied him until bedtime, when, to his shock, he saw the figure of his absent confessor in the room. He spoke to it, but received no reply; only the sight itself left an impression. Determined to figure it out, Captain C—— moved closer to the apparition, which seemed to retreat before him. He followed it around the bed until it settled down on an armchair and stayed there in a sitting position. To confirm what he was seeing, he took a seat in the same chair, realizing without a doubt that it was all an illusion. However, he admitted that if his friend had died around that time, he wouldn’t have known what to call his vision. But since the confessor recovered, and, in Dr. Johnson’s words, “nothing came of it,” the incident was only notable for showing that even the toughest individuals aren't immune to such delusions.
Another illusion of the same nature we have the best reason for vouching as a fact, though, for certain reasons, we do not give the names of the parties. Not long after the death of a late illustrious poet, who had filled, while living, a great station in the eye of the public, a literary friend, to whom the deceased had been well known, was engaged, during the darkening twilight of an autumn evening, in perusing one of the publications which professed to detail the habits and opinions of the distinguished individual who was now no more. As the reader had enjoyed the intimacy of the deceased to a considerable degree, he was deeply interested in the publication, which contained some particulars relating to himself and other friends. A visitor was sitting in the apartment, who was also engaged in reading. Their sitting-room opened into an entrance-hall, rather fantastically fitted up with articles of armour, skins of wild animals, and the like. It was when laying down his book, and passing into this hall, through which the moon was beginning to shine, that the individual of whom I speak saw, right before him, and in a standing posture, the exact representation of his departed friend, whose recollection had been so strongly brought to his imagination. He stopped for a single moment, so as to notice the wonderful accuracy with which fancy had impressed upon the bodily eye the peculiarities of dress and posture of the illustrious poet. Sensible, however, of the delusion, he felt no sentiment save that of wonder at the extraordinary accuracy of the resemblance, and stepped onwards towards the figure, which resolved itself, as he approached, into the various materials of which it was composed. These were merely a screen, occupied by great-coats, shawls, plaids, and such other articles as usually are found in a country entrance-hall. The spectator returned to the spot from which he had seen the illusion, and endeavoured, with all his power, to recall the image which had been so singularly vivid. But this was beyond his capacity; and the person who had witnessed the apparition, or, more properly, whose excited state had been the means of raising it, had only to return into the apartment, and tell his young friend under what a striking hallucination he had for a moment laboured.
Another illusion of the same kind has a strong reason to be considered a fact, although we won't disclose the names of those involved for certain reasons. Not long after the death of a well-known poet, who had held a significant place in the public eye while alive, a literary friend, who had been close to the deceased, was reading one of the publications that claimed to describe the habits and opinions of the now departed individual. The reader, having had a considerable intimacy with the deceased, was greatly interested in the publication, which included some details about himself and other friends. A visitor was in the room, also reading. Their sitting room opened into an entrance hall, which was rather oddly decorated with armor, animal skins, and similar items. As he set down his book and moved into this hall, with the moonlight beginning to shine through, the person I’m speaking of saw, right in front of him and standing there, the exact likeness of his late friend, whose memory had been vividly stirred in his mind. He paused for a moment, amazed by the striking accuracy with which his imagination had formed the details of the poet's clothing and stance. Aware it was an illusion, he felt nothing but astonishment at how closely the resemblance matched, and he walked toward the figure, which changed into a collection of items as he got closer. These were merely a screen covered in overcoats, shawls, plaids, and other things typically found in a country entryway. The observer returned to the spot where he had seen the illusion and tried with all his might to bring back the vividly clear image. But this was beyond his ability; the person who had experienced the vision, or more accurately, whose heightened state had caused it, simply went back into the room and told his young friend about the striking hallucination he had just had.
There is every reason to believe that instances of this kind are frequent among persons of a certain temperament, and when such occur in an early period of society, they are almost certain to be considered as real supernatural appearances. They differ from those of Nicolai, and others formerly noticed, as being of short duration, and constituting no habitual or constitutional derangement of the system. The apparition of Maupertuis to Monsieur Gleditsch, that of the Catholic clergyman to Captain C——, that of a late poet to his friend, are of the latter character. They bear to the former the analogy, as we may say, which a sudden and temporary fever-fit has to a serious feverish illness. But, even for this very reason, it is more difficult to bring such momentary impressions back to their real sphere of optical illusions, since they accord much better with our idea of glimpses of the future world than those in which the vision is continued or repeated for hours, days, and months, affording opportunities of discovering, from other circumstances, that the symptom originates in deranged health.
There’s good reason to think that these experiences happen often among people with a certain mindset, and when they happen at an early stage in society, they’re almost always seen as genuine supernatural events. They’re different from those of Nicolai and others mentioned before, as they last only a short time and don’t indicate any ongoing issues with the person's health. The sighting of Maupertuis by Monsieur Gleditsch, the Catholic priest appearing to Captain C——, and the late poet showing up to his friend are examples of this type. They’re like a brief and sudden fever compared to an ongoing serious illness. Because of this very reason, it’s harder to categorize these fleeting impressions as just optical illusions, since they match our ideas of glimpses into the afterlife better than those experiences that go on for hours, days, or months, which allow us to figure out that the symptoms stem from poor health.
Before concluding these observations upon the deceptions of the senses, we must remark that the eye is the organ most essential to the purpose of realizing to our mind the appearance of external objects, and that when the visual organ becomes depraved for a greater or less time, and to a farther or more limited extent, its misrepresentation of the objects of sight is peculiarly apt to terminate in such hallucinations as those we have been detailing. Yet the other senses or organs, in their turn, and to the extent of their power, are as ready, in their various departments, as the sight itself, to retain false or doubtful impressions, which mislead, instead of informing, the party to whom they are addressed.
Before wrapping up these observations on the deceptions of the senses, we should point out that the eye is the most crucial organ for helping us perceive external objects. When our vision is impaired for any length of time or to any degree, the way we see things can often lead to the kind of hallucinations we've been discussing. However, the other senses are just as capable, in their respective areas, of retaining misleading or uncertain impressions, which confuse rather than inform the people experiencing them.
Thus, in regard to the ear, the next organ in importance to the eye, we are repeatedly deceived by such sounds as are imperfectly gathered up and erroneously apprehended. From the false impressions received from this organ also arise consequences similar to those derived from erroneous reports made by the organs of sight. A whole class of superstitious observances arise, and are grounded upon inaccurate and imperfect hearing. To the excited and imperfect state of the ear we owe the existence of what Milton sublimely calls—
Thus, when it comes to the ear, the next most important organ after the eye, we are often misled by sounds that are poorly captured and misunderstood. The false impressions we get from this organ also lead to consequences similar to those caused by misleading information from our eyes. A whole set of superstitious practices arise from inaccurate and incomplete hearing. It's due to the heightened and flawed state of the ear that we owe the existence of what Milton famously refers to—
The airy tongues that syllable men’s names, On shores, in desert sands, and wildernesses.
The light voices that pronounce people's names, On beaches, in desert sands, and in wild places.
These also appear such natural causes of alarm, that we do not sympathize more readily with Robinson Crusoe’s apprehensions when he witnesses the print of the savage’s foot in the sand, than in those which arise from his being waked from sleep by some one calling his name in the solitary island, where there existed no man but the shipwrecked mariner himself. Amidst the train of superstitions deduced from the imperfections of the ear, we may quote that visionary summons which the natives of the Hebrides acknowledged as one sure sign of approaching fate. The voice of some absent, or probably some deceased, relative was, in such cases, heard as repeating the party’s name. Sometimes the aerial summoner intimated his own death, and at others it was no uncommon circumstance that the person who fancied himself so called, died in consequence;—for the same reason that the negro pines to death who is laid under the ban of an Obi woman, or the Cambro-Briton, whose name is put into the famous cursing well, with the usual ceremonies, devoting him to the infernal gods, wastes away and dies, as one doomed to do so. It may be remarked also, that Dr. Johnson retained a deep impression that, while he was opening the door of his college chambers, he heard the voice of his mother, then at many miles’ distance, call him by his name; and it appears he was rather disappointed that no event of consequence followed a summons sounding so decidedly supernatural. It is unnecessary to dwell on this sort of auricular deception, of which most men’s recollection will supply instances. The following may be stated as one serving to show by what slender accidents the human ear may be imposed upon. The author was walking, about two years since, in a wild and solitary scene with a young friend, who laboured under the infirmity of a severe deafness, when he heard what he conceived to be the cry of a distant pack of hounds, sounding intermittedly. As the season was summer, this, on a moment’s reflection, satisfied the hearer that it could not be the clamour of an actual chase, and yet his ears repeatedly brought back the supposed cry. He called upon his own dogs, of which two or three were with the walking party. They came in quietly, and obviously had no accession to the sounds which had caught the author’s attention, so that he could not help saying to his companion, “I am doubly sorry for your infirmity at this moment, for I could otherwise have let you hear the cry of the Wild Huntsman.” As the young gentleman used a hearing tube, he turned when spoken to, and, in doing so, the cause of the phenomenon became apparent. The supposed distant sound was in fact a nigh one, being the singing of the wind in the instrument which the young gentleman was obliged to use, but which, from various circumstances, had never occurred to his elder friend as likely to produce the sounds he had heard.
These also trigger such natural feelings of alarm that we can’t relate more to Robinson Crusoe’s fears when he sees the footprint of the savage in the sand than to those he feels when someone calls his name while he sleeps on the deserted island, where no one existed except for the shipwrecked sailor himself. Among the various superstitions stemming from the limitations of hearing, we can mention the mysterious call that the natives of the Hebrides recognized as a clear sign of impending doom. In such cases, the voice of an absent, or perhaps deceased, relative was believed to be calling the person's name. Occasionally, the ghostly caller signaled their own death, and it was not uncommon for the person who thought they heard this call to die as a result—similar to how a Black person might waste away after being cursed by an Obi woman, or a Welsh person whose name is placed in the renowned cursing well followed by the usual rituals that devote them to the infernal gods, ends up dying, as if it was their fate. It’s also worth noting that Dr. Johnson held a strong belief that while he was opening the door to his college rooms, he heard his mother’s voice calling him from many miles away; he seemed rather let down that no significant event followed such a clearly supernatural summons. There’s no need to dwell on this kind of auditory trickery, as most people can recall their own experiences. Here’s one that illustrates how easily the human ear can be deceived. About two years ago, the author was walking in a wild and lonely area with a young friend who struggled with severe deafness when he thought he heard the distant cry of a pack of hounds, intermittently. Since it was summer, a brief moment of thought made him realize that it couldn't be the noise of a real hunt, yet his ears kept bringing back the imagined sound. He called to his own dogs, of which two or three were with them. They came over quietly and clearly didn’t contribute to the sounds that had caught the author's attention, so he couldn’t help but say to his companion, “I feel even worse about your hearing issue right now, because otherwise I could let you hear the call of the Wild Huntsman.” As the young man used a hearing tube, he turned towards the speaker, and in doing so, the source of the phenomenon became clear. The supposed distant sound was actually very close, being the wind singing through the instrument that the young man had to use, something that had never occurred to the older friend as a potential source of the sounds he had heard.
It is scarce necessary to add, that the highly imaginative superstition of the Wild Huntsman in Germany seems to have had its origin in strong fancy, operating upon the auricular deceptions, respecting the numerous sounds likely to occur in the dark recesses of pathless forests. The same clew may be found to the kindred Scottish belief, so finely embodied by the nameless author of “Albania:”—
It’s hardly necessary to add that the vivid superstition of the Wild Huntsman in Germany seems to have originated from a strong imagination, influenced by the many sounds that can be heard in the dark depths of untamed forests. The same clue can be found in the related Scottish belief, beautifully captured by the unnamed author of “Albania:” —
“There, since of old the haughty Thanes of Ross Were wont, with clans and ready vassals thronged, To wake the bounding stag, or guilty wolf; There oft is heard at midnight or at noon, Beginning faint, but rising still more loud, And louder, voice of hunters, and of hounds, And horns hoarse-winded, blowing far and keen. Forthwith the hubbub multiplies, the air Labours with louder shouts and rifer din Of close pursuit, the broken cry of deer Mangled by throttling dogs, the shouts of men, And hoofs, thick-beating on the hollow hill: Sudden the grazing heifer in the vale Starts at the tumult, and the herdsman’s ears Tingle with inward dread. Aghast he eyes The upland ridge, and every mountain round, But not one trace of living wight discerns, Nor knows, o’erawed and trembling as he stands, To what or whom he owes his idle fear— To ghost, to witch, to fairy, or to fiend, But wonders, and no end of wondering finds."3
“There, since ancient times, the proud Thanes of Ross Would gather with their clans and eager vassals, To rouse the bounding stag or the lurking wolf; Often, at midnight or noon, You can hear it starting faintly, but growing louder, The voices of hunters and hounds, And the hoarse horns blowing far and sharp. Suddenly, the noise multiplies, the air is filled With louder shouts and a frantic clamor Of the chase, the broken cries of deer Maimed by fierce dogs, the calls of men, And the pounding hooves echoing on the hollow hill: Startled, the grazing heifer in the vale reacts to the chaos, and the herdsman’s ears Ring with deep-seated dread. In shock, he stares at The high ridge and every surrounding mountain, But can’t find any sign of life, Nor understands, awestruck and trembling as he stands, What or whom he should be afraid of— A ghost, a witch, a fairy, or a demon— But wonders, and his wondering never ends.”3
It must also be remembered, that to the auricular deceptions practised by the means of ventriloquism or otherwise, may be traced many of the most successful impostures which credulity has received as supernatural communications.
It should also be noted that many of the most convincing hoaxes that people have accepted as supernatural messages can be attributed to the misleading sounds created by ventriloquism or similar techniques.
3 (return)
[ The poem of “Albania” is,
in its original folio edition, so extremely scarce that I have only seen a
copy belonging to the amiable and ingenious Dr. Beattie, besides the one
which I myself possess, printed in the earlier part of last century. It
was reprinted by my late friend Dr. Leyden in a small volume entitled
“Scottish Descriptive Poems.” “Albania” contains the above, and many other
poetical passages of the highest merit.]
3 (return)
[ The poem “Albania” is so rare in its original folio edition that I've only seen one copy, which belongs to the kind and talented Dr. Beattie, aside from the one I have, printed in the early part of the last century. It was reprinted by my late friend Dr. Leyden in a small volume called “Scottish Descriptive Poems.” “Albania” includes the above and many other poetic passages of the highest quality.]
The sense of touch seems less liable to perversion than either that of sight or smell, nor are there many cases in which it can become accessary to such false intelligence as the eye and ear, collecting their objects from a greater distance and by less accurate enquiry, are but too ready to convey. Yet there is one circumstance in which the sense of touch as well as others is very apt to betray its possessor into inaccuracy, in respect to the circumstances which it impresses on its owner. The case occurs during sleep, when the dreamer touches with his hand some other part of his own person. He is clearly, in this case, both the actor and patient, both the proprietor of the member touching, and of that which is touched; while, to increase the complication, the hand is both toucher of the limb on which it rests, and receives an impression of touch from it; and the same is the case with the limb, which at one and the same time receives an impression from the hand, and conveys to the mind a report respecting the size, substance, and the like, of the member touching. Now, as during sleep the patient is unconscious that both limbs are his own identical property, his mind is apt to be much disturbed by the complication of sensations arising from two parts of his person being at once acted upon, and from their reciprocal action; and false impressions are thus received, which, accurately enquired into, would afford a clew to many puzzling phenomena in the theory of dreams. This peculiarity of the organ of touch, as also that it is confined to no particular organ, but is diffused over the whole person of the man, is noticed by Lucretius:—
The sense of touch seems less prone to distortion than either sight or smell, and there aren’t many instances where it can contribute to the kind of misleading information that the eye and ear can easily convey by gathering their inputs from a greater distance and through less precise methods. However, there's one situation where the sense of touch, along with others, can easily lead its owner to inaccuracies regarding the sensations it imparts. This happens during sleep, when a dreamer touches a different part of their own body. In this scenario, they are both the doer and the one being affected, owning both the hand that is touching and the part being touched; to complicate matters further, the hand is both the toucher of the limb it rests on and is also receiving a tactile impression from it. The same applies to the limb, which simultaneously gets an impression from the hand and sends a report to the mind about the size, texture, and so on of the part that is touching. Since the dreamer is unaware during sleep that both limbs belong to them, their mind can become quite confused by the complex sensations arising from two parts of their body being stimulated at the same time and their mutual interaction. This results in misleading impressions that, if investigated closely, could provide clues to many puzzling phenomena in the theory of dreams. Lucretius notes this unique characteristic of the sense of touch, as well as the fact that it is not limited to a specific organ but is spread throughout the entire body.
“Ut si forte manu, quam vis jam corporis, ipse Tute tibi partem ferias, reque experiare.”
“Then if by chance you take a part of yourself with your hand, try and experience it for yourself.”
A remarkable instance of such an illusion was told me by a late nobleman. He had fallen asleep, with some uneasy feelings arising from indigestion. They operated in their usual course of visionary terrors. At length they were all summed up in the apprehension that the phantom of a dead man held the sleeper by the wrist, and endeavoured to drag him out of bed. He awaked in horror, and still felt the cold dead grasp of a corpse’s hand on his right wrist. It was a minute before he discovered that his own left hand was in a state of numbness, and with it he had accidentally encircled his right arm.
A striking example of such an illusion was shared with me by a recently deceased nobleman. He had fallen asleep feeling uneasy because of indigestion. As usual, these feelings transformed into nightmarish visions. Eventually, they culminated in the fear that the ghost of a dead man was gripping his wrist and trying to pull him out of bed. He woke up in terror, still feeling the cold grip of a corpse's hand on his right wrist. It took him a minute to realize that his left hand was numb, and he had accidentally wrapped it around his right arm.
The taste and the smell, like the touch, convey more direct intelligence than the eye and the ear, and are less likely than those senses to aid in misleading the imagination. We have seen the palate, in the case of the porridge-fed lunatic, enter its protest against the acquiescence of eyes, ears, and touch, in the gay visions which gilded the patient’s confinement. The palate, however, is subject to imposition as well as the other senses. The best and most acute bon vivant loses his power of discriminating betwixt different kinds of wine, if he is prevented from assisting his palate by the aid of his eyes,—that is, if the glasses of each are administered indiscriminately while he is blindfolded. Nay, we are authorized to believe that individuals have died in consequence of having supposed themselves to have taken poison, when, in reality, the draught they had swallowed as such was of an innoxious or restorative quality. The delusions of the stomach can seldom bear upon our present subject, and are not otherwise connected with supernatural appearances, than as a good dinner and its accompaniments are essential in fitting out a daring Tam of Shanter, who is fittest to encounter them when the poet’s observation is not unlikely to apply—
The taste and smell, like touch, provide more direct information than sight and hearing, and are less likely to mislead the imagination. We've seen how the palate, in the case of the porridge-fed lunatic, protests against what the eyes, ears, and touch agree with in the cheerful visions that decorate the patient’s confinement. However, the palate can also be deceived, just like the other senses. Even the best and most discerning food lover can’t tell different types of wine apart if he can't use his eyes—meaning if the glasses are given to him randomly while he's blindfolded. In fact, we have reason to believe that some people have died after thinking they took poison when, in reality, they drank something harmless or medicinal. The misleading effects of the stomach don’t usually relate to our current topic and only connect with supernatural appearances in the same way a good meal and its extras are necessary for a daring Tam o' Shanter, who is best prepared to face them when the poet's observation might apply—
“Inspiring bauld John Barleycorn, What dangers thou canst make us scorn! Wi’ tippenny we fear nae evil, Wi’ usquebae we’ll face the devil. The swats sae ream’d in Tammie’s noddle, Fair play, he caredna deils a bodle!”
“Inspiring bold John Barleycorn, What dangers you can make us ignore! With cheap beer, we fear no evil, With whiskey, we’ll take on the devil. The ale so foamy in Tammie’s head, Fair play, he didn’t care a bit!”
Neither has the sense of smell, in its ordinary state, much connexion with our present subject. Mr. Aubrey tells us, indeed, of an apparition which disappeared with a curious perfume as well as a most melodious twang; and popular belief ascribes to the presence of infernal spirits a strong relish of the sulphureous element of which they are inhabitants. Such accompaniments, therefore, are usually united with other materials for imposture. If, as a general opinion assures us, which is not positively discountenanced by Dr. Hibbert, by the inhalation of certain gases or poisonous herbs, necromancers can dispose a person to believe he sees phantoms, it is likely that the nostrils are made to inhale such suffumigation as well as the mouth.4
Neither does the sense of smell, in its usual state, have much to do with our current topic. Mr. Aubrey actually mentions a ghost that vanished with a strange fragrance along with a very melodious sound; and common belief links the presence of demonic spirits to a strong odor of the sulfur they are associated with. So, these elements are typically combined with other tricks for deception. If, as popular opinion suggests, and which Dr. Hibbert does not completely dismiss, necromancers can make someone believe they see ghosts by having them inhale certain gases or poisonous plants, it’s likely that the nostrils are made to breathe in such fumes as well as the mouth.4
4 (return)
[ Most ancient authors, who
pretend to treat of the wonders of natural magic, give receipts for
calling up phantoms. The lighting lamps fed by peculiar kinds of medicated
oil, and the use of suffumigations of strong and deleterious herbs, are
the means recommended. From these authorities, perhaps, a professor of
legerdemain assured Dr. Alderson of Hull, that he could compose a
preparation of antimony, sulphur, and other drugs, which, when burnt in a
confined room, would have the effect of causing the patient to suppose he
saw phantoms.—See “Hibbert on Apparitions,” p. 120.]
4 (return)
[ Many ancient writers, who claim to explore the wonders of natural magic, provide instructions for summoning ghosts. They recommend using lamps filled with specific types of medicated oil and performing fumigations with potent and harmful herbs. Based on these sources, a magician once convinced Dr. Alderson from Hull that he could create a mixture of antimony, sulfur, and other substances that, when burned in a closed space, would lead the person to believe they were seeing apparitions.—See “Hibbert on Apparitions,” p. 120.]
I have now arrived, by a devious path, at the conclusion of this letter, the object of which is to show from what attributes of our nature, whether mental or corporeal, arises that predisposition to believe in supernatural occurrences. It is, I think, conclusive that mankind, from a very early period, have their minds prepared for such events by the consciousness of the existence of a spiritual world, inferring in the general proposition the undeniable truth that each man, from the monarch to the beggar, who has once acted his part on the stage, continues to exist, and may again, even in a disembodied state, if such is the pleasure of Heaven, for aught that we know to the contrary, be permitted or ordained to mingle amongst those who yet remain in the body. The abstract possibility of apparitions must be admitted by every one who believes in a Deity, and His superintending omnipotence. But imagination is apt to intrude its explanations and inferences founded on inadequate evidence. Sometimes our violent and inordinate passions, originating in sorrow for our friends, remorse for our crimes, our eagerness of patriotism, or our deep sense of devotion—these or other violent excitements of a moral character, in the visions of night, or the rapt ecstasy of the day, persuade us that we witness, with our eyes and ears, an actual instance of that supernatural communication, the possibility of which cannot be denied. At other times the corporeal organs impose upon the mind, while the eye and the ear, diseased, deranged, or misled, convey false impressions to the patient. Very often both the mental delusion and the physical deception exist at the same time, and men’s belief of the phenomena presented to them, however erroneously, by the senses, is the firmer and more readily granted, that the physical impression corresponded with the mental excitement.
I have now reached the end of this letter through a winding path, the purpose of which is to demonstrate the traits of our nature, both mental and physical, that lead us to believe in supernatural events. I believe it's clear that people, from a very early stage, have been predisposed to such beliefs by the awareness of a spiritual world. This leads us to the undeniable truth that everyone, from kings to beggars, who has once played their role in life continues to exist and may, if it is Heaven's will, even in a disembodied state, be allowed or destined to interact with those who are still alive. Anyone who believes in a God and His overseeing power must accept the potential for apparitions. However, imagination often mixes in its own interpretations based on insufficient evidence. Sometimes, our intense emotions—stemming from grief for loved ones, guilt for our wrongdoings, feelings of patriotism, or strong devotion—can mislead us, making us believe we are witnessing real instances of that supernatural communication, which, while possible, cannot be denied. At other times, our physical senses deceive us, leading to false impressions driven by a troubled mind. Often, both mental illusions and physical misperceptions occur simultaneously. People's belief in the phenomena presented to them, no matter how mistaken, becomes stronger and more readily accepted when the physical impression aligns with their mental state.
So many causes acting thus upon each other in various degrees, or sometimes separately, it must happen early in the infancy of every society that there should occur many apparently well-authenticated instances of supernatural intercourse, satisfactory enough to authenticate peculiar examples of the general proposition which is impressed upon us by belief of the immortality of the soul. These examples of undeniable apparitions (for they are apprehended to be incontrovertible), fall like the seed of the husbandman into fertile and prepared soil, and are usually followed by a plentiful crop of superstitious figments, which derive their sources from circumstances and enactments in sacred and profane history, hastily adopted, and perverted from their genuine reading. This shall be the subject of my next letter.
So many causes are influencing each other in different ways, or sometimes on their own, that it's only natural during the early stages of any society for there to be many seemingly well-confirmed cases of supernatural experiences, enough to support the belief in the immortality of the soul. These undeniable sightings (which are considered indisputable) fall like seeds into rich, prepared soil and are usually followed by a plentiful harvest of superstitious ideas, which come from events and stories in both sacred and secular history, quickly picked up and twisted from their original meanings. This will be the topic of my next letter.
LETTER II.
Consequences of the Fall on the Communication between Man and the Spiritual World—Effects of the Flood—Wizards of Pharaoh—Text in Exodus against Witches—The word Witch is by some said to mean merely Poisoner—Or if in the Holy Text it also means a Divineress, she must, at any rate, have been a Character very different to be identified with it—The original, Chasaph, said to mean a person who dealt in Poisons, often a Traffic of those who dealt with familiar Spirits—But different from the European Witch of the Middle Ages—Thus a Witch is not accessary to the Temptation of Job—The Witch of the Hebrews probably did not rank higher than a Divining Woman—Yet it was a Crime deserving the Doom of Death, since it inferred the disowning of Jehovah’s Supremacy—Other Texts of Scripture, in like manner, refer to something corresponding more with a Fortune-teller or Divining Woman than what is now called a Witch—Example of the Witch of Endor—Account of her Meeting with Saul—Supposed by some a mere Impostor—By others, a Sorceress powerful enough to raise the Spirit of the Prophet by her own Art—Difficulties attending both Positions—A middle Course adopted, supposing that, as in the Case of Balak, the Almighty had, by Exertion of His Will, substituted Samuel, or a good Spirit in his Character, for the Deception which the Witch intended to produce—Resumption of the Argument, showing that the Witch of Endor signified something very different from the modern Ideas of Witchcraft—The Witches mentioned in the New Testament are not less different from modern Ideas than those of the Books of Moses, nor do they appear to have possessed the Power ascribed to Magicians—Articles of Faith which we may gather from Scripture on this point—That there might be certain Powers permitted by the Almighty to Inferior, and even Evil Spirits, is possible; and in some sense the Gods of the Heathens might be accounted Demons—More frequently, and in a general sense, they were but logs of wood, without sense or power of any kind, and their worship founded on imposture—Opinion that the Oracles were silenced at the Nativity adopted by Milton—Cases of Demoniacs—The Incarnate Possessions probably ceased at the same time as the intervention of Miracles—Opinion of the Catholics—Result, that witchcraft, as the Word is interpreted in the Middle Ages, neither occurs under the Mosaic or Gospel Dispensation—It arose in the Ignorant Period, when the Christians considered the Gods of the Mahommedan or Heathen Nations as Fiends, and their Priests as Conjurers or Wizards—Instance as to the Saracens, and among the Northern Europeans yet unconverted—The Gods of Mexico and Peru explained on the same system—Also the Powahs of North America—Opinion of Mather—Gibb, a supposed Warlock, persecuted by the other Dissenters—Conclusion.
Consequences of the Fall on the Communication between Man and the Spiritual World—Effects of the Flood—Pharaoh's Wizards—Text in Exodus against Witches—The word Witch is sometimes said to simply mean Poisoner—Or if it also refers to a Divineress in the Holy Text, she must have been a very different character to be identified with it—The original, Chasaph, is said to mean a person who dealt in poisons, often a practice of those who interacted with familiar spirits—But this is different from the European Witch of the Middle Ages—Thus, a Witch is not involved in the Temptation of Job—The Witch of the Hebrews likely did not rank higher than a Divining Woman—Yet it was a crime deserving the death penalty, since it implied a rejection of Jehovah’s Supremacy—Other Scriptures similarly refer to something more akin to a Fortune-teller or Divining Woman than what we now think of as a Witch—Take the example of the Witch of Endor—Her encounter with Saul—Some believe she was just a fraud—Others think she was a Sorceress powerful enough to raise the Prophet's spirit with her own skills—Challenges exist for both views—A middle approach is that, like in the case of Balak, the Almighty substituted Samuel, or a good spirit resembling him, to counteract the deception the Witch intended to create—Resuming the argument, it shows that the Witch of Endor represented something very different from modern notions of witchcraft—The Witches mentioned in the New Testament differ just as much from modern ideas as those found in the Books of Moses, and they don’t seem to have had the power attributed to Magicians—Articles of Faith we can gather from Scriptures on this point—It is possible that certain powers could be granted by the Almighty to Inferior and even Evil Spirits; in some sense, the gods of the Pagans might be considered demons—More often, they were just logs of wood without sense or power, and their worship was based on deceit—Milton adopted the view that the Oracles were silenced at the Nativity—Cases of Demoniacs—The incarnate possessions likely ended around the same time miracles ceased—The view of Catholics—The conclusion that witchcraft, as understood in the Middle Ages, didn’t occur under either the Mosaic or Gospel Dispensation—it arose during the Ignorant Period when Christians viewed the gods of the Islamic or Pagan Nations as Fiends and their Priests as Conjurers or Wizards—Instances concerning the Saracens and among the Northern Europeans who were still unconverted—The gods of Mexico and Peru explained the same way—Also the Powahs of North America—Mather’s view—Gibb, a supposed Warlock, persecuted by other Dissenters—Conclusion.
What degree of communication might have existed between the human race and the inhabitants of the other world had our first parents kept the commands of the Creator, can only be subject of unavailing speculation. We do not, perhaps, presume too much when we suppose, with Milton, that one necessary consequence of eating the “fruit of that forbidden tree” was removing to a wider distance from celestial essences the beings who, although originally but a little lower than the angels, had, by their own crime, forfeited the gift of immortality, and degraded themselves into an inferior rank of creation.
What level of communication might have existed between humanity and the inhabitants of the other world if our first parents had followed the Creator's commands is something we can only speculate about without any real hope of knowing. We may not be going too far when we suggest, like Milton, that one inevitable result of eating the “fruit of that forbidden tree” was a greater separation from heavenly beings for those who, although originally just a bit lower than angels, had, through their own wrongdoing, lost the gift of immortality and lowered themselves to a lesser status in the created order.
Some communication between the spiritual world, by the union of those termed in Scripture “sons of God” and the daughters of Adam, still continued after the Fall, though their inter-alliance was not approved of by the Ruler of mankind. We are given to understand—darkly, indeed, but with as much certainty as we can be entitled to require—that the mixture between the two species of created beings was sinful on the part of both, and displeasing to the Almighty. It is probable, also, that the extreme longevity of the antediluvian mortals prevented their feeling sufficiently that they had brought themselves under the banner of Azrael, the angel of death, and removed to too great a distance the period between their crime and its punishment. The date of the avenging Flood gave birth to a race whose life was gradually shortened, and who, being admitted to slighter and rarer intimacy with beings who possessed a higher rank in creation, assumed, as of course, a lower position in the scale. Accordingly, after this period we hear no more of those unnatural alliances which preceded the Flood, and are given to understand that mankind, dispersing into different parts of the world, separated from each other, and began, in various places, and under separate auspices, to pursue the work of replenishing the world, which had been imposed upon them as an end of their creation. In the meantime, while the Deity was pleased to continue his manifestations to those who were destined to be the fathers of his elect people, we are made to understand that wicked men—it may be by the assistance of fallen angels—were enabled to assert rank with, and attempt to match, the prophets of the God of Israel. The matter must remain uncertain whether it was by sorcery or legerdemain that the wizards of Pharaoh, King of Egypt, contended with Moses, in the face of the prince and people, changed their rods into serpents, and imitated several of the plagues denounced against the devoted kingdom. Those powers of the Magi, however, whether obtained by supernatural communications, or arising from knowledge of legerdemain and its kindred accomplishments, were openly exhibited; and who can doubt that—though we may be left in some darkness both respecting the extent of their skill and the source from which it was drawn—we are told all which it can be important for us to know? We arrive here at the period when the Almighty chose to take upon himself directly to legislate for his chosen people, without having obtained any accurate knowledge whether the crime of witchcraft, or the intercourse between the spiritual world and embodied beings, for evil purposes, either existed after the Flood, or was visited with any open marks of Divine displeasure.
Some communication between the spiritual world, through the union of those called in Scripture “sons of God” and the daughters of Adam, continued after the Fall, even though their connection was not approved by the Ruler of humanity. We understand—albeit vaguely, but with as much certainty as we can expect—that the mixing of these two types of beings was sinful for both and displeasing to the Almighty. It's also likely that the extreme longevity of people before the Flood made them less aware that they had placed themselves under the authority of Azrael, the angel of death, leading to a long delay between their wrongdoing and its consequences. The timing of the Flood resulted in a new generation with shorter lifespans, who, having less frequent and intense interactions with higher beings, naturally found themselves in a lower position in the hierarchy. After this time, we no longer hear about those unnatural unions that existed before the Flood, and we come to understand that humanity began to spread across the world, separating from one another and starting, in different locations and under various circumstances, the task of repopulating the Earth, which was their created purpose. Meanwhile, while God continued to reveal himself to those destined to be the forefathers of his chosen people, we learn that wicked people—possibly with the help of fallen angels—managed to claim status alongside and challenge the prophets of the God of Israel. Whether the wizards of Pharaoh, King of Egypt, contended with Moses through sorcery or tricks remains uncertain; they turned their rods into serpents and replicated several of the plagues that were declared against their kingdom. These magical powers, whether derived from supernatural sources or knowledge of tricks and similar skills, were displayed openly; and who can question that—though we may remain somewhat in the dark about the full extent of their abilities and their origins—we are told everything we need to know? We now arrive at the point when the Almighty chose to legislate directly for his chosen people, without having a clear understanding of whether witchcraft or the interaction between the spiritual world and physical beings for malicious purposes continued to exist after the Flood, or if it faced any visible signs of Divine disapproval.
But in the law of Moses, dictated by the Divinity himself, was announced a text, which, as interpreted literally, having been inserted into the criminal code of all Christian nations, has occasioned much cruelty and bloodshed, either from its tenor being misunderstood, or that, being exclusively calculated for the Israelites, it made part of the judicial Mosaic dispensation, and was abrogated, like the greater part of that law, by the more benign and clement dispensation of the Gospel.
But in the law of Moses, dictated by God himself, there was a passage that, when taken literally, has been included in the criminal code of all Christian nations and has led to a lot of cruelty and bloodshed. This happened either because its meaning was misunderstood or because it was meant specifically for the Israelites as part of the judicial system of Moses, which was abolished, along with most of that law, by the more compassionate and forgiving message of the Gospel.
The text alluded to is that verse of the twenty-second chapter of Exodus bearing, “men shall not suffer a witch to live.” Many learned men have affirmed that in this remarkable passage the Hebrew word CHASAPH means nothing more than poisoner, although, like the word veneficus, by which it is rendered in the Latin version of the Septuagint, other learned men contend that it hath the meaning of a witch also, and may be understood as denoting a person who pretended to hurt his or her neighbours in life, limb, or goods, either by noxious potions, by charms, or similar mystical means. In this particular the witches of Scripture had probably some resemblance to those of ancient Europe, who, although their skill and power might be safely despised, as long as they confined themselves to their charms and spells, were very apt to eke out their capacity of mischief by the use of actual poison, so that the epithet of sorceress and poisoner were almost synonymous. This is known to have been the case in many of those darker iniquities which bear as their characteristic something connected with hidden and prohibited arts. Such was the statement in the indictment of those concerned in the famous murder of Sir Thomas Overbury, when the arts of Forman and other sorcerers having been found insufficient to touch the victim’s life, practice by poison was at length successfully resorted to; and numerous similar instances might be quoted. But supposing that the Hebrew witch proceeded only by charms, invocations, or such means as might be innoxious, save for the assistance of demons or familiars, the connexion between the conjurer and the demon must have been of a very different character under the law of Moses, from that which was conceived in latter days to constitute witchcraft. There was no contract of subjection to a diabolic power, no infernal stamp or sign of such a fatal league, no revellings of Satan and his hags, and no infliction of disease or misfortune upon good men. At least there is not a word in Scripture authorizing us to believe that such a system existed. On the contrary, we are told (how far literally, how far metaphorically, it is not for us to determine) that, when the Enemy of mankind desired to probe the virtue of Job to the bottom, he applied for permission to the Supreme Governor of the world, who granted him liberty to try his faithful servant with a storm of disasters, for the more brilliant exhibition of the faith which he reposed in his Maker. In all this, had the scene occurred after the manner of the like events in latter days, witchcraft, sorceries, and charms would have been introduced, and the Devil, instead of his own permitted agency, would have employed his servant the witch as the necessary instrument of the Man of Uzz’s afflictions. In like manner, Satan desired to have Peter, that he might sift him like wheat. But neither is there here the agency of any sorcerer or witch. Luke xxii. 31.
The text referred to is the verse from the twenty-second chapter of Exodus that states, “men shall not allow a witch to live.” Many scholars have said that in this significant passage, the Hebrew word CHASAPH refers to nothing more than a poisoner. However, like the Latin word veneficus used in the Septuagint, other scholars argue that it can also mean witch, indicating someone who pretended to harm their neighbors in body, soul, or possessions through toxic potions, charms, or similar mystical methods. In this sense, the witches mentioned in the Bible likely resembled those in ancient Europe, who, although their skills and powers could be safely ignored while using only charms and spells, were often known to enhance their ability to cause harm with real poison. Thus, the terms sorceress and poisoner were almost interchangeable. This was notably the case in many darker crimes linked to hidden and forbidden arts. An example of this is found in the indictment of those involved in the infamous murder of Sir Thomas Overbury, where the arts of Forman and other sorcerers proved ineffective against the victim, leading eventually to the successful use of poison; numerous similar cases could be cited. However, if we assume that the Hebrew witch engaged only in charms, invocations, or other methods that were harmless on their own—except for the help of demons or familiar spirits—the connection between the conjurer and the demon under Moses' law would have been very different from how witchcraft was understood in later times. There was no agreement of submission to a demonic power, no infernal mark or sign of such a fatal pact, no revelries of Satan and his witches, and no infliction of illness or misfortune on decent people. At least, there’s no mention in Scripture that supports the existence of such a system. On the contrary, we are told (how literally or metaphorically, we cannot judge) that when the Enemy of mankind wanted to test Job's virtue, he asked for permission from the Supreme Governor of the universe, who allowed him to put his faithful servant through a series of hardships to showcase the faith Job had in his Creator. If this scene had played out as similar events do in later times, witchcraft, sorceries, and charms would have been involved, and the Devil, rather than using his own allowed influence, would have employed a witch as the instrument of Job’s suffering. Similarly, Satan sought to have Peter to sift him like wheat, but there’s no mention of any sorcerer or witch in this context either. Luke xxii. 31.
Supposing the powers of the witch to be limited, in the time of Moses, to enquiries at some pretended deity or real evil spirit concerning future events, in what respect, may it be said, did such a crime deserve the severe punishment of death? To answer this question, we must reflect that the object of the Mosaic dispensation being to preserve the knowledge of the True Deity within the breasts of a selected and separated people, the God of Jacob necessarily showed himself a jealous God to all who, straying from the path of direct worship of Jehovah, had recourse to other deities, whether idols or evil spirits, the gods of the neighbouring heathen. The swerving from their allegiance to the true Divinity, to the extent of praying to senseless stocks and stones which could return them no answer, was, by the Jewish law, an act of rebellion to their own Lord God, and as such most fit to be punished capitally. Thus the prophets of Baal were deservedly put to death, not on account of any success which they might obtain by their intercessions and invocations (which, though enhanced with all their vehemence, to the extent of cutting and wounding themselves, proved so utterly unavailing as to incur the ridicule of the prophet), but because they were guilty of apostasy from the real Deity, while they worshipped, and encouraged others to worship, the false divinity Baal. The Hebrew witch, therefore, or she who communicated, or attempted to communicate, with an evil spirit, was justly punished with death, though her communication with the spiritual world might either not exist at all, or be of a nature much less intimate than has been ascribed to the witches of later days; nor does the existence of this law, against the witches of the Old Testament sanction, in any respect, the severity of similar enactments subsequent to the Christian revelation, against a different class of persons, accused of a very different species of crime.
Assuming the powers of witches were limited, during the time of Moses, to inquiries at some supposed deity or real evil spirit about future events, how could such a crime justify the extreme punishment of death? To answer this, we need to consider that the purpose of the Mosaic law was to maintain the knowledge of the True God among a chosen and separate people. The God of Jacob was necessarily a jealous God to all who, straying from the direct worship of Jehovah, turned to other deities, whether they were idols or evil spirits, the gods of their pagan neighbors. Turning away from their allegiance to the true God by praying to lifeless wood and stone that couldn’t respond was, according to Jewish law, an act of rebellion against their own Lord God and therefore worthy of capital punishment. Thus, the prophets of Baal were justly executed, not because of any success they might have with their prayers and rituals (which, despite their fervor and even self-harm, proved completely ineffective and ridiculed by the prophet), but because they committed apostasy from the true God while worshiping and encouraging the worship of the false god Baal. The Hebrew witch, or anyone who communicated or tried to communicate with an evil spirit, was rightly sentenced to death, even though her contact with the spiritual world might have been nonexistent or far less intimate than what later witches were said to have. Furthermore, the existence of this law against witches in the Old Testament does not in any way justify the harshness of similar laws enacted after the Christian era against a very different group of people accused of a different kind of crime.
In another passage, the practices of those persons termed witches in the Holy Scriptures are again alluded to; and again it is made manifest that the sorcery or witchcraft of the Old Testament resolves itself into a trafficking with idols, and asking counsel of false deities; in other words, into idolatry, which, notwithstanding repeated prohibitions, examples, and judgments, was still the prevailing crime of the Israelites. The passage alluded to is in Deuteronomy xviii. 10, ii—“There shall not be found among you anyone that maketh his son or his daughter to pass through the fire, or that useth divination, or an observer of times, or an enchanter, or a witch, or a charmer, or a consulter with familiar spirits, or a wizard, or a necromancer.” Similar denunciations occur in the nineteenth and twentieth chapters of Leviticus. In like manner, it is a charge against Manasses (2 Chronicles xxxviii.) that he caused his children to pass through the fire, observed times, used enchantments and witchcraft, and dealt with familiar spirits and with wizards. These passages seem to concur with the former, in classing witchcraft among other desertions of the prophets of the Deity, in order to obtain responses by the superstitious practices of the pagan nations around them. To understand the texts otherwise seems to confound the modern system of witchcraft, with all its unnatural and improbable outrages on common sense, with the crime of the person who, in classical days, consulted the oracle of Apollo—a capital offence in a Jew, but surely a venial sin in an ignorant and deluded pagan.
In another section, the practices of those labeled as witches in the Holy Scriptures are mentioned again; and it is again made clear that the sorcery or witchcraft of the Old Testament boils down to dealing with idols and seeking advice from false gods; in other words, it amounts to idolatry, which, despite repeated prohibitions, examples, and punishments, remained the main wrongdoing of the Israelites. The referenced passage is in Deuteronomy 18:10-11: “There shall not be found among you anyone who makes his son or daughter pass through the fire, or who practices divination, or is an observer of times, or is an enchanter, or a witch, or a charmer, or a consulter with familiar spirits, or a wizard, or a necromancer.” Similar warnings appear in the nineteenth and twentieth chapters of Leviticus. Similarly, it is charged against Manasseh (2 Chronicles 33:6) that he made his children pass through the fire, observed times, used enchantments and witchcraft, and consulted familiar spirits and wizards. These passages seem to agree with the earlier ones, categorizing witchcraft among other betrayals of the prophets of the Deity, aimed at getting answers through the superstitious practices of the surrounding pagan nations. To interpret these texts differently seems to mix up the modern idea of witchcraft, with all its unnatural and unbelievable assaults on common sense, with the actions of someone in classical times who consulted the oracle of Apollo—a serious offense for a Jew, but likely a minor sin for an ignorant and misled pagan.
To illustrate the nature of the Hebrew witch and her prohibited criminal traffic, those who have written on this subject have naturally dwelt upon the interview between Saul and the Witch of Endor, the only detailed and particular account of such a transaction which is to be found in the Bible; a fact, by the way, which proves that the crime of witchcraft (capitally punished as it was when discovered) was not frequent among the chosen people, who enjoyed such peculiar manifestations of the Almighty’s presence. The Scriptures seem only to have conveyed to us the general fact (being what is chiefly edifying) of the interview between the witch and the King of Israel. They inform us that Saul, disheartened and discouraged by the general defection of his subjects, and the consciousness of his own unworthy and ungrateful disobedience, despairing of obtaining an answer from the offended Deity, who had previously communicated with him through his prophets, at length resolved, in his desperation, to go to a divining woman, by which course he involved himself in the crime of the person whom he thus consulted, against whom the law denounced death—a sentence which had been often executed by Saul himself on similar offenders. Scripture proceeds to give us the general information that the king directed the witch to call up the Spirit of Samuel, and that the female exclaimed that gods had arisen out of the earth—that Saul, more particularly requiring a description of the apparition (whom, consequently, he did not himself see), she described it as the figure of an old man with a mantle. In this figure the king acknowledges the resemblance of Samuel, and sinking on his face, hears from the apparition, speaking in the character of the prophet, the melancholy prediction of his own defeat and death.
To illustrate the nature of the Hebrew witch and her illegal dealings, those writing about this topic have naturally focused on the meeting between Saul and the Witch of Endor, the only detailed account of such an encounter found in the Bible. This fact shows that witchcraft, which was punishable by death, was not common among the chosen people, who experienced unique manifestations of God’s presence. The Scriptures primarily convey the basic fact of the meeting between the witch and the King of Israel, which is what is most instructive. They tell us that Saul, feeling hopeless and discouraged by the general disloyalty of his subjects, and aware of his own unworthy and ungrateful disobedience, decided, in his desperation, to seek out a medium after failing to get a response from the offended Deity who had previously communicated with him through prophets. This choice led him to commit the crime associated with consulting her, a crime that the law condemned to death—a sentence Saul himself had often carried out on similar offenders. The Scriptures continue to provide the general information that the king instructed the witch to summon the Spirit of Samuel, and she exclaimed that gods had come up from the earth. When Saul specifically requested a description of the spirit (whom he himself did not see), she described it as the figure of an old man wearing a mantle. Recognizing the resemblance to Samuel, the king fell on his face and heard from the apparition, speaking as the prophet, the sorrowful prediction of his own defeat and death.
In this description, though all is told which is necessary to convey to us an awful moral lesson, yet we are left ignorant of the minutiæ attending the apparition, which perhaps we ought to accept as a sure sign that there was no utility in our being made acquainted with them. It is impossible, for instance, to know with certainty whether Saul was present when the woman used her conjuration, or whether he himself personally ever saw the appearance which the Pythoness described to him. It is left still more doubtful whether anything supernatural was actually evoked, or whether the Pythoness and her assistant meant to practise a mere deception, taking their chance to prophesy the defeat and death of the broken-spirited king as an event which the circumstances in which he was placed rendered highly probable, since he was surrounded by a superior army of Philistines, and his character as a soldier rendered it likely that he would not survive a defeat which must involve the loss of his kingdom. On the other hand, admitting that the apparition had really a supernatural character, it remains equally uncertain what was its nature or by what power it was compelled to an appearance, unpleasing, as it intimated, since the supposed spirit of Samuel asks wherefore he was disquieted in the grave. Was the power of the witch over the invisible world so great that, like the Erictho of the heathen poet, she could disturb the sleep of the just, and especially that of a prophet so important as Samuel; and are we to suppose that he, upon whom the Spirit of the Lord was wont to descend, even while he was clothed with frail mortality, should be subject to be disquieted in his grave at the voice of a vile witch, and the command of an apostate prince? Did the true Deity refuse Saul the response of his prophets, and could a witch compel the actual spirit of Samuel to make answer notwithstanding?
In this description, while everything necessary to convey a profound moral lesson is provided, we are still left in the dark about the details surrounding the apparition, which we might need to accept as a clear indication that there was no benefit in knowing them. For example, we can’t say for sure whether Saul was there when the woman performed her conjuring, or whether he personally saw the vision that the Pythoness described. It’s even more uncertain whether anything supernatural was actually summoned, or if the Pythoness and her helper were simply trying to deceive Saul, banking on prophesying his defeat and death as an outcome that was very likely given his circumstances—surrounded by a stronger Philistine army and his role as a soldier suggesting he wouldn't survive a defeat that would cost him his kingdom. On the flip side, if we accept that the apparition was genuinely supernatural, it remains unclear what its true nature was or what power made it appear, especially since the supposed spirit of Samuel questions why he was disturbed in the grave. Was the witch's influence over the unseen world so powerful that, like Erictho from the ancient poet's tale, she could disrupt the rest of the righteous, particularly a significant prophet like Samuel? And should we believe that someone like Samuel, who was accustomed to the Spirit of the Lord descending upon him even while he was alive, could be disturbed in his grave by the voice of a lowly witch at the command of a fallen king? Did the true God deny Saul the guidance of his prophets, while a witch could force the actual spirit of Samuel to respond anyway?
Embarrassed by such difficulties, another course of explanation has been resorted to, which, freed from some of the objections which attend the two extreme suppositions, is yet liable to others. It has been supposed that something took place upon this remarkable occasion similar to that which disturbed the preconcerted purpose of the prophet Balaam, and compelled him to exchange his premeditated curses for blessings. According to this hypothesis, the divining woman of Endor was preparing to practise upon Saul those tricks of legerdemain or jugglery by which she imposed upon meaner clients who resorted to her oracle. Or we may conceive that in those days, when the laws of Nature were frequently suspended by manifestations of the Divine Power, some degree of juggling might be permitted between mortals and the spirits of lesser note; in which case we must suppose that the woman really expected or hoped to call up some supernatural appearance. But in either case, this second solution of the story supposes that the will of the Almighty substituted, on that memorable occasion, for the phantasmagoria intended by the witch, the spirit of Samuel in his earthly resemblance—or, if the reader may think this more likely, some good being, the messenger of the Divine pleasure, in the likeness of the departed prophet—and, to the surprise of the Pythoness herself, exchanged the juggling farce: of sheer deceit or petty sorcery which she had intended to produce, for a deep tragedy, capable of appalling the heart of the hardened tyrant, and furnishing an awful lesson to future times.
Embarrassed by such challenges, another explanation has been proposed, which, while avoiding some of the issues related to the two extreme views, still faces others. It has been suggested that something similar to what disrupted the preplanned intentions of the prophet Balaam happened during this remarkable occasion, forcing him to turn his intended curses into blessings. According to this idea, the medium from Endor was getting ready to use her tricks of sleight of hand or deception to fool the less discerning clients who sought her guidance. Alternatively, we might imagine that in those times, when natural laws were often suspended by displays of Divine Power, some form of manipulation could have occurred between humans and lesser spirits; in this scenario, we must assume that the woman genuinely expected or hoped to summon a supernatural being. But in either case, this second interpretation suggests that on that memorable occasion, the will of the Almighty replaced the illusion intended by the witch with the spirit of Samuel in his earthly form—or, if the reader finds it more plausible, some benevolent entity, a messenger of Divine will, resembling the departed prophet—and, to the surprise of the medium herself, transformed the deceitful trickery she planned to perform into a profound tragedy, capable of shocking the heart of the hardened tyrant and providing a significant lesson for future generations.
This exposition has the advantage of explaining the surprise expressed by the witch at the unexpected consequences of her own invocation, while it removes the objection of supposing the spirit of Samuel subject to her influence. It does not apply so well to the complaint of Samuel that he was disquieted, since neither the prophet, nor any good angel wearing his likeness, could be supposed to complain of an apparition which took place in obedience to the direct command of the Deity. If, however, the phrase is understood, not as a murmuring against the pleasure of Providence, but as a reproach to the prophet’s former friend Saul, that his sins and discontents, which were the ultimate cause of Samuel’s appearance, had withdrawn the prophet for a space from the enjoyment and repose of Heaven, to review this miserable spot of mortality, guilt, grief, and misfortune, the words may, according to that interpretation, wear no stronger sense of complaint than might become the spirit of a just man made perfect, or any benevolent angel by whom he might be represented. It may be observed that in Ecclesiasticus (xlvi. 19, 20), the opinion of Samuel’s actual appearance is adopted, since it is said of this man of God, that after death he prophesied, and showed the king his latter end.
This explanation highlights the witch's surprise at the unexpected results of her own summoning, while also eliminating the concern that the spirit of Samuel was under her control. However, it doesn't quite fit with Samuel's complaint about being disturbed, since neither the prophet nor any good angel resembling him would likely complain about a vision that occurred in response to God's direct command. If we interpret the phrase not as a complaint against God's will, but as a criticism of Saul, Samuel's former friend, for the sins and unhappiness that led to Samuel's appearance, it suggests that Samuel was temporarily pulled from the peace of Heaven to witness this sad place of suffering, guilt, and misfortune. In this context, his words may not convey a stronger complaint than what would be appropriate for a righteous spirit or any kind-hearted angel representing him. It's worth noting that in Ecclesiasticus (xlvi. 19, 20), the viewpoint of Samuel's actual appearance is supported, as it states that after death he prophesied, and showed the king his latter end.
Leaving the further discussion of this dark and difficult question to those whose studies have qualified them to give judgment on so obscure a subject, it so far appears clear that the Witch of Endor, was not a being such as those believed in by our ancestors, who could transform themselves and others into the appearance of the lower animals, raise and allay tempests, frequent the company and join the revels of evil spirits, and, by their counsel and assistance, destroy human lives, and waste the fruits of the earth, or perform feats of such magnitude as to alter the face of Nature. The Witch of Endor was a mere fortune-teller, to whom, in despair of all aid or answer from the Almighty, the unfortunate King of Israel had recourse in his despair, and by whom, in some way or other, he obtained the awful certainty of his own defeat and death. She was liable, indeed, deservedly to the punishment of death for intruding herself upon the task of the real prophets, by whom the will of God was at that time regularly made known. But her existence and her crimes can go no length to prove the possibility that another class of witches, no otherwise resembling her than as called by the same name, either existed at a more recent period, or were liable to the same capital punishment, for a very different and much more doubtful class of offences, which, however odious, are nevertheless to be proved possible before they can be received as a criminal charge.
Leaving the deeper discussion of this dark and challenging question to those whose studies have qualified them to judge such an obscure topic, it seems clear so far that the Witch of Endor was not a being like those believed in by our ancestors, who could change themselves and others into the appearance of lower animals, stir up storms, hang out with and join the festivities of evil spirits, and, with their guidance and help, take human lives and ruin the earth's resources, or perform feats so grand that they could alter the face of Nature. The Witch of Endor was simply a fortune-teller, to whom the desperate King of Israel turned when he had lost all hope for help or answers from the Almighty, and through whom, in one way or another, he learned the dreadful truth of his own defeat and death. She rightly faced the death penalty for intruding on the role of the real prophets, who at that time regularly communicated the will of God. However, her existence and her crimes do not prove the possibility that another group of witches, who were only similar to her in name, either existed in a later time or were subject to the same capital punishment for a very different and far less certain class of offenses, which, no matter how appalling, must be proven possible before being accepted as a criminal charge.
Whatever may be thought of other occasional expressions in the Old Testament, it cannot be said that, in any part of that sacred volume, a text occurs indicating the existence of a system of witchcraft, under the Jewish dispensation, in any respect similar to that against which the law-books of so many European nations have, till very lately, denounced punishment; far less under the Christian dispensation—a system under which the emancipation of the human race from the Levitical law was happily and miraculously perfected. This latter crime is supposed to infer a compact implying reverence and adoration on the part of the witch who comes under the fatal bond, and patronage, support, and assistance on the part of the diabolical patron. Indeed, in the four Gospels, the word, under any sense, does not occur; although, had the possibility of so enormous a sin been admitted, it was not likely to escape the warning censure of the Divine Person who came to take away the sins of the world. Saint Paul, indeed, mentions the sin of witchcraft, in a cursory manner, as superior in guilt to that of ingratitude; and in the offences of the flesh it is ranked immediately after idolatry, which juxtaposition inclines us to believe that the witchcraft mentioned by the Apostle must have been analogous to that of the Old Testament, and equivalent to resorting to the assistance of soothsayers, or similar forbidden arts, to acquire knowledge of toturity. Sorcerers are also joined with other criminals, in the Book of Revelations, as excluded from the city of God And with these occasional notices, which indicate that there was a transgression so called, but leave us ignorant of us exact nature, the writers upon witchcraft attempt to wring out of the New Testament proofs of a crime in itself so disgustingly improbable. Neither do the exploits of Elymas, called the Sorcerer, or Simon, called Magus or the Magician, entitle them to rank above the class of impostors who assumed a character to which they had no real title, and put their own mystical and ridiculous pretensions to supernatural power in competition with those who had been conferred on purpose to diffuse the gospel, and facilitate its reception by the exhibition of genuine miracles. It is clear that, from his presumptuous and profane proposal to acquire, by purchase, a portion of those powers which were directly derived from inspiration, Simon Magus displayed a degree of profane and brutal ignorance inconsistent with his possessing even the intelligence of a skilful impostor; and it is plain that a leagued vassal of hell—should we pronounce him such—would have better known his own rank and condition, compared to that of the apostles, than to have made such a fruitless and unavailing proposal, by which he could only expose his own impudence and ignorance.
Whatever people may think about other occasional mentions in the Old Testament, it can't be said that anywhere in that sacred text is there a clear indication of a system of witchcraft during the Jewish era that resembles the one punishable by the laws of many European nations until very recently. This is even less true under the Christian era, where the liberation of humanity from the Levitical law was wonderfully and miraculously achieved. This form of wrongdoing is thought to indicate a pact involving respect and worship from the witch who takes the fatal vow, alongside support and assistance from the evil patron. In fact, in the four Gospels, the term doesn't appear in any context, and had such a serious sin been acknowledged, it surely would have drawn the warning rebuke of the Divine figure who came to remove the world's sins. Saint Paul does refer to witchcraft briefly, ranking it as more sinful than ingratitude, positioning it right after idolatry among the fleshly offenses, suggesting that the witchcraft mentioned by the Apostle should be seen similarly to that in the Old Testament, akin to seeking help from fortune-tellers or other prohibited practices for knowledge of the future. Sorcerers are also mentioned alongside other wrongdoers in the Book of Revelation, excluded from the city of God. These sporadic references imply there was a wrongdoing labeled as witchcraft, yet they leave us clueless about its exact nature. Writers on witchcraft try to extract proof from the New Testament for a crime that seems pathetically unlikely. The actions of Elymas, often called the Sorcerer, or Simon, known as the Magician, do not elevate them above the ranks of frauds who pretended to hold titles they did not actually possess, and whose mystical and absurd claims of supernatural abilities were pitted against genuine miracles designed to spread the gospel and aid its acceptance. It's evident that through his arrogant and disrespectful attempt to buy a share of the powers that were given directly through inspiration, Simon Magus showed a level of irreverent and crude ignorance that disqualified him from even being a clever fraud. It’s clear that if he were truly a minion of hell—if we were to label him as such—he should have known better than to make such a pointless and fruitless offer, which only served to highlight his own audacity and ignorance.
With this observation we may conclude our brief remarks upon witchcraft, as the word occurs in the Scripture; and it now only remains to mention the nature of the demonology, which, as gathered from the sacred volumes, every Christian believer is bound to receive as a thing declared and proved to be true.
With this observation, we can wrap up our brief comments on witchcraft, as the term is used in the Scripture. All that's left is to discuss the nature of demonology, which, based on the sacred texts, every Christian believer is obligated to accept as a truth that has been clearly stated and demonstrated.
And in the first place, no man can read the Bible, or call himself a Christian, without believing that, during the course of time comprehended by the Divine writers, the Deity, to confirm the faith of the Jews, and to overcome and confound the pride of the heathens, wrought in the land many great miracles, using either good spirits, the instruments of his pleasure, or fallen angels, the permitted agents of such evil as it was his will should be inflicted upon, or suffered by, the children of men. This proposition comprehends, of course, the acknowledgment of the truth of miracles during this early period, by which the ordinary laws of nature were occasionally suspended, and recognises the existence in the spiritual world of the two grand divisions of angels and devils, severally exercising their powers according to the commission or permission of the Ruler of the universe.
And first of all, no one can read the Bible or call themselves a Christian without believing that, over time, as described by the Divine writers, God performed many great miracles in the land to strengthen the faith of the Jews and to humble and confuse the pride of the non-believers. He did this using either good spirits, which are instruments of His will, or fallen angels, who were allowed to carry out the evil that He permitted to be inflicted on or endured by humanity. This idea naturally includes the acknowledgment of the reality of miracles during this early period, during which the usual laws of nature were sometimes set aside, and recognizes the existence of two main categories in the spiritual realm: angels and devils, each exercising their powers according to the command or permission of the Creator of the universe.
Secondly, wise men have thought and argued that the idols of the heathen were actually fiends, or, rather, that these enemies of mankind had power to assume the shape and appearance of those feeble deities, and to give a certain degree of countenance to the faith of the worshippers, by working seeming miracles, and returning, by their priests or their oracles, responses which “palter’d in a double sense” with the deluded persons who consulted them. Most of the fathers of the Christian Church have intimated such an opinion. This doctrine has the advantage of affording, to a certain extent, a confirmation of many miracles related in pagan or classical history, which are thus ascribed to the agency of evil spirits. It corresponds also with the texts of Scripture which declare that the gods of the heathen are all devils and evil spirits; and the idols of Egypt are classed, as in Isaiah, chap. xix. ver. 2, with charmers, those who have familiar spirits, and with wizards. But whatever license it may be supposed was permitted to the evil spirits of that period—and although, undoubtedly, men owned the sway of deities who were, in fact, but personifications of certain evil passions of humanity, as, for example, in their sacrifices to Venus, to Bacchus, to Mars, &c., and therefore might be said, in one sense, to worship evil spirits—we cannot, in reason, suppose that every one, or the thousandth part of the innumerable idols worshipped among the heathen, was endowed with supernatural power; it is clear that the greater number fell under the description applied to them in another passage of Scripture, in which the part of the tree burned in the fire for domestic purposes is treated as of the same power and estimation as that carved into an image, and preferred for Gentile homage. This striking passage, in which the impotence of the senseless block, and the brutish ignorance of the worshipper, whose object of adoration is the work of his own hands, occurs in the 44th chapter of the prophecies of Isaiah, verse 10 et seq. The precise words of the text, as well as common sense, forbid us to believe that the images so constructed by common artisans became the habitation or resting-place of demons, or possessed any manifestation of strength or power, whether through demoniacal influence or otherwise. The whole system of doubt, delusion, and trick exhibited by the oracles, savours of the mean juggling of impostors, rather than the audacious intervention of demons. Whatever degree of power the false gods of heathendom, or devils in their name, might be permitted occasionally to exert, was unquestionably under the general restraint and limitation of providence; and though, on the one hand, we cannot deny the possibility of such permission being granted in cases unknown to us, it is certain, on the other, that the Scriptures mention no one specific instance of such influence expressly recommended to our belief.
Secondly, wise people have reasoned that the idols of non-believers were actually demons, or rather, that these enemies of humanity had the power to take on the form and appearance of those weak deities and to lend some credibility to the faith of their worshippers by performing apparent miracles and providing responses through their priests or oracles that “played with words” to deceive the people who consulted them. Most of the early Christian leaders hinted at this idea. This belief somewhat supports many miracles mentioned in pagan or classical history, attributing them to the actions of evil spirits. It also aligns with the Scripture that states the gods of the non-believers are all devils and evil spirits; even the idols of Egypt are grouped, as in Isaiah, chapter 19, verse 2, with charmers, those with familiar spirits, and with wizards. However, whatever leeway might have been given to evil spirits at that time—and although it is clear that people acknowledged the control of deities who were mere personifications of certain negative human traits, such as in their sacrifices to Venus, Bacchus, Mars, etc.—we cannot reasonably believe that every single one, or even a small fraction, of the countless idols worshipped by the non-believers had supernatural power. It’s evident that most fit the description given in another part of Scripture, where the piece of a tree burned for domestic purposes is regarded as having the same power and worth as that carved into an image and chosen for Gentile worship. This powerful passage, highlighting the futility of the senseless idol and the ignorant worshipper whose object of veneration is the product of their own hands, appears in the 44th chapter of Isaiah’s prophecies, verse 10 et seq. The exact wording of the text, along with common sense, prevents us from believing that the images crafted by ordinary artisans became the dwelling or resting place of demons or had any display of strength or power, whether through demonic influence or otherwise. The whole system of doubt, deception, and trickery exhibited by the oracles reeks of lowly deceit from fraudsters, rather than the bold intervention of demons. Any power that the false gods of paganism, or devils in their name, were occasionally allowed to exert was unquestionably under the overarching control and limits of divine providence; and while we cannot rule out the possibility of such permission being granted in cases unknown to us, it is certain that the Scriptures do not mention any specific instance of such influence that is explicitly recommended for our belief.
Thirdly, as the backsliders among the Jews repeatedly fell off to the worship of the idols of the neighbouring heathens, so they also resorted to the use of charms and enchantments, founded on a superstitious perversion of their own Levitical ritual, in which they endeavoured by sortilege, by Teraphim, by observation of augury, or the flight of birds, which they called Nahas, by the means of Urim and Thummim, to find as it were a byroad to the secrets of futurity. But for the same reason that withholds us from delivering any opinion upon the degree to which the devil and his angels might be allowed to countenance the impositions of the heathen priesthood, it is impossible for us conclusively to pronounce what effect might be permitted by supreme Providence to the ministry of such evil spirits as presided over, and, so far as they had liberty, directed, these sinful enquiries among the Jews themselves. We are indeed assured from the sacred writings, that the promise of the Deity to his chosen people, if they conducted themselves agreeably to the law which he had given, was, that the communication with the invisible world would be enlarged, so that in the fulness of his time he would pour out his spirit upon all flesh, when their sons and daughters should prophesy, their old men see visions, and their young men dream dreams. Such were the promises delivered to the Israelites by Joel, Ezekiel, and other holy seers, of which St. Peter, in the second chapter of the Acts of the Apostles, hails the fulfilment in the mission of our Saviour. And on the other hand, it is no less evident that the Almighty, to punish the disobedience of the Jews, abandoned them to their own fallacious desires, and suffered them to be deceived by the lying oracles, to which, in flagrant violation of his commands, they had recourse. Of this the punishment arising from the Deity abandoning Ahab to his own devices, and suffering him to be deceived by a lying spirit, forms a striking instance.
Thirdly, just as the backsliders among the Jews often turned to worship the idols of neighboring pagan nations, they also started using charms and enchantments, based on a twisted version of their own Levitical rituals. They sought to discover the secrets of the future through methods like casting lots, using Teraphim, observing omens, or watching the flight of birds, which they referred to as Nahas, and also through the Urim and Thummim. However, similar to the reason we can’t firmly state how much the devil and his angels may have influenced the deceit of the pagan priesthood, it’s impossible for us to definitively say what effects Supreme Providence allowed the ministry of such evil spirits to have over these sinful inquiries among the Jews. We are indeed assured from sacred texts that God’s promise to His chosen people was that if they lived according to the law He provided, their connection with the invisible world would expand. In the fullness of time, He would pour out His spirit on all flesh, leading to their sons and daughters prophesying, old men seeing visions, and young men dreaming dreams. Such were the promises delivered to the Israelites by Joel, Ezekiel, and other holy prophets, which St. Peter references in the second chapter of the Acts of the Apostles as fulfilled in the mission of our Savior. On the other hand, it's equally clear that to punish the disobedience of the Jews, the Almighty allowed them to chase after their deceptive desires, leading them to be misled by the false oracles they sought, in blatant violation of His commands. A striking example of this is the punishment that resulted from God abandoning Ahab to his own schemes, allowing him to be deceived by a lying spirit.
Fourthly, and on the other hand, abstaining with reverence from accounting ourselves judges of the actions of Omnipotence, we may safely conclude that it was not his pleasure to employ in the execution of his judgments the consequences of any such species of league or compact betwixt devils and deluded mortals, as that denounced in the laws of our own ancestors under the name of witchcraft. What has been translated by that word seems little more than the art of a medicator of poisons, combined with that of a Pythoness or false prophetess; a crime, however, of a capital nature, by the Levitical law, since, in the first capacity, it implied great enmity to mankind, and in the second, direct treason to the divine Legislator. The book of Tobit contains, indeed, a passage resembling more an incident in an Arabian tale or Gothic romance, than a part of inspired writing. In this, the fumes produced by broiling the liver of a certain fish are described as having power to drive away an evil genius who guards the nuptial chamber of an Assyrian princess, and who has strangled seven bridegrooms in succession, as they approached the nuptial couch. But the romantic and fabulous strain of this legend has induced the fathers of all Protestant churches to deny it a place amongst the writings sanctioned by divine origin, and we may therefore be excused from entering into discussion on such imperfect evidence.
Fourthly, and on the other hand, while we humbly refrain from judging the actions of the Almighty, we can confidently say that it was not His intention to involve the consequences of any kind of alliance or agreement between demons and misled humans, like the one condemned by our ancestors under the term witchcraft. What is referred to by that word seems to be primarily the skill of someone who handles poisons, combined with that of a soothsayer or false prophetess; a crime, nonetheless, of a serious nature according to Levitical law, as it represented significant hostility towards humanity in the first case, and direct betrayal to the divine Lawgiver in the second. The book of Tobit indeed contains a passage that resembles more of an Arabian tale or Gothic romance than a divinely inspired text. In this passage, the fumes from roasting the liver of a specific fish are said to have the power to drive away an evil spirit that guards the bedroom of an Assyrian princess, and who has strangled seven grooms in a row as they approached the bridal bed. However, the romantic and fanciful nature of this story has led the leaders of all Protestant churches to reject it from the writings recognized as divinely inspired, and thus, we can be excused from discussing such weak evidence.
Lastly, in considering the incalculable change which took place upon the Advent of our Saviour and the announcement of his law, we may observe that, according to many wise and learned men, his mere appearance upon earth, without awaiting the fulfilment of his mission, operated as an act of banishment of such heathen deities as had hitherto been suffered to deliver oracles, and ape in some degree the attributes of the Deity. Milton has, in the “Paradise Lost,” it may be upon conviction of its truth, embraced the theory which identifies the followers of Satan with the gods of the heathen; and, in a tone of poetry almost unequalled, even in his own splendid writings, he thus describes, in one of his earlier pieces, the departure of these pretended deities on the eve of the blessed Nativity:—
Lastly, when we think about the incredible change that happened with the arrival of our Savior and the announcement of his law, we can see that, according to
“The oracles are dumb, No voice or hideous hum Runs through the arched roof in words deceiving; Apollo from his shrine Can no more divine, With hollow shriek the steep of Delphos leaving; No nightly trance or breathed spell Inspires the pale-eyed priests from the prophetic cell. “The lonely mountains o’er, And the resounding shore, A voice of weeping heard and loud lament; From haunted spring and dale, Edged with poplar pale, The parting Genius is with sighing sent; With flower-inwoven tresses torn, The Nymphs in twilight shade of tangled thickets mourn. “In consecrated earth, And on the holy hearth, The Lars and Lemures moan with midnight plaint; In urns and altars round, A drear and dying sound Affrights the Flamens at their service quaint; And the chill marble seems to sweat, While each peculiar Power foregoes his wonted seat. “Peor and Baalim Forsake their temples dim, With that twice-battered god of Palestine; And mooned Ashtaroth, Heaven’s queen and mother both, Now sits not girt with tapers’ holy shine; The Lybic Hammon shrinks his horn; In vain the Tyrian maids their wounded Thammuz mourn. “And sullen Moloch, fled, Hath left in shadows dread His burning idol all of darkest hue; In vain with cymbals ring, They call the grisly king, In dismal dance about the furnace blue; The brutish gods of Nile as fast, Isis and Orus, and the Dog Anubis, haste.”
“The oracles are silent, No voice or ugly hum Drifts through the arched roof in misleading words; Apollo from his shrine Can no longer predict, With a hollow shriek leaving the steep of Delphos; No nightly trance or whispered spell Inspires the pale-eyed priests from the prophetic cell. “The lonely mountains above, And the echoing shore, A voice of weeping is heard, loud and mournful; From haunted spring and valley, Lined with pale poplars, The departing Spirit is sent away with sighs; With flower-woven tresses torn, The Nymphs in twilight shade of tangled thickets grieve. “In sacred earth, And on the holy hearth, The Lars and Lemures moan with midnight lament; In urns and around altars, A dreary and dying sound Frights the Flamens at their peculiar service; And the cold marble seems to sweat, While each specific Power abandons his usual seat. “Peor and Baalim Desert their dim temples, With that twice-battered god of Palestine; And moonlit Ashtaroth, Queen of heaven and mother both, Now doesn’t sit surrounded by the holy light of candles; The Libyan Hammon shrinks his horn; In vain do the Tyrian girls mourn their wounded Thammuz. “And gloomy Moloch has fled, Leaving in dreadful shadows His burning idol of darkest hue; In vain they ring their cymbals, Calling the grim king, In a dismal dance around the blue furnace; The brutish gods of the Nile are just as quick, Isis and Orus, and the Dog Anubis hurry away.”
The quotation is a long one, but it is scarcely possible to shorten what is so beautiful and interesting a description of the heathen deities, whether in the classic personifications of Greece, the horrible shapes worshipped by mere barbarians, or the hieroglyphical enormities of the Egyptian Mythology. The idea of identifying the pagan deities, especially the most distinguished of them, with the manifestation of demoniac power, and concluding that the descent of our Saviour struck them with silence, so nobly expressed in the poetry of Milton, is not certainly to be lightly rejected. It has been asserted, in simple prose, by authorities of no mean weight; nor does there appear anything inconsistent in the faith of those who, believing that, in the elder time, fiends and demons were permitted an enlarged degree of power in uttering predictions, may also give credit to the proposition, that at the Divine Advent that power was restrained, the oracles silenced, and those demons who had aped the Divinity of the place were driven from their abode on earth, honoured as it was by a guest so awful.
The quote is lengthy, but it’s hard to shorten such a beautiful and captivating description of the pagan deities, whether in the classical figures of Greece, the terrifying forms worshiped by mere savages, or the bizarre symbols of Egyptian mythology. The idea of connecting the pagan gods, especially the most notable ones, with the display of demonic power, and concluding that the arrival of our Savior left them speechless, beautifully articulated in Milton's poetry, should not be dismissed lightly. It's been stated clearly by respected authorities; there's nothing incompatible about the belief that, in ancient times, demons were allowed a significant amount of power to make predictions, and that at the time of Christ’s arrival, that power was limited, the oracles silenced, and those demons pretending to be divine were expelled from their earthly homes, which was honored by a guest so formidable.
It must be noticed, however, that this great event had not the same effect on that peculiar class of fiends who were permitted to vex mortals by the alienation of their minds, and the abuse of their persons, in the case of what is called Demoniacal possession. In what exact sense we should understand this word possession it is impossible to discover; but we feel it impossible to doubt (notwithstanding learned authorities to the contrary) that it was a dreadful disorder, of a kind not merely natural; and may be pretty well assured that it was suffered to continue after the Incarnation, because the miracles effected by our Saviour and his apostles, in curing those tormented in this way, afforded the most direct proofs of his divine mission, even out of the very mouths of those ejected fiends, the most malignant enemies of a power to which they dared not refuse homage and obedience. And here is an additional proof that witchcraft, in its ordinary and popular sense, was unknown at that period; although cases of possession are repeatedly mentioned in the Gospels and Acts of the Apostles, yet in no one instance do the devils ejected mention a witch or sorcerer, or plead the commands of such a person, as the cause of occupying or tormenting the victim;—whereas, in a great proportion of those melancholy cases of witchcraft with which the records of later times abound, the stress of the evidence is rested on the declaration of the possessed, or the demon within him, that some old man or woman in the neighbourhood had compelled the fiend to be the instrument of evil.
It's important to note that this major event did not have the same impact on that specific group of tormentors who were allowed to trouble humans by twisting their minds and mistreating their bodies, in what we now refer to as demonic possession. It’s unclear exactly what we should mean by the term possession, but it's hard to doubt (despite learned scholars saying otherwise) that it was a horrific disorder, not simply a natural one; and we can be fairly certain that it persisted after the Incarnation because the miracles performed by our Savior and his apostles in healing those afflicted in this way provided the most direct evidence of his divine mission, even coming from the very mouths of those banished demons, the most malicious foes who dared not refuse to show respect and obedience to that power. Additionally, this suggests that witchcraft, in its typical and common understanding, was not known during that time; although cases of possession are frequently mentioned in the Gospels and the Acts of the Apostles, at no point do the demons that were cast out mention a witch or sorcerer or claim the orders of such a person as the reason for occupying or tormenting their victim. In contrast, many of the tragic cases of witchcraft recorded in later times rely heavily on the statements of the possessed, or the demon within them, claiming that some old man or woman in the area had forced the demon to commit evil acts.
It must also be admitted that in another most remarkable respect, the power of the Enemy of mankind was rather enlarged than bridled or restrained, in consequence of the Saviour coming upon earth. It is indisputable that, in order that Jesus might have his share in every species of delusion and persecution which the fallen race of Adam is heir to, he personally suffered the temptation in the wilderness at the hand of Satan, whom, without resorting to his divine power, he drove, confuted, silenced, and shamed, from his presence. But it appears, that although Satan was allowed, upon this memorable occasion, to come on earth with great power, the permission was given expressly because his time was short.
It must also be acknowledged that, in another significant way, the power of the Enemy of mankind was more enhanced than limited or restricted because of the Saviour's arrival on earth. It's clear that, so Jesus could experience every form of deception and persecution that humanity inherits from Adam, he personally faced temptation in the wilderness at the hands of Satan, whom he confronted, outwitted, silenced, and shamed without using his divine power. However, it seems that even though Satan was permitted to come to earth with considerable power on this notable occasion, this permission was granted specifically because his time was limited.
The indulgence which was then granted to him in a case so unique and peculiar soon passed over and was utterly restrained. It is evident that, after the lapse of the period during which it pleased the Almighty to establish His own Church by miraculous displays of power, it could not consist with his kindness and wisdom to leave the enemy in the possession of the privilege of deluding men by imaginary miracles calculated for the perversion of that faith which real miracles were no longer present to support. There would, we presume to say, be a shocking inconsistency in supposing that false and deceitful prophecies and portents should be freely circulated by any demoniacal influence, deceiving men’s bodily organs, abusing their minds, and perverting their faith, while the true religion was left by its great Author devoid of every supernatural sign and token which, in the time of its Founder and His immediate disciples, attested and celebrated their inappreciable mission. Such a permission on the part of the Supreme Being would be (to speak under the deepest reverence) an abandonment of His chosen people, ransomed at such a price, to the snares of an enemy from whom the worst evils were to be apprehended. Nor would it consist with the remarkable promise in holy writ, that “God will not suffer His people to be tempted above what they are able to bear.” I Cor. X. 13. The Fathers of the Faith are not strictly agreed at what period the miraculous power was withdrawn from the Church; but few Protestants are disposed to bring it down beneath the accession of Constantine, when the Christian religion was fully established in supremacy. The Roman Catholics, indeed, boldly affirm that the power of miraculous interference with the course of Nature is still in being; but the enlightened even of this faith, though they dare not deny a fundamental tenet of their church, will hardly assent to any particular case, without nearly the same evidence which might conquer the incredulity of their neighbours the Protestants. It is alike inconsistent with the common sense of either that fiends should be permitted to work marvels which are no longer exhibited on the part of Heaven, or in behalf of religion.
The leniency he was given in such a unique and specific case eventually faded and was completely restricted. It's clear that after the time when it pleased God to establish His Church through miraculous displays of power, it wouldn't make sense for Him to allow the enemy to deceive people with fake miracles meant to distort the faith that real miracles could no longer support. There would be a shocking inconsistency in assuming that false prophecies and wonders could be spread freely by any demonic influence, misleading people's senses, manipulating their minds, and corrupting their faith, while the true religion, left by its Creator, lacked any supernatural signs that had once confirmed the invaluable mission of its Founder and His immediate followers. Allowing this would be, with the utmost respect, a betrayal of His chosen people, redeemed at such a great cost, to the traps of an enemy from whom the greatest evils were to be feared. It wouldn't align with the notable promise in scripture that "God will not allow His people to be tempted beyond what they can handle." I Cor. X. 13. The Church Fathers don't completely agree on when miraculous power was removed from the Church; however, few Protestants are inclined to place it before the rise of Constantine, when Christianity became fully established. Roman Catholics assert that the power of miraculous intervention in nature still exists; yet, even the most enlightened among them, while not denying a core belief of their church, will likely not agree to any specific case without nearly the same level of proof that could persuade their Protestant neighbors. It's equally unreasonable for either side to think that demons should be allowed to perform wonders that heaven no longer displays in support of religion.
It will be observed that we have not been anxious to decide upon the limits of probability on this question. It is not necessary for us to ascertain in what degree the power of Satan was at liberty to display itself during the Jewish dispensation, or down to what precise period in the history of the Christian Church cures of demoniacal possession or similar displays of miraculous power may have occurred. We have avoided controversy on that head, because it comprehends questions not more doubtful than unedifying. Little benefit could arise from attaining the exact knowledge of the manner in which the apostate Jews practised unlawful charms or auguries. After their conquest and dispersion they were remarked among the Romans for such superstitious practices; and the like, for What we know, may continue to linger among the benighted wanderers of their race at the present day. But all these things are extraneous to our enquiry, the purpose of which was to discover whether any real evidence could be derived from sacred history to prove the early existence of that branch of demonology which has been the object, in comparatively modern times, of criminal prosecution and capital punishment. We have already alluded to this as the contract of witchcraft, in which, as the term was understood in the Middle Ages, the demon and the witch or wizard combined their various powers of doing harm to inflict calamities upon the person and property, the fortune and the fame, of innocent human beings, imposing the most horrible diseases, and death itself, as marks of their slightest ill-will; transforming their own persons and those of others at their pleasure; raising tempests to ravage the crops of their enemies, or carrying them home to their own garners; annihilating or transferring to their own dairies the produce of herds; spreading pestilence among cattle, infecting and blighting children; and, in a word, doing more evil than the heart of man might be supposed capable of conceiving, by means far beyond mere human power to accomplish. If it could be supposed that such unnatural leagues existed, and that there were wretches wicked enough, merely for the gratification of malignant spite or the enjoyment of some beastly revelry, to become the wretched slaves of infernal spirits, most just and equitable would be those laws which cut them off from the midst of every Christian commonwealth. But it is still more just and equitable, before punishment be inflicted for any crime, to prove that there is a possibility of that crime being committed. We have therefore advanced an important step in our enquiry when we have ascertained that the witch of the Old Testament was not capable of anything beyond the administration of baleful drugs or the practising of paltry imposture; in other words, that she did not hold the character ascribed to a modern sorceress. We have thus removed out of the argument the startling objection that, in denying the existence of witchcraft, we deny the possibility of a crime which was declared capital in the Mosaic law, and are left at full liberty to adopt the opinion, that the more modern system of witchcraft was a part, and by no means the least gross, of that mass of errors which appeared among the members of the Christian Church when their religion, becoming gradually corrupted by the devices of men and the barbarism of those nations among whom it was spread showed, a light indeed, but one deeply tinged with the remains of that very pagan ignorance which its Divine Founder came to dispel.
It can be seen that we have not rushed to define the limits of probability on this topic. We don’t need to figure out how much power Satan had during the Jewish period, or how long within the early Christian Church there were reports of demonic possession or similar miraculous events. We’ve steered clear of debates on this because it involves questions that are both uncertain and not very enlightening. Gaining a clear understanding of how the apostate Jews used illegal charms or performed divination wouldn't provide much benefit. After their conquest and dispersion, they were noted among the Romans for such superstitious practices; similar behaviors, as far as we know, might still be found among the misguided descendants of their race today. However, all of this is unrelated to our inquiry, which aims to discover whether there’s any real evidence from sacred history to show the early existence of that part of demonology that has been subjected to criminal prosecution and capital punishment in more recent times. We’ve already mentioned this as the contract of witchcraft, where, as the term was understood in the Middle Ages, the demon combined with the witch or wizard to use their powers to cause harm, bringing disasters upon innocent people—afflicting them with terrible diseases and even death, as signs of their slightest malice; changing their own forms and those of others at will; stirring up storms to ruin the crops of their enemies, or transporting them to their own stores; wiping out or redirecting the produce of herds to their own dairy; spreading disease among cattle, infecting and harming children; and, in short, causing more evil than one might think a human heart could conceive, through means far exceeding human capability. If we could assume such unnatural agreements existed and that there were people wicked enough to become miserable slaves to hellish spirits for mere spite or disgusting pleasure, those laws that removed them from any Christian community would be entirely just and fair. However, it is even more just and fair, before punishment is applied for any crime, to prove that committing that crime is a possibility. Therefore, we have taken a significant step in our inquiry by establishing that the witch of the Old Testament was only able to administer harmful drugs or engage in petty deception; in other words, she did not possess the abilities attributed to a modern sorceress. This allows us to dismiss the shocking objection that, by denying the existence of witchcraft, we deny the possibility of a crime deemed capital in Mosaic law, leaving us free to adopt the view that the modern concept of witchcraft was part of, and certainly one of the most egregious, errors that arose among members of the Christian Church as their religion gradually became corrupted by human schemes and the barbarism of the nations it spread to—showing a light, indeed, but one heavily stained by the remnants of the very pagan ignorance that its Divine Founder came to eliminate.
We will, in a future part of this enquiry, endeavour to show that many of the particular articles of the popular belief respecting magic and witchcraft were derived from the opinions which the ancient heathens entertained as part of their religion. To recommend them, however, they had principles lying deep in the human mind and heart of all times; the tendency to belief in supernatural agencies is natural, and indeed seems connected with and deduced from the invaluable conviction of the certainty of a future state. Moreover, it is very possible that particular stories of this class may have seemed undeniable in the dark ages, though our better instructed period can explain them in a satisfactory manner by the excited temperament of spectators, or the influence of delusions produced by derangement of the intellect or imperfect reports of the external senses. They obtained, however, universal faith and credit; and the churchmen, either from craft or from ignorance, favoured the progress of a belief which certainly contributed in a most powerful manner to extend their own authority over the human mind.
In a future part of this inquiry, we will try to show that many aspects of popular beliefs about magic and witchcraft came from the views that ancient pagans held as part of their religion. To support these beliefs, they tapped into deep-seated principles within the human mind and heart that have always existed; the inclination to believe in supernatural forces is natural and seems tied to the fundamental conviction that there is a certainty of an afterlife. Additionally, it’s very likely that some specific stories in this category may have seemed beyond doubt during the dark ages, even though our better-informed era can explain them satisfactorily through the heightened emotions of eyewitnesses, the impact of mental disturbances, or flawed perceptions of the external world. Nonetheless, these stories gained widespread belief and credibility; and church leaders, whether out of cunning or ignorance, promoted a belief that significantly bolstered their own authority over people's minds.
To pass from the pagans of antiquity—the Mahommedans, though their profession of faith is exclusively unitarian, were accounted worshippers of evil spirits, who were supposed to aid them in their continual warfare against the Christians, or to protect and defend them in the Holy Land, where their abode gave so much scandal and offence to the devout. Romance, and even history, combined in representing all who were out of the pale of the Church as the personal vassals of Satan, who played his deceptions openly amongst them; and Mahound, Termagaunt, and Apollo were, in the opinion of the Western Crusaders, only so many names of the arch-fiend and his principal angels. The most enormous fictions spread abroad and believed through Christendom attested the fact, that there were open displays of supernatural aid afforded by the evil spirits to the Turks and Saracens; and fictitious reports were not less liberal in assigning to the Christians extraordinary means of defence through the direct protection of blessed saints and angels, or of holy men yet in the flesh, but already anticipating the privileges proper to a state of beatitude and glory, and possessing the power to work miracles.
To move from the pagans of ancient times: the Muslims, despite their strictly unitarian beliefs, were seen as worshippers of evil spirits who supposedly helped them in their constant battles against Christians or protected them in the Holy Land, where their presence caused much scandal and offense to the faithful. Both romance and history painted everyone outside the Church as personal servants of Satan, who openly conducted his deceptions among them; names like Mahound, Termagaunt, and Apollo were, in the view of the Western Crusaders, just different names for the arch-fiend and his main angels. Enormous lies circulated and were widely believed throughout Christendom, claiming that evil spirits openly assisted the Turks and Saracens; fictitious stories were equally generous in saying that Christians had extraordinary means of protection through the direct help of blessed saints and angels or of holy men still living, who were already expected to enjoy the privileges of a state of bliss and glory and could perform miracles.
To show the extreme grossness of these legends, we may give an example from the romance of “Richard Coeur de Lion,” premising at the same time that, like other romances, it was written in what the author designed to be the style of true history, and was addressed to hearers and readers, not as a tale of fiction, but a real narrative of facts, so that the legend is a proof of what the age esteemed credible and were disposed to believe as much as if had been extracted from a graver chronicle.
To illustrate the complete ridiculousness of these legends, we can take an example from the story of “Richard the Lionheart,” noting that, like other stories, it was written in what the author intended to be the style of true history. It was aimed at listeners and readers, not as a fictional tale, but as a genuine account of events. This way, the legend reflects what people of that time found believable and were willing to accept, as if it had been taken from a more serious historical record.
The renowned Saladin, it is said, had dispatched an embassy to King Richard, with the present of a colt recommended as a gallant war-horse, challenging Coeur de Lion to meet him in single combat between the armies, for the purpose of deciding at once their pretensions to the land of Palestine, and the theological question whether the God of the Christians, or Jupiter, the deity of the Saracens, should be the future object of adoration by the subjects of both monarchs. Now, under this seemingly chivalrous defiance was concealed a most unknightly stratagem, and which we may at the same time call a very clumsy trick for the devil to be concerned in. A Saracen clerk had conjured two devils into a mare and her colt, with the instruction, that whenever the mare neighed, the foal, which was a brute of uncommon size, should kneel down to suck his dam. The enchanted foal was sent to King Richard in the belief that the foal, obeying the signal of its dam as usual, the Soldan who mounted the mare might get an easy advantage over him.
The famous Saladin reportedly sent an envoy to King Richard, offering a colt praised as a noble war horse, challenging Coeur de Lion to a duel between their armies. The aim was to settle their claims to the land of Palestine and the theological debate over whether the God of Christians or Jupiter, the deity of the Saracens, should be the future object of worship for both rulers' subjects. However, beneath this seemingly noble challenge was a rather unchivalrous trick, which could be described as a very clumsy scheme for the devil to be involved in. A Saracen clerk had called two devils into a mare and her colt, with the instruction that whenever the mare neighed, the unusually large foal would kneel down to nurse. The enchanted foal was sent to King Richard, under the assumption that the foal would follow its mother's usual cue, giving the Soldan, who rode the mare, an easy advantage.
But the English king was warned by an angel in a dream of the intended stratagem, and the colt was, by the celestial mandate, previously to the combat, conjured in the holy name to be obedient to his rider during the encounter. The fiend-horse intimated his submission by drooping his head, but his word was not entirely credited. His ears were stopped with wax. In this condition, Richard, armed at all points and with various marks of his religious faith displayed on his weapons, rode forth to meet Saladin, and the Soldan, confident of his stratagem, encountered him boldly. The mare neighed till she shook the ground for miles around; but the sucking devil, whom the wax prevented from hearing the summons, could not obey the signal. Saladin was dismounted, and narrowly escaped death, while his army were cut to pieces by the Christians. It is but an awkward tale of wonder where a demon is worsted by a trick which could hardly have cheated a common horse-jockey; but by such legends our ancestors were amused and interested, till their belief respecting the demons of the Holy Land seems to have been not very far different from that expressed in the title of Ben Jonson’s play, “The Devil is an Ass.”
But the English king was warned by an angel in a dream about the planned trick, and the colt was, by divine order, commanded before the battle to be obedient to his rider during the fight. The demon horse showed he was willing by lowering his head, but not everyone believed him completely. His ears were stuffed with wax. In this state, Richard, fully armed and with various symbols of his faith displayed on his weapons, rode out to confront Saladin, who, trusting his plan, boldly faced him. The mare neighed so loudly that it shook the ground for miles around, but the devil horse, unable to hear the call because of the wax, couldn’t respond to the signal. Saladin was thrown from his horse and narrowly escaped death, while his troops were slaughtered by the Christians. It’s an awkward story of wonder where a demon is defeated by a trick that could barely fool a common horse trader; yet these legends entertained and intrigued our ancestors, whose beliefs about the demons of the Holy Land seem to have been not too far off from the sentiment expressed in the title of Ben Jonson’s play, “The Devil is an Ass.”
One of the earliest maps ever published, which appeared at Rome in the sixteenth century, intimates a similar belief in the connexion of the heathen nations of the north of Europe with the demons of the spiritual world. In Esthonia, Lithuania, Courland, and such districts, the chart, for want, it may be supposed, of an accurate account of the country, exhibits rude cuts of the fur-clad natives paying homage at the shrines of demons, who make themselves visibly present to them; while at other places they are displayed as doing battle with the Teutonic knights, or other military associations formed for the conversion or expulsion of the heathens in these parts. Amid the pagans, armed with scimitars and dressed in caftans, the fiends are painted as assisting them, pourtrayed in all the modern horrors of the cloven foot, or, as the Germans term it, horse’s foot, bat wings, saucer eyes, locks like serpents, and tail like a dragon. These attributes, it may be cursorily noticed, themselves intimate the connexion of modern demonology with the mythology of the ancients. The cloven foot is the attribute of Pan—to whose talents for inspiring terror we owe the word panic—the snaky tresses are borrowed from the shield of Minerva, and the dragon train alone seems to be connected with the Scriptural history.5
One of the earliest maps ever published, which appeared in Rome in the sixteenth century, suggests a similar belief in the connection between the pagan nations of Northern Europe and the demons of the spiritual world. In Estonia, Lithuania, Courland, and other areas, the map, perhaps lacking an accurate depiction of the land, shows rough images of fur-clad natives paying tribute at the shrines of demons who are visibly present to them. In other scenes, they are depicted battling the Teutonic knights or other military groups formed for the purpose of converting or driving out the pagans from these regions. Among the pagans, armed with scimitars and dressed in caftans, the demons are illustrated as assisting them, illustrated with all the modern horrors of the cloven foot, or as the Germans call it, horse’s foot, bat wings, large round eyes, hair like serpents, and a tail resembling a dragon. These characteristics, it might be briefly noted, hint at the connection between modern demonology and ancient mythology. The cloven foot belongs to Pan—whose ability to instill fear gave us the word panic—the snake-like hair is drawn from the shield of Minerva, and the dragon tail seems to be linked to biblical history.5
5 (return)
[ The chart alluded to is one
of the jac-similes of an ancient planisphere, engraved in bronze
about the end of the 15th century, and called the Borgian Table, from its
possessor, Cardinal Stephen Borgia, and preserved in his museum at
Veletri.]
5 (return)
[ The chart mentioned is one of the jac-similes of an ancient map, engraved in bronze around the end of the 15th century, known as the Borgian Table, named after its owner, Cardinal Stephen Borgia, and kept in his museum in Veletri.]
Other heathen nations, whose creeds could not have directly contributed to the system of demonology, because their manners and even their very existence was unknown when it was adopted, were nevertheless involved, so soon as Europeans became acquainted with them, in the same charge of witchcraft and worship of demons brought by the Christians of the Middle Ages against the heathens of northern Europe and the Mahommedans of the East. We learn from the information of a Portuguese voyager that even the native Christians (called those of St. Thomas), whom the discoverers found in India when they first arrived there, fell under suspicion of diabolical practices. It was almost in vain that the priests of one of their chapels produced to the Portuguese officers and soldiers a holy image, and called on them, as good Christians, to adore the Blessed Virgin. The sculptor had been so little acquainted with his art, and the hideous form which he had produced resembled an inhabitant of the infernal regions so much more than Our Lady of Grace, that one of the European officers, while, like his companions, he dropped on his knees, added the loud protest, that if the image represented the Devil, he paid his homage to the Holy Virgin.
Other non-Christian nations, whose beliefs couldn't have directly influenced the system of demonology because their customs and even their very existence were unknown when it was established, nonetheless became involved as soon as Europeans learned about them. They were accused of witchcraft and demon worship, just like the heathens of northern Europe and the Muslims of the East were during the Middle Ages. A Portuguese traveler informs us that even the native Christians (known as the St. Thomas Christians), whom the explorers encountered in India when they first arrived, faced suspicions of devilish practices. The priests of one of their chapels tried in vain to show the Portuguese officers and soldiers a holy image, urging them, as good Christians, to honor the Blessed Virgin. The sculptor was so unfamiliar with his craft that the grotesque figure he created looked far more like a creature from hell than Our Lady of Grace. One of the European officers, while kneeling with the others, loudly declared that if the image represented the Devil, then he was paying his respects to the Holy Virgin.
In South America the Spaniards justified the unrelenting cruelties exercised on the unhappy natives by reiterating, in all their accounts of the countries which they discovered and conquered, that the Indians, in their idol worship, were favoured by the demons with a direct intercourse, and that their priests inculcated doctrines and rites the foulest and most abhorrent to Christian ears. The great snake-god of Mexico, and other idols worshipped with human sacrifices and bathed in the gore of their prisoners, gave but too much probability to this accusation; and if the images themselves were not actually tenanted by evil spirits, the worship which the Mexicans paid to them was founded upon such deadly cruelty and dark superstition as might easily be believed to have been breathed into mortals by the agency of hell.
In South America, the Spaniards justified their relentless cruelty towards the unfortunate natives by stating, in all their writings about the lands they discovered and conquered, that the Indians, through their idol worship, were favored by demons with direct communication, and that their priests promoted doctrines and rituals that were the most repulsive to Christian sensibilities. The powerful snake-god of Mexico and other idols worshipped with human sacrifices and bathed in the blood of their captives lent significant credibility to this accusation; and even if the images themselves weren't actually inhabited by evil spirits, the devotion the Mexicans showed towards them was based on such brutal cruelty and dark superstition that it was easy to believe it had come from the influence of hell.
Even in North America, the first settlers in New England and other parts of that immense continent uniformly agreed that they detected among the inhabitants traces of an intimate connexion with Satan. It is scarce necessary to remark that this opinion was founded exclusively upon the tricks practised by the native powahs, or cunning men, to raise themselves to influence among the chiefs, and to obtain esteem with the people, which, possessed as they were professionally of some skill in jugglery and the knowledge of some medical herbs and secrets, the understanding of the colonists was unable to trace to their real source—legerdemain and imposture. By the account, however, of the Reverend Cotton Mather, in his Magnalia, book vi.,6 he does not ascribe to these Indian conjurers any skill greatly superior to a maker of almanacks or common fortune-teller. “They,” says the Doctor, “universally acknowledged and worshipped many gods, and therefore highly esteemed and reverenced their priests, powahs, or wizards, who were esteemed as having immediate converse with the gods. To them, therefore, they addressed themselves in all difficult cases: yet could not all that desired that dignity, as they esteemed it, obtain familiarity with the infernal spirits. Nor were all powahs alike successful in their addresses; but they became such, either by immediate revelation, or in the use of certain rites and ceremonies, which tradition had left as conducing to that end. In so much, that parents, out of zeal, often dedicated their children to the gods, and educated them accordingly, observing a certain diet, debarring sleep, &c.: yet of the many designed, but few obtained their desire. Supposing that where the practice of witchcraft has been highly esteemed, there must be given the plainest demonstration of mortals having familiarity with infernal spirits, I am willing to let my reader know, that, not many years since, here died one of the powahs, who never pretended to astrological knowledge, yet could precisely inform such who desired his assistance, from whence goods stolen from them were gone, and whither carried, with many things of the like nature; nor was he ever known to endeavour to conceal his knowledge to be immediately from a god subservient to him that the English worship. This powah, being by an Englishman worthy of credit (who lately informed me of the same), desired to advise him who had taken certain goods which had been stolen, having formerly been an eye-witness of his ability, the powah, after a little pausing, demanded why he requested that from him, since himself served another God? that therefore he could not help him; but added, ‘If you can believe that my god may help you, I will try what I can do; which diverted the man from further enquiry. I must a little digress, and tell my reader, that this powah’s wife was accounted a godly woman, and lived in the practice and profession of the Christian religion, not only by the approbation, but encouragement of her husband. She constantly prayed in the family, and attended the public worship on the Lord’s days. He declared that he could not blame her, for that she served a god that was above his; but that as to himself, his god’s continued kindness obliged him not to forsake his service.” It appears, from the above and similar passages, that Dr. Cotton Mather, an honest and devout, but sufficiently credulous man, had mistaken the purpose of the tolerant powah. The latter only desired to elude the necessity of his practices being brought under the observant eye of an European, while he found an ingenious apology in the admitted superiority which he naturally conceded to the Deity of a people, advanced, as he might well conceive, so far above his own in power and attainments, as might reasonably infer a corresponding superiority in the nature and objects of their worship.
Even in North America, the first settlers in New England and other parts of that vast continent unanimously agreed that they sensed a close connection between the inhabitants and Satan. It’s hardly necessary to point out that this belief was based solely on the tricks performed by the native powahs, or cunning men, to gain influence among the chiefs and earn respect from the people. The colonists, lacking the knowledge to trace these practices to their true origins—sleight of hand and deception—misunderstood them because the powahs had some skills in magic and knowledge of medicinal herbs. However, according to the Reverend Cotton Mather in his Magnalia, book vi.,6, he didn’t attribute any exceptional skill to these Indian conjurers beyond that of a maker of almanacs or a typical fortune-teller. “They,” the Doctor says, “universally acknowledged and worshipped many gods, and therefore highly esteemed and revered their priests, powahs, or wizards, who were regarded as having direct communication with the gods. In all difficult situations, they turned to them; yet not everyone who sought that status—what they considered honorable—could gain access to the infernal spirits. Not all powahs were equally successful in their appeals; they achieved their status either through immediate revelation or by following certain rites and ceremonies passed down through tradition that supposedly led to that outcome. Many parents, out of zeal, often dedicated their children to the gods and raised them accordingly, adhering to a specific diet, depriving them of sleep, etc.; yet among many intended, only a few ever achieved their goal. Assuming that in places where witchcraft is highly regarded, there must be clear evidence of mortals being familiar with infernal spirits, I want to inform my readers that not long ago, one of the powahs passed away, who never claimed to have astrological knowledge, yet could accurately tell those who sought his help where stolen belongings had gone and where they had been taken, among other similar matters. He never tried to hide that his knowledge came directly from a god subordinate to the one the English worship. This powah, previously approached by a credible Englishman (who recently informed me of the same), was asked to help identify who had taken certain stolen goods. Having witnessed his abilities before, the powah paused for a moment and asked why the Englishman sought his help, given that he served a different God; therefore, he couldn’t assist him. He added, ‘If you believe that my god can help you, I will see what I can do,’ which diverted the man from further inquiry. I should slightly digress to mention that this powah’s wife was considered a pious woman and practiced the Christian faith, supported not just by her husband’s approval but encouragement. She regularly prayed in their home and attended public worship on Sundays. He stated that he couldn’t blame her for serving a God who was superior to his; however, he felt that his god’s continued kindness compelled him to stay true to his service.” From the above and similar passages, it seems that Dr. Cotton Mather, an honest and devout yet rather gullible man, misjudged the intentions of the tolerant powah. The powah merely sought to avoid having his practices scrutinized by an European while cleverly providing an excuse in the acknowledged superiority he naturally attributed to the deity of a people perceived, as he might assume, to be significantly more advanced in power and achievements, which could imply a corresponding superiority in the nature and objects of their worship.
6 (return)
[ “On Remarkable Mercies of
Divine Providence.”]
6 (return)
[ “On the Incredible Blessings of Divine Providence.”]
From another narrative we are entitled to infer that the European wizard was held superior to the native sorcerer of North America. Among the numberless extravagances of the Scottish Dissenters of the 17th century, now canonized in a lump by those who view them in the general light of enemies to Prelacy, was a certain ship-master, called, from his size, Meikle John Gibb. This man, a person called Jamie, and one or two other men, besides twenty or thirty females who adhered to them, went the wildest lengths of enthusiasm. Gibb headed a party, who followed him into the moorlands, and at the Ford Moss, between Airth and Stirling, burned their Bibles, as an act of solemn adherence to their new faith. They were apprehended in consequence, and committed to prison; and the rest of the Dissenters, however differently they were affected by the persecution of Government, when it applied to themselves, were nevertheless much offended that these poor mad people were not brought to capital punishment for their blasphemous extravagances; and imputed it as a fresh crime to the Duke of York that, though he could not be often accused of toleration, he considered the discipline of the house of correction as more likely to bring the unfortunate Gibbites to their senses than the more dignified severities of a public trial and the gallows. The Cameronians, however, did their best to correct this scandalous lenity. As Meikle John Gibb, who was their comrade in captivity, used to disturb their worship in jail by his maniac howling, two of them took turn about to hold him down by force, and silence him by a napkin thrust into his mouth. This mode of quieting the unlucky heretic, though sufficiently emphatic, being deemed ineffectual or inconvenient, George Jackson, a Cameronian, who afterwards suffered at the gallows, dashed the maniac with his feet and hands against the wall, and beat him so severely that the rest were afraid that he had killed him outright. After which specimen of fraternal chastisement, the lunatic, to avoid the repetition of the discipline, whenever the prisoners began worship, ran behind the door, and there, with his own napkin crammed into his mouth, sat howling like a chastised cur. But on being finally transported to America, John Gibb, we are assured, was much admired by the heathen for his familiar converse with the devil bodily, and offering sacrifices to him. “He died there,” says Walker, “about the year 1720."7 We must necessarily infer that the pretensions of the natives to supernatural communication could not be of a high class, since we find them honouring this poor madman as their superior; and, in general, that the magic, or powahing, of the North American Indians was not of a nature to be much apprehended by the British colonists, since the natives themselves gave honour and precedence to those Europeans who came among them with the character of possessing intercourse with the spirits whom they themselves professed to worship.
From another story, we can infer that the European wizard was considered superior to the native sorcerer of North America. Among the many quirks of the Scottish Dissenters of the 17th century, now all lumped together by those who view them mostly as enemies of the Church of England, was a certain ship captain, known by his size as Meikle John Gibb. This man, along with someone named Jamie and a couple of other guys, plus around twenty or thirty women who followed them, pushed the boundaries of enthusiasm. Gibb led a group that followed him into the moorlands, and at Ford Moss, between Airth and Stirling, they burned their Bibles as an act of commitment to their new faith. They were arrested as a result and thrown in prison; while the other Dissenters, regardless of how they felt about the government's persecution when it happened to them, were still quite upset that these poor deluded people were not sentenced to death for their blasphemous actions. They blamed the Duke of York for not being more intolerant, even though he was rarely accused of tolerance, arguing that he believed the reform school would be more effective in bringing the unfortunate Gibbites to their senses than a formal trial and execution. However, the Cameronians did their best to address this shocking leniency. Since Meikle John Gibb, their fellow prisoner, would disrupt their worship in jail with his maniacal howling, two of them took turns holding him down by force and silencing him with a napkin stuffed in his mouth. This method, while quite forceful, was considered ineffective or inconvenient, so George Jackson, a Cameronian who was later executed, slammed the maniac against the wall and beat him so badly that the others feared he had killed him. After this demonstration of fraternal discipline, the madman, wanting to avoid another round of punishment, would hide behind the door whenever worship started and, with his own napkin stuffed into his mouth, would howl like a punished dog. However, after he was finally sent to America, John Gibb was reportedly admired by the locals for his close conversations with the devil and for making sacrifices to him. “He died there,” says Walker, “around the year 1720."7 We must conclude that the natives' claims to supernatural communication were not very impressive, since they regarded this poor madman as superior; and generally, the magic, or powahing, of the North American Indians did not seem to worry the British colonists much, as the natives themselves honored and elevated those Europeans who came among them claiming to have contact with the spirits they professed to worship.
7 (return)
[ See Patrick Walker’s
“Biographia Presbyteriana,” vol. ii. p. 23; also “God’s Judgment upon
Persecutors,” and Wodrow’s “History,” upon the article John Gibb.]
7 (return)
[ See Patrick Walker’s “Biographia Presbyteriana,” vol. ii. p. 23; also “God’s Judgment upon Persecutors,” and Wodrow’s “History,” regarding John Gibb.]
Notwithstanding this inferiority on the part of the powahs, it occurred to the settlers that the heathen Indians and Roman Catholic Frenchmen were particularly favoured by the demons, who sometimes adopted their appearance, and showed themselves in their likeness, to the great annoyance of the colonists. Thus, in the year 1692, a party of real or imaginary French and Indians exhibited themselves occasionally to the colonists of the town of Gloucester, in the county of Essex, New England, alarmed the country around very greatly, skirmished repeatedly with the English, and caused the raising of two regiments, and the dispatching a strong reinforcement to the assistance of the settlement. But as these visitants, by whom they were plagued more than a fortnight, though they exchanged fire with the settlers, never killed or scalped any one, the English became convinced that they were not real Indians and Frenchmen, but that the devil and his agents had assumed such an appearance, although seemingly not enabled effectually to support it, for the molestation of the colony.8
Despite their inferiority, the settlers noticed that the heathen Indians and Roman Catholic French seemed particularly favored by demons, who sometimes took on their appearance, much to the colonists' annoyance. In 1692, a group of either real or imagined French and Indians occasionally showed themselves to the colonists in Gloucester, Essex County, New England, causing significant alarm in the surrounding areas. They skirmished repeatedly with the English, leading to the raising of two regiments and sending a strong reinforcement to help the settlement. However, since these visitors plagued them for more than a fortnight without actually killing or scalping anyone, the English became convinced they were not real Indians and Frenchmen, but rather that the devil and his minions had taken on such appearances, though they seemed unable to maintain the guise effectively to truly harass the colony.8
8 (return)
[ “Magnalia,” book vii.
article xviii. The fact is also alleged in the “Life of Sir William
Phipps.”]
8 (return)
[ “Magnalia,” book vii. article xviii. The fact is also mentioned in the “Life of Sir William Phipps.”]
It appears, then, that the ideas of superstition which the more ignorant converts to the Christian faith borrowed from the wreck of the classic mythology, were so rooted in the minds of their successors, that these found corroboration of their faith in demonology in the practice of every pagan nation whose destiny it was to encounter them as enemies, and that as well within the limits of Europe as in every other part of the globe to which their arms were carried. In a word, it may be safely laid down, that the commonly received doctrine of demonology, presenting the same general outlines, though varied according to the fancy of particular nations, existed through all Europe. It seems to have been founded originally on feelings incident to the human heart, or diseases to which the human frame is liable—to have been largely augmented by what classic superstitions survived the ruins of paganism—and to have received new contributions from the opinions collected among the barbarous nations, whether of the east or of the west. It is now necessary to enter more minutely into the question, and endeavour to trace from what especial sources the people of the Middle Ages derived those notions which gradually assumed the shape of a regular system of demonology.
It seems that the superstitions picked up by less informed converts to Christianity, which they took from the remnants of classical mythology, became so ingrained in the minds of their successors that these successors found support for their beliefs in demonology through the practices of every pagan nation they encountered as enemies, both within Europe and in other parts of the world where their armies went. In short, it is safe to say that the widely accepted belief system of demonology, sharing similar general features although differing by the preferences of specific nations, existed throughout Europe. It seems to have originally been based on feelings connected to the human heart, or the ailments that humans can suffer from—it grew significantly from the classic superstitions that survived the fall of paganism and received additional influences from ideas gathered from barbaric nations, whether from the East or the West. It is now important to delve deeper into this issue and try to trace the specific sources from which the people of the Middle Ages developed the ideas that slowly formed a coherent system of demonology.
LETTER III.
Creed of Zoroaster—Received partially into most Heathen Nations—Instances among the Celtic Tribes of Scotland—Beltane Feast—Gudeman’s Croft—Such abuses admitted into Christianity after the earlier Ages of the Church—Law of the Romans against Witchcraft —Roman customs survive the fall of their Religion—Instances—Demonology of the Northern Barbarians—Nicksas—Bhargeist—Correspondence between the Northern and Roman Witches—The power of Fascination ascribed to the Sorceresses—Example from the “Eyrbiggia Saga”—The Prophetesses of the Germans—The Gods of Valhalla not highly regarded by their Worshippers—Often defied by the Champions—Demons of the North—Story of Assueit and Asmund—Action of Ejectment against Spectres—Adventure of a Champion with the Goddess Freya—Conversion of the Pagans of Iceland to Christianity—Northern Superstitions mixed with those of the Celts—Satyrs of the North—Highland Ourisk—Meming the Satyr.
Creed of Zoroaster—Partially accepted by most Pagan nations—Examples among the Celtic tribes of Scotland—Beltane Feast—Gudeman’s Croft—Such practices were incorporated into Christianity after the early ages of the Church—Roman law against witchcraft—Roman customs continued after the fall of their religion—Examples—Demonology of the Northern Barbarians—Nicksas—Bhargeist—Connections between Northern and Roman witches—The power of fascination attributed to sorceresses—Example from the "Eyrbiggia Saga"—The prophetesses of the Germans—The gods of Valhalla were not held in high regard by their worshippers—Often challenged by champions—Demons of the North—Story of Assueit and Asmund—Action to remove spectres—Adventure of a champion with the goddess Freya—Conversion of the Pagans of Iceland to Christianity—Northern superstitions blended with those of the Celts—Satyrs of the North—Highland Ourisk—Meming the Satyr.
The creed of Zoroaster, which naturally occurs to unassisted reason as a mode of accounting for the mingled existence of good and evil in the visible world—that belief which, in one modification or another, supposes the co-existence of a benevolent and malevolent principle, which contend together without either being able decisively to prevail over his antagonist, leads the fear and awe deeply impressed on the human mind to the worship as well of the author of evil, so tremendous in all the effects of which credulity accounts him the primary cause, as to that of his great opponent, who is loved and adored as the father of all that is good and bountiful. Nay, such is the timid servility of human nature that the worshippers will neglect the altars of the Author of good rather than that of Arimanes, trusting with indifference to the well-known mercy of the one, while they shrink from the idea of irritating the vengeful jealousy of the awful father of evil.
The belief system of Zoroaster, which arises naturally from human reasoning as a way to explain the mixed existence of good and evil in the world, is based on the idea that a good and an evil force exist together, struggling against each other without either fully conquering the other. This creates a deep sense of fear and awe in people, leading them to worship both the source of evil, who is seen as the primary cause of many terrible effects, and his great adversary, who is cherished and worshipped as the father of all that is good and generous. In fact, human nature's fearful submissiveness often causes worshippers to ignore the altars of the Author of good while still honoring Arimanes, convinced of the well-known mercy of the good one, but anxious about provoking the wrathful jealousy of the fearsome father of evil.
The Celtic tribes, by whom, under various denominations, Europe seems to have been originally peopled, possessed, in common with other savages, a natural tendency to the worship of the evil principle. They did not, perhaps, adore Arimanes under one sole name, or consider the malignant divinities as sufficiently powerful to undertake a direct struggle with the more benevolent gods; yet they thought it worth while to propitiate them by various expiatory rites and prayers, that they, and the elementary tempests which they conceived to be under their direct command, might be merciful to suppliants who had acknowledged their power, and deprecated their vengeance.
The Celtic tribes, known by various names, seem to have originally populated Europe. Like other early societies, they had a natural inclination to worship the principle of evil. They might not have worshipped Arimanes under one specific name or thought that the malevolent deities were strong enough to fight against the more benevolent gods directly; however, they believed it was important to appease them through different rituals and prayers. They hoped these deities, along with the elemental storms they believed were under their control, would be merciful to those who acknowledged their power and sought to avoid their wrath.
Remains of these superstitions might be traced till past the middle of the last century, though fast becoming obsolete, or passing into mere popular customs of the country, which the peasantry observe without thinking of their origin. About 1769, when Mr. Pennant made his tour, the ceremony of the Baaltein, Beltane, or First of May, though varying in different districts of the Highlands, was yet in strict observance, and the cake, which was then baken with scrupulous attention to certain rites and forms, was divided into fragments, which were formally dedicated to birds or beasts of prey that they, or rather the being whose agents they were, might spare the flocks and herds.9
Traces of these superstitions can still be found even after the middle of the last century, though they are quickly becoming outdated or turning into common customs that locals follow without reflecting on their origins. Around 1769, during Mr. Pennant's tour, the ceremony of Baaltein, Beltane, or May Day, while differing across various Highland regions, was still being strictly followed. The cake, which was baked with careful attention to specific rituals and customs, was broken into pieces, which were formally offered to birds or predatory animals so that they, or more accurately, the beings they represented, would protect the flocks and herds.9
9 (return)
[ See Tennant’s “Scottish
Tour,” vol. i. p. III. The traveller mentions that some festival of the
same kind was in his time observed in Gloucestershire.]
9 (return)
[ See Tennant’s “Scottish Tour,” vol. i. p. III. The traveler notes that a similar festival was celebrated in Gloucestershire during his time.]
Another custom of similar origin lingered late among us. In many parishes of Scotland there was suffered to exist a certain portion of land, called the gudeman’s croft, which was never ploughed or cultivated, but suffered to remain waste, like the TEMENOS of a pagan temple, Though it was not expressly avowed, no one doubted that “the goodman’s croft” was set apart for some evil being; in fact, that it was the portion of the arch-fiend himself, whom our ancestors distinguished by a name which, while it was generally understood, could not, it was supposed, be offensive to the stern inhabitant of the regions of despair. This was so general a custom that the Church published an ordinance against it as an impious and blasphemous usage.
Another tradition of similar origin lingered late among us. In many parishes of Scotland, there was a piece of land known as the gudeman’s croft that was never plowed or cultivated, but was left untouched, like the TEMENOS of a pagan temple. Although it wasn't openly stated, no one doubted that “the goodman’s croft” was reserved for some malevolent being; in fact, it was believed to be the territory of the arch-fiend himself, whom our ancestors referred to with a name that, while widely understood, was thought to be inoffensive to the grim resident of the realms of despair. This was such a widespread custom that the Church issued a decree against it as an impious and blasphemous practice.
This singular custom sunk before the efforts of the clergy in the seventeenth century; but there must still be many alive who, in childhood, have been taught to look with wonder on knolls and patches of ground left uncultivated, because, whenever a ploughshare entered the soil, the elementary spirits were supposed to testify their displeasure by storm and thunder. Within our own memory, many such places, sanctified to barrenness by some favourite popular superstition, existed, both in Wales and Ireland, as well as in Scotland; but the high price of agricultural produce during the late war renders it doubtful if a veneration for greybearded superstition has suffered any one of them to remain undesecrated. For the same reason the mounts called Sith Bhruaith were respected, and it was deemed unlawful and dangerous to cut wood, dig earth and stones, or otherwise disturb them.10
This unique tradition faded away with the clergy's efforts in the seventeenth century; however, many people today may still remember being taught as children to marvel at mounds and patches of land left uncultivated, because whenever a ploughshare broke the soil, the elemental spirits were believed to show their anger through storms and thunder. In our own lifetime, numerous such spots, consecrated to barrenness by some beloved local superstition, could be found in Wales, Ireland, and Scotland; but the high prices for agricultural products during the recent war make it uncertain whether respect for these age-old superstitions has allowed any of them to remain untouched. For the same reason, the mounds known as Sith Bhruaith were held in reverence, and it was considered illegal and dangerous to cut wood, dig earth and stones, or disturb them in any way.10
10 (return)
[ See “Essay on the
Subterranean Commonwealth,” by Mr. Robert Kirke, minister of Aberfoyle.]
10 (return)
[ See “Essay on the Subterranean Commonwealth,” by Mr. Robert Kirke, minister of Aberfoyle.]
Now, it may at first sight seem strange that the Christian religion should have permitted the existence of such gross and impious relics of heathenism, in a land where its doctrines had obtained universal credence. But this will not appear so wonderful when it is recollected that the original Christians under the heathen emperors were called to conversion by the voice of apostles and saints, invested for the purpose with miraculous powers, as well of language, for communicating their doctrine to the Gentiles, as of cures, for the purpose of authenticating their mission. These converts must have been in general such elect persons as were effectually called to make part of the infant church; and when hypocrites ventured, like Ananias and Sapphira, to intrude themselves into so select an association, they were liable, at the Divine pleasure, to be detected and punished. On the contrary, the nations who were converted after Christianity had become the religion of the empire were not brought within the pale upon such a principle of selection, as when the church consisted of a few individuals, who had, upon conviction, exchanged the errors of the pagan religion for the dangers and duties incurred by those who embraced a faith inferring the self-denial of its votaries, and at the same time exposing them to persecution. When the cross became triumphant, and its cause no longer required the direction of inspired men, or the evidence of miracles, to compel reluctant belief, it is evident that the converts who thronged into the fold must have, many of them, entered because Christianity was the prevailing faith—many because it was the church, the members of which rose most readily to promotion—many, finally, who, though content to resign the worship of pagan divinities, could not at once clear their minds of heathen ritual and heathen observances, which they inconsistently laboured to unite with the more simple and majestic faith that disdained such impure union. If this was the case, even in the Roman empire, where the converts to the Christian faith must have found, among the earlier members of the church, the readiest and the soundest instruction, how much more imperfectly could those foreign and barbarous tribes receive the necessary religious information from some zealous and enthusiastic preacher, who christened them by hundreds in one day? Still less could we imagine them to have acquired a knowledge of Christianity, in the genuine and perfect sense of the word, when, as was frequently the case, they only assumed the profession of the religion that had become the choice of some favoured chief, whose example they followed in mere love and loyalty, without, perhaps, attaching more consequence to a change of religion than to a change of garments. Such hasty converts, professing themselves Christians, but neither weaned from their old belief, nor instructed in their new one, entered the sanctuary without laying aside the superstitions with which their young minds had been imbued; and accustomed to a plurality of deities, some of them, who bestowed unusual thought on the matter, might be of opinion that, in adopting the God of the Christians, they had not renounced the service of every inferior power.
At first glance, it might seem odd that Christianity allowed such blatant and disrespectful remnants of paganism to exist in a place where its teachings were widely accepted. However, this becomes less surprising when we remember that the early Christians, under pagan emperors, were called to convert by apostles and saints, who were endowed with miraculous abilities—both to communicate their message to non-believers and to perform healings that validated their mission. These converts were generally special individuals chosen to be part of the early church; when hypocrites like Ananias and Sapphira tried to join this exclusive group, they risked being exposed and punished by divine will. In contrast, nations that converted after Christianity had become the state religion weren't admitted on the same selective basis. Back then, the church consisted of a few people who, after coming to realize the truth, swapped the errors of paganism for the challenges and responsibilities that came with embracing a faith demanding self-denial and openness to persecution. When the cross became victorious, and the need for guidance from inspired leaders or miraculous proof faded, it was clear that many who flocked into the church did so simply because Christianity was the dominant faith—some for the prospects of advancement within the church—while others, despite being ready to abandon the worship of pagan gods, struggled to shake off pagan rituals and customs that they tried to mix with the simpler and more noble faith that rejected such impure combinations. If this was true even in the Roman Empire, where new converts could have found clear and sound teachings among the earlier church members, how much less effectively could foreign and barbaric tribes grasp the necessary religious understanding from an eager, enthusiastic preacher who baptized them by the hundreds in a single day? We can hardly imagine they truly understood Christianity in its genuine and complete sense, especially since they often only embraced the faith because it was the choice of a favored leader whom they followed out of loyalty, perhaps seeing a shift in religion as no more significant than changing clothes. Quick converts, who claimed to be Christians but were neither fully detached from their old beliefs nor educated in their new ones, entered the church without discarding the superstitions ingrained in them; those who pondered the matter might even have thought that by adopting the God of Christians, they hadn't completely forsaken the worship of other lesser deities.
If, indeed, the laws of the empire could have been supposed to have had any influence over those fierce barbarians, who conceived that the empire itself lay before them as a spoil, they might have been told that Constantine, taking the offence of alleged magicians and sorcerers in the same light in which it was viewed in the law of Moses, had denounced death against any who used these unlawful enquiries into futurity. “Let the unlawful curiosity of prying into futurity,” says the law, “be silent in every one henceforth and for ever.11 For, subjected to the avenging sword of the law, he shall be punished capitally who disobeys our commands in this matter.”
If the laws of the empire were thought to have any effect on those fierce barbarians, who believed the empire itself was theirs for the taking, they might have been informed that Constantine viewed the crimes of supposed magicians and sorcerers similarly to how they were regarded in the law of Moses. He declared death for anyone who engaged in these forbidden inquiries about the future. "Let the illegal curiosity of seeking knowledge about the future," states the law, "be silent in everyone from now on and forever. For, subjected to the vengeful sword of the law, anyone who disobeys our commands in this matter will be punished with death."
11 (return)
[ “Codex,” lib. ix. tit.
18, cap. 1, 2, 3, 5, 6, 7, 8.]
11 (return)
[ “Codex,” book ix, title 18, chapters 1, 2, 3, 5, 6, 7, 8.]
If, however, we look more closely into this enactment, we shall be led to conclude that the civil law does not found upon the prohibitions and penalties in Scripture; although it condemns the ars mathematica (for the most mystic and uncertain of all sciences, real or pretended, at that time held the title which now distinguishes the most exact) as a damnable art, and utterly interdicted, and declares that the practitioners therein should die by fire, as enemies of the human race—yet the reason of this severe treatment seems to be different from that acted upon in the Mosaical institutions. The weight of the crime among the Jews was placed on the blasphemy of the diviners, and their treason against the theocracy instituted by Jehovah. The Roman legislators were, on the other hand, moved chiefly by the danger arising to the person of the prince and the quiet of the state, so apt to be unsettled by every pretence or encouragement to innovation. The reigning emperors, therefore, were desirous to place a check upon the mathematics (as they termed the art of divination), much more for a political than a religious cause, since we observe, in the history of the empire, how often the dethronement or death of the sovereign was produced by conspiracies or mutinies which took their rise from pretended prophecies. In this mode of viewing the crime, the lawyers of the lower empire acted upon the example of those who had compiled the laws of the twelve tables.12 The mistaken and misplaced devotion which Horace recommends to the rural nymph, Phidyle, would have been a crime of a deep dye in a Christian convert, and must have subjected him to excommunication, as one relapsed to the rites of paganism; but he might indulge his superstition by supposing that though he must not worship Pan or Ceres as gods, he was at liberty to fear them in their new capacity of fiends. Some compromise between the fear and the conscience of the new converts, at a time when the church no longer consisted exclusively of saints, martyrs, and confessors, the disciples of inspired Apostles, led them, and even their priestly guides, subject like themselves to human passions and errors, to resort as a charm, if not as an act of worship, to those sacrifices, words, and ritual, by which the heathen, whom they had succeeded, pretended to arrest evil or procure benefits.
If we take a closer look at this law, we might conclude that civil law isn't based on the prohibitions and penalties found in the Bible. Although it condemns the ars mathematica (which, at that time, was considered the most mysterious and uncertain of all sciences, while now it's recognized as the most precise) as a wicked art and completely banned it, declaring that those who practiced it should be executed by fire as enemies of humanity, the reasoning behind this harsh treatment seems different from that of the Mosaic laws. The Jews placed the significance of the crime on the blasphemy of diviners and their betrayal against the theocracy established by Jehovah. On the other hand, Roman lawmakers were mainly concerned about the dangers posed to the emperor’s safety and the stability of the state, which were easily threatened by any suggestion or encouragement of change. Therefore, the reigning emperors wanted to suppress mathematics (as they called the art of divination) more for political reasons than religious ones, as we can see in the history of the empire, where the overthrow or death of the emperor was often the result of conspiracies or uprisings that stemmed from false prophecies. In this way of viewing the crime, the lawyers of the late empire were influenced by the examples set by those who created the laws of the twelve tables.12 The misguided devotion that Horace recommends to the rural nymph, Phidyle, would have been seen as a grave sin for a Christian convert and could have led to excommunication, as it would be a relapse into pagan rituals. However, he might have satisfied his superstitions by thinking that, although he shouldn't worship Pan or Ceres as gods, he was free to fear them in their transformed role as demons. A compromise between the fear and the conscience of these new converts, at a time when the church was no longer made up only of saints, martyrs, and confessors—the disciples of inspired Apostles—led them, along with their priestly leaders, who were subject to the same human flaws, to resort to charms, if not acts of worship, involving the sacrifices, words, and rituals that the pagans, whom they had replaced, used to try to ward off evil or gain benefits.
12 (return)
[ By this more ancient
code, the punishment of death was indeed denounced against those who
destroyed crops, awakened storms, or brought over to their barns and
garners the fruits of the earth; but, by good fortune, it left the
agriculturists of the period at liberty to use the means they thought most
proper to render their fields fertile and plentiful. Pliny informs us that
one Caius Furius Cresinus, a Roman of mean estate, raised larger crops
from a small field than his neighbours could obtain from more ample
possessions. He was brought before the judge upon a charge averring that
he conjured the fruits of the earth, produced by his neighbours’ farms,
into his own possession. Cresinus appeared, and, having proved the return
of his farm to be the produce of his own hard and unremitting labour, as
well as superior skill, was dismissed with the highest honours.]
12 (return)
[ According to this older code, the death penalty was indeed imposed on anyone who destroyed crops, stirred up storms, or took fruit from the earth into their own storage. However, luckily, it allowed farmers at the time the freedom to use whatever methods they deemed appropriate to make their fields fertile and abundant. Pliny tells us about a man named Caius Furius Cresinus, a Roman of modest means, who managed to grow larger crops from a small plot of land than his neighbors could from their larger estates. He was brought before a judge on a charge claiming he had magically taken the fruits of his neighbors' farms for himself. Cresinus appeared in court and, after demonstrating that the produce from his farm was the result of his own hard work and exceptional skill, he was dismissed with great accolades.]
When such belief in a hostile principle and its imaginations was become general in the Roman empire, the ignorance of its conquerors, those wild nations, Franks, Goths, Vandals, Huns, and similar classes of unrefined humanity, made them prone to an error which there were few judicious preachers to warn them against; and we ought rather to wonder and admire the Divine clemency, which imparted to so rude nations the light of the Gospel, and disposed them to receive a religion so repugnant to their warlike habits, than that they should, at the same time, have adopted many gross superstitions, borrowed from the pagans, or retained numbers of those which had made part of their own national forms of heathenism.
When the belief in a hostile force and its ideas became widespread in the Roman Empire, the ignorance of its conquerors—those wild nations like the Franks, Goths, Vandals, Huns, and similar groups of uncivilized people—led them to make mistakes that few wise preachers warned them against. We should wonder at and appreciate the Divine kindness that allowed such rough nations to embrace the light of the Gospel and made them open to accepting a faith so contrary to their warrior ways, rather than being shocked that they also picked up various crude superstitions from the pagans or kept many of the elements from their own forms of paganism.
Thus, though the thrones of Jupiter and the superior deities of the heathen Pantheon were totally overthrown and broken to pieces, fragments of their worship and many of their rites survived the conversion to Christianity—nay, are in existence even at this late and enlightened period, although those by whom they are practised have not preserved the least memory of their original purpose. We may hastily mention one or two customs of classical origin, in addition to the Beltane and those already noticed, which remain as examples that the manners of the Romans once gave the tone to the greater part of the island of Britain, and at least to the whole which was to the south of the wall of Severus.
So, even though the thrones of Jupiter and the higher gods of the pagan Pantheon were completely destroyed, remnants of their worship and many of their rituals continued to exist after the conversion to Christianity—indeed, they still exist today, even in this modern and enlightened age, although those who practice them have no memory of their original purpose. We can quickly mention a couple of customs from classical origins, besides the Beltane and those already mentioned, which serve as examples that the customs of the Romans once influenced much of Britain, especially the area south of the wall of Severus.
The following customs still linger in the south of Scotland, and belong to this class: The bride, when she enters the house of her husband, is lifted over the threshold, and to step on it or over it voluntarily is reckoned a bad omen. This custom was universal in Rome, where it was observed as keeping in memory the rape of the Sabines, and that it was by a show of violence towards the females that the object of peopling the city was attained. On the same occasion a sweet cake, baked for the purpose, is broken above the head of the bride; which is also a rite of classic antiquity.
The following traditions are still found in the south of Scotland: When the bride enters her husband's house, she is carried over the threshold, as stepping on or over it by choice is considered bad luck. This custom was widespread in Rome, where it was a reminder of the abduction of the Sabines, and it symbolized the way the city was populated through acts of force towards women. During the same ceremony, a sweet cake made for the occasion is broken over the bride's head, which is also an ancient ritual.
In like manner, the Scottish, even of the better rank, avoid contracting marriage in the month of May, which genial season of flowers and breezes might, in other respects, appear so peculiarly favourable for that purpose. It was specially objected to the marriage of Mary with the profligate Earl of Bothwell, that the union was formed within this interdicted month. This prejudice was so rooted among the Scots that, in 1684, a set of enthusiasts, called Gibbites, proposed to renounce it, among a long list of stated festivals, fast-days, popish relics, not forgetting the profane names of the days of the week, names of the months, and all sorts of idle and silly practices which their tender consciences took an exception to. This objection to solemnize marriage in the merry month of May, however fit a season for courtship, is also borrowed from the Roman pagans, which, had these fanatics been aware of it, would have been an additional reason for their anathema against the practice. The ancients have given us as a maxim, that it is only bad women who marry in that month.13
Similarly, the Scots, even those of higher status, tend to avoid getting married in May, a time of flowers and pleasant breezes that might otherwise seem perfect for such a celebration. It was particularly criticized when Mary married the dissolute Earl of Bothwell because the marriage took place during this forbidden month. This belief was so deeply ingrained among the Scots that in 1684, a group of enthusiasts known as Gibbites proposed to reject it, along with a long list of certain holidays, fast days, Catholic relics, forgetting not the profane names of the days of the week, names of the months, and all sorts of trivial and foolish customs that they felt conflicted with their delicate consciences. However, the reluctance to hold weddings in merry May, despite being a suitable time for courtship, is also derived from Roman pagan traditions; had these fanatics realized this, it would have given them even more reason to condemn the practice. The ancients have taught us the saying that only immoral women marry in that month.13
13 (return)
[ “Malæ nubent Maia.”]
13 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[ "The bad marry Maia." ]
The custom of saying God bless you, when a person in company sneezes, is, in like manner, derived from sternutation being considered as a crisis of the plague at Athens, and the hope that, when it was attained the patient had a chance of recovery.
The tradition of saying "God bless you" when someone sneezes comes from the belief that sneezing was a sign of crisis during the plague in Athens, reflecting the hope that if someone sneezed, they had a better chance of recovery.
But besides these, and many other customs which the various nations of Europe received from the classical times, and which it is not our object to investigate, they derived from thence a shoal of superstitious beliefs, which, blended and mingled with those which they brought with them out of their own country, fostered and formed the materials of a demonological creed which has descended down almost to our own times. Nixas, or Nicksa, a river or ocean god, worshipped on the shores of the Baltic, seems to have taken uncontested possession of the attributes of Neptune. Amid the twilight winters and overpowering tempests of these gloomy regions, he had been not unnaturally chosen as the power most adverse to man, and the supernatural character with which he was invested has descended to our time under two different aspects. The Nixa of the Germans is one of those fascinating and lovely fays whom the ancients termed Naiads; and unless her pride is insulted or her jealousy awakened by an inconstant lover, her temper is generally mild and her actions beneficent. The Old Nick known in England is an equally genuine descendant of the northern sea-god, and possesses a larger portion of his powers and terrors The British sailor, who fears nothing else, confesses his terror for this terrible being, and believes him the author of almost all the various calamities to which the precarious life of a seaman is so continually exposed.
But aside from these and many other customs that different nations in Europe inherited from classical times, which we won't delve into, they also adopted a ton of superstitious beliefs. These beliefs mixed and mingled with those they brought from their own countries, creating a collection of demonological beliefs that have persisted nearly to the present day. Nixas, or Nicksa, a river or ocean god worshipped on the shores of the Baltic, seems to have taken on the traits of Neptune without dispute. In the dark winters and fierce storms of these somber regions, it’s no surprise he was chosen as the power most opposed to humans. The supernatural qualities attributed to him have carried on to our time in two different forms. The Nixa of the Germans is one of those enchanting and beautiful fairies the ancients called Naiads; unless her pride is hurt or her jealousy ignited by an unfaithful lover, she generally has a gentle demeanor and acts kindly. Old Nick, known in England, is also a true descendant of the northern sea god and has inherited more of his powers and fears. The British sailor, who fears nothing else, readily admits his dread of this fearsome figure and believes he is the cause of almost all the various disasters that the risky life of a sailor is routinely exposed to.
The Bhar-guest, or Bhar-geist, by which name it is generally acknowledged through various country parts of England, and particularly in Yorkshire, also called a Dobie—a local spectre which haunts a particular spot under various forms—is a deity, as his name implies, of Teutonic descent; and if it be true, as the author has been informed, that some families bearing the name of Dobie carry a phantom or spectre, passant, in their armorial bearings,14 it plainly implies that, however the word may have been selected for a proper name, its original derivation had not then been forgotten.
The Bhar-guest, or Bhar-geist, which is commonly known in various parts of England, especially in Yorkshire, is also referred to as a Dobie—a local spirit that haunts specific locations in different forms. It is a deity, as the name suggests, of Teutonic origin; and if it’s true, as I’ve been told, that some families named Dobie have a phantom or spirit in their coat of arms, it clearly indicates that, although the word may have been chosen as a name, its original meaning hasn’t been forgotten.
14 (return)
[ A similar bearing has
been ascribed, for the same reason, to those of the name of Fantome, who
carried of old a goblin, or phantom, in a shroud sable passant, on a field
azure. Both bearings are founded on what is called canting heraldry, a
species of art disowned by the writers on the science, yet universally
made use of by those who practice the art of blazonry.]
14 (return)
[ A similar emblem has been attributed, for the same reason, to those with the name Fantome, who used to carry a goblin, or phantom, wrapped in a black shroud, on a blue field. Both emblems are based on what is known as canting heraldry, a type of art that is dismissed by scholars of the field, yet is universally employed by those who practice the art of heraldry.]
The classic mythology presented numerous points in which it readily coalesced with that of the Germans, Danes, and Northmen of a later period. They recognized the power of Erictho, Canidia, and other sorceresses, whose spell could perplex the course of the elements, intercept the influence of the sun, and prevent his beneficial operation upon the fruits of the earth, call down the moon from her appointed sphere, and disturb the original and destined course of Nature by their words and charms and the power of the evil spirits whom they invoked. They were also professionally implicated in all such mystic and secret rites and ceremonies as were used to conciliate the favour of the infernal powers, whose dispositions were supposed as dark and wayward as their realms were gloomy and dismal. Such hags were frequent agents in the violation of unburied bodies, and it was believed, by the vulgar at least, that it was dangerous to leave corpses unguarded lest they should be mangled by the witches, who took from them the most choice ingredients composing their charms. Above all, it must not be forgotten that these frightful sorceresses possessed the power of transforming themselves and others into animals, which are used in their degree of quadrupeds, or in whatever other laborious occupation belongs to the transformed state. The poets of the heathens, with authors of fiction, such as Lucian and Apuleius, ascribe all these powers to the witches of the pagan world, combining them with the art of poisoning, and of making magical philtres to seduce the affections of the young and beautiful; and such were the characteristics which, in greater or less extent, the people of the Middle Ages ascribed to the witches of their day.
Classic mythology often blended with that of the Germans, Danes, and Northmen from later periods. They acknowledged the powers of Erictho, Canidia, and other sorceresses, who could manipulate the elements, block the sun's influence, and disrupt its positive effects on the crops, bring the moon down from its designated place, and alter the natural order with their words, charms, and summoned evil spirits. These women were also involved in mystic and secret rituals meant to win the favor of dark powers, believed to be as unpredictable as their shadowy realms. Such witches frequently violated unburied bodies, with common belief holding that it was risky to leave corpses without protection, or they might be desecrated by witches who stole valuable ingredients for their spells. Above all, it’s important to remember that these terrifying sorceresses could transform themselves and others into animals, typically in forms of quadrupeds or for any labor related to their new state. Poets from pagan times and fiction writers like Lucian and Apuleius attributed these powers to witches, linking them to poison and magical potions designed to captivate the hearts of the young and beautiful; these were traits the people of the Middle Ages also associated with their witches.
But in thus adopting the superstitions of the ancients, the conquerors of the Roman Empire combined them with similar articles of belief which they had brought with them from their original settlements in the North, where the existence of hags of the same character formed a great feature in their Sagas and their Chronicles. It requires but a slight acquaintance with these compositions to enable the reader to recognize in the Galdrakinna of the Scalds the Stryga or witch-woman of more classical climates. In the northern ideas of witches there was no irreligion concerned with their lore. On the contrary, the possession of magical knowledge was an especial attribute of Odin himself; and to intrude themselves upon a deity, and compel him to instruct them in what they desired to know, was accounted not an act of impiety, but of gallantry and high courage, among those sons of the sword and the spear. Their matrons possessed a high reputation for magic, for prophetic powers, for creating illusions; and, if not capable of transformations of the human body, they were at least able to impose such fascination on the sight of their enemies as to conceal for a period the objects of which they were in search.
But by adopting the superstitions of the ancients, the conquerors of the Roman Empire combined them with similar beliefs they had brought from their settlements in the North, where the existence of hags with similar characteristics was a major theme in their Sagas and Chronicles. It only takes a little familiarity with these works for the reader to recognize in the Galdrakinna of the Scalds the Stryga or witch-woman from more classical cultures. In northern ideas about witches, there was no irreligion linked to their lore. Instead, having magical knowledge was seen as a special quality of Odin himself; to approach a deity and force him to teach them what they wanted to know was viewed not as an act of disrespect but as bravery and boldness among those warriors. Their women had a strong reputation for magic, prophetic abilities, and creating illusions; even if they couldn't transform human bodies, they could at least cast a spell on their enemies' vision to temporarily hide the things they were searching for.
There is a remarkable story in the Eyrbiggia Saga (“Historia Eyranorum”), giving the result of such a controversy between two of these gifted women, one of whom was determined on discovering and putting to death the son of the other, named Katla, who in a brawl had cut off the hand of the daughter-in-law of Geirada. A party detached to avenge this wrong, by putting Oddo to death, returned deceived by the skill of his mother. They had found only Katla, they said, spinning flax from a large distaff. “Fools,” said Geirada, “that distaff was the man you sought.” They returned, seized the distaff, and burnt it. But this second time, the witch disguised her son under the appearance of a tame kid. A third time he was a hog, which grovelled among the ashes. The party returned yet again; augmented as one of Katla’s maidens, who kept watch, informed her mistress, by one in a blue mantle. “Alas!” said Katla, “it is the sorceress Geirada, against whom spells avail not.” Accordingly, the hostile party, entering for the fourth time, seized on the object of their animosity, and put him to death.15 This species of witchcraft is well known in Scotland as the glamour, or deceptio visus, and was supposed to be a special attribute of the race of Gipsies.
There’s an incredible story in the Eyrbiggia Saga (“Historia Eyranorum”) that illustrates a conflict between two talented women. One of them was determined to find and kill the other’s son, named Katla, who had cut off the hand of Geirada's daughter-in-law during a fight. A group was sent to take revenge by killing Oddo, but they came back shocked by his mother’s cleverness. They said they only found Katla, who was spinning flax from a large distaff. “Fools,” Geirada exclaimed, “that distaff was the man you were looking for.” They went back, grabbed the distaff, and burned it. But this time, the witch hid her son by disguising him as a tame kid. The third time, he looked like a hog, which was rooting around in the ashes. The group returned yet again, increased in number, as one of Katla’s maidens, who was watching, informed her mistress about a man in a blue cloak. “Alas!” said Katla, “it’s the sorceress Geirada, against whom spells won’t work.” So, the hostile group, entering for the fourth time, captured the object of their hatred and killed him.15 This type of witchcraft is well known in Scotland as the glamour, or deceptio visus, and was thought to be a special trait of the Gypsy race.
15 (return)
[ Eyrbiggia Saga, in
“Northern Antiquities.”]
15 (return)
[ Eyrbiggia Saga, in “Northern Antiquities.”]
Neither are those prophetesses to be forgotten, so much honoured among the German tribes, that, as we are assured by Tacitus, they rose to the highest rank in their councils, by their supposed supernatural knowledge, and even obtained a share in the direction of their armies. This peculiarity in the habits of the North was so general, that it was no unusual thing to see females, from respect to their supposed views into futurity, and the degree of divine inspiration which was vouchsafed to them, arise to the degree of HAXA, or chief priestess, from which comes the word Hexe, now universally used for a witch; a circumstance which plainly shows that the mythological system of the ancient natives of the North had given to the modern language an appropriate word for distinguishing those females who had intercourse with the spiritual world.16
We shouldn't forget the prophetesses who were highly respected among the German tribes. As noted by Tacitus, they held top positions in their councils due to their supposed supernatural insight and even shared in leading their armies. This unique aspect of Northern culture was so widespread that it wasn't uncommon to see women rise to the rank of HAXA, or chief priestess, out of respect for their perceived ability to foresee the future and the divine inspiration they received. This has led to the term Hexe, now commonly used to mean witch, indicating that the mythological beliefs of the ancient Northern peoples provided a specific term in modern language to identify those women who interacted with the spiritual realm.16
16 (return)
[ It may be worth while to
notice that the word Haxa is still used in Scotland in its sense of a
druidess, or chief priestess, to distinguish the places where such females
exercised their ritual. There is a species of small intrenchment on the
western descent of the Eildon hills, which Mr. Milne, in his account of
the parish of Melrose, drawn up about eighty years ago, says, was
denominated Bourjo, a word of unknown derivation, by which the
place is still known. Here an universal and subsisting tradition bore that
human sacrifices were of yore offered, while the people assisting could
behold the ceremony from the elevation of the glacis which slopes inward.
With this place of sacrifice communicated a path, still discernible,
called the Haxell-gate, leading to a small glen or narrow valley
called the Haxellcleuch—both which words are probably derived
from the Haxa or chief priestess of the pagans.]
16 (return)
[ It's worth mentioning that the word Haxa is still used in Scotland to mean a druidess or chief priestess, used to identify the places where these women performed their rituals. There's a small fortification on the western slope of the Eildon hills, which Mr. Milne described in his account of the parish of Melrose about eighty years ago; he referred to it as Bourjo, a term of unknown origin, by which it is still known today. According to a longstanding tradition, human sacrifices were once made here, while attendees could watch the ceremony from the raised area behind the fortification that slopes inward. A path still visible, known as the Haxell-gate, leads from this sacrificial site to a small glen or narrow valley called the Haxellcleuch—both names are likely derived from the Haxa or chief priestess of the pagans.]
It is undeniable that these Pythonesses were held in high respect while the pagan religion lasted; but for that very reason they became odious so soon as the tribe was converted to Christianity. They were, of course, if they pretended to retain their influence, either despised as impostors or feared as sorceresses; and the more that, in particular instances, they became dreaded for their power, the more they were detested, under the conviction that they derived it from the enemy of man. The deities of the northern heathens underwent a similar metamorphosis, resembling that proposed by Drawcansir in the “Rehearsal,” who threatens “to make a god subscribe himself a devil.”
It's clear that these oracles were highly respected while the pagan religion was still around; however, as soon as the tribe converted to Christianity, they quickly became hated. If they tried to maintain their influence, they were either seen as frauds or feared as witches. The more they were feared for their abilities in certain situations, the more they were loathed, as people believed their power came from the enemy of humanity. The gods of the northern pagans underwent a similar transformation, much like the one suggested by Drawcansir in the “Rehearsal,” who threatens “to make a god sign himself as a devil.”
The warriors of the North received this new impression concerning the influence of their deities, and the source from which it was derived, with the more indifference, as their worship, when their mythology was most generally established, was never of a very reverential or devotional character. Their idea of their own merely human prowess was so high, that the champions made it their boast, as we have already hinted, they would not give way in fight even to the immortal gods themselves. Such, we learn from Cæsar, was the idea of the Germans concerning the Suevi, or Swabians, a tribe to whom the others yielded the palm of valour; and many individual stories are told in the Sagas concerning bold champions, who had fought, not only with the sorcerers, but with the demigods of the system, and come off unharmed, if not victorious, in the contest. Hother, for example, encountered the god Thor in battle, as Diomede, in the Iliad, engages with Mars, and with like success. Bartholsine17 gives us repeated examples of the same kind. “Know this,” said Kiartan to Olaus Trigguasen, “that I believe neither in idols nor demons. I have travelled through various strange countries, and have encountered many giants and monsters, and have never been conquered by them; I therefore put my sole trust in my own strength of body and courage of soul.” Another yet more broad answer was made to St. Olaus, King of Norway, by Gaukater. “I am neither Pagan nor Christian. My comrades and I profess no other religion than a perfect confidence in our own strength and invincibility in battle.” Such chieftains were of the sect of Mezentius—
The warriors of the North received this new perspective on the influence of their gods and its origin with even more indifference since their worship, when their mythology was most widely accepted, was never very reverent or devoted. Their belief in their own human strength was so high that, as we've mentioned, the champions boasted they wouldn’t yield in battle even to the immortal gods. This was the perception of the Germans regarding the Suevi, or Swabians, a tribe that others acknowledged as the most valorous; many individual stories in the Sagas tell of brave warriors who fought not only against sorcerers but also the demigods of their lore, often emerging unscathed, if not victorious. For instance, Hother faced the god Thor in combat, just as Diomede does with Mars in the Iliad, with similar outcomes. Bartholsine17 provides us with several examples of this kind. “Know this,” Kiartan said to Olaus Trigguasen, “I believe in neither idols nor demons. I have traveled through various strange lands, faced many giants and monsters, and have never been defeated by them; therefore, I place my complete trust in my own physical strength and courage.” An even broader response was given to St. Olaus, King of Norway, by Gaukater: “I am neither Pagan nor Christian. My comrades and I hold no other faith than absolute confidence in our own power and invincibility in battle.” Such leaders belonged to the sect of Mezentius—
“Dextra mihi Deus, et telum, quod missile libro, Nunc adsint!”18
“God is my right hand, and the weapon, which is a guided missile, may it be present now!”18
And we cannot wonder that champions of such a character, careless of their gods while yet acknowledged as such, readily regarded them as demons after their conversion to Christianity.
And it's not surprising that champions like this, who ignored their gods while still being recognized as such, easily saw them as demons after they converted to Christianity.
17 (return)
[ “De causis contemptæ
necis,” lib. i. cap 6.]
17 (return)
[ “On the Causes of Underestimated Death,” book 1, chapter 6.]
To incur the highest extremity of danger became accounted a proof of that insuperable valour for which every Northman desired to be famed, and their annals afford numerous instances of encounters with ghosts, witches, furies, and fiends, whom the Kiempé, or champions, compelled to submit to their mere mortal strength, and yield to their service the weapons or other treasures which they guarded in their tombs.
To face the greatest danger became a testament to the unbeatable bravery that every Northman wanted to be known for, and their history offers many examples of battles with ghosts, witches, furies, and fiends, whom the Kiempé, or champions, forced to submit to their human strength and surrender the weapons or other treasures they protected in their tombs.
The Norsemen were the more prone to these superstitions, because it was a favourite fancy of theirs that, in many instances, the change from life to death altered the temper of the human spirit from benignant to malevolent; or perhaps, that when the soul left the body, its departure was occasionally supplied by a wicked demon, who took the opportunity to enter and occupy its late habitation.
The Norsemen were more likely to believe in these superstitions because they often thought that the transition from life to death changed a person's spirit from kind to evil. They also believed that when the soul exited the body, a wicked demon might take advantage of the moment to enter and claim its former home.
Upon such a supposition the wild fiction that follows is probably grounded; which, extravagant as it is, possesses something striking to the imagination. Saxo Grammaticus tells us of the fame of two Norse princes or chiefs, who had formed what was called a brotherhood in arms, implying not only the firmest friendship and constant support during all the adventures which they should undertake in life, but binding them by a solemn compact, that after the death of either, the survivor should descend alive into the sepulchre of his brother-in-arms, and consent to be buried alongst with him. The task of fulfilling this dreadful compact fell upon Asmund, his companion, Assueit, having been slain in battle. The tomb was formed after the ancient northern custom in what was called the age of hills, that is, when it was usual to bury persons of distinguished merit or rank on some conspicuous spot, which was crowned with a mound. With this purpose a deep narrow vault was constructed, to be the apartment of the future tomb over which the sepulchral heap was to be piled. Here they deposited arms, trophies, poured forth, perhaps, the blood of victims, introduced into the tomb the war-horses of the champions, and when these rites had been duly paid, the body of Assueit was placed in the dark and narrow house, while his faithful brother-in-arms entered and sat down by the corpse, without a word or look which testified regret or unwillingness to fulfil his fearful engagement. The soldiers who had witnessed this singular interment of the dead and living, rolled a huge stone to the mouth of the tomb, and piled so much earth and stones above the spot as made a mound visible from a great distance, and then, with loud lamentation for the loss of such undaunted leaders, they dispersed themselves like a flock which has lost its shepherd.
Based on this assumption, the wild story that follows is likely grounded; despite its exaggeration, it has a striking appeal to the imagination. Saxo Grammaticus recounts the tale of two Norse princes or leaders who formed what was known as a brotherhood in arms, signifying not only a strong friendship and constant support throughout all their adventures in life, but also a solemn pact that after one of them died, the survivor would willingly enter the grave of his brother-in-arms and agree to be buried alongside him. The responsibility of fulfilling this terrifying pact fell on Asmund, as his companion Assueit had been killed in battle. The tomb was constructed following the ancient northern custom from the era of hills, which involved burying individuals of notable merit or rank in prominent locations marked by a mound. With this aim, a deep, narrow vault was built to serve as the future tomb, over which the burial mound would be raised. Here, they placed weapons, trophies, and possibly spilled the blood of sacrifices, bringing the war-horses of the heroes into the tomb. After these rites were completed, Assueit's body was laid in the dark, narrow chamber, while his loyal brother-in-arms entered and sat beside the corpse, without uttering a word or giving any sign of regret or reluctance to fulfill his dreadful promise. The soldiers who witnessed this remarkable burial of the living and the dead rolled a massive stone to block the tomb’s entrance and piled enough earth and stones above the spot to create a mound visible from far away. Then, lamenting the loss of such fearless leaders, they scattered like a flock that has lost its shepherd.
Years passed away after years, and a century had elapsed ere a noble Swedish rover, bound upon some high adventure and supported by a gallant band of followers, arrived in the valley which took its name from the tomb of the brethren-in-arms. The story was told to the strangers, whose leader determined on opening the sepulchre, partly because, as already hinted, it was reckoned a heroic action to brave the anger of departed heroes by violating their tombs; partly to attain the arms and swords of proof with which the deceased had done their great actions. He set his soldiers to work, and soon removed the earth and stones from one side of the mound, and laid bare the entrance. But the stoutest of the rovers started back when, instead of the silence of a tomb, they heard within horrid cries, the clash of swords, the clang of armour, and all the noise of a mortal combat between two furious champions. A young warrior was let down into the profound tomb by a cord, which was drawn up shortly after, in hopes of news from beneath. But when the adventurer descended, some one threw him from the cord, and took his place in the noose. When the rope was pulled up, the soldiers, instead of their companion, beheld Asmund, the survivor of the brethren-in-arms. He rushed into the open air, his sword drawn in his hand, his armour half torn from his body, the left side of his face almost scratched off, as by the talons of some wild beast. He had no sooner appeared in the light of day, than, with the improvisatory poetic talent, which these champions often united with heroic strength and bravery, he poured forth a string of verses containing the history of his hundred years’ conflict within the tomb. It seems that no sooner was the sepulchre closed than the corpse of the slain Assueit arose from the ground, inspired by some ravenous goule, and having first torn to pieces and devoured the horses which had been entombed with them, threw himself upon the companion who had just given him such a sign of devoted friendship, in order to treat him in the same manner. The hero, no way discountenanced by the horrors of his situation, took to his arms, and defended himself manfully against Assueit, or rather against the evil demon who tenanted that champion’s body. In this manner the living brother waged a preternatural combat, which had endured during a whole century, when Asmund, at last obtaining the victory, prostrated his enemy, and by driving, as he boasted, a stake through his body, had finally reduced him to the state of quiet becoming a tenant of the tomb. Having chanted the triumphant account of his contest and victory, this mangled conqueror fell dead before them. The body of Assueit was taken out of the tomb, burnt, and the ashes dispersed to heaven; whilst that of the victor, now lifeless and without a companion, was deposited there, so that it was hoped his slumbers might remain undisturbed.19 The precautions taken against Assueit’s reviving a second time, remind us of those adopted in the Greek islands and in the Turkish provinces against the vampire. It affords also a derivation of the ancient English law in case of suicide, when a stake was driven through the body, originally to keep it secure in the tomb.
Years went by, and a hundred years passed before a brave Swedish adventurer, on a daring journey and accompanied by a bold group of followers, reached the valley named after the tomb of the fallen comrades. The story was shared with the newcomers, whose leader decided to open the grave, partly because it was considered heroic to risk the wrath of the spirits by disturbing their resting places, and partly to claim the weapons and armor that the deceased had used in their great deeds. He got his men to work and quickly removed the earth and stones from one side of the mound, revealing the entrance. But the bravest of the adventurers recoiled when, instead of the expected silence of a grave, they heard terrifying screams, the clash of swords, the noise of armor, and all the sounds of a fierce battle between two raging warriors. A young fighter was lowered into the deep tomb by a rope, which was pulled up shortly after, hoping for news from below. But once the adventurer was down there, someone cut the rope, taking his place. When the rope was pulled back up, the soldiers, instead of seeing their companion, found Asmund, the last survivor of the fallen comrades. He rushed into the daylight with his sword drawn, his armor half torn off, his face almost scratched off as if by the claws of a wild beast. No sooner had he emerged into the light than, showcasing the impromptu poetic skill that these warriors often combined with their strength and bravery, he recounted the tale of his century-long struggle within the tomb. It turned out that as soon as the sepulcher was sealed, the body of the slain Assueit rose from the earth, possessed by some ravenous ghoul. After first tearing apart and consuming the horses buried with them, he attacked the comrade who had shown him such loyalty, intending to do the same. The hero, undaunted by his horrific predicament, took up arms and bravely defended himself against Assueit, or rather against the evil spirit that inhabited his body. Thus, the living brother engaged in a supernatural battle that lasted for a whole century until Asmund finally triumphed, bringing his opponent down and, as he claimed, driving a stake through his body, ensuring he was finally at peace in the grave. After singing about his victory and struggles, this battered conqueror fell dead before them. They took Assueit’s body out of the tomb, burned it, and scattered the ashes to the sky; while the now lifeless victor was laid to rest there, in hopes that his eternal sleep would remain undisturbed.19 The measures taken to prevent Assueit from rising again are reminiscent of those used in the Greek islands and Turkish regions against vampires. They also trace back to ancient English laws regarding suicide, where a stake was driven through the body to keep it securely in the grave.
19 (return)
[ See Saxo Grammaticus,
“Hist. Dan.,” lib. v.]
19 (return)
[ See Saxo Grammaticus, “Hist. Dan.,” book 5.]
The Northern people also acknowledged a kind of ghosts, who, when they had obtained possession of a building, or the right of haunting it, did not defend themselves against mortals on the knightly principle of duel, like Assueit, nor were amenable to the prayers of the priest or the spells of the sorcerer, but became tractable when properly convened in a legal process. The Eyrbiggia Saga acquaints us, that the mansion of a respectable landholder in Iceland was, soon after the settlement of that island, exposed to a persecution of this kind. The molestation was produced by the concurrence of certain mystical and spectral phenomena, calculated to introduce such persecution. About the commencement of winter, with that slight exchange of darkness and twilight which constitutes night and day in these latitudes, a contagious disease arose in a family of consequence and in the neighbourhood, which, sweeping off several members of the family at different times, seemed to threaten them all with death. But the death of these persons was attended with the singular consequence that their spectres were seen to wander in the neighbourhood of the mansion-house, terrifying, and even assaulting, those of the living family who ventured abroad. As the number of the dead members of the devoted household seemed to increase in proportion to that of the survivors, the ghosts took it upon them to enter the house, and produce their aërial forms and wasted physiognomy, even in the stove where the fire was maintained for the general use of the inhabitants, and which, in an Iceland winter, is the only comfortable place of assembling the family. But the remaining inhabitants of the place, terrified by the intrusion of these spectres, chose rather to withdraw to the other extremity of the house, and abandon their warm seats, than to endure the neighbourhood of the phantoms. Complaints were at length made to a pontiff of the god Thor, named Snorro, who exercised considerable influence in the island. By his counsel, the young proprietor of the haunted mansion assembled a jury, or inquest, of his neighbours, constituted in the usual judicial form, as if to judge an ordinary civil matter, and proceeded, in their presence, to cite individually the various phantoms and resemblances of the deceased members of the family, to show by what warrant they disputed with him and his servants the quiet possession of his property, and what defence they could plead for thus interfering with and incommoding the living. The spectres of the dead, by name, and in order as summoned, appeared on their being called, and muttering some regrets at being obliged to abandon their dwelling, departed, or vanished, from the astonished inquest. Judgment then went against the ghosts by default; and the trial by jury, of which we here can trace the origin, obtained a triumph unknown to any of the great writers who have made it the subject of eulogy.20
The people from the North also recognized a type of ghost that, once it took over a building or the right to haunt it, did not follow the knightly tradition of dueling like Assueit, nor were they swayed by the pleas of priests or the spells of sorcerers. Instead, they became cooperative when properly summoned through legal means. The Eyrbiggia Saga tells us that shortly after the settlement of Iceland, a well-respected landowner's mansion faced this kind of haunting. This torment was fueled by a convergence of mystical and ghostly events designed to create such persecution. At the start of winter, during the brief moments of light and darkness that make up day and night in those regions, a contagious illness struck a prominent family nearby, leading to the death of several family members at different times and threatening the lives of everyone in the household. The unique aspect of their deaths was that their spirits were seen wandering around the mansion, frightening and even attacking living family members who dared to go outside. As the number of deceased grew in comparison to the living, the ghosts decided to enter the home and display their ghostly forms and withered faces, even in the stove where the fire was kept for everyone's comfort, which serves as the only warm gathering place during an Icelandic winter. The remaining inhabitants, scared by the presence of the ghosts, preferred to move to the far end of the house, abandoning their warm spots rather than endure the company of the apparitions. Eventually, complaints were made to a priest of Thor named Snorro, who had considerable influence on the island. Following his advice, the young owner of the haunted mansion gathered a jury, or inquest, of his neighbors in the usual legal manner as if handling a regular civil case. He then formally summoned the various spirits and likenesses of the deceased family members to show by what right they were disturbing him and his family’s peaceful possession of their property, and what justification they had for interfering with and annoying the living. The ghosts, named and in the order they were summoned, appeared when called, muttering some regret about having to leave their home, and then vanished before the astonished jury. Judgment was then rendered against the ghosts by default, marking the triumph of this early jury trial, a concept celebrated by none of the major writers who later praised it.
20 (return)
[ Eyrbiggia Saga. See
“Northern Antiquities.”]
20 (return)
[ Eyrbiggia Saga. See “Northern Antiquities.”]
It was not only with the spirits of the dead that the warlike people of the North made war without timidity, and successfully entered into suits of ejectment. These daring champions often braved the indignation even of the superior deities of their mythology, rather than allow that there existed any being before whom their boldness could quail. Such is the singular story how a young man of high courage, in crossing a desolate ridge of mountains, met with a huge waggon, in which the goddess, Freya (i.e., a gigantic idol formed to represent her), together with her shrine, and the wealthy offerings attached to it, was travelling from one district of the country to another. The shrine, or sanctuary of the idol, was, like a modern caravan travelling with a show, screened by boards and curtains from the public gaze, and the equipage was under the immediate guidance of the priestess of Freya, a young, good-looking, and attractive woman. The traveller naturally associated himself with the priestess, who, as she walked on foot, apparently was in no degree displeased with the company of a powerful and handsome young man, as a guide and companion on the journey. It chanced, however, that the presence of the champion, and his discourse with the priestess, was less satisfactory to the goddess than to the parties principally concerned. By a certain signal the divinity summoned the priestess to the sanctuary, who presently returned, with tears in her eyes and terror in her countenance, to inform her companion that it was the will of Freya that he should depart, and no longer travel in their company. “You must have mistaken the meaning of the goddess,” said the champion; “Freya cannot have formed a wish so unreasonable as to desire I should abandon the straight and good road, which leads me directly on my journey, to choose precipitous paths and by-roads, where I may break my neck.” “Nevertheless,” said the priestess, “the goddess will be highly offended if you disobey her commands, nor can I conceal from you that she may personally assault you.” “It will be at her own peril if she should be so audacious,” said the champion, “for I will try the power of this axe against the strength of beams and boards.” The priestess chid him for his impiety; but being unable to compel him to obey the goddess’s mandate, they again relapsed into familiarity, which advanced to such a point that a clattering noise within the tabernacle, as of machinery put in motion, intimated to the travellers that Freya, who perhaps had some qualities in common with the classical Vesta, thought a personal interruption of this tête-à-tête ought to be deferred no longer. The curtains flew open, and the massive and awkward idol, who, we may suppose, resembled in form the giant created by Frankenstein, leapt lumbering from the carriage, and, rushing on the intrusive traveller, dealt him, with its wooden hands and arms, such tremendous blows, as were equally difficult to parry or to endure. But the champion was armed with a double-edged Danish axe, with which he bestirred himself with so much strength and activity, that at length he split the head of the image, and with a severe blow hewed off its left leg. The image of Freya then fell motionless to the ground, and the demon which had animated it fled yelling from the battered tenement. The champion was now victor; and, according to the law of arms, took possession of the female and the baggage. The priestess, the divinity of whose patroness had been by the event of the combat sorely lessened in her eyes, was now easily induced to become the associate and concubine of the conqueror. She accompanied him to the district whither he was travelling, and there displayed the shrine of Freya, taking care to hide the injuries which the goddess had received in the brawl. The champion came in for a share of a gainful trade driven by the priestess, besides appropriating to himself most of the treasures which the sanctuary had formerly contained. Neither does it appear that Freya, having, perhaps, a sensible recollection of the power of the axe, ever again ventured to appear in person for the purpose of calling her false stewards to account.
It wasn't just with the spirits of the dead that the warlike people of the North fought without fear and successfully engaged in disputes over property. These bold champions often defied even the superior gods of their mythology, refusing to acknowledge any being that could intimidate them. The unique story unfolds as a young man of great courage, while crossing a barren mountain ridge, encountered a large wagon carrying the goddess Freya (i.e., a giant idol representing her), along with her shrine and the valuable offerings associated with it, traveling from one part of the country to another. The shrine, or sanctuary of the idol, was like a modern traveling show, concealed by boards and curtains from public view, and the carriage was operated by the priestess of Freya, a young, attractive woman. The traveler naturally teamed up with the priestess, who, as she walked alongside him, seemed pleased with the company of a strong and handsome young man as her guide on the journey. However, it turned out that the presence of the champion and his conversation with the priestess were not well received by the goddess. With a specific signal, the deity summoned the priestess to the sanctuary; she soon returned, tears in her eyes and fear on her face, to tell her companion that Freya wanted him to leave and no longer travel with them. "You must have misinterpreted the goddess's intent," said the champion. "Freya can't possibly wish for me to abandon the straight and proper road leading to my destination for dangerous paths where I could injure myself." "Nonetheless," replied the priestess, "the goddess will be very angry if you disobey her orders, and I must warn you that she may personally confront you." "It will be at her own risk if she acts so boldly," said the champion, "for I will test the strength of this axe against her." The priestess scolded him for his irreverence, but unable to force him to obey the goddess's command, they fell back into a comfortable conversation. Things became so familiar that a clattering noise from inside the tabernacle, like machinery starting up, indicated that Freya—who might have some traits similar to the classical Vesta—decided a personal interruption of their conversation could no longer be delayed. The curtains flew open, and the massive, clumsy idol, which we can imagine resembled the giant from Frankenstein, stumbled out of the wagon and charged at the intruding traveler, delivering powerful blows with its wooden arms that were hard to dodge or withstand. But the champion was armed with a double-edged Danish axe, and he fought back with such strength and agility that he eventually split the idol’s head and severed its left leg with a decisive blow. The idol of Freya then fell lifeless to the ground, and the demon that animated it fled, screaming from the damaged structure. The champion was now victorious; according to the rules of combat, he claimed the priestess and the cargo. The priestess, whose goddess's status had been severely diminished in her eyes by the outcome of the fight, was easily persuaded to become the companion and lover of the conqueror. She traveled with him to the area he was heading to and showcased the shrine of Freya while carefully hiding the damages the goddess had suffered in the skirmish. The champion benefited from lucrative trade organized by the priestess and claimed most of the treasures that had belonged to the sanctuary. It appears that Freya, possibly having a vivid memory of the power of the axe, never attempted to confront her rebellious custodians again.
The national estimation of deities, concerning whom such stories could be told and believed, was, of course, of no deep or respectful character. The Icelanders abandoned Odin, Freya, Thor, and their whole pagan mythology, in consideration of a single disputation between the heathen priests and the Christian missionaries. The priests threatened the island with a desolating eruption of the volcano called Hecla, as the necessary consequence of the vengeance of their deities. Snorro, the same who advised the inquest against the ghosts, had become a convert to the Christian religion, and was present on the occasion, and as the conference was held on the surface of what had been a stream of lava, now covered with vegetable substances, he answered the priests with much readiness, “To what was the indignation of the gods owing when the substance on which we stand was fluid and scorching? Believe me, men of Iceland, the eruption of the volcano depends on natural circumstances now as it did then, and is not the engine of vengeance intrusted to Thor and Odin.” It is evident that men who reasoned with so much accuracy concerning the imbecility of Odin and Thor were well prepared, on abandoning their worship, to consider their former deities, of whom they believed so much that was impious, in the light of evil demons.
The national view of gods, about whom such stories could be told and believed, was clearly not very deep or respectful. The Icelanders moved away from Odin, Freya, Thor, and their entire pagan mythology after a single debate between the pagan priests and the Christian missionaries. The priests threatened the island with a devastating eruption from the volcano called Hecla, claiming it would be the punishment of their gods. Snorro, who had previously suggested investigating ghosts, had converted to Christianity and was present at the event. Since the meeting took place on what used to be a lava flow, now covered with vegetation, he quickly responded to the priests, “What caused the gods' anger when the ground we're standing on was molten and burning? Believe me, people of Iceland, the volcano's eruption is based on natural conditions just like it was back then, and it’s not a tool for vengeance wielded by Thor and Odin.” It's clear that those who reasoned so logically about the foolishness of Odin and Thor were well-prepared, upon abandoning their worship, to see their former deities—whom they deemed so impious—as evil demons.
But there were some particulars of the Northern creed in which it corresponded so exactly with that of the classics as leaves room to doubt whether the original Asæ, or Asiatics, the founders of the Scandinavian system, had, before their migration from Asia, derived them from some common source with those of the Greeks and Romans; or whether, on the other hand, the same proneness of the human mind to superstition has caused that similar ideas are adopted in different regions, as the same plants are found in distant countries without the one, as far as can be discovered, having obtained the seed from the others.
But there were some specific aspects of the Northern belief that matched so closely with that of the classics that it raises questions about whether the original Asæ, or Asiatics, who founded the Scandinavian system, had drawn from a common source with the Greeks and Romans before their migration from Asia; or, alternatively, whether the human tendency toward superstition has led to the adoption of similar ideas in different regions, much like how the same plants are found in distant countries without one having received seeds from the others.
The classical fiction, for example, of the satyrs and other subordinate deities of wood and wild, whose power is rather delusive than formidable, and whose supernatural pranks intimate rather a wish to inflict terror than to do hurt, was received among the Northern people, and perhaps transferred by them to the Celtic tribes. It is an idea which seems common to many nations. The existence of a satyr, in the silvan form, is even pretended to be proved by the evidence of Saint Anthony, to whom one is said to have appeared in the desert. The Scottish Gael have an idea of the same kind, respecting a goblin called Ourisk, whose form is like that of Pan, and his attendants something between a man and a goat, the nether extremities being in the latter form. A species of cavern, or rather hole, in the rock, affords to the wildest retreat in the romantic neighbourhood of Loch Katrine a name taken from classical superstition. It is not the least curious circumstance that from this silvan deity the modern nations of Europe have borrowed the degrading and unsuitable emblems of the goat’s visage and form, the horns, hoofs, and tail, with which they have depicted the author of evil when it pleased him to show himself on earth. So that the alteration of a single word would render Pope’s well-known line more truly adapted to the fact, should we venture to read—
The classic tales of satyrs and other lesser forest deities, whose powers are more deceptive than truly fearsome, and whose supernatural antics suggest a desire to scare rather than harm, were welcomed among the Northern people and likely passed on to the Celtic tribes. This idea seems to be shared by many cultures. The existence of a satyr, in a woodland form, is even supposedly backed by the testimony of Saint Anthony, who is said to have encountered one in the desert. The Scottish Gael have a similar belief regarding a goblin called Ourisk, whose shape resembles that of Pan, with attendants that are part human and part goat, having goat-like lower bodies. A certain type of cave, or more accurately a hole in the rock, gives a name derived from classical superstition to the wildest retreat in the picturesque area around Loch Katrine. It is particularly interesting that modern European nations have taken from this woodland deity the degrading and inappropriate symbols of the goat’s face and body, including horns, hooves, and tail, which they have used to depict the source of evil when he chose to reveal himself on earth. Thus, changing just one word would make Pope’s well-known line more accurately reflect reality, should we dare to read—
“And Pan to Satan lends his heathen horn.”
“And Pan lends his pagan horn to Satan.”
We cannot attribute the transferrence of the attributes of the Northern satyr, or Celtic ourisk, to the arch-fiend, to any particular resemblance between the character of these deities and that of Satan. On the contrary, the ourisk of the Celts was a creature by no means peculiarly malevolent or formidably powerful, but rather a melancholy spirit, which dwelt in wildernesses far removed from men. If we are to identify him with the Brown Dwarf of the Border moors, the ourisk has a mortal term of life and a hope of salvation, as indeed the same high claim was made by the satyr who appeared to St. Anthony. Moreover, the Highland ourisk was a species of lubber fiend, and capable of being over-reached by those who understood philology. It is related of one of these goblins which frequented a mill near the foot of Loch Lomond, that the miller, desiring to get rid of this meddling spirit, who injured the machinery by setting the water on the wheel when there was no grain to be grinded, contrived to have a meeting with the goblin by watching in his mill till night. The ourisk then entered, and demanded the miller’s name, and was informed that he was called Myself; on which is founded a story almost exactly like that of OUTIS in the “Odyssey,” a tale which, though classic, is by no means an elegant or ingenious fiction, but which we are astonished to find in an obscure district, and in the Celtic tongue, seeming to argue some connexion or communication between these remote Highlands of Scotland and the readers of Homer in former days, which we cannot account for. After all, perhaps, some Churchman more learned than his brethren may have transferred the legend from Sicily to Duncrune, from the shores of the Mediterranean to those of Loch Lomond. I have heard it also told that the celebrated freebooter, Rob Roy, once gained a victory by disguising a part of his men with goat-skins, so as to resemble the ourisk or Highland satyr.
We can’t link the transfer of traits from the Northern satyr, or Celtic ourisk, to the arch-fiend based on any specific resemblance between these deities and Satan. In fact, the ourisk of the Celts wasn't particularly malevolent or overwhelmingly powerful; rather, it was a sad spirit that lived in remote wilderness areas away from humans. If we are to connect him with the Brown Dwarf of the Border moors, the ourisk has a limited lifespan and a chance for salvation, just like the satyr who appeared to St. Anthony. Furthermore, the Highland ourisk was a kind of lazy spirit, easily outsmarted by those knowledgeable in language. There’s a story about one of these goblins that haunted a mill near Loch Lomond; the miller, wanting to get rid of this troublesome spirit that damaged the machinery by turning the water wheel when there was no grain to grind, managed to meet the goblin by watching the mill until night. The ourisk then entered and asked for the miller's name, and he replied that he was called Myself; this led to a story strikingly similar to that of OUTIS in the “Odyssey,” a tale that, while classic, isn’t particularly elegant or clever, but it’s surprising to find it in such an obscure region and in the Celtic language, suggesting some connection or communication between these remote Highlands of Scotland and Homer’s audience in ancient times, which we can't fully explain. Perhaps a scholar from the Church, more learned than his peers, moved the legend from Sicily to Duncrune, from the Mediterranean shores to those of Loch Lomond. I’ve also heard that the infamous outlaw, Rob Roy, once won a battle by disguising some of his men with goat skins to make them look like the ourisk or Highland satyr.
There was an individual satyr called, I think, Meming, belonging to the Scandinavian mythology, of a character different from the ourisk, though similar in shape, whom it was the boast of the highest champions to seek out in the solitudes which he inhabited. He was an armourer of extreme dexterity, and the weapons which he forged were of the highest value. But as club-law pervaded the ancient system of Scandinavia, Meming had the humour of refusing to work for any customer save such as compelled him to it with force of arms. He may be, perhaps, identified with the recusant smith who fled before Fingal from Ireland to the Orkneys, and being there overtaken, was compelled to forge the sword which Fingal afterwards wore in all his battles, and which was called the Son of the dark brown Luno, from the name of the armourer who forged it.21
There was a satyr named, I think, Meming, from Scandinavian mythology, who was different from the ourisk, though similar in appearance. It was the pride of the greatest heroes to pursue him in the remote places he lived. He was an incredibly skilled armorer, and the weapons he crafted were extremely valuable. However, since the ancient system of Scandinavia was ruled by brute force, Meming humorously refused to work for anyone unless they forced him to with weapons. He can possibly be linked to the rebellious smith who escaped from Fingal and fled from Ireland to the Orkneys, and when he was caught there, he was forced to create the sword that Fingal later used in all his battles, which was called the Son of the dark brown Luno, after the armorer who made it.21
21 (return)
[ The weapon is often
mentioned in Mr. MacPherson’s paraphrases; but the Irish ballad, which
gives a spirited account of the debate between the champion and the
armourer, is nowhere introduced.]
21 (return)
[ The weapon is frequently referenced in Mr. MacPherson’s paraphrases; however, the Irish ballad that provides a lively account of the debate between the champion and the armourer is not included anywhere.]
From this it will appear that there were originals enough in the mythology of the Goths, as well as Celts, to furnish the modern attributes ascribed to Satan in later times, when the object of painter or poet was to display him in his true form and with all his terrors. Even the genius of Guido and of Tasso have been unable to surmount this prejudice, the more rooted, perhaps, that the wicked are described as goats in Scripture, and that the devil is called the old dragon. In Raffael’s famous painting of the archangel Michael binding Satan, the dignity, power, and angelic character expressed by the seraph form an extraordinary contrast to the poor conception of a being who ought not, even in that lowest degradation, to have seemed so unworthy an antagonist. Neither has Tasso been more happy, where he represents the divan of darkness in the enchanted forest as presided over by a monarch having a huge tail, hoofs, and all the usual accompaniments of popular diablerie. The genius of Milton alone could discard all these vulgar puerilities, and assign to the author of evil the terrible dignity of one who should seem not “less than archangel ruined.” This species of degradation is yet grosser when we take into consideration the changes which popular opinions have wrought respecting the taste, habits, powers, modes of tempting, and habits of tormenting, which are such as might rather be ascribed to some stupid superannuated and doting ogre of a fairy tale, than to the powerful-minded demon who fell through pride and rebellion, not through folly or incapacity.
From this, it’s clear that the mythology of the Goths, as well as the Celts, had plenty of original elements to provide the modern traits attributed to Satan later on, when painters or poets aimed to portray him in his true form with all his terrors. Even the talents of Guido and Tasso couldn’t overcome this bias, which is perhaps even more ingrained because the wicked are described as goats in Scripture, and the devil is called the old dragon. In Raphael’s famous painting of the archangel Michael binding Satan, the dignity, power, and angelic nature shown by the seraph create a striking contrast to the poor image of a being who shouldn’t seem so unworthy, even in his lowest state. Tasso hasn’t been much more successful, depicting the council of darkness in the enchanted forest led by a monarch with a huge tail, hooves, and all the typical elements of popular depictions of the devil. Only Milton’s genius could set aside these crude trivialities and present the author of evil with the terrible dignity of someone who should appear “no less than archangel ruined.” This kind of degradation is even more offensive when we consider the changes that popular opinion has made regarding the tastes, habits, powers, methods of temptation, and ways of tormenting, which seem more fitting for some foolish, aging ogre from a fairy tale than for the powerful-minded demon who fell due to pride and rebellion, not because of foolishness or inadequacy.
Having, however, adopted our present ideas of the devil as they are expressed by his nearest acquaintances, the witches, from the accounts of satyrs, which seem to have been articles of faith both among the Celtic and Gothic tribes, we must next notice another fruitful fountain of demonological fancies. But as this source of the mythology of the Middle Ages must necessarily comprehend some account of the fairy folk, to whom much of it must be referred, it is necessary to make a pause before we enter upon the mystic and marvellous connexion supposed to exist between the impenitent kingdom of Satan and those merry dancers by moonlight.
Having adopted our current views of the devil, as described by his closest associates, the witches, based on accounts of satyrs, which seem to have been widely accepted beliefs among both the Celtic and Gothic tribes, we should next explore another rich source of demonological ideas. However, since this source of Middle Ages mythology must include some discussion of the fairy folk, to whom much of it can be traced, it is important to pause before delving into the mystical and extraordinary connection thought to exist between the unrepentant realm of Satan and those joyful dancers under the moonlight.
LETTER IV.
The Fairy Superstition is derived from different sources—The Classical Worship of the Silvans, or Rural Deities, proved by Roman Altars discovered—The Gothic Duergar, or Dwarfs—Supposed to be derived from the Northern Laps, or Fins—“The Niebelungen-Lied”—King Laurin’s Adventure—Celtic Fairies of a gayer character, yet their pleasures empty and illusory—Addicted to carry off Human Beings, both Infants and Adults—Adventures of a Butler in Ireland—The Elves supposed to pay a Tax to Hell—The Irish, Welsh, Highlanders, and Manxmen held the same belief—It was rather rendered more gloomy by the Northern Traditions—Merlin and Arthur carried off by the Fairies—Also Thomas of Erceldoune—His Amour with the Queen of Elfland—His re-appearance in latter times—Another account from Reginald Scot—Conjectures on the derivation of the word Fairy.
The Fairy Superstition comes from various sources—The Classical Worship of the Silvans, or Rural Deities, supported by Roman Altars that have been found—The Gothic Duergar, or Dwarfs—Thought to come from the Northern Laps, or Finns—“The Niebelungen-Lied”—King Laurin’s Adventure—Celtic Fairies with a more cheerful demeanor, yet their pleasures are empty and deceptive—Known to abduct Humans, both Infants and Adults—Stories of a Butler in Ireland—The Elves believed to pay a Tax to Hell—The Irish, Welsh, Highlanders, and Manxmen shared this belief—It was made even darker by the Northern Traditions—Merlin and Arthur taken by the Fairies—Also Thomas of Erceldoune—His love affair with the Queen of Elfland—His return in later times—Another account from Reginald Scot—Speculations on the origin of the word Fairy.
We may premise by observing, that the classics had not forgotten to enrol in their mythology a certain species of subordinate deities, resembling the modern elves in their habits. Good old Mr. Gibb, of the Advocates’ Library (whom all lawyers whose youth he assisted in their studies, by his knowledge of that noble collection, are bound to name with gratitude), used to point out, amongst the ancient altars under his charge, one which is consecrated, Diis campestribus, and usually added, with a wink, “The fairies, ye ken."22 This relic of antiquity was discovered near Roxburgh Castle, and a vicinity more delightfully appropriate to the abode of the silvan deities can hardly be found.
We can start by noting that the classics didn’t forget to include a type of lesser deities in their mythology, which resemble modern elves in their behaviors. Good old Mr. Gibb from the Advocates’ Library (whom all the lawyers he helped during their studies, thanks to his expertise on that amazing collection, remember with gratitude) used to point out, among the ancient altars he managed, one that is dedicated to Diis campestribus, and would often add with a wink, “The fairies, you know.”22 This ancient relic was found near Roxburgh Castle, and it's hard to imagine a more fitting place for the home of these woodland deities.
22 (return)
[ Another altar of elegant
form and perfectly preserved, was, within these few weeks, dug up near the
junction of the Leader and the Tweed, in the neighbourhood of the village
of Newstead, to the east of Melrose. It was inscribed by Carrius
Domitianus, the prefect of the twentieth legion, to the god Sylvanus,
forming another instance how much the wild and silvan character of the
country disposed the feelings of the Romans to acknowledge the presence of
the rural deities. The altar is preserved at Drygrange, the seat of Mr.
Tod.]
22 (return)
[ Another beautifully crafted and well-preserved altar was recently discovered near the junction of the Leader and the Tweed, close to the village of Newstead, east of Melrose. It was dedicated by Carrius Domitianus, the prefect of the twentieth legion, to the god Sylvanus, illustrating how much the wild and wooded nature of the area made the Romans more inclined to recognize the presence of rural deities. The altar is on display at Drygrange, the home of Mr. Tod.]
Two rivers of considerable size, made yet more remarkable by the fame which has rendered them in some sort classical, unite their streams beneath the vestiges of an extensive castle, renowned in the wars with England, and for the valiant, noble, and even royal blood, which has been shed around and before it—a landscape ornamented with the distant village and huge abbey tower of Kelso, arising out of groves of aged trees—the modern mansion of Fleurs, with its terrace, its woods, and its extensive lawn—form altogether a kingdom for Oberon and Titania to reign in, or any spirit who, before their time, might love scenery, of which the majesty, and even the beauty, impress the mind with a sense of awe mingled with pleasure. These silvans, satyrs, and fauns with whom superstition peopled the lofty banks and tangled copses of this romantic country, were obliged to give place to deities very nearly resembling themselves in character, who probably derive some of their attributes from their classic predecessors, although more immediately allied to the barbarian conquerors. We allude to the fairies, which, as received into the popular creed, and as described by the poets who have made use of them as machinery, are certainly among the most pleasing legacies of fancy.
Two sizable rivers, made even more remarkable by their fame that has made them somewhat iconic, merge their waters beneath the remnants of a large castle, known for its battles with England and for the brave, noble, and even royal blood that has been spilled around it—a landscape adorned with the distant village and grand abbey tower of Kelso, rising from groves of old trees—the modern mansion of Fleurs, with its terrace, woods, and vast lawn—together create a kingdom for Oberon and Titania to rule over, or any spirit who, before their time, might appreciate scenery that evokes a sense of awe mixed with pleasure due to its grandeur and beauty. The woodland spirits, satyrs, and fauns, whom superstition filled the high banks and tangled underbrush of this picturesque region with, had to make way for deities that were very similar to them in nature, likely inheriting some traits from their classic ancestors, though more closely connected to the barbarian conquerors. We refer to the fairies, which, as incorporated into popular belief and depicted by poets who have used them in their works, are certainly among the most delightful gifts of imagination.
Dr. Leyden, who exhausted on this subject, as upon most others, a profusion of learning, found the first idea of the elfin people in the Northern opinions concerning the duergar, or dwarfs.23 These were, however, it must be owned, spirits of a coarser sort, more laborious vocation, and more malignant temper, and in all respects less propitious to humanity, than the fairies (properly so called), which were the invention of the Celtic people, and displayed that superiority of taste and fancy which, with the love of music and poetry, has been generally ascribed to their race, through its various classes and modifications.
Dr. Leyden, who, as with most topics, showcased an abundance of knowledge on this subject, found the initial concept of the elfin people in the Northern beliefs about the duergar, or dwarfs. These, it must be admitted, were spirits of a rougher nature, more hardworking, and more malicious in temperament, and in all ways less beneficial to humankind than the fairies (properly speaking), which originated from the Celtic people and exhibited that greater sense of taste and imagination which, along with a love for music and poetry, has generally been attributed to their race across its various classes and forms.
23 (return)
[ See the essay on the
Fairy Superstition, in the “Minstrelsy of the Scottish Border,” of which
many of the materials were contributed by Dr. Leyden, and the whole
brought into its present form by the author.]
23 (return)
[ Check out the essay on Fairy Superstition in the “Minstrelsy of the Scottish Border,” where many of the materials were provided by Dr. Leyden, and the entire content was organized into its current form by the author.]
In fact, there seems reason to conclude that these duergar were originally nothing else than the diminutive natives of the Lappish, Lettish, and Finnish nations, who, flying before the conquering weapons of the Asæ, sought the most retired regions of the North, and there endeavoured to hide themselves from their Eastern invaders. They were a little, diminutive race, but possessed of some skill probably in mining or smelting minerals, with which the country abounds. Perhaps also they might, from their acquaintance with the changes of the clouds, or meteorological phenomena, be judges of weather, and so enjoy another title to supernatural skill. At any rate, it has been plausibly supposed that these poor people, who sought caverns and hiding-places from the persecution of the Asæ, were in some respects compensated for inferiority in strength and stature by the art and power with which the superstition of the enemy invested them. These oppressed yet dreaded fugitives obtained, naturally enough, the character of the German spirits called Kobold, from which the English goblin and the Scottish bogle, by some inversion and alteration of pronunciation, are evidently derived.
In fact, it seems reasonable to conclude that these duergar were originally just the small native people of the Lappish, Lettish, and Finnish nations, who, fleeing from the conquering forces of the Asæ, sought the most secluded areas of the North and tried to hide from their Eastern invaders. They were a small, diminutive race but likely had some skill in mining or smelting minerals that are abundant in the region. They may also have been able to predict the weather based on their knowledge of cloud patterns or meteorological phenomena, giving them another claim to supernatural abilities. At any rate, it’s been reasonably suggested that these unfortunate people, who sought caves and hiding spots to escape the Asæ's persecution, were somewhat compensated for their lack of strength and size by the art and power bestowed upon them by the superstitions of their enemies. These oppressed yet feared fugitives naturally gained the reputation of the German spirits known as Kobold, from which the English goblin and the Scottish bogle are evidently derived through some changes in pronunciation.
The Kobolds were a species of gnomes, who haunted the dark and solitary places, and were often seen in the mines, where they seemed to imitate the labours of the miners, and sometimes took pleasure in frustrating their objects and rendering their toil unfruitful. Sometimes they were malignant, especially if neglected or insulted; but sometimes also they were indulgent to individuals whom they took under their protection. When a miner, therefore, hit upon a rich vein of ore, the inference commonly was, not that he possessed more skill, industry, or even luck, than his fellow-workmen, but that the spirits of the mine had directed him to the treasure. The employment and apparent occupation of these subterranean gnomes or fiends, led very naturally to identify the Fin, or Laplander, with the Kobold; but it was a bolder stretch of the imagination which confounded this reserved and sullen race with the livelier and gayer spirit which bears correspondence with the British fairy. Neither can we be surprised that the duergar, ascribed by many persons to this source, should exhibit a darker and more malignant character than the elves that revel by moonlight in more southern climates.
The Kobolds were a type of gnome that lived in dark and secluded places, often spotted in mines where they seemed to mimic the miners' work and sometimes took delight in sabotaging their efforts and making their labor futile. Sometimes they were spiteful, especially if they felt ignored or insulted; but at other times, they would be kind to certain individuals they chose to look after. So, when a miner struck a rich vein of ore, it was commonly believed that it wasn’t his skill, hard work, or even luck that led him there, but rather that the spirits of the mine guided him to the treasure. The activities and typical behavior of these underground gnomes or spirits led many to associate the Fin, or Laplander, with the Kobold; but it was a bigger leap to imagine that this reserved and gloomy group could be confused with the cheerier and more spirited figure connected to the British fairy. We shouldn't be surprised that the duergar, which many attribute to this same source, portray a darker and more evil nature than the elves who dance in the moonlight in warmer regions.
According to the old Norse belief, these dwarfs form the current machinery of the Northern Sagas, and their inferiority in size is represented as compensated by skill and wisdom superior to those of ordinary mortals. In the “Niebelungen-Lied,” one of the oldest romances of Germany, and compiled, it would seem, not long after the time of Attila, Theodorick of Bern, or of Verona, figures among a cycle of champions over whom he presides, like the Charlemagne of France or Arthur of England. Among others vanquished by him is the Elf King, or Dwarf Laurin, whose dwelling was in an enchanted garden of roses, and who had a body-guard of giants, a sort of persons seldom supposed to be themselves conjurers. He becomes a formidable opponent to Theodorick and his chivalry; but as he attempted by treachery to attain the victory, he is, when overcome, condemned to fill the dishonourable yet appropriate office of buffoon and juggler at the Court of Verona.24
According to old Norse beliefs, these dwarfs make up the current machinery of the Northern Sagas, and their smaller size is seen as balanced by their greater skill and wisdom compared to ordinary humans. In the "Nibelungenlied," one of Germany's oldest romances, seemingly compiled not long after Attila's time, Theodorick of Bern or Verona appears among a group of champions he leads, much like Charlemagne in France or Arthur in England. Among those he defeats is the Elf King, or Dwarf Laurin, who lives in an enchanted rose garden and has a bodyguard of giants, a rarity among conjurers. He becomes a formidable opponent to Theodorick and his knights; however, when he resorts to treachery to gain victory, he is, upon defeat, sentenced to the dishonorable yet fitting role of buffoon and juggler at the Court of Verona.24
24 (return)
[ See an abstract, by the
late learned Henry Weber, of “A Lay on this subject of King Laurin,”
complied by Henry of Osterdingen. “Northern Antiquities,” Edinburgh,
1814.]
24 (return)
[ See an abstract by the late scholar Henry Weber of “A Lay on this subject of King Laurin,” compiled by Henry of Osterdingen. “Northern Antiquities,” Edinburgh, 1814.]
Such possession of supernatural wisdom is still imputed by the natives of the Orkney and Zetland Islands to the people called Drows, being a corruption of duergar or dwarfs, and who may, in most other respects, be identified with the Caledonian fairies. Lucas Jacobson Debes, who dates his description of Feroe from his Pathmos, in Thorshaven, March 12, 1670, dedicates a long chapter to the spectres who disturbed his congregation, and sometimes carried off his hearers. The actors in these disturbances he states to be the Skow, or Biergen-Trold—i.e., the spirits of the woods and mountains, sometimes called subterranean people, and adds, they appeared in deep caverns and among horrid rocks; as also, that they haunted the places where murders or other deeds of mortal sin had been acted. They appear to have been the genuine northern dwarfs, or Trows, another pronunciation of Trollds, and are considered by the reverend author as something very little better than actual fiends.
The locals in the Orkney and Zetland Islands still associate supernatural wisdom with the beings called Drows, which is a variation of duergar or dwarfs, and who, in most other ways, can be linked to the Caledonian fairies. Lucas Jacobson Debes, who wrote about the Faroe Islands in his Pathmos in Thorshaven on March 12, 1670, dedicates a lengthy chapter to the specters that disrupted his congregation and occasionally carried off his listeners. He describes the culprits behind these disturbances as the Skow or Biergen-Trold—i.e., the spirits of the woods and mountains, sometimes referred to as underground beings. He notes that they showed up in deep caves and among frightening rocks, and that they haunted locations where murders or other serious sins had occurred. They seem to be genuine northern dwarfs, or Trows, another way of pronouncing Trollds, and the author considers them to be little better than actual demons.
But it is not only, or even chiefly, to the Gothic race that we must trace the opinions concerning the elves of the middle ages; these, as already hinted, were deeply blended with the attributes which the Celtic tribes had, from the remotest ages, ascribed to their deities of rocks, valleys, and forests. We have already observed, what indeed makes a great feature of their national character, that the power of the imagination is peculiarly active among the Celts, and leads to an enthusiasm concerning national music and dancing, national poetry and song, the departments in which fancy most readily indulges herself. The Irish, the Welsh, the Gael, or Scottish Highlander, all tribes of Celtic descent, assigned to the Men of Peace, Good Neighbours, or by whatever other names they called these sylvan pigmies, more social habits, and a course of existence far more gay, than the sullen and heavy toils of the more saturnine Duergar. Their elves did not avoid the society of men, though they behaved to those who associated with them with caprice, which rendered it dangerous to displease them; and although their gifts were sometimes valuable, they were usually wantonly given and unexpectedly resumed.
But we can’t only attribute the medieval opinions about elves to the Gothic race; as mentioned before, these beliefs were also deeply intertwined with the traits that the Celtic tribes have assigned to their gods of mountains, valleys, and forests since ancient times. We’ve already noted that a significant aspect of their national character is the vibrant power of imagination among the Celts, leading to a passion for national music and dance, as well as poetry and song, where creativity can flourish. The Irish, Welsh, Gael, and Scottish Highlanders—tribes of Celtic heritage—portrayed the Men of Peace, Good Neighbours, or whatever names they called these forest-dwelling beings, as having more social lives and a much lighter existence than the gloomy and laborious Duergar. Their elves didn’t shy away from human company, although they treated those who interacted with them with a whimsy that could make it risky to offend them; while their gifts could be valuable, they were often given impulsively and just as unpredictably taken back.
The employment, the benefits, the amusements of the Fairy court, resembled the aerial people themselves. Their government was always represented as monarchical. A King, more frequently a Queen of Fairies, was acknowledged; and sometimes both held their court together. Their pageants and court entertainments comprehended all that the imagination could conceive of what was, by that age, accounted gallant and splendid. At their processions they paraded more beautiful steeds than those of mere earthly parentage—the hawks and hounds which they employed in their chase were of the first race. At their daily banquets, the board was set forth with a splendour which the proudest kings of the earth dared not aspire to; and the hall of their dancers echoed to the most exquisite music. But when viewed by the eye of a seer the illusion vanished. The young knights and beautiful ladies showed themselves as wrinkled carles and odious hags—their wealth turned into slate-stones—their splendid plate into pieces of clay fantastically twisted—and their victuals, unsavoured by salt (prohibited to them, we are told, because an emblem of eternity), became tasteless and insipid—the stately halls were turned into miserable damp caverns—all the delights of the Elfin Elysium vanished at once. In a word, their pleasures were showy, but totally unsubstantial—their activity unceasing, but fruitless and unavailing—and their condemnation appears to have consisted in the necessity of maintaining the appearance of constant industry or enjoyment, though their toil was fruitless and their pleasures shadowy and unsubstantial. Hence poets have designed them as “the crew that never rest.” Besides the unceasing and useless bustle in which these spirits seemed to live, they had propensities unfavourable and distressing to mortals.
The jobs, benefits, and entertainment of the Fairy court were just like the fairies themselves. Their government was always shown as monarchical. There was usually a King or more often a Queen of Fairies acknowledged, and sometimes they both held court together. Their celebrations and court events featured everything that was seen as bold and lavish at that time. During their parades, they showcased more beautiful horses than any earthly breed—the hawks and hounds they used for hunting were of the finest lineage. Their daily feasts were laid out with a splendor that the proudest earth kings wouldn't dare to aspire to; and the hall where their dancers performed resonated with the most exquisite music. But when seen through the eyes of a seer, the illusion disappeared. The young knights and lovely ladies were revealed as wrinkled old men and ugly hags—their wealth turned into slate stones—their extravagant silverware into oddly shaped clay— and their food, lacking any salt (which was supposedly banned as a symbol of eternity), became tasteless and bland—the grand halls transformed into dismal, damp caves—all the joys of the Elfin Elysium vanished instantly. In short, their pleasures were flashy but entirely unsubstantial—their activity endless, but fruitless and useless—and their downfall seemed to lie in the need to maintain an appearance of constant work or enjoyment, even though their efforts were in vain and their delights were mere shadows. Thus, poets have labeled them as “the crew that never rest.” Besides the constant and pointless flurry in which these spirits appeared to exist, they had tendencies that were harmful and distressing to mortals.
One injury of a very serious nature was supposed to be constantly practised by the fairies against “the human mortals,” that of carrying off their children, and breeding them as beings of their race. Unchristened infants were chiefly exposed to this calamity; but adults were also liable to be abstracted from earthly commerce, notwithstanding it was their natural sphere. With respect to the first, it may be easily conceived that the want of the sacred ceremony of introduction into the Christian church rendered them the more obnoxious to the power of those creatures, who, if not to be in all respects considered as fiends, had nevertheless, considering their constant round of idle occupation, little right to rank themselves among good spirits, and were accounted by most divines as belonging to a very different class. An adult, on the other hand, must have been engaged in some action which exposed him to the power of the spirits, and so, as the legal phrase went, “taken in the manner.” Sleeping on a fairy mount, within which the Fairy court happened to be held for the time, was a very ready mode of obtaining a pass for Elfland. It was well for the individual if the irate elves were contented, on such occasions, with transporting him through the air to a city at some forty miles’ distance, and leaving, perhaps, his hat or bonnet on some steeple between, to mark the direct line of his course. Others, when engaged in some unlawful action, or in the act of giving way to some headlong and sinful passion, exposed themselves also to become inmates of Fairyland.
One serious danger was known to be a common practice among fairies against “human mortals,” which was kidnapping their children and raising them as part of their own kind. Unbaptized infants were particularly vulnerable to this fate, though adults could also be taken from their everyday lives, even if it was where they naturally belonged. For infants, it’s easy to see that the lack of the sacred rite of introduction into the Christian church made them more susceptible to the power of these beings, who, while not entirely seen as demons, had little justification for calling themselves good spirits due to their constant aimless activities. Most theologians classified them as belonging to a very different category. In the case of adults, they had to be involved in actions that put them at risk of the spirits' influence, and so, as the legal phrase goes, “caught in the act.” Sleeping on a fairy hill where the Fairy court happened to be meeting was a quick way to get a ticket to Elfland. It was fortunate for that person if the angry elves were only satisfied with whisking him away through the air to a city about forty miles away, leaving perhaps his hat or cap on some church steeple along the way to mark his path. Others, when engaging in illegal activities or surrendering to some reckless and sinful desire, also risked becoming residents of Fairyland.
The same belief on these points obtained in Ireland. Glanville, in his “Eighteenth Relation,” tells us of the butler of a gentleman, a neighbour of the Earl of Orrery, who was sent to purchase cards. In crossing the fields, he saw a table surrounded by people apparently feasting and making merry. They rose to salute him, and invited him to join in their revel; but a friendly voice from the party whispered in his ear, “Do nothing which this company invite you to.” Accordingly, when he refused to join in feasting, the table vanished, and the company began to dance and play on musical instruments; but the butler would not take part in these recreations. They then left off dancing, and betook themselves to work; but neither in this would the mortal join them. He was then left alone for the present; but in spite of the exertions of my Lord Orrery, in spite of two bishops who were his guests at the time, in spite of the celebrated Mr. Greatrix, it was all they could do to prevent the butler from being carried off bodily from amongst them by the fairies, who considered him as their lawful prey. They raised him in the air above the heads of the mortals, who could only run beneath, to break his fall when they pleased to let him go. The spectre which formerly advised the poor man continued to haunt him, and at length discovered himself to be the ghost of an acquaintance who had been dead for seven years. “You know,” added he, “I lived a loose life, and ever since have I been hurried up and down in a restless condition, with the company you saw, and shall be till the day of judgment.” He added, “that if the butler had acknowledged God in all his ways, he had not suffered so much by their means; he reminded him that he had not prayed to God in the morning before he met with this company in the field, and, moreover, that he was then going on an unlawful business.”
The same belief was held in Ireland. Glanville, in his “Eighteenth Relation,” tells us about the butler of a gentleman, a neighbor of the Earl of Orrery, who was sent to buy cards. While crossing the fields, he saw a table surrounded by people seemingly celebrating and having a good time. They stood up to greet him and invited him to join their festivities; but a friendly voice from the group whispered to him, “Don’t do anything they invite you to.” So, when he declined to join in the feast, the table disappeared, and the group started dancing and playing musical instruments, but the butler refused to participate in these activities. They then stopped dancing and got to work, but he wouldn’t join them in that either. He was left alone for the moment, but despite the efforts of my Lord Orrery, two bishops who were his guests at the time, and the notable Mr. Greatrix, they could barely keep the butler from being physically taken away by the fairies, who viewed him as their rightful target. They lifted him into the air above the heads of the mortals below, who could only run beneath him in case they needed to break his fall when they decided to let him go. The spirit that had previously warned the poor man continued to haunt him and eventually revealed itself to be the ghost of an acquaintance who had been dead for seven years. “You know,” he added, “I lived an indulgent life, and since then I’ve been tossed around restlessly with that company you saw, and I will be until the day of judgment.” He went on to say that if the butler had acknowledged God in all his actions, he wouldn’t have suffered so much because of them; he pointed out that he hadn’t prayed to God in the morning before encountering this group in the field and that he was also going on an illegal errand at that time.
It is pretended that Lord Orrery confirmed the whole of this story, even to having seen the butler raised into the air by the invisible beings who strove to carry him off. Only he did not bear witness to the passage which seems to call the purchase of cards an unlawful errand.25
It’s claimed that Lord Orrery confirmed the entire story, even saying he saw the butler lifted into the air by the invisible beings trying to take him away. However, he didn’t testify about the part that refers to buying cards as an illegal activity.25
25 (return)
[ “Sadducismus
Triumphatus,” by Joseph Glanville, p. 131. Edinburgh, 1790.]
25 (return)
[ “Sadducismus Triumphatus,” by Joseph Glanville, p. 131. Edinburgh, 1790.]
Individuals, whose lives had been engaged in intrigues of politics or stratagems of war, were sometimes surreptitiously carried off to Fairyland; as Alison Pearson, the sorceress who cured Archbishop Adamson, averred that she had recognised in the Fairy court the celebrated Secretary Lethington and the old Knight of Buccleuch, the one of whom had been the most busy politician, the other one of the most unwearied partisans of Queen Mary, during the reign of that unfortunate queen. Upon the whole, persons carried off by sudden death were usually suspected of having fallen into the hands of the fairies, and unless redeemed from their power, which it was not always safe to attempt, were doomed to conclude their lives with them. We must not omit to state that those who had an intimate communication with these spirits, while they were yet inhabitants of middle earth, were most apt to be seized upon and carried off to Elfland before their death.
People who had been involved in political schemes or military tactics were sometimes secretly taken to Fairyland; as Alison Pearson, the sorceress who healed Archbishop Adamson, claimed she recognized the famous Secretary Lethington and the old Knight of Buccleuch in the Fairy court, one known for being a very active politician and the other for being a tireless supporter of Queen Mary during the era of that unfortunate queen. Generally, individuals who died suddenly were often suspected of having been captured by fairies, and unless rescued from their grasp, which was not always a safe endeavor, they were destined to spend their final days with them. It's also worth noting that those who had close contact with these spirits while still living on Earth were especially likely to be taken to Elfland before their death.
The reason assigned for this kidnapping of the human race, so peculiar to the elfin people, is said to be that they were under a necessity of paying to the infernal regions a yearly tribute out of their population, which they were willing to defray by delivering up to the prince of these regions the children of the human race, rather than their own. From this it must be inferred, that they have offspring among themselves, as it is said by some authorities, and particularly by Mr. Kirke, the minister of Aberfoyle. He indeed adds that, after a certain length of life, these spirits are subject to the universal lot of mortality—a position, however, which has been controverted, and is scarcely reconcilable to that which holds them amenable to pay a tax to hell, which infers existence as eternal as the fire which is not quenched. The opinions on the subject of the fairy people here expressed, are such as are entertained in the Highlands and some remote quarters of the Lowlands of Scotland. We know, from the lively and entertaining legends published by Mr. Crofton Croker—which, though in most cases told with the wit of the editor and the humour of his country, contain points of curious antiquarian information—that the opinions of the Irish are conformable to the account we have given of the general creed of the Celtic nations respecting elves. If the Irish elves are anywise distinguished from those of Britain, it seems to be by their disposition to divide into factions and fight among themselves—a pugnacity characteristic of the Green Isle. The Welsh fairies, according to John Lewis, barrister-at-law, agree in the same general attributes with those of Ireland and Britain. We must not omit the creed of the Manxmen, since we find, from the ingenious researches of Mr. Waldron, that the Isle of Man, beyond other places in Britain, was a peculiar depository of the fairy traditions, which, on the island being conquered by the Norse, became, in all probability, chequered with those of Scandinavia from a source peculiar and more direct than that by which they reached Scotland or Ireland.
The reason given for this kidnapping of the human race, which is strange to the elfin people, is that they need to pay a yearly tribute from their population to the underworld. They prefer to send the children of humans to the prince of these regions instead of their own. This implies that they have offspring among themselves, as some say, especially Mr. Kirke, the minister of Aberfoyle. He adds that after living for a certain amount of time, these spirits face the same fate as humans—though this claim has been disputed and is hard to reconcile with the idea that they owe a tax to hell, which suggests an existence as eternal as the unquenchable fire. The beliefs about the fairy people expressed here align with those held in the Highlands and some remote areas of the Lowlands of Scotland. We know from the lively and entertaining stories published by Mr. Crofton Croker—who tells them with both wit and humor—that the views of the Irish are consistent with our explanation of the general beliefs of the Celtic nations regarding elves. If the Irish elves are different from those in Britain, it seems to be due to their tendency to form factions and fight among themselves, a conflict-prone trait typical of the Green Isle. The Welsh fairies, according to John Lewis, a barrister, share the same general characteristics as those in Ireland and Britain. We shouldn't overlook the beliefs of the Manx people, as Mr. Waldron's insightful research reveals that the Isle of Man, more than other places in Britain, held unique fairy traditions. When the Norse conquered the island, these traditions likely mixed with Scandinavian ones from a more direct source than those that reached Scotland or Ireland.
Such as it was, the popular system of the Celts easily received the northern admixture of Drows and Duergar, which gave the belief, perhaps, a darker colouring than originally belonged to the British fairyland. It was from the same source also, in all probability, that additional legends were obtained of a gigantic and malignant female, the Hecate of this mythology, who rode on the storm and marshalled the rambling host of wanderers under her grim banner. This hag (in all respects the reverse of the Mab or Titania of the Celtic creed) was called Nicneven in that later system which blended the faith of the Celts and of the Goths on this subject. The great Scottish poet Dunbar has made a spirited description of this Hecate riding at the head of witches and good neighbours (fairies, namely), sorceresses and elves, indifferently, upon the ghostly eve of All-Hallow Mass.26 In Italy we hear of the hags arraying themselves under the orders of Diana (in her triple character of Hecate, doubtless) and Herodias, who were the joint leaders of their choir. But we return to the more simple fairy belief, as entertained by the Celts before they were conquered by the Saxons.
The popular Celtic belief easily absorbed the northern influences of the Drows and Duergar, which likely gave it a darker tone than the original British fairyland. It’s probably from this same source that additional legends emerged about a massive and malevolent female figure, the Hecate of this mythology, who rode the storm and led wandering groups under her grim banner. This hag (completely opposite to the Mab or Titania of Celtic belief) was named Nicneven in the later system that merged Celtic and Gothic traditions on this subject. The great Scottish poet Dunbar vividly describes this Hecate leading witches and fairies alike, along with sorceresses and elves, on the ghostly night of All-Hallow Mass.26 In Italy, we hear of hags gathering under the command of Diana (in her triple form as Hecate, no doubt) and Herodias, who were the joint leaders of their group. But let’s return to the simpler fairy beliefs held by the Celts before their conquest by the Saxons.
26 (return)
[ See “Flyting of Dunbar
and Kennedy.”]
26 (return)
[ See “Flyting of Dunbar and Kennedy.”]
Of these early times we can know little; but it is singular to remark what light the traditions of Scotland throw upon the poetry of the Britons of Cumberland, then called Reged. Merlin Wyllt, or the wild, is mentioned by both; and that renowned wizard, the son of an elf or fairy, with King Arthur, the dubious champion of Britain at that early period, were both said by tradition to have been abstracted by the fairies, and to have vanished without having suffered death, just at the time when it was supposed that the magic of the wizard and the celebrated sword of the monarch, which had done so much to preserve British independence, could no longer avert the impending ruin. It may be conjectured that there was a desire on the part of Arthur or his surviving champions to conceal his having received a mortal wound in the fatal battle of Camlan; and to that we owe the wild and beautiful incident so finely versified by Bishop Percy, in which, in token of his renouncing in future the use of arms, the monarch sends his attendant, sole survivor of the field, to throw his sword Excalibar into the lake hard by. Twice eluding the request, the esquire at last complied, and threw the far-famed weapon into the lonely mere. A hand and arm arose from the water and caught Excalibar by the hilt, flourished it thrice, and then sank into the lake.27 The astonished messenger returned to his master to tell him the marvels he had seen, but he only saw a boat at a distance push from the land, and heard shrieks of females in agony:—
Of these early times, we know very little; but it's interesting to note how the traditions of Scotland illuminate the poetry of the Britons in Cumberland, which was then known as Reged. Merlin Wyllt, or the Wild, is mentioned by both; this famous wizard, said to be the son of an elf or fairy, along with King Arthur, the uncertain champion of Britain during that time, were both believed to have been taken away by fairies, vanishing without actually dying, just when it was thought that the wizard's magic and the legendary sword of the king, which had helped maintain British independence, could no longer prevent the impending doom. It's possible that Arthur or his surviving warriors wanted to hide the fact that he had sustained a mortal wound in the fatal battle of Camlan; this could explain the wild and beautiful episode beautifully captured by Bishop Percy, in which, as a gesture of renouncing the use of arms, the king sends his attendant, the only survivor of the field, to throw his sword Excalibur into the nearby lake. The esquire hesitated twice but eventually complied and tossed the famous weapon into the lonely water. A hand and arm emerged from the water, grasped Excalibur by the hilt, waved it three times, and then sank back into the lake.27 The astonished messenger returned to report to his master about the wonders he had witnessed, but he only saw a boat in the distance pushing away from the shore and heard the screams of women in distress:—
“And whether the king was there or not He never knew, he never colde For never since that doleful day Was British Arthur seen on molde.”
“And whether the king was there or not He never knew, he never could For never since that sorrowful day Was British Arthur seen on earth.”
27 (return)
[ See “Percy’s Reliques of
Ancient English Poetry.”]
27 (return)
[See “Percy’s Reliques of Ancient English Poetry.”]
The circumstances attending the disappearance of Merlin would probably be found as imaginative as those of Arthur’s removal, but they cannot be recovered; and what is singular enough, circumstances which originally belonged to the history of this famous bard, said to be the son of the Demon himself, have been transferred to a later poet, and surely one of scarce inferior name, Thomas of Erceldoune. The legend was supposed to be only preserved among the inhabitants of his native valleys, but a copy as old as the reign of Henry VII. has been recovered. The story is interesting and beautifully told, and, as one of the oldest fairy legends, may well be quoted in this place.
The circumstances surrounding Merlin's disappearance would likely be just as imaginative as those of Arthur's exit, but they can't be fully retrieved. What's particularly interesting is that details originally connected to the story of this famous bard, who is said to be the son of the Demon himself, have been attributed to a later poet, clearly one of significant renown, Thomas of Erceldoune. The legend was thought to be preserved only among the people of his native valleys, but a copy dating back to the reign of Henry VII has been found. The story is captivating and beautifully told, and, as one of the oldest fairy tales, deserves to be mentioned here.
Thomas of Erceldoune, in Lauderdale, called the Rhymer, on account of his producing a poetical romance on the subject of Tristrem and Yseult, which is curious as the earliest specimen of English verse known to exist, flourished in the reign of Alexander III. of Scotland. Like other men of talent of the period, Thomas was suspected of magic. He was said also to have the gift of prophecy, which was accounted for in the following peculiar manner, referring entirely to the elfin superstition:—As True Thomas (we give him the epithet by anticipation) lay on Huntly Bank, a place on the descent of the Eildon Hills, which raise their triple crest above the celebrated Monastery of Melrose, he saw a lady so extremely beautiful that he imagined it must be the Virgin Mary herself. Her appointments, however, were rather those of an Amazon or goddess of the woods. Her steed was of the highest beauty and spirit, and at his mane hung thirty silver bells and nine, which made music to the wind as she paced along. Her saddle was of royal bone (ivory), laid over with orfeverie—i.e., goldsmith’s work. Her stirrups, her dress, all corresponded with her extreme beauty and the magnificence of her array. The fair huntress had her bow in her hand, and her arrows at her belt. She led three greyhounds in a leash, and three raches, or hounds of scent, followed her closely. She rejected and disclaimed the homage which Thomas desired to pay to her; so that, passing from one extremity to the other, Thomas became as bold as he had at first been humble. The lady warns him that he must become her slave if he should prosecute his suit towards her in the manner he proposes. Before their interview terminates, the appearance of the beautiful lady is changed into that of the most hideous hag in existence. One side is blighted and wasted, as if by palsy; one eye drops from her head; her colour, as clear as the virgin silver, is now of a dun leaden hue. A witch from the spital or almshouse would have been a goddess in comparison to the late beautiful huntress. Hideous as she was, Thomas’s irregular desires had placed him under the control of this hag, and when she bade him take leave of sun, and of the leaf that grew on tree, he felt himself under the necessity of obeying her. A cavern received them, in which, following his frightful guide, he for three days travelled in darkness, sometimes hearing the booming of a distant ocean, sometimes walking through rivers of blood, which crossed their subterranean path. At length they emerged into daylight, in a most beautiful orchard. Thomas, almost fainting for want of food, stretches out his hand towards the goodly fruit which hangs around him, but is forbidden by his conductress, who informs him these are the fatal apples which were the cause of the fall of man. He perceives also that his guide had no sooner entered this mysterious ground, and breathed its magic air, than she was revived in beauty, equipage, and splendour, as fair, or fairer, than he had first seen her on the mountain. She then commands him to lay his head upon her knee, and proceeds to explain to him the character of the country. “Yonder right-hand path,” she says, “conveys the spirits of the blessed to Paradise; yon downward and well-worn way leads sinful souls to the place of everlasting punishment; the third road, by yonder dark brake, conducts to the milder place of pain from which prayer and mass may release offenders. But see you yet a fourth road, sweeping along the plain to yonder splendid castle? Yonder is the road to Elfland, to which we are now bound. The lord of the castle is king of the country, and I am his queen. But, Thomas, I would rather be drawn with wild horses, than he should know what hath passed between you and me. Therefore, when we enter yonder castle, observe strict silence, and answer no question that is asked at you, and I will account for your silence by saying I took your speech when I brought you from middle earth.”
Thomas of Erceldoune, known as the Rhymer in Lauderdale, gained this title because he wrote a poetic romance about Tristrem and Yseult. It's notable for being the earliest known example of English verse. He lived during the reign of Alexander III of Scotland. Like many talented individuals of his time, Thomas was suspected of practicing magic. People also believed he had the gift of prophecy, which was attributed to elfin superstition: As True Thomas (we’ll refer to him this way from now on) lay on Huntly Bank, a spot on the slope of the Eildon Hills overlooking the famous Melrose Abbey, he saw a lady so stunning that he thought she must be the Virgin Mary. However, her appearance was more like that of an Amazon or forest goddess. Her horse was incredibly beautiful and spirited, adorned with thirty silver bells and nine, creating music with the wind as she rode. Her saddle was made of ivory, covered with goldsmith's work. Everything about her, from her stirrups to her dress, matched her extraordinary beauty and grandeur. The gorgeous huntress held a bow in her hand and had arrows at her belt. She led three greyhounds on leashes, while three scent hounds followed closely. She rejected Thomas’s attempts to honor her, shifting from humility to boldness. The lady warned him that if he pursued her affection, he would have to become her slave. Before their meeting ended, the beautiful lady transformed into the most hideous hag imaginable. One side of her was withered and wasted, as if by paralysis; one eye fell from her head; her once-silvery complexion turned a dull, leaden color. A witch from a poorhouse would have seemed like a goddess compared to the former beauty. Despite her ugliness, Thomas’s unorthodox desires made him subject to this hag, and when she instructed him to bid farewell to the sun and the trees, he felt compelled to obey her. They entered a cave, where, following his terrifying guide, he traveled in darkness for three days, hearing the distant roar of an ocean at times and occasionally walking through rivers of blood that crossed their underground path. Eventually, they emerged into daylight in a beautiful orchard. Nearly fainting from hunger, Thomas reached for the delightful fruit surrounding him, but his guide stopped him and warned that these were the forbidden apples that caused humanity's fall. He also noticed that as soon as she stepped into this enchanted land and breathed its magical air, she regained her beauty, attire, and splendor, looking as lovely or even lovelier than when he first saw her on the mountain. She then commanded him to rest his head on her knee and began to explain the nature of the land. “That path to the right,” she said, “leads the souls of the blessed to Paradise; the downward well-trodden road takes sinful souls to eternal damnation; the third path, through that dark thicket, leads to a milder place of torment from which prayer and mass can help the afflicted. But do you see a fourth path sweeping across the plain toward that splendid castle? That’s the route to Elfland, and that’s where we’re headed. The lord of the castle is king of this land, and I’m his queen. But, Thomas, I would rather be drawn by wild horses than let him know what has passed between us. So, when we enter the castle, you must remain completely silent and answer no questions at all. I will explain your silence by saying I took your voice when I brought you from the mortal world.”
Having thus instructed her lover, they journeyed on to the castle, and entering by the kitchen, found themselves in the midst of such a festive scene as might become the mansion of a great feudal lord or prince. Thirty carcases of deer were lying on the massive kitchen board, under the hands of numerous cooks, who toiled to cut them up and dress them, while the gigantic greyhounds which had taken the spoil lay lapping the blood, and enjoying the sight of the slain game. They came next to the royal hall, where the king received his loving consort without censure or suspicion. Knights and ladies, dancing by threes (reels perhaps), occupied the floor of the hall, and Thomas, the fatigues of his journey from the Eildon hills forgotten, went forward and joined in the revelry. After a period, however, which seemed to him a very short one, the queen spoke with him apart, and bade him prepare to return to his own country. “Now,” said the queen, “how long think you that you have been here?” “Certes, fair lady,” answered Thomas, “not above these seven days.” “You are deceived,” answered the queen, “you have been seven years in this castle; and it is full time you were gone. Know, Thomas, that the fiend of hell will come to this castle to-morrow to demand his tribute, and so handsome a man as you will attract his eye. For all the world would I not suffer you to be betrayed to such a fate; therefore up, and let us be going.” These terrible news reconciled Thomas to his departure from Elfin land, and the queen was not long in placing him upon Huntly bank, where the birds were singing. She took a tender leave of him, and to ensure his reputation, bestowed on him the tongue which could not lie. Thomas in vain objected to this inconvenient and involuntary adhesion to veracity, which would make him, as he thought, unfit for church or for market, for king’s court or for lady’s bower. But all his remonstrances were disregarded by the lady, and Thomas the Rhymer, whenever the discourse turned on the future, gained the credit of a prophet whether he would or not; for he could say nothing but what was sure to come to pass. It is plain that had Thomas been a legislator instead of a poet, we have here the story of Numa and Egeria. Thomas remained several years in his own tower near Erceldoune, and enjoyed the fame of his predictions, several of which are current among the country people to this day. At length, as the prophet was entertaining the Earl of March in his dwelling, a cry of astonishment arose in the village, on the appearance of a hart and hind,28 which left the forest and, contrary to their shy nature, came quietly onward, traversing the village towards the dwelling of Thomas. The prophet instantly rose from the board; and, acknowledging the prodigy as the summons of his fate, he accompanied the hart and hind into the forest, and though occasionally seen by individuals to whom he has chosen to show himself, has never again mixed familiarly with mankind.
Having instructed her lover, they continued their journey to the castle, entering through the kitchen. They found themselves in the middle of a festive scene befitting a great feudal lord or prince. Thirty deer carcasses lay on the large kitchen table, being prepared by numerous cooks who were busy cutting and dressing them, while the giant greyhounds that had brought down the game lapped up the blood and enjoyed the sight of their catch. Next, they went to the royal hall, where the king welcomed his beloved consort without any criticism or suspicion. Knights and ladies danced in groups of three, taking over the hall's floor, and Thomas, forgetting the fatigue from his journey from the Eildon Hills, joined in the festivities. After what felt like a very short time, the queen spoke with him privately and instructed him to prepare to return to his own country. “Now,” said the queen, “how long do you think you’ve been here?” “Certainly, fair lady,” replied Thomas, “not more than seven days.” “You are mistaken,” the queen said, “you have been here for seven years; it’s definitely time for you to leave. Know this, Thomas: the devil will come to this castle tomorrow to collect his due, and a handsome man like you will catch his attention. I absolutely will not let you be led to such a fate; so come on, let's go.” This frightening news made Thomas accept his departure from Elfin land, and the queen soon placed him on Huntly bank, where the birds were singing. She took a tender farewell of him and, to ensure his reputation, gifted him with the tongue that could not lie. Thomas objected in vain to this inconvenient truth-telling that he believed would make him unfit for church, market, king’s court, or lady’s bower. But the lady ignored all his protests, and Thomas the Rhymer, whether he wanted to or not, became known as a prophet whenever the topic turned to the future; for he could say nothing but what was certain to happen. It’s clear that if Thomas had been a lawmaker instead of a poet, we would be hearing the tale of Numa and Egeria. Thomas spent several years in his own tower near Erceldoune, enjoying the fame of his predictions, many of which are still known among the local people today. Eventually, while the prophet was entertaining the Earl of March in his home, a cry of astonishment arose in the village at the appearance of a stag and doe, which left the forest and, contrary to their timid nature, approached the village calmly, heading toward Thomas's dwelling. The prophet immediately got up from the table, recognizing the event as the call of his destiny. He followed the stag and doe into the forest, and although he was occasionally seen by those he chose to reveal himself to, he never again blended in with mankind.
28 (return)
[ This last circumstance
seems imitated from a passage in the “Life of Merlin,” by Jeffrey of
Monmouth. See Ellis’s “Ancient Romances,” vol. i. p. 73.]
28 (return)
[ This last situation appears to be drawn from a section in the “Life of Merlin,” by Geoffrey of Monmouth. See Ellis’s “Ancient Romances,” vol. i. p. 73.]
Thomas of Erceldoune, during his retirement, has been supposed, from time to time, to be levying forces to take the field in some crisis of his country’s fate. The story has often been told of a daring horse-jockey having sold a black horse to a man of venerable and antique appearance, who appointed the remarkable hillock upon Eildon hills, called the Lucken-hare, as the place where, at twelve o’clock at night, he should receive the price. He came, his money was paid in ancient coin, and he was invited by his customer to view his residence. The trader in horses followed his guide in the deepest astonishment through several long ranges of stalls, in each of which a horse stood motionless, while an armed warrior lay equally still at the charger’s feet. “All these men,” said the wizard in a whisper, “will awaken at the battle of Sheriffmoor.” At the extremity of this extraordinary depot hung a sword and a horn, which the prophet pointed out to the horse-dealer as containing the means of dissolving the spell. The man in confusion took the horn, and attempted to wind it. The horses instantly started in their stalls, stamped, and shook their bridles, the men arose and clashed their armour, and the mortal, terrified at the tumult he had excited, dropped the horn from his hand. A voice like that of a giant, louder even than the tumult around, pronounced these words:—
Thomas of Erceldoune, during his retirement, has been thought, from time to time, to be gathering forces to take action during a crucial moment in his country’s history. The tale has often been told about a bold horse trader who sold a black horse to a man with a distinguished and ancient look, who designated the notable hillock on the Eildon Hills, called the Lucken-hare, as the meeting point to receive payment at midnight. He arrived, money was exchanged in old coins, and his buyer invited him to see his home. The horse trader followed his guide in complete astonishment through several long rows of stalls, each containing a horse standing still, while an armed warrior lay equally motionless at the horse’s feet. “All these men,” the wizard whispered, “will wake up at the battle of Sheriffmoor.” At the end of this remarkable storage area hung a sword and a horn, which the seer indicated to the horse trader as the keys to breaking the spell. Confused, the man took the horn and tried to blow it. The horses immediately sprang to life in their stalls, stamped, and rattled their bridles, while the men rose and clashed their armor, causing the terrified trader to drop the horn. A voice like that of a giant, louder even than the chaos around him, proclaimed these words:—
“Woe to the coward that ever he was born, That did not draw the sword before he blew the horn!”
“Shame on the coward who was ever born, Who didn’t take up the sword before blowing the horn!”
A whirlwind expelled the horse-dealer from the cavern, the entrance to which he could never again find. A moral might be perhaps extracted from the legend—namely, that it is best to be armed against danger before bidding it defiance. But it is a circumstance worth notice, that although this edition of the tale is limited to the year 1715, by the very mention of the Sheriffmoor, yet a similar story appears to have been current during the reign of Queen Elizabeth, which is given by Reginald Scot. The narrative is edifying as peculiarly illustrative of the mode of marring a curious tale in telling it, which was one of the virtues professed by Caius when he hired himself to King Lear. Reginald Scot, incredulous on the subject of witchcraft, seems to have given some weight to the belief of those who thought that the spirits of famous men do, after death, take up some particular habitations near cities, towns, and countries, and act as tutelary and guardian spirits to the places which they loved while in the flesh.
A whirlwind threw the horse dealer out of the cave, the entrance to which he would never find again. You might take a lesson from this story—that it's better to be prepared for danger before you challenge it. It's also interesting to note that while this version of the tale is limited to the year 1715, simply by mentioning Sheriffmoor, a similar story seems to have existed during Queen Elizabeth's reign, which Reginald Scot recounts. This narrative is enlightening as it illustrates how a fascinating tale can be ruined in the telling, which was one of the skills Caius claimed when he worked for King Lear. Reginald Scot, skeptical about witchcraft, appears to have acknowledged the belief of those who thought that the spirits of famous people do, after they die, inhabit specific places near cities, towns, and regions, acting as protective and guardian spirits for the places they cherished while alive.
“But more particularly to illustrate this conjecture,” says he, “I could name a person who hath lately appeared thrice since his decease, at least some ghostly being or other that calls itself by the name of such a person who was dead above a hundred years ago, and was in his lifetime accounted as a prophet or predicter by the assistance of sublunary spirits; and now, at his appearance, did also give strange predictions respecting famine and plenty, war and bloodshed, and the end of the world. By the information of the person that had communication with him, the last of his appearances was in the following manner:—“I had been,” said he, “to sell a horse at the next market town, but not attaining my price, as I returned home by the way I met this man, who began to be familiar with me, asking what news, and how affairs moved through the country. I answered as I thought fit; withal, I told him of my horse, whom he began to cheapen, and proceeded with me so far that the price was agreed upon. So he turned back with me, and told me that if I would go along with him I should receive my money. On our way we went, I upon my horse, and he on another milk-white beast After much travel I asked him where he dwelt and what his name was. He told me that his dwelling was a mile off, at a place called Farran, of which place I had never heard, though I knew all the country round about.29 He also told me that he himself was that person of the family of Learmonths30 so much spoken of as a prophet. At which I began to be somewhat fearful, perceiving we were on a road which I never had been on before, which increased my fear and amazement more. Well, on we went till he brought me under ground, I knew not how, into the presence of a beautiful woman, who paid the money without a word speaking. He conducted me out again through a large and long entry, where I saw above six hundred men in armour laid prostrate on the ground as if asleep. At last I found myself in the open field by the help of the moonlight, in the very place where I first met him, and made a shift to get home by three in the morning. But the money I had received was just double of what I esteemed it when the woman paid me, of which at this instant I have several pieces to show, consisting of ninepennies, thirteen pence-halfpennies,” &c.31
“But to specifically illustrate this theory,” he says, “I could name someone who has recently appeared three times since his death, or at least some ghostly figure that claims to be that person who died over a hundred years ago. During his life, he was seen as a prophet or predictor with the help of earthly spirits; and now, when he appears, he gives strange predictions about famine and abundance, war and bloodshed, and the end of the world. According to the person who communicated with him, his last appearance happened like this: ‘I had been,’ he said, ‘to sell a horse at the nearby market town, but not getting my price, as I was heading home, I encountered this man who became friendly with me, asking about the news and how things were going in the country. I answered as I thought best; I even mentioned my horse, which he began to haggle about, and we agreed on a price. He decided to turn back with me and told me that if I went along with him, I would get my money. So, we traveled on, me on my horse and he on another milk-white beast. After quite a while, I asked him where he lived and what his name was. He told me that he lived a mile away, at a place called Farran, a place I had never heard of, even though I knew all the surrounding countryside.29 He also mentioned that he was from the Learmonths family30, which is often talked about as a prophet. This made me a bit afraid, as I realized we were on a road I had never traveled before, which only increased my fear and amazement. We continued until he brought me underground, somehow, into the presence of a beautiful woman, who paid the money without saying a word. He led me out again through a long and wide passage, where I saw over six hundred armed men lying on the ground as if asleep. Finally, I found myself in the open field with the help of the moonlight, exactly where I first met him, and I managed to get home by three in the morning. But the money I received was exactly double what I thought it was when the woman paid me, and I currently have several coins to show, including ninepennies, thirteen pence-halfpennies,” &c.31
29 (return)
[ In this the author is in
the same ignorance as his namesake Reginald, though having at least as
many opportunities of information.]
29 (return)
[ In this, the author shares the same ignorance as his namesake Reginald, even though he has at least as many chances to gain knowledge.]
30 (return)
[ In popular tradition, the
name of Thomas the Rhymer was always averred to be Learmonth. though he
neither uses it himself, nor is described by his son other than Le Rymour.
The Learmonths of Dairsie, in Fife, claimed descent from the prophet.]
30 (return)
[ In popular tradition, Thomas the Rhymer was always said to be Learmonth, even though he never used that name himself, nor is he referred to by his son as anything other than Le Rymour. The Learmonths of Dairsie, in Fife, claimed to be descendants of the prophet.]
31 (return)
[ “Discourse of Devils and
Spirits appended to the Discovery of Witchcraft,” by Reginald Scot, Esq.,
book ii. chap. 3, sec. 10.]
31 (return)
[ “Discourse of Devils and Spirits attached to the Discovery of Witchcraft,” by Reginald Scot, Esq., book ii. chap. 3, sec. 10.]
It is a great pity that this horse-dealer, having specimens of the fairy coin, of a quality more permanent than usual, had not favoured us with an account of an impress so valuable to medalists. It is not the less edifying, as we are deprived of the more picturesque parts of the story, to learn that Thomas’s payment was as faithful as his prophecies. The beautiful lady who bore the purse must have been undoubtedly the Fairy Queen, whose affection, though, like that of his own heroine Yseult, we cannot term it altogether laudable, seems yet to have borne a faithful and firm character.
It's a real shame that this horse dealer, who had samples of the fairy coin that were more durable than usual, didn't share an account of such a valuable impression for collectors. Even though we're missing out on the more colorful parts of the story, it's still enlightening to find out that Thomas’s payment was just as reliable as his predictions. The gorgeous lady who carried the purse must have surely been the Fairy Queen, whose love, although not entirely commendable like his own heroine Yseult, seems to have been loyal and strong.
I have dwelt at some length on the story of Thomas the Rhymer, as the oldest tradition of the kind which has reached us in detail, and as pretending to show the fate of the first Scottish poet, whose existence, and its date, are established both by history and records; and who, if we consider him as writing in the Anglo-Norman language, was certainly one among the earliest of its versifiers. But the legend is still more curious, from its being the first and most distinguished instance of a man alleged to have obtained supernatural knowledge by means of the fairies.
I've spent a good amount of time discussing the story of Thomas the Rhymer, as it is the oldest detailed tradition we have and claims to reveal the fate of the first Scottish poet, whose existence and timeline are confirmed by both history and records. If we view him as a writer in the Anglo-Norman language, he was undoubtedly one of its earliest poets. However, the legend is even more fascinating because it’s the first and most notable example of a man said to have gained supernatural knowledge through the fairies.
Whence or how this singular community derived their more common popular name, we may say has not as yet been very clearly established. It is the opinion of the learned that the Persian word Peri, expressing an unearthly being, of a species very similar, will afford the best derivation, if we suppose it to have reached Europe through the medium of the Arabians, in whose alphabet the letter P does not exist, so that they pronounce the word Feri instead of Peri. Still there is something uncertain in this etymology. We hesitate to ascribe either to the Persians or the Arabians the distinguishing name of an ideal commonwealth, the notion of which they certainly did not contribute to us. Some are, therefore, tempted to suppose that the elves may have obtained their most frequent name from their being par excellence a fair or comely people, a quality which they affected on all occasions; while the superstition of the Scottish was likely enough to give them a name which might propitiate the vanity for which they deemed the race remarkable; just as, in other instances, they called the fays “men of peace,” “good neighbours,” and by other titles of the like import. It must be owned, at the same time, that the words fay and fairy may have been mere adoptions of the French fee and feerie, though these terms, on the other side of the Channel, have reference to a class of spirits corresponding, not to our fairies, but with the far different Fata of the Italians. But this is a question which we willingly leave for the decision of better etymologists than ourselves.
Where this unique community got their more common popular name is still not very clearly established. Many scholars believe that the Persian word "Peri," which refers to an otherworldly being, is the best origin, assuming it made its way to Europe through the Arabs, who don’t have the letter P in their alphabet and pronounce it as "Feri" instead. However, there is still some uncertainty about this etymology. We’re hesitant to attribute the distinctive name of an ideal society to the Persians or Arabs, as they certainly didn’t contribute this concept to us. Therefore, some people suggest that the elves may have gotten their most common name from being, by definition, a "fair" or "comely" people, a trait they emphasized at all times; while Scottish superstition might have given them a name that flattered the vanity for which they considered the race noteworthy, similar to how they referred to fairies as "men of peace," "good neighbors," and other titles with similar meanings. At the same time, it's worth mentioning that the words "fay" and "fairy" might simply be adaptations of the French "fee" and "feerie," even though, on the other side of the channel, those terms refer to a class of spirits that don’t correspond to our fairies but instead to the very different Fata of the Italians. However, this is a question we willingly leave to more knowledgeable etymologists than ourselves.
LETTER V.
Those who dealt in fortune-telling, mystical cures by charms, and the like, often claimed an intercourse with Fairyland—Hudhart or Hudikin—Pitcairn’s “Scottish Criminal Trials”—Story of Bessie Dunlop and her Adviser—Her Practice of Medicine—And of Discovery of Theft—Account of her Familiar, Thome Reid—Trial of Alison Pearson—Account of her Familiar, William Sympson—Trial of the Lady Fowlis, and of Hector Munro, her Stepson—Extraordinary species of Charm used by the latter—Confession of John Stewart, a Juggler, of his Intercourse with the Fairies—Trial and Confession of Isobel Gowdie—Use of Elf-arrow Heads—Parish of Aberfoyle—Mr. Kirke, the Minister of Aberfoyle’s Work on Fairy Superstitions—He is himself taken to Fairyland—Dr. Grahame’s interesting Work, and his Information on Fairy Superstitions—Story of a Female in East Lothian carried off by the Fairies—Another instance from Pennant.
Those who practiced fortune-telling, mystical remedies with charms, and similar activities often claimed to have connections with Fairyland—Hudhart or Hudikin—Pitcairn’s “Scottish Criminal Trials”—Story of Bessie Dunlop and her Advisor—Her Medical Practice—And of the Discovery of Theft—Account of her Familiar, Thome Reid—Trial of Alison Pearson—Account of her Familiar, William Sympson—Trial of Lady Fowlis and her Stepson, Hector Munro—Extraordinary type of Charm used by the latter—Confession of John Stewart, a Juggler, regarding his connection with the Fairies—Trial and Confession of Isobel Gowdie—Use of Elf-arrow Heads—Parish of Aberfoyle—Mr. Kirke, the Minister of Aberfoyle’s Work on Fairy Superstitions—He himself is taken to Fairyland—Dr. Grahame’s intriguing Work and his Insights on Fairy Superstitions—Story of a Woman in East Lothian taken by the Fairies—Another example from Pennant.
To return to Thomas the Rhymer, with an account of whose legend I concluded last letter, it would seem that the example which it afforded of obtaining the gift of prescience, and other supernatural powers, by means of the fairy people, became the common apology of those who attempted to cure diseases, to tell fortunes, to revenge injuries, or to engage in traffic with the invisible world, for the purpose of satisfying their own wishes, curiosity, or revenge, or those of others. Those who practised the petty arts of deception in such mystic cases, being naturally desirous to screen their own impostures, were willing to be supposed to derive from the fairies, or from mortals transported to fairyland the power necessary to effect the displays of art which they pretended to exhibit. A confession of direct communication and league with Satan, though the accused were too frequently compelled by torture to admit and avow such horrors, might, the poor wretches hoped, be avoided by the avowal of a less disgusting intercourse with sublunary spirits, a race which might be described by negatives, being neither angels, devils, nor the souls of deceased men; nor would it, they might flatter themselves, be considered as any criminal alliance, that they held communion with a race not properly hostile to man, and willing, on certain conditions, to be useful and friendly to him. Such an intercourse was certainly far short of the witch’s renouncing her salvation, delivering herself personally to the devil, and at once ensuring condemnation in this world, together with the like doom in the next.
To return to Thomas the Rhymer, whose legend I discussed in my last letter, it seems that the example he set of gaining the gift of foresight and other supernatural abilities through the fairy folk became a common excuse for those who tried to cure illnesses, tell fortunes, seek revenge, or interact with the unseen world to satisfy their own desires, curiosity, or the wishes of others. Those who practiced these minor deceptive arts naturally wanted to hide their own dishonesty, so they preferred to be seen as deriving their powers from fairies or from people taken to fairyland, claiming it was necessary to perform the tricks they pretended to have. Admitting to direct communication and a pact with Satan, although some were often forced by torture to confess such horrors, might have been avoided by claiming a less revolting connection with earthly spirits, which could be described by what they were not: neither angels nor devils, nor the souls of the dead; they might have comforted themselves in thinking that having interactions with a non-hostile group willing to be helpful on certain terms was not criminal. Such communication was certainly a far cry from a witch renouncing her salvation, handing herself over to the devil, and effectively sealing her damnation in this world and the next.
Accordingly, the credulous, who, in search of health, knowledge, greatness, or moved by any of the numberless causes for which men seek to look into futurity, were anxious to obtain superhuman assistance, as well as the numbers who had it in view to dupe such willing clients, became both cheated and cheaters, alike anxious to establish the possibility of a harmless process of research into futurity, for laudable, or at least innocent objects, as healing diseases and the like; in short, of the existence of white magic, as it was called, in opposition to that black art exclusively and directly derived from intercourse with Satan. Some endeavoured to predict a man’s fortune in marriage or his success in life by the aspect of the stars; others pretended to possess spells, by which they could reduce and compel an elementary spirit to enter within a stone, a looking-glass, or some other local place of abode, and confine her there by the power of an especial charm, conjuring her to abide and answer the questions of her master. Of these we shall afterwards say something; but the species of evasion now under our investigation is that of the fanatics or impostors who pretended to draw information from the equivocal spirits called fairies; and the number of instances before us is so great as induces us to believe that the pretence of communicating with Elfland, and not with the actual demon, was the manner in which the persons accused of witchcraft most frequently endeavoured to excuse themselves, or at least to alleviate the charges brought against them of practising sorcery. But the Scottish law did not acquit those who accomplished even praiseworthy actions, such as remarkable cures by mysterious remedies; and the proprietor of a patent medicine who should in those days have attested his having wrought such miracles as we see sometimes advertised, might perhaps have forfeited his life before he established the reputation of his drop, elixir, or pill.
So, the gullible people, who were looking for health, knowledge, greatness, or motivated by any of the countless reasons why people want to see into the future, were eager to get help beyond human capacity. At the same time, there were those who aimed to deceive these willing clients. Both sides became cheaters, trying to prove that there was a harmless way to explore the future for good, or at least innocent, purposes like healing diseases. In short, they claimed there was such a thing as white magic, in contrast to the black magic that was mainly and directly linked to dealings with Satan. Some tried to predict a person's future in marriage or success in life based on the stars' positions; others claimed they had spells that allowed them to trap and control a spirit, making it enter a stone, a mirror, or another location, and confine it there with a special charm, forcing it to stay and answer their questions. We will touch on those later, but right now we’re looking at the fanatics or frauds who claimed to get information from the ambiguous spirits known as fairies. The many examples we have lead us to believe that pretending to connect with Elfland, rather than the actual demon, was the most common defense for those accused of witchcraft, helping them to avoid or lessen the accusations of practicing sorcery. However, Scottish law did not pardon even those who performed noteworthy acts, like impressive cures with mysterious remedies; and someone selling a patent medicine at that time might have risked their life before proving the effectiveness of their drops, elixirs, or pills.
Sometimes the soothsayers, who pretended to act on this information from sublunary spirits, soared to higher matters than the practice of physic, and interfered in the fate of nations. When James I. was murdered at Perth in 1437, a Highland woman prophesied the course and purpose of the conspiracy, and had she been listened to, it might have been disconcerted. Being asked her source of knowledge, she answered Hudhart had told her; which might either be the same with Hudkin, a Dutch spirit somewhat similar to Friar Rush or Robin Goodfellow,32 or with the red-capped demon so powerful in the case of Lord Soulis, and other wizards, to whom the Scots assigned rather more serious influence.
Sometimes the fortune tellers, who claimed to be guided by information from earthly spirits, delved into topics far beyond medicine and got involved in national affairs. When James I was killed in Perth in 1437, a Highland woman predicted the details and intent of the conspiracy, and if people had paid attention to her, it might have been thwarted. When she was asked how she knew, she said a spirit named Hudhart had told her; this could either refer to Hudkin, a Dutch spirit similar to Friar Rush or Robin Goodfellow, or to the red-capped demon known for his strong influence over Lord Soulis and other sorcerers, whom the Scots believed had a much more serious impact.
32 (return)
[ Hudkin is a very familiar
devil, who will do nobody hurt, except he receive injury; but he cannot
abide that, nor yet be mocked. He talketh with men friendly, sometimes
visibly, sometimes invisibly. There go as many tales upon this Hudkin in
some parts of Germany as there did in England on Robin Goodfellow.—“Discourse
concerning Devils,” annexed to “The Discovery of Witchcraft,” by Reginald
Scot, book i. chap. 21.]
32 (return)
[ Hudkin is a well-known trickster who doesn't harm anyone unless he's provoked; he can't stand being harmed or mocked. He interacts with people in a friendly manner, sometimes appearing visibly and other times not. There are as many stories about this Hudkin in certain parts of Germany as there were in England about Robin Goodfellow.—“Discourse concerning Devils,” annexed to “The Discovery of Witchcraft,” by Reginald Scot, book i. chap. 21.]
The most special account which I have found of the intercourse between Fairyland and a female professing to have some influence in that court, combined with a strong desire to be useful to the distressed of both sexes, occurs in the early part of a work to which I have been exceedingly obliged in the present and other publications.33 The details of the evidence, which consists chiefly of the unfortunate woman’s own confession, are more full than usual, and comprehend some curious particulars. To spare technical repetitions, I must endeavour to select the principal facts in evidence in detail, so far as they bear upon the present subject.
The most unique account I've come across regarding the interaction between Fairyland and a woman claiming to have some influence there, along with a strong desire to help those in distress from both genders, appears early in a work for which I am very grateful in this and other publications.33 The details of the evidence, mostly consisting of the unfortunate woman’s own confession, are more comprehensive than usual and include some intriguing specifics. To avoid unnecessary repetition, I will try to outline the main facts in detail as they relate to the current topic.
33 (return)
[ The curious collection of
trials, from “The Criminal Records of Scotland,” now in the course of
publication, by Robert Pitcairn, Esq., affords so singular a picture of
the manners and habits of our ancestors, while yet a semibarbarous people,
that it is equally worth the attention of the historian, the antiquary,
the philosopher, and the poet.]
33 (return)
[ The intriguing collection of trials from “The Criminal Records of Scotland,” currently being published by Robert Pitcairn, Esq., provides such a unique glimpse into the customs and lifestyles of our ancestors, who were still somewhat uncivilized, that it deserves the interest of historians, antiquarians, philosophers, and poets alike.]
On the 8th November, 1576, Elizabeth or Bessie Dunlop, spouse to Andro Jak, in Lyne, in the Barony of Dalry, Ayrshire, was accused of sorcery and witchcraft and abuse of the people. Her answers to the interrogatories of the judges or prosecutors ran thus: It being required of her by what art she could tell of lost goods or prophesy the event of illness, she replied that of herself she had no knowledge or science of such matters, but that when questions were asked at her concerning such matters, she was in the habit of applying to one Thome Reid, who died at the battle of Pinkie (10th September, 1547), as he himself affirmed, and who resolved her any questions which she asked at him. This person she described as a respectable elderly-looking man, grey-bearded, and wearing a grey coat, with Lombard sleeves of the auld fashion. A pair of grey breeches and white stockings gartered above the knee, a black bonnet on his head, close behind and plain before, with silken laces drawn through the lips thereof, and a white wand in his hand, completed the description of what we may suppose a respectable-looking man of the province and period. Being demanded concerning her first interview with this mysterious Thome Reid, she gave rather an affecting account of the disasters with which she was then afflicted, and a sense of which perhaps aided to conjure up the imaginary counsellor. She was walking between her own house and the yard of Monkcastle, driving her cows to the common pasture, and making heavy moan with herself, weeping bitterly for her cow that was dead, her husband and child that were sick of the land-ill (some contagious sickness of the time), while she herself was in a very infirm state, having lately borne a child. On this occasion she met Thome Reid for the first time, who saluted her courteously, which she returned. “Sancta Maria, Bessie!” said the apparition, “why must thou make such dole and weeping for any earthly thing?” “Have I not reason for great sorrow,” said she, “since our property is going to destruction, my husband is on the point of death, my baby will not live, and I am myself at a weak point? Have I not cause to have a sore heart?” “Bessie,” answered the spirit, “thou hast displeased God in asking something that thou should not, and I counsel you to amend your fault. I tell thee, thy child shall die ere thou get home; thy two sheep shall also die; but thy husband shall recover, and be as well and feir as ever he was.” The good woman was something comforted to hear that her husband was to be spared in such her general calamity, but was rather alarmed to see her ghostly counsellor pass from her and disappear through a hole in the garden wall, seemingly too narrow to admit of any living person passing through it. Another time he met her at the Thorn of Dawmstarnik, and showed his ultimate purpose by offering her plenty of every thing if she would but deny Christendom and the faith she took at the font-stone. She answered, that rather than do that she would be torn at horses’ heels, but that she would be conformable to his advice in less matters. He parted with her in some displeasure. Shortly afterwards he appeared in her own house about noon, which was at the time occupied by her husband and three tailors. But neither Andrew Jak nor the three tailors were sensible of the presence of the phantom warrior who was slain at Pinkie; so that, without attracting their observation, he led out the good-wife to the end of the house near the kiln. Here he showed her a company of eight women and four men. The women were busked in their plaids, and very seemly. The strangers saluted her, and said, “Welcome, Bessie; wilt thou go with us?” But Bessie was silent, as Thome Reid had previously recommended. After this she saw their lips move, but did not understand what they said; and in a short time they removed from thence with a hideous ugly howling sound, like that of a hurricane. Thome Reid then acquainted her that these were the good wights (fairies) dwelling in the court of Elfland, who came to invite her to go thither with them. Bessie answered that, before she went that road, it would require some consideration. Thome answered, “Seest thou not me both meat-worth, clothes-worth, and well enough in person?” and engaged she should be easier than ever she was. But she replied, she dwelt with her husband and children, and would not leave them; to which Thome Reid replied, in very ill-humour, that if such were her sentiments, she would get little good of him.
On November 8, 1576, Elizabeth, or Bessie Dunlop, the wife of Andro Jak, from Lyne in the Barony of Dalry, Ayrshire, was accused of sorcery, witchcraft, and harming people. When questioned by the judges or prosecutors about how she could know about lost items or predict the outcomes of illnesses, she stated that she had no personal knowledge or skill in such matters. Instead, when asked about these topics, she would consult a man named Thome Reid, who had died in the battle of Pinkie on September 10, 1547. He would answer any questions she posed to him. She described him as a respectable-looking older man with a grey beard, wearing a grey coat with old-fashioned Lombard sleeves, grey breeches, and white stockings gartered above the knee, and a black bonnet that was plain in front but had silken laces threaded through it. He also carried a white wand, perfectly embodying the image of a dignified man from that time and place. When asked about her first encounter with this mysterious Thome Reid, she recounted how she was affected by her personal misfortunes, which may have led her to imagine his presence. She was walking between her house and the yard of Monkcastle, driving her cows to the pasture while mourning deeply for her dead cow, her sick husband, and her ill child afflicted by a contagious illness, all while she was also weak after recently giving birth. During this time, she met Thome Reid for the first time, who greeted her kindly, and she returned the greeting. “Holy Mary, Bessie!” said the apparition, “why must you grieve and cry over any worldly matter?” “Do I not have cause for great sorrow?” she replied, “since our property is being lost, my husband is on the brink of death, my baby won't survive, and I am in such a weak state? Should I not have a heavy heart?” “Bessie,” the spirit replied, “you have displeased God by asking things you shouldn’t, and I advise you to correct your mistake. I tell you, your child will die before you return home; your two sheep will also die; but your husband will recover and be as well as he ever was.” The kind woman felt somewhat comforted to learn her husband would be spared amid her general misfortune but was alarmed when she saw her ghostly advisor leave her and vanish through a hole in the garden wall that seemed too narrow for any living person to pass through. Another time, he met her at the Thorn of Dawmstarnik and revealed his true intentions by offering her plenty of everything if she would just renounce Christianity and the faith she received at baptism. She replied that she would prefer to be torn apart by horses than do that, but she would follow his advice on lesser matters. He parted from her in some displeasure. Shortly afterward, he appeared in her house around noon, where her husband and three tailors were present. However, neither Andrew Jak nor the three tailors sensed the presence of the phantom warrior who had died at Pinkie, so without attracting their attention, he led the good wife to the end of the house near the kiln. Here, he showed her a group of eight women and four men. The women were dressed in their plaids, looking very proper. The strangers greeted her, saying, “Welcome, Bessie; will you come with us?” But Bessie stayed silent, as Thome Reid had previously advised. Afterward, she saw their lips moving but could not understand what they were saying; soon after, they left with a terrible howling sound like a hurricane. Thome Reid then informed her that these were the good folk (fairies) living in the court of Elfland, who came to invite her to join them. Bessie replied that before she took that path, she would need to think about it. Thome responded, “Don’t you see me as worthy enough for food, clothing, and being well in appearance?” and insisted she would be better off than ever before. But she replied that she lived with her husband and children and wouldn’t leave them; to which Thome Reid retorted, in a very bad mood, that if that was her attitude, she would gain little from him.
Although they thus disagreed on the principal object of Thome Reid’s visits, Bessie Dunlop affirmed he continued to come to her frequently, and assist her with his counsel; and that if any one consulted her about the ailments of human beings or of cattle, or the recovery of things lost and stolen, she was, by the advice of Thome Reid, always able to answer the querists. She was also taught by her (literally ghostly) adviser how to watch the operation of the ointments he gave her, and to presage from them the recovery or death of the patient. She said Thome gave her herbs with his own hand, with which she cured John Jack’s bairn and Wilson’s of the Townhead. She also was helpful to a waiting-woman of the young Lady Stanlie, daughter of the Lady Johnstone, whose disease, according to the opinion of the infallible Thome Reid, was “a cauld blood that came about her heart,” and frequently caused her to swoon away. For this Thome mixed a remedy as generous as the balm of Gilead itself. It was composed of the most potent ale, concocted with spices and a little white sugar, to be drunk every morning before taking food. For these prescriptions Bessie Dunlop’s fee was a peck of meal and some cheese. The young woman recovered. But the poor old Lady Kilbowie could get no help for her leg, which had been crooked for years; for Thome Reid said the marrow of the limb was perished and the blood benumbed, so that she would never recover, and if she sought further assistance, it would be the worse for her. These opinions indicate common sense and prudence at least, whether we consider them as originating with the umquhile Thome Reid, or with the culprit whom he patronized. The judgments given in the case of stolen goods were also well chosen; for though they seldom led to recovering the property, they generally alleged such satisfactory reasons for its not being found as effectually to cover the credit of the prophetess. Thus Hugh Scott’s cloak could not be returned, because the thieves had gained time to make it into a kirtle. James Jamieson and James Baird would, by her advice, have recovered their plough-irons, which had been stolen, had it not been the will of fate that William Dougal, sheriff’s officer, one of the parties searching for them, should accept a bribe of three pounds not to find them. In short, although she lost a lace which Thome Reid gave her out of his own hand, which, tied round women in childbirth, had the power of helping their delivery, Bessy Dunlop’s profession of a wise woman seems to have flourished indifferently well till it drew the evil eye of the law upon her.
Although they disagreed on the main reason for Thome Reid’s visits, Bessie Dunlop affirmed that he continued to come to her often and help her with his advice. Whenever someone consulted her about the ailments of people or livestock, or about recovering lost or stolen items, she was always able to provide answers, thanks to Thome Reid’s guidance. She also learned from her (literally ghostly) advisor how to monitor the effects of the ointments he gave her, allowing her to predict whether the patient would recover or die. She stated that Thome personally gave her herbs, which she used to heal John Jack’s child and Wilson’s from Townhead. Additionally, she assisted a waiting-maid for the young Lady Stanlie, daughter of Lady Johnstone, whose illness, according to the infallible Thome Reid, was “a cold blood surrounding her heart,” causing her to frequently faint. To treat this, Thome mixed a remedy as effective as the balm of Gilead itself. It was made from strong ale, mixed with spices and a little white sugar, to be consumed every morning before eating. For these treatments, Bessie Dunlop’s payment was a peck of meal and some cheese. The young woman recovered. However, the poor old Lady Kilbowie received no help for her leg, which had been crooked for years; Thome Reid claimed that the marrow in the limb had perished and the blood was numb, so she would never recover, warning that seeking further assistance would make things worse for her. These opinions reflect at least some common sense and caution, whether we attribute them to the late Thome Reid or the one he assisted. The judgments about stolen items were also cleverly chosen; while they rarely resulted in recovering the property, they usually provided such satisfactory explanations for its absence that they effectively preserved the reputation of the prophetess. For instance, Hugh Scott’s cloak couldn’t be returned because the thieves had taken the time to turn it into a kirtle. James Jamieson and James Baird would have recovered their stolen plough-irons based on her advice, had it not been for fate intervening, as William Dougal, a sheriff’s officer searching for them, accepted a bribe of three pounds not to find them. In short, even though she lost a lace that Thome Reid personally gave her, which, when tied around women in childbirth, had the power to assist their delivery, Bessie Dunlop’s practice as a wise woman seemed to thrive until it attracted the unwanted attention of the law.
More minutely pressed upon the subject of her familiar, she said she had never known him while among the living, but was aware that the person so calling himself was one who had, in his lifetime, actually been known in middle earth as Thome Reid, officer to the Laird of Blair, and who died at Pinkie. Of this she was made certain, because he sent her on errands to his son, who had succeeded in his office, and to others his relatives, whom he named, and commanded them to amend certain trespasses which he had done while alive, furnishing her with sure tokens by which they should know that it was he who had sent her. One of these errands was somewhat remarkable. She was to remind a neighbour of some particular which she was to recall to his memory by the token that Thome Reid and he had set out together to go to the battle which took place on the Black Saturday; that the person to whom the message was sent was inclined rather to move in a different direction, but that Thome Reid heartened him to pursue his journey, and brought him to the Kirk of Dalry, where he bought a parcel of figs, and made a present of them to his companion, tying them in his handkerchief; after which they kept company till they came to the field upon the fatal Black Saturday, as the battle of Pinkie was long called.
Pressed further about her familiar, she said she had never known him while he was alive, but she knew that the person calling himself that was someone who had been known in the living world as Thome Reid, an officer to the Laird of Blair, who died at Pinkie. She was sure of this because he sent her on errands to his son, who took over his position, and to other relatives he named, instructing them to make amends for certain wrongs he had committed while alive, providing her with specific tokens for them to recognize that it was he who sent her. One of these errands was quite notable. She was to remind a neighbor of a specific detail that she should bring to his memory by mentioning that Thome Reid and he had set out together to go to the battle that happened on Black Saturday; that the person receiving the message was actually more inclined to go in a different direction, but Thome Reid encouraged him to continue on, and brought him to the Kirk of Dalry, where he bought a bunch of figs and gifted them to his companion, tying them up in his handkerchief; after which they stayed together until they arrived at the battlefield on the fateful Black Saturday, as the battle of Pinkie came to be known.
Of Thome’s other habits, she said that he always behaved with the strictest propriety, only that he pressed her to go to Elfland with him, and took hold of her apron as if to pull her along. Again, she said she had seen him in public places, both in the churchyard at Dalry and on the street of Edinburgh, where he walked about among other people, and handled goods that were exposed to sale, without attracting any notice. She herself did not then speak to him, for it was his command that, upon such occasions, she should never address him unless he spoke first to her. In his theological opinions, Mr. Reid appeared to lean to the Church of Rome, which, indeed, was most indulgent to the fairy folk. He said that the new law, i.e., the Reformation, was not good, and that the old faith should return again, but not exactly as it had been before. Being questioned why this visionary sage attached himself to her more than to others, the accused person replied, that when she was confined in childbirth of one of her boys, a stout woman came into her hut, and sat down on a bench by her bed, like a mere earthly gossip; that she demanded a drink, and was accommodated accordingly; and thereafter told the invalid that the child should die, but that her husband, who was then ailing, should recover. This visit seems to have been previous to her meeting Thome Reid near Monkcastle garden, for that worthy explained to her that her stout visitant was Queen of Fairies, and that he had since attended her by the express command of that lady, his queen and mistress. This reminds us of the extreme doting attachment which the Queen of the Fairies is represented to have taken for Dapper in “The Alchemist.” Thome Reid attended her, it would seem, on being summoned thrice, and appeared to her very often within four years. He often requested her to go with him on his return to Fairyland, and when she refused, he shook his head, and said she would repent it.
Of Thome’s other habits, she mentioned that he always acted with the utmost propriety, except that he urged her to go to Elfland with him and grabbed her apron as if to pull her along. She noted that she had seen him in public places, both in the churchyard at Dalry and on the streets of Edinburgh, where he walked among others and handled goods for sale without drawing any attention. She herself didn’t speak to him at those times, because he insisted that she should never address him unless he spoke to her first. In terms of his theological views, Mr. Reid seemed to favor the Church of Rome, which was notably lenient towards fairy folk. He stated that the new law, meaning the Reformation, was not good, and that the old faith should return, but not exactly as it had been before. When asked why this dreamy sage was more attached to her than to anyone else, she replied that when she was confined during childbirth for one of her boys, a hefty woman had entered her hut, sat on a bench by her bed like a typical neighbor, asked for a drink, and was given one. This woman then told her that the child would die, but that her husband, who was then sick, would recover. This visit seemed to have happened before her encounter with Thome Reid near Monkcastle garden, as he later explained to her that her stout visitor was the Queen of Fairies and that he had been attending her on the direct orders of that lady, his queen and mistress. This is reminiscent of the intense affection the Queen of the Fairies is portrayed as having for Dapper in “The Alchemist.” Thome Reid, it seems, attended her after being summoned three times and appeared to her frequently over the next four years. He often asked her to accompany him back to Fairyland, and when she declined, he shook his head and warned that she would regret it.
If the delicacy of the reader’s imagination be a little hurt at imagining the elegant Titania in the disguise of a stout woman, a heavy burden for a clumsy bench, drinking what Christopher Sly would have called very sufficient small-beer with a peasant’s wife, the following description of the fairy host may come more near the idea he has formed of that invisible company:—Bessie Dunlop declared that as she went to tether her nag by the side of Restalrig Loch (Lochend, near the eastern port of Edinburgh), she heard a tremendous sound of a body of riders rushing past her with such a noise as if heaven and earth would come together; that the sound swept past her and seemed to rush into the lake with a hideous rumbling noise. All this while she saw nothing; but Thome Reid showed her that the noise was occasioned by the wights, who were performing one of their cavalcades upon earth.
If the reader’s imagination is a bit strained at picturing the graceful Titania as a stout woman, awkwardly perched on a clumsy bench, drinking what Christopher Sly would have called very ordinary small beer with a peasant’s wife, the following description of the fairy host might align more closely with the image they have of that unseen group:—Bessie Dunlop stated that as she went to tie up her horse by the side of Restalrig Loch (Lochend, near the eastern port of Edinburgh), she heard a loud noise from a group of riders rushing past her, sounding as if heaven and earth were colliding; the noise swept by her and seemed to plunge into the lake with a terrifying rumble. Throughout all of this, she saw nothing; but Thome Reid explained that the noise was caused by the wights, who were having one of their parades on earth.
The intervention of Thome Reid as a partner in her trade of petty sorcery did not avail poor Bessie Dunlop, although his affection to her was apparently entirely platonic—the greatest familiarity on which he ventured was taking hold of her gown as he pressed her to go with him to Elfland. Neither did it avail her that the petty sorcery which she practised was directed to venial or even beneficial purposes. The sad words on the margin of the record, “Convict and burnt,” sufficiently express the tragic conclusion of a curious tale.
The involvement of Thome Reid as a partner in her small-time magic did not help poor Bessie Dunlop, even though his feelings for her seemed purely platonic—the most he dared to do was hold onto her dress while urging her to join him in Elfland. It also didn’t matter that the little magic she practiced was aimed at harmless or even helpful ends. The sad words in the margin of the record, “Convict and burnt,” clearly convey the tragic ending of an intriguing story.
Alison Pearson, in Byrehill, was, 28th May, 1588, tried for invocation of the spirits of the devil, specially in the vision of one Mr. William Sympson, her cousin and her mother’s brother’s son, who she affirmed was a great scholar and doctor of medicine, dealing with charms and abusing the ignorant people. Against this poor woman her own confession, as in the case of Bessie Dunlop, was the principal evidence.
Alison Pearson, in Byrehill, was tried on May 28, 1588, for calling upon the devil's spirits, particularly in the vision of her cousin, Mr. William Sympson, who was the son of her mother's brother. She claimed he was a highly educated man and a doctor of medicine, who used charms and took advantage of uneducated people. The main evidence against this unfortunate woman was her own confession, similar to what happened in the case of Bessie Dunlop.
As Bessie Dunlop had Thome Reid, Alison Pearson had also a familiar in the court of Elfland. This was her relative, William Sympson aforesaid, born in Stirling, whose father was king’s smith in that town. William had been taken away, she said, by a man of Egypt (a Gipsy), who carried him to Egypt along with him; that he remained there twelve years, and that his father died in the meantime for opening a priest’s book and looking upon it. She declared that she had renewed her acquaintance with her kinsman so soon as he returned. She further confessed that one day as she passed through Grange Muir she lay down in a fit of sickness, and that a green man came to her, and said if she would be faithful he might do her good. In reply she charged him, in the name of God and by the law he lived upon, if he came for her soul’s good to tell his errand. On this the green man departed. But he afterwards appeared to her with many men and women with him, and against her will she was obliged to pass with them farther than she could tell, with piping, mirth, and good cheer; also that she accompanied them into Lothian, where she saw puncheons of wine with tasses or drinking-cups. She declared that when she told of these things she was sorely tormented, and received a blow that took away the power of her left side, and left on it an ugly mark which had no feeling. She also confessed that she had seen before sunrise the good neighbours make their salves with pans and fires. Sometimes, she said, they came in such fearful forms as frightened her very much. At other times they spoke her fair, and promised her that she should never want if faithful, but if she told of them and their doings, they threatened to martyr her. She also boasted of her favour with the Queen of Elfland and the good friends she had at that court, notwithstanding that she was sometimes in disgrace there, and had not seen the queen for seven years. She said William Sympson is with the fairies, and that he lets her know when they are coming; and that he taught her what remedies to use, and how to apply them. She declared that when a whirlwind blew the fairies were commonly there, and that her cousin Sympson confessed that every year the tithe of them were taken away to hell. The celebrated Patrick Adamson, an excellent divine and accomplished scholar, created by James VI. Archbishop of St. Andrews, swallowed the prescriptions of this poor hypochondriac with good faith and will, eating a stewed fowl, and drinking out at two draughts a quart of claret, medicated with the drugs she recommended. According to the belief of the time, this Alison Pearson transferred the bishop’s indisposition from himself to a white palfrey, which died in consequence. There is a very severe libel on him for this and other things unbecoming his order, with which he was charged, and from which we learn that Lethington and Buccleuch were seen by Dame Pearson in the Fairyland.34 This poor woman’s kinsman, Sympson, did not give better shelter to her than Thome Reid had done to her predecessor. The margin of the court-book again bears the melancholy and brief record, “Convicta et combusta.”
As Bessie Dunlop had Thome Reid, Alison Pearson also had a familiar in the court of Elfland. This was her relative, William Sympson, who was born in Stirling, where his father was the king’s blacksmith. According to her, William had been taken by a man from Egypt (a Gypsy), who brought him to Egypt with him; he stayed there for twelve years, during which time his father died for looking at a priest’s book. She claimed that she reconnected with her kinsman as soon as he returned. She also admitted that one day while passing through Grange Muir, she lay down due to sickness, and a green man approached her, saying that if she was faithful, he might be able to help her. In response, she insisted, in the name of God and by the law he followed, that if he came for her soul's good, he should reveal his purpose. At this, the green man left. However, he later appeared to her with a group of men and women, and against her will, she felt compelled to go with them farther than she could describe, amidst music, joy, and celebration; she said she went with them to Lothian, where she saw barrels of wine with drinking cups. She claimed that when she spoke about these experiences, she was harshly tormented and received a blow that disabled her left side, leaving an ugly mark with no feeling. She also confessed that she had witnessed the good neighbors making their salves with cookware and fires before sunrise. Sometimes, she said, they appeared in such terrifying forms that they scared her greatly. At other times they spoke kindly, promising her that she would never lack anything if she remained loyal, but warned that if she revealed them and their actions, they would martyr her. She also bragged about her special relationship with the Queen of Elfland and the connections she had in that court, even though she was sometimes out of favor there and hadn’t seen the queen in seven years. She stated that William Sympson was with the fairies and that he would let her know when they were nearing; he taught her what remedies to use and how to apply them. She declared that when a whirlwind occurred, the fairies were usually present, and her cousin Sympson confessed that every year a tenth of them were taken to hell. The well-known Patrick Adamson, a distinguished clergyman and scholar, who became Archbishop of St. Andrews under James VI, took this poor hypochondriac's suggestions seriously, enjoying a stewed chicken and downing a quart of claret, medicated with the herbs she recommended. According to the beliefs of the time, this Alison Pearson transferred the bishop’s ailment from him to a white palfrey, which subsequently died. There exists a severe libel against him regarding this and other behaviors unbefitting his position, from which we learn that Lethington and Buccleuch were seen by Dame Pearson in Fairyland.34 This poor woman’s relative, Sympson, did not provide her with better protection than Thome Reid had offered her predecessor. The margin of the court book again bears the sad and brief record, “Convicta et combusta.”
34 (return)
[ See “Scottish Poems,”
edited by John G. Dalzell, p. 321.]
34 (return)
[ See “Scottish Poems,” edited by John G. Dalzell, p. 321.]
The two poor women last mentioned are the more to be pitied as, whether enthusiasts or impostors, they practised their supposed art exclusively for the advantage of mankind. The following extraordinary detail involves persons of far higher quality, and who sought to familiars for more baneful purposes.
The two unfortunate women we just talked about are even more to be pitied because, whether they were genuine believers or frauds, they practiced their supposed skill solely for the benefit of others. The following remarkable detail involves people of much higher status, who sought out spirits for much more harmful reasons.
Katherine Munro, Lady Fowlis, by birth Katherine Ross of Balnagowan, of high rank, both by her own family and that of her husband, who was the fifteenth Baron of Fowlis, and chief of the warlike clan of Munro, had a stepmother’s quarrel with Robert Munro, eldest son of her husband, which she gratified by forming a scheme for compassing his death by unlawful arts. Her proposed advantage in this was, that the widow of Robert, when he was thus removed, should marry with her brother, George Ross of Balnagowan; and for this purpose, her sister-in-law, the present Lady Balnagowan, was also to be removed. Lady Fowlis, if the indictment had a syllable of truth, carried on her practices with the least possible disguise. She assembled persons of the lowest order, stamped with an infamous celebrity as witches; and, besides making pictures or models in clay, by which they hoped to bewitch Robert Munro and Lady Balnagowan, they brewed, upon one occasion, poison so strong that a page tasting of it immediately took sickness. Another earthen jar (Scotticè pig) of the same deleterious liquor was prepared by the Lady Fowlis, and sent with her own nurse for the purpose of administering it to Robert Munro. The messenger having stumbled in the dark, broke the jar, and a rank grass grew on the spot where it fell, which sheep and cattle abhorred to touch; but the nurse, having less sense than the brute beasts, and tasting of the liquor which had been spilled, presently died. What is more to our present purpose, Lady Fowlis made use of the artillery of Elfland in order to destroy her stepson and sister-in-law. Laskie Loncart, one of the assistant hags, produced two of what the common people call elf-arrow heads, being, in fact, the points of flint used for arming the ends of arrow-shafts in the most ancient times, but accounted by the superstitious the weapons by which the fairies were wont to destroy both man and beast. The pictures of the intended victims were then set up at the north end of the apartment, and Christian Ross Malcolmson, an assistant hag, shot two shafts at the image of Lady Balnagowan, and three against the picture of Robert Munro, by which shots they were broken, and Lady Fowlis commanded new figures to be modelled. Many similar acts of witchcraft and of preparing poisons were alleged against Lady Fowlis.
Katherine Munro, Lady Fowlis, originally Katherine Ross of Balnagowan, came from a prestigious background, both from her own family and her husband’s, who was the fifteenth Baron of Fowlis and leader of the fierce Munro clan. She had a conflict with her stepson, Robert Munro, which she sought to resolve by planning his death through illegal means. Her goal was for Robert’s widow to marry her brother, George Ross of Balnagowan; to achieve this, she also intended to eliminate her sister-in-law, the current Lady Balnagowan. If the accusations were true, Lady Fowlis acted with little attempt to conceal her schemes. She gathered individuals from the lowest social class, notorious as witches, and in addition to creating clay figures intended to curse Robert Munro and Lady Balnagowan, they concocted a potent poison that made a servant who tasted it ill right away. Lady Fowlis prepared another jar of the same toxic liquid and sent it with her nurse to give to Robert Munro. However, the messenger tripped in the dark and broke the jar, causing a foul grass to grow on the spot, which sheep and cattle refused to touch. Yet the nurse, lacking the sense of the animals, tasted the spilled poison and immediately died. More crucially, Lady Fowlis employed the magic of Elfland to harm her stepson and sister-in-law. Laskie Loncart, one of the witches helping her, produced two elf-arrow heads—actually flint points crafted for ancient arrow shafts—believed by the superstitious to be the weapons fairies used to destroy humans and animals. They set up images of the intended victims at the north end of the room, and Christian Ross Malcolmson, another witch, shot two arrows at Lady Balnagowan’s figure and three at Robert Munro’s, breaking the images and prompting Lady Fowlis to order new figures to be made. Numerous other acts of witchcraft and poison preparation were claimed against Lady Fowlis.
Her son-in-law, Hector Munro, one of his stepmother’s prosecutors, was, for reasons of his own, active in a similar conspiracy against the life of his own brother. The rites that he practised were of an uncouth, barbarous, and unusual nature. Hector, being taken ill, consulted on his case some of the witches or soothsayers, to whom this family appears to have been partial. The answer was unanimous that he must die unless the principal man of his blood should suffer death in his stead. It was agreed that the vicarious substitute for Hector must mean George Munro, brother to him by the half-blood (the son of the Katharine Lady Fowlis before commemorated). Hector sent at least seven messengers for this young man, refusing to receive any of his other friends till he saw the substitute whom he destined to take his place in the grave. When George at length arrived, Hector, by advice of a notorious witch, called Marion MacIngarach, and of his own foster-mother, Christian Neil Dalyell, received him with peculiar coldness and restraint. He did not speak for the space of an hour, till his brother broke silence and asked, “How he did?” Hector replied, “That he was the better George had come to visit him,” and relapsed into silence, which seemed singular when compared with the anxiety he had displayed to see his brother; but it was, it seems, a necessary part of the spell. After midnight the sorceress Marion MacIngarach, the chief priestess or Nicneven of the company, went forth with her accomplices, carrying spades with them. They then proceeded to dig a grave not far from the seaside, upon a piece of land which formed the boundary betwixt two proprietors. The grave was made as nearly as possible to the size of their patient Hector Munro, the earth dug out of the grave being laid aside for the time. After ascertaining that the operation of the charm on George Munro, the destined victim, should be suspended for a time, to avoid suspicion, the conspirators proceeded to work their spell in a singular, impressive, and, I believe, unique manner. The time being January, 1588, the patient, Hector Munro, was borne forth in a pair of blankets, accompanied with all who were entrusted with the secret, who were warned to be strictly silent till the chief sorceress should have received her information from the angel whom they served. Hector Munro was carried to his grave and laid therein, the earth being filled in on him, and the grave secured with stakes as at a real funeral. Marion MacIngarach, the Hecate of the night, then sat down by the grave, while Christian Neil Dalyell, the foster-mother, ran the breadth of about nine ridges distant, leading a boy in her hand, and, coming again to the grave where Hector Munro was interred alive, demanded of the witch which victim she would choose, who replied that she chose Hector to live and George to die in his stead. This form of incantation was thrice repeated ere Mr. Hector was removed from his chilling bed in a January grave and carried home, all remaining mute as before. The consequence of a process which seems ill-adapted to produce the former effect was that Hector Munro recovered, and after the intervention of twelve months George Munro, his brother, died. Hector took the principal witch into high favour, made her keeper of his sheep, and evaded, it is said, to present her to trial when charged at Aberdeen to produce her. Though one or two inferior persons suffered death on account of the sorceries practised in the house of Fowlis, the Lady Katharine and her stepson Hector had both the unusual good fortune to be found not guilty. Mr. Pitcairn remarks that the juries, being composed of subordinate persons not suitable to the rank or family of the person tried, has all the appearance of having been packed on purpose for acquittal. It might also, in some interval of good sense, creep into the heads of Hector Munro’s assize that the enchantment being performed in January, 1588, and the deceased being only taken ill of his fatal disease in April, 1590, the distance between the events might seem too great to admit the former being regarded as the cause of the latter.35
Her son-in-law, Hector Munro, one of his stepmother’s prosecutors, was, for his own reasons, involved in a similar plot against the life of his own brother. The rituals he practiced were strange, barbaric, and unusual. When Hector fell ill, he consulted some witches or soothsayers that this family seemed to favor. They all agreed that he would die unless the main man from his bloodline suffered death in his place. They decided that Hector's substitute would be George Munro, his half-brother (the son of Katharine Lady Fowlis, mentioned earlier). Hector sent at least seven messengers to find this young man, refusing to meet with any other friends until he saw the substitute he intended to take his place in the grave. When George finally arrived, Hector, advised by a well-known witch named Marion MacIngarach and his own foster mother, Christian Neil Dalyell, greeted him with unusual coldness and restraint. He stayed silent for an hour until his brother broke the silence and asked how he was doing. Hector replied, “I feel better now that George has come to see me,” and fell silent again, which seemed odd considering his eagerness to see his brother, but it turned out to be a necessary part of the spell. After midnight, the sorceress Marion MacIngarach, the chief priestess of the group, went out with her accomplices, carrying spades. They dug a grave near the seaside, on a plot of land between two properties. The grave was made to fit Hector Munro as closely as possible, with the dirt set aside for the time being. To avoid suspicion, they decided to pause the spell on George Munro, the intended victim, before continuing their work in a peculiar, striking, and, I believe, unique way. It was January 1588 when Hector Munro was wrapped in blankets and brought out, accompanied by everyone entrusted with the secret, who were all warned to remain silent until the chief sorceress received instructions from the angel they served. Hector Munro was carried to his grave and laid there, with the dirt filled in over him, and the grave secured with stakes, as if it were a real funeral. Marion MacIngarach, the Hecate of the night, then sat by the grave, while Christian Neil Dalyell, the foster mother, ran about nine ridges away, leading a boy by the hand. She returned to the grave where Hector Munro was buried alive and asked the witch which victim she would choose. The witch replied that she chose Hector to live and George to die in his place. This incantation was repeated three times before Mr. Hector was taken from his cold bed in the January grave and brought home, all remaining silent as before. The outcome of this rather strange procedure was that Hector Munro recovered, and after twelve months, George Munro, his brother, died. Hector took the main witch into favor, made her in charge of his sheep, and it is said he avoided bringing her to trial when she was accused in Aberdeen. Although one or two lesser individuals were executed for the sorceries practiced in the house of Fowlis, Lady Katharine and her stepson Hector both had the unusual fortune of being found not guilty. Mr. Pitcairn notes that the juries, composed of people of lower status inappropriate for the rank or family of the defendant, seemed to have been rigged for acquittal. It might also have occurred to the jury that since the enchantment took place in January 1588 and the deceased only fell ill with his fatal disease in April 1590, the gap between these events was so large that it was unreasonable to consider the former as the cause of the latter.35
35 (return)
[ Pitcairn’s “Trials,” vol.
i. pp. 191-201.]
35 (return)
[ Pitcairn’s “Trials,” vol. i. pp. 191-201.]
Another instance of the skill of a sorcerer being traced to the instructions of the elves is found in the confession of John Stewart, called a vagabond, but professing skill in palmistry and jugglery, and accused of having assisted Margaret Barclay, or Dein, to sink or cast away a vessel belonging to her own good brother. It being demanded of him by what means he professed himself to have knowledge of things to come, the said John confessed that the space of twenty-six years ago, he being travelling on All-Hallow Even night, between the towns of Monygoif (so spelled) and Clary, in Galway, he met with the King of the Fairies and his company, and that the King of the Fairies gave him a stroke with a white rod over the forehead, which took from him the power of speech and the use of one eye, which he wanted for the space of three years. He declared that the use of speech and eyesight was restored to him by the King of Fairies and his company, on an Hallowe’en night, at the town of Dublin, in Ireland, and that since that time he had joined these people every Saturday at seven o’clock, and remained with them all the night; also, that they met every Hallow-tide, sometimes on Lanark Hill (Tintock, perhaps), sometimes on Kilmaurs Hill, and that he was then taught by them. He pointed out the spot of his forehead on which, he said, the King of the Fairies struck him with a white rod, whereupon the prisoner, being blindfolded, they pricked the spot with a large pin, whereof he expressed no sense or feeling. He made the usual declaration, that he had seen many persons at the Court of Fairy, whose names he rehearsed particularly, and declared that all such persons as are taken away by sudden death go with the King of Elfland. With this man’s evidence we have at present no more to do, though we may revert to the execrable proceedings which then took place against this miserable juggler and the poor women who were accused of the same crime. At present it is quoted as another instance of a fortune-teller referring to Elfland as the source of his knowledge.
Another example of a sorcerer's skill being linked to the teachings of elves comes from the confession of John Stewart, labeled a vagabond but claiming to be skilled in palmistry and juggling. He was accused of helping Margaret Barclay, or Dein, to sink or get rid of a ship belonging to her own brother. When asked how he knew things to come, John confessed that twenty-six years ago, while traveling on All-Hallow Even night between the towns of Monygoif and Clary in Galway, he encountered the King of the Fairies and his group. The King struck him on the forehead with a white rod, which took away his ability to speak and the use of one eye for three years. He stated that the King of the Fairies and his company restored his speech and eyesight one Hallowe'en night in Dublin, Ireland. Since then, he had met with them every Saturday at seven o'clock and spent the entire night with them; they gathered every Hallowtide, sometimes on Lanark Hill (possibly Tintock) and sometimes on Kilmaurs Hill, where they taught him. He pointed out the spot on his forehead where the King of the Fairies had struck him, and when he was blindfolded, they pricked that spot with a large pin, but he felt nothing. He made the usual claim that he had seen many people at the Court of Fairy, naming them specifically, and stated that all those who die suddenly go with the King of Elfland. We have no further business with this man's evidence at the moment, though we might return to the horrific actions taken against this unfortunate juggler and the poor women accused of the same crime. For now, it serves as another example of a fortune-teller referencing Elfland as the source of their knowledge.
At Auldearne, a parish and burgh of barony in the county of Nairne, the epidemic terror of witches seems to have gone very far. The confession of a woman called Isobel Gowdie, of date April, 1662, implicates, as usual, the Court of Fairy, and blends the operations of witchcraft with the facilities afforded by the fairies. These need be the less insisted upon in this place, as the arch-fiend, and not the elves, had the immediate agency in the abominations which she narrates. Yet she had been, she said, in the Dounie Hills, and got meat there from the Queen of Fairies more than she could eat. She added, that the queen is bravely clothed in white linen and in white and brown cloth, that the King of Fairy is a brave man; and there were elf-bulls roaring and skoilling at the entrance of their palace, which frightened her much. On another occasion this frank penitent confesses her presence at a rendezvous of witches, Lammas, 1659, where, after they had rambled through the country in different shapes—of cats, hares, and the like—eating, drinking, and wasting the goods of their neighbours into whose houses they could penetrate, they at length came to the dounie Hills, where the mountain opened to receive them, and they entered a fair big room, as bright as day. At the entrance ramped and roared the large fairy bulls, which always alarmed Isobel Gowdie. These animals are probably the water-bulls, famous both in Scottish and Irish tradition, which are not supposed to be themselves altogether canny or safe to have concern with. In their caverns the fairies manufactured those elf-arrow heads with which the witches and they wrought so much evil. The elves and the arch-fiend laboured jointly at this task, the former forming and sharpening the dart from the rough flint, and the latter perfecting and finishing (or, as it is called, dighting) it. Then came the sport of the meeting. The witches bestrode either corn-straws, bean-stalks, or rushes, and calling, “Horse and Hattock, in the Devil’s name!” which is the elfin signal for mounting, they flew wherever they listed. If the little whirlwind which accompanies their transportation passed any mortal who neglected to bless himself, all such fell under the witches’ power, and they acquired the right of shooting at him. The penitent prisoner gives the names of many whom she and her sisters had so slain, the death for which she was most sorry being that of William Brown, in the Milntown of Mains. A shaft was also aimed at the Reverend Harrie Forbes, a minister who was present at the examination of Isobel, the confessing party. The arrow fell short, and the witch would have taken aim again, but her master forbade her, saying the reverend gentleman’s life was not subject to their power. To this strange and very particular confession we shall have occasion to recur when witchcraft is the more immediate subject. What is above narrated marks the manner in which the belief in that crime was blended with the fairy superstition.
At Auldearne, a parish and barony in Nairne County, the widespread fear of witches seems to have taken hold. The confession of a woman named Isobel Gowdie, dated April 1662, once again involves the Court of Fairy and mixes witchcraft with the help provided by fairies. This needs to be emphasized here, as the arch-fiend, not the elves, was directly responsible for the horrific acts she describes. Yet, she claimed she had been in the Dounie Hills, where she received food from the Queen of Fairies, more than she could eat. She also mentioned that the queen wore beautiful white linen and white and brown cloth, and that the King of Fairy was a formidable man. There were fairy bulls roaring and skoilling at the entrance of their palace, which terrified her. On a different occasion, this open confessor admitted to attending a witches' meeting on Lammas in 1659, where, after wandering through the countryside in various forms—like cats and hares—eating, drinking, and squandering the possessions of their neighbors they could invade, they eventually arrived at the Dounie Hills. There, the mountain opened to welcome them, and they entered a large, brightly lit room. At the entrance, the enormous fairy bulls, which always frightened Isobel Gowdie, were rampaging and roaring. These creatures are likely the water-bulls, famous in both Scottish and Irish folklore, which are not considered entirely canny or safe to deal with. In their caverns, fairies crafted those elf-arrow heads that led to so much harm by both the witches and themselves. The elves and the arch-fiend worked together on this task, the former shaping and sharpening the dart from rough flint, while the latter perfected and finished it. Then came the fun of the gathering. The witches rode on corn-straws, bean-stalks, or rushes, calling out, “Horse and Hattock, in the Devil’s name!”—the elfin signal for take-off—and they flew wherever they wanted. If the small whirlwind accompanying their flight passed by any mortal who forgot to bless himself, that person fell under the witches’ control, and they gained the right to target him. The penitent prisoner named many people she and her sisters had killed, the death she regretted the most being that of William Brown in the Milntown of Mains. An arrow was also aimed at Reverend Harrie Forbes, who was present during Isobel's examination. The arrow fell short, and the witch was about to take aim again, but her master stopped her, saying the reverend gentleman's life was beyond their control. We will have reason to revisit this strange and specific confession when witchcraft becomes the primary topic. What has been described above illustrates how belief in this crime intertwined with fairy superstition.
To proceed to more modern instances of persons supposed to have fallen under the power of the fairy race, we must not forget the Reverend Robert Kirke, minister of the Gospel, the first translator of the Psalms into Gaelic verse. He was, in the end of the seventeenth century, successively minister of the Highland parishes of Balquidder and Aberfoyle, lying in the most romantic district of Perthshire, and within the Highland line. These beautiful and wild regions, comprehending so many lakes, rocks, sequestered valleys, and dim copsewoods, are not even yet quite abandoned by the fairies, who have resolutely maintained secure footing in a region so well suited for their residence. Indeed, so much was this the case formerly, that Mr. Kirke, while in his latter charge of Aberfoyle, found materials for collecting and compiling his Essay on the “Subterranean and for the most part Invisible People heretofore going under the name of Elves, Fawnes, and Fairies, or the like."36 In this discourse, the author, “with undoubting mind,” describes the fairy race as a sort of astral spirits, of a kind betwixt humanity and angels—says, that they have children, nurses, marriages, deaths, and burials, like mortals in appearance; that, in some respect, they represent mortal men, and that individual apparitions, or double-men, are found among them, corresponding with mortals existing on earth. Mr. Kirke accuses them of stealing the milk from the cows, and of carrying away, what is more material, the women in pregnancy, and new-born children from their nurses. The remedy is easy in both cases. The milk cannot be stolen if the mouth of the calf, before he is permitted to suck, be rubbed with a certain balsam, very easily come by; and the woman in travail is safe if a piece of cold iron is put into the bed. Mr. Kirke accounts for this by informing us that the great northern mines of iron, lying adjacent to the place of eternal punishment, have a savour odious to these “fascinating creatures.” They have, says the reverend author, what one would not expect, many light toyish books (novels and plays, doubtless), others on Rosycrucian subjects, and of an abstruse mystical character; but they have no Bibles or works of devotion. The essayist fails not to mention the elf-arrow heads, which have something of the subtlety of thunderbolts, and can mortally wound the vital parts without breaking the skin. These wounds, he says, he has himself observed in beasts, and felt the fatal lacerations which he could not see.
To move on to more contemporary examples of people believed to have influenced by the fairy realm, we should mention Reverend Robert Kirke, a minister of the Gospel and the first person to translate the Psalms into Gaelic verse. At the end of the seventeenth century, he served as the minister for the Highland parishes of Balquidder and Aberfoyle, located in the most picturesque area of Perthshire, right at the Highland border. These stunning and wild regions, filled with numerous lakes, rocks, hidden valleys, and shaded woodlands, are still not completely deserted by fairies, who have firmly established themselves in a place so perfect for their habitation. In fact, this was even more true in the past, as Mr. Kirke, during his later time in Aberfoyle, gathered materials for his essay on the “Subterranean and for the most part Invisible People previously known as Elves, Fawnes, and Fairies, or something similar."36 In this work, the author, “with unwavering belief,” describes the fairy race as a type of astral spirit, sitting between humans and angels—he states that they have children, nurses, marriages, deaths, and burials, resembling mortals in appearance; that, in some ways, they reflect human beings, and that individual appearances, or double-people, exist among them, corresponding to people living on Earth. Mr. Kirke claims they steal milk from cows and, more seriously, abduct pregnant women and newborns from their caregivers. The solution is straightforward in both scenarios. The milk cannot be taken if the mouth of the calf is rubbed with a certain easily obtainable balsam before it is allowed to suckle; and a woman in labor is protected if a piece of cold iron is placed under her bed. Mr. Kirke explains this by stating that the great northern iron mines, located near the place of eternal punishment, have a smell that these “captivating beings” find repulsive. He also notes that these fairies, surprisingly, possess many light, playful books (likely novels and plays), along with others related to Rosicrucian topics and other complex mystical subjects; however, they have no Bibles or spiritual texts. The essayist does not forget to mention elf-arrow heads, which have a striking quality similar to lightning bolts and can injure vital areas without breaking the skin. He claims to have witnessed these wounds in animals and experienced the deadly pains that he could not see.
36 (return)
[ The title continues:—“Among
the Low Country Scots, as they are described by those who have the second
sight, and now, to occasion farther enquiry, collected and compared by a
circumspect enquirer residing among the Scottish-Irish (i.e., the
Gael, or Highlanders) in Scotland.” It was printed with the author’s name
in 1691, and reprinted, Edinburgh, 1815, for Longman & Co.]
36 (return)
[ The title continues:—“Among the Low Country Scots, as described by those who have second sight, and now, to prompt further investigation, collected and compared by a careful researcher living among the Scottish-Irish (i.e., the Gael, or Highlanders) in Scotland.” It was published with the author's name in 1691, and reissued in Edinburgh, 1815, for Longman & Co.]
It was by no means to be supposed that the elves, so jealous and irritable a race as to be incensed against those who spoke of them under their proper names, should be less than mortally offended at the temerity of the reverend author, who had pryed so deeply into their mysteries, for the purpose of giving them to the public. Although, therefore, the learned divine’s monument, with his name duly inscribed, is to be seen at the east end of the churchyard at Aberfoyle, yet those acquainted with his real history do not believe that he enjoys the natural repose of the tomb. His successor, the Rev. Dr. Grahame, has informed us of the general belief that, as Mr. Kirke was walking one evening in his night-gown upon a Dun-shi, or fairy mount, in the vicinity of the manse or parsonage, behold! he sunk down in what seemed to be a fit of apoplexy, which the unenlightened took for death, while the more understanding knew it to be a swoon produced by the supernatural influence of the people whose precincts he had violated. After the ceremony of a seeming funeral, the form of the Rev. Robert Kirke appeared to a relation, and commanded him to go to Grahame of Duchray, ancestor of the present General Graham Stirling. “Say to Duchray, who is my cousin as well as your own, that I am not dead, but a captive in Fairyland, and only one chance remains for my liberation. When the posthumous child, of which my wife has been delivered since my disappearance, shall be brought to baptism, I will appear in the room, when, if Duchray shall throw over my head the knife or dirk which he holds in his hand, I may be restored to society; but if this opportunity is neglected, I am lost for ever.” Duchray was apprised of what was to be done. The ceremony took place, and the apparition of Mr. Kirke was visibly seen while they were seated at table; but Grahame of Duchray, in his astonishment, failed to perform the ceremony enjoined, and it is to be feared that Mr. Kirke still “drees his weird in Fairyland,” the Elfin state declaring to him, as the Ocean to poor Falconer, who perished at sea after having written his popular poem of “The Shipwreck”—
It shouldn't be assumed that the elves, a race so jealous and easily angered that they would get upset with anyone who referred to them by their proper names, would be anything less than immensely offended by the nerve of the reverend author, who had dug so deeply into their secrets to share them with the public. So, even though the learned divine’s grave, with his name properly inscribed, can be found at the east end of the churchyard in Aberfoyle, those familiar with his true story don’t believe he rests peacefully in the grave. His successor, Rev. Dr. Grahame, has told us of the widespread belief that one evening, as Mr. Kirke was walking in his nightgown on a Dun-shi, or fairy hill, near the manse, he suddenly collapsed in what looked like a stroke, which the uninformed believed to be death, while the more perceptive understood it was a faint caused by the supernatural forces of the beings whose territory he had intruded upon. After a seemingly normal funeral, the spirit of Rev. Robert Kirke appeared to a relative and instructed him to tell Grahame of Duchray, an ancestor of the current General Graham Stirling, “Tell Duchray, who is my cousin as well as yours, that I am not dead, but a prisoner in Fairyland, and there’s only one chance for my release. When the posthumous child born to my wife since my disappearance is brought for baptism, I will show up in the room. If Duchray can throw the knife or dirk he has in his hand over my head, I will be restored to society; but if this opportunity is missed, I am lost forever.” Duchray was informed of what needed to be done. The ceremony occurred, and Mr. Kirke's ghost was clearly seen while they were at the table; however, Grahame of Duchray, in his shock, failed to carry out the required ritual, and it’s feared that Mr. Kirke still “drees his weird in Fairyland,” with the Elfin realm declaring to him, as the Ocean did to poor Falconer, who perished at sea after writing his famous poem “The Shipwreck”—
“Thou hast proclaimed our power—be thou our prey!”
“You have declared our strength—now be our prey!”
Upon this subject the reader may consult a very entertaining little volume, called “Sketches of Perthshire,"37 by the Rev. Dr. Grahame of Aberfoyle. The terrible visitation of fairy vengeance which has lighted upon Mr. Kirke has not intimidated his successor, an excellent man and good antiquary, from affording us some curious information on fairy superstition. He tells us that these capricious elves are chiefly dangerous on a Friday, when, as the day of the Crucifixion, evil spirits have most power, and mentions their displeasure at any one who assumes their accustomed livery of green, a colour fatal to several families in Scotland, to the whole race of the gallant Grahames in particular; insomuch that we have heard that in battle a Grahame is generally shot through the green check of his plaid; moreover, that a veteran sportsman of the name, having come by a bad fall, he thought it sufficient to account for it, that he had a piece of green whip-cord to complete the lash of his hunting-whip. I remember, also, that my late amiable friend, James Grahame, author of “The Sabbath,” would not break through this ancient prejudice of his clan, but had his library table covered with blue or black cloth, rather than use the fated colour commonly employed on such occasions.
On this topic, the reader can check out a very entertaining little book called “Sketches of Perthshire" by Rev. Dr. Grahame of Aberfoyle. The horrible curse of fairy vengeance that has befallen Mr. Kirke hasn’t scared off his successor, a great guy and knowledgeable antiquarian, from sharing some interesting insights about fairy superstition. He points out that these mischievous elves are particularly dangerous on Fridays, the day of the Crucifixion, when evil spirits are at their strongest, and mentions that they dislike anyone who wears their traditional green attire, a color that brings doom to several families in Scotland, especially to the entire Grahame clan; in fact, it's said that in battle, a Grahame is often shot through the green check of his plaid. Additionally, a seasoned hunter from the Grahame family once attributed a bad fall to the fact that he had a piece of green whip-cord to finish the lash of his hunting whip. I also remember my late dear friend, James Grahame, author of “The Sabbath,” wouldn’t break this deep-rooted belief of his clan and had his library table covered with blue or black cloth instead of using the unlucky color typically used for such occasions.
37 (return)
[ Edinburgh, 1812.]
37 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[Edinburgh, 1812.]
To return from the Perthshire fairies, I may quote a story of a nature somewhat similar to that of Mas Robert Kirke. The life of the excellent person who told it was, for the benefit of her friends and the poor, protracted to an unusual duration; so I conceive that this adventure, which took place in her childhood, might happen before the middle of last century. She was residing with some relations near the small seaport town of North Berwick, when the place and its vicinity were alarmed by the following story:—
To return from the Perthshire fairies, I can share a story that's somewhat similar to that of Mas Robert Kirke. The life of the wonderful person who told it was extended unusually long for the sake of her friends and the needy; so I believe this adventure, which happened during her childhood, probably took place before the middle of the last century. She was living with some relatives near the small seaside town of North Berwick when the area was disturbed by the following tale:—
An industrious man, a weaver in the little town, was married to a beautiful woman, who, after bearing two or three children, was so unfortunate as to die during the birth of a fourth child. The infant was saved, but the mother had expired in convulsions; and as she was much disfigured after death, it became an opinion among her gossips that, from some neglect of those who ought to have watched the sick woman, she must have been carried off by the elves, and this ghastly corpse substituted in the place of the body. The widower paid little attention to these rumours, and, after bitterly lamenting his wife for a year of mourning, began to think on the prudence of forming a new marriage, which, to a poor artisan with so young a family, and without the assistance of a housewife, was almost a matter of necessity. He readily found a neighbour with whose good looks he was satisfied, whilst her character for temper seemed to warrant her good usage of his children. He proposed himself and was accepted, and carried the names of the parties to the clergyman (called, I believe, Mr. Matthew Reid) for the due proclamation of banns. As the man had really loved his late partner, it is likely that this proposed decisive alteration of his condition brought back many reflections concerning the period of their union, and with these recalled the extraordinary rumours which were afloat at the time of her decease, so that the whole forced upon him the following lively dream:—As he lay in his bed, awake as he thought, he beheld, at the ghostly hour of midnight, the figure of a female dressed in white, who entered his hut, stood by the side of his bed, and appeared to him the very likeness of his late wife. He conjured her to speak, and with astonishment heard her say, like the minister of Aberfoyle, that she was not dead, but the unwilling captive of the Good Neighbours. Like Mr. Kirke, too, she told him that if all the love which he once had for her was not entirely gone, an opportunity still remained of recovering her, or winning her back, as it was usually termed, from the comfortless realms of Elfland. She charged him on a certain day of the ensuing week that he should convene the most respectable housekeepers in the town, with the clergyman at their head, and should disinter the coffin in which she was supposed to have been buried. “The clergyman is to recite certain prayers, upon which,” said the apparition, “I will start from the coffin and fly with great speed round the church, and you must have the fleetest runner of the parish (naming a man famed for swiftness) to pursue me, and such a one, the smith, renowned for his strength, to hold me fast after I am overtaken; and in that case I shall, by the prayers of the church, and the efforts of my loving husband and neighbours, again recover my station in human society.” In the morning the poor widower was distressed with the recollection of his dream, but, ashamed and puzzled, took no measures in consequence. A second night, as is not very surprising, the visitation was again repeated. On the third night she appeared with a sorrowful and displeased countenance, upbraided him with want of love and affection, and conjured him, for the last time, to attend to her instructions, which, if he now neglected, she would never have power to visit earth or communicate with him again. In order to convince him there was no delusion, he “saw in his dream” that she took up the nursling at whose birth she had died, and gave it suck; she spilled also a drop or two of her milk on the poor man’s bed-clothes, as if to assure him of the reality of the vision.
A hardworking man, a weaver in a small town, was married to a beautiful woman who, after having two or three children, tragically died during the birth of a fourth. The baby survived, but the mother died in convulsions. After her death, she was so disfigured that the local gossip suggested, due to some neglect from those supposed to care for her, that she had been taken by elves and replaced with a ghastly corpse. The widower paid little attention to these rumors and, after grieving for a year, began to consider marrying again, which was almost necessary for a poor craftsman with young children and no housewife. He quickly found a neighbor whose looks pleased him and who seemed to have the right temperament to care for his children. He proposed, she accepted, and they went to see the clergyman (who I believe was named Mr. Matthew Reid) to announce their intention to marry. Since the man had genuinely loved his late wife, this step likely brought back many thoughts about their life together and the extraordinary rumors surrounding her death, leading to a vivid dream: As he lay in bed, thinking he was awake, he saw, at the eerie hour of midnight, a female figure in white enter his home, stand by his bedside, and look just like his late wife. He urged her to speak and was shocked to hear her say, like the minister of Aberfoyle, that she was not dead but a captive of the Good Neighbours. Just like Mr. Kirke, she told him that if he still held love for her, there was still a chance to bring her back from the dismal realms of Elfland. She instructed him to gather the most respected housekeepers in town, led by the clergyman, on a specific day the following week to dig up her supposed grave. "The clergyman will say certain prayers, then," said the apparition, "I will rise from the coffin and fly around the church. You need the fastest runner from the parish (she named a man known for his speed) to chase me, and someone strong, the blacksmith, to catch me once I'm overtaken; if that happens, through the church's prayers and the efforts of my loving husband and neighbors, I will regain my place in human society." In the morning, the grieving widower was troubled by the memory of his dream, but feeling ashamed and confused, he took no action. On the second night, as might be expected, the visitation happened again. On the third night, she appeared looking sad and displeased, scolding him for lacking love and affection, and urged him for the last time to follow her instructions, warning that if he ignored them now, she would never again have the power to visit him or communicate with him. To prove the reality of her visitation, he "dreamed" that she picked up the baby she had died giving birth to and nursed it, spilling a few drops of milk on his bedclothes as if to assure him of the vision's authenticity.
The next morning the terrified widower carried a statement of his perplexity to Mr. Matthew Reid, the clergyman. This reverend person, besides being an excellent divine in other respects, was at the same time a man of sagacity, who understood the human passions. He did not attempt to combat the reality of the vision which had thrown his parishioner into this tribulation, but he contended it could be only an illusion of the devil. He explained to the widower that no created being could have the right or power to imprison or detain the soul of a Christian—conjured him not to believe that his wife was otherwise disposed of than according to God’s pleasure—assured him that Protestant doctrine utterly denies the existence of any middle state in the world to come—and explained to him that he, as a clergyman of the Church of Scotland, neither could nor dared authorize opening graves or using the intervention of prayer to sanction rites of a suspicious character. The poor man, confounded and perplexed by various feelings, asked his pastor what he should do. “I will give you my best advice,” said the clergyman. “Get your new bride’s consent to be married to-morrow, or to-day, if you can; I will take it on me to dispense with the rest of the banns, or proclaim them three times in one day. You will have a new wife, and, if you think of the former, it will be only as of one from whom death has separated you, and for whom you may have thoughts of affection and sorrow, but as a saint in Heaven, and not as a prisoner in Elfland.” The advice was taken, and the perplexed widower had no more visitations from his former spouse.
The next morning, the terrified widower shared his confusion with Mr. Matthew Reid, the clergyman. This reverend, who was an excellent pastor in many ways, was also a wise man who understood human emotions. He didn’t try to deny the reality of the vision that had troubled his parishioner, but argued that it could only be a trick of the devil. He explained to the widower that no created being has the right or power to imprison or detain a Christian's soul—urged him not to believe that his wife was in any state other than what God intended—assured him that Protestant beliefs completely deny the existence of any middle state in the afterlife—and informed him that as a clergyman of the Church of Scotland, he could neither authorize opening graves nor use prayers to perform any suspicious rituals. The poor man, confused and overwhelmed by his feelings, asked his pastor what he should do. “I’ll give you my best advice,” said the clergyman. “Get your new bride’s consent to marry tomorrow, or today if you can; I’ll take care of the rest of the banns or announce them three times in one day. You’ll have a new wife, and if you think of your late wife, it will be only as someone death has separated you from, someone you can remember with affection and sorrow, but as a saint in Heaven, not as a prisoner in some dark realm.” The advice was followed, and the troubled widower had no more visitations from his late spouse.
An instance, perhaps the latest which has been made public, of communication with the Restless People—(a more proper epithet than that of Daoine Shi, or Men of Peace, as they are called in Gaelic)—came under Pennant’s notice so late as during that observant traveller’s tour in 1769. Being perhaps the latest news from the invisible commonwealth, we give the tourist’s own words.
An example, maybe the most recent one that has been revealed, of communication with the Restless People—a more fitting term than Daoine Shi, or Men of Peace, as they’re known in Gaelic—was noted by Pennant during that attentive traveler’s journey in 1769. Being possibly the latest report from the unseen community, we present the traveler’s own words.
“A poor visionary who had been working in his cabbage-garden (in Breadalbane) imagined that he was raised suddenly up into the air, and conveyed over a wall into an adjacent corn-field; that he found himself surrounded by a crowd of men and women, many of whom he knew to have been dead for some years, and who appeared to him skimming over the tops of the unbending corn, and mingling together like bees going to hive; that they spoke an unknown language, and with a hollow sound; that they very roughly pushed him to and fro, but on his uttering the name of God all vanished, but a female sprite, who, seizing him by the shoulder, obliged him to promise an assignation at that very hour that day seven-night; that he then found his hair was all tied in double knots (well known by the name of elf-locks), and that he had almost lost his speech; that he kept his word with the spectre, whom he soon saw floating through the air towards him; that he spoke to her, but she told him she was at that time in too much haste to attend to him, but bid him go away and no harm should befall him, and so the affair rested when I left the country. But it is incredible the mischief these ægri somnia did in the neighbourhood. The friends and neighbours of the deceased, whom the old dreamer had named, were in the utmost anxiety at finding them in such bad company in the other world; the almost extinct belief of the old idle tales began to gain ground, and the good minister will have many a weary discourse and exhortation before he can eradicate the absurd ideas this idle story has revived."38
A poor dreamer who had been working in his cabbage garden (in Breadalbane) imagined that he was suddenly lifted into the air and carried over a wall into a nearby cornfield; he found himself surrounded by a crowd of men and women, many of whom he knew had been dead for years, moving gracefully over the tops of the rigid corn, mingling together like bees heading to their hive; they spoke an unfamiliar language with a hollow sound; they roughly pushed him around, but as soon as he shouted the name of God, they all vanished except for a female spirit, who grabbed him by the shoulder and forced him to promise to meet her at that same hour a week later; he then noticed that his hair was all tied in double knots (commonly known as elf-locks) and that he could hardly speak; he kept his promise to the spirit, who he soon saw floating through the air toward him; he spoke to her, but she told him she was too busy to talk at that moment and advised him to leave, assuring him no harm would come to him, and so the matter stood when I left the area. But it’s unbelievable the trouble these ægri somnia caused in the neighborhood. The friends and neighbors of the deceased that the old dreamer had named were extremely worried about them being in such bad company in the afterlife; the nearly forgotten belief in old superstitions started to resurface, and the good minister will have many exhausting sermons and discussions before he can eliminate the ridiculous ideas that this silly story has reignited. 38
38 (return)
[ Pennant’s “Tour in
Scotland,” vol. i. p. 110.]
38 (return)
[ Pennant’s “Tour in Scotland,” vol. i. p. 110.]
It is scarcely necessary to add that this comparatively recent tale is just the counterpart of the story of Bessie Dunlop, Alison Pearson, and of the Irish butler who was so nearly carried off, all of whom found in Elfland some friend, formerly of middle earth, who attached themselves to the child of humanity, and who endeavoured to protect a fellow-mortal against their less philanthropic companions.
It’s hardly worth mentioning that this relatively recent story is basically the same as the tales of Bessie Dunlop, Alison Pearson, and the Irish butler who nearly got taken away, all of whom found a friend in Elfland who used to be from the human world, someone who connected with a human child and tried to shield a fellow person from their less caring companions.
These instances may tend to show how the fairy superstition, which, in its general sense of worshipping the Dii Campestres, was much the older of the two, came to bear upon and have connexion with that horrid belief in witchcraft which cost so many innocent persons and crazy impostors their lives for the supposed commission of impossible crimes. In the next chapter I propose to trace how the general disbelief in the fairy creed began to take place, and gradually brought into discredit the supposed feats of witchcraft, which afforded pretext for such cruel practical consequences.
These examples might show how the fairy superstition, which is essentially about worshipping the Dii Campestres, was much older than witchcraft. This belief ended up connecting with the terrible idea of witchcraft, which led to the deaths of many innocent people and delusional frauds for supposedly committing impossible crimes. In the next chapter, I plan to explore how the general disbelief in the fairy tradition started to emerge and gradually discredited the supposed acts of witchcraft, which had provided justification for such cruel real-world consequences.
LETTER VI.
Immediate Effect of Christianity on Articles of Popular Superstition—Chaucer’s Account of the Roman Catholic Priests banishing the Fairies—Bishop Corbett imputes the same Effect to the Reformation—His Verses on that Subject—His Iter Septentrionale—Robin Goodfellow and other Superstitions mentioned by Reginald Scot—Character of the English Fairies—The Tradition had become obsolete in that Author’s Time—That of Witches remained in vigour—But impugned by various Authors after the Reformation, as Wierus, Naudæus, Scot, and others—Demonology defended by Bodinus, Remigius, &c.—Their mutual Abuse of each other—Imperfection of Physical Science at this Period, and the Predominance of Mysticism in that Department.
Immediate Effect of Christianity on Articles of Popular Superstition—Chaucer’s Account of the Roman Catholic Priests banishing the Fairies—Bishop Corbett blames the same Effect on the Reformation—His Verses on that Subject—His Iter Septentrionale—Robin Goodfellow and other Superstitions mentioned by Reginald Scot—Character of the English Fairies—The Tradition had become outdated in that Author’s Time—That of Witches remained strong—But challenged by various Authors after the Reformation, such as Wierus, Naudæus, Scot, and others—Demonology defended by Bodinus, Remigius, &c.—Their mutual Abuse of each other—Imperfection of Physical Science at this Time, and the Dominance of Mysticism in that Field.
Although the influence of the Christian religion was not introduced to the nations of Europe with such radiance as to dispel at once those clouds of superstition which continued to obscure the understanding of hasty and ill-instructed converts, there can be no doubt that its immediate operation went to modify the erroneous and extravagant articles of credulity which lingered behind the old pagan faith, and which gave way before it, in proportion as its light became more pure and refined from the devices of men.
Although the influence of Christianity didn’t sweep across Europe with such brightness that it immediately cleared away the superstitions clouding the understanding of quick and poorly informed converts, it’s clear that its initial impact helped change the false and extreme beliefs that lingered from the old pagan faith. These beliefs faded as the light of Christianity became clearer and less mixed with human inventions.
The poet Chaucer, indeed, pays the Church of Rome, with its monks and preaching friars, the compliment of having, at an early period, expelled from the land all spirits of an inferior and less holy character. The verses are curious as well as picturesque, and may go some length to establish the existence of doubts concerning the general belief in fairies among the well-instructed in the time of Edward III.
The poet Chaucer truly gives credit to the Church of Rome and its monks and preaching friars for having, early on, banished all spirits of a lesser and less holy nature from the land. The verses are both interesting and vivid, and they may help to show that there were doubts about the general belief in fairies among the educated during the time of Edward III.
The fairies of whom the bard of Woodstock talks are, it will be observed, the ancient Celtic breed, and he seems to refer for the authorities of his tale to Bretagne, or Armorica, a genuine Celtic colony:—
The fairies that the bard of Woodstock mentions are clearly from the ancient Celtic lineage, and he appears to draw from sources in Bretagne, or Armorica, which is a true Celtic colony:—
“In old time of the King Artour, Of which that Bretons speken great honour, All was this land fulfilled of faerie; The Elf queen, with her joly company, Danced full oft in many a grene mead. This was the old opinion, as I rede— I speake of many hundred years ago, But now can no man see no elves mo. For now the great charity and prayers Of limitours,39 and other holy freres, That searchen every land and every stream, As thick as motes in the sunne-beam, Blessing halls, chambers, kitchenes, and boures, Cities and burghes, castles high and towers, Thropes and barnes, sheep-pens and dairies, This maketh that there ben no fairies. For there as wont to walken was an elf, There walketh now the limitour himself, In under nichtes and in morwenings, And saith his mattins and his holy things, As he goeth in his limitation. Women may now go safely up and doun; In every bush, and under every tree, There is no other incubus than he, And he ne will don them no dishonour."40
“In the old days of King Arthur, of whom the Bretons speak with great honor, this land was filled with fairies; the Elf queen, along with her lively entourage, often danced in many green fields. This was the old belief, as I read— I’m talking about many hundreds of years ago. But now no one can see any elves anymore. Because now the great charity and prayers of friars, and other holy brothers, who search every land and every stream, are as numerous as dust motes in the sunlight, blessing halls, rooms, kitchens, and bedrooms, cities and towns, high castles and towers, villages and barns, sheep pens and dairies, this is what has caused fairies to disappear. Where elves used to roam, now the friar himself walks around, in the evenings and mornings, saying his prayers and doing his holy rituals, as he goes about his rounds. Women can now safely walk back and forth; in every bush and under every tree, there’s no other troublemaker than him, and he won’t bring them any dishonor.”
39 (return)
[ Friars limited to beg
within a certain district.]
39 (return)
[Friars restricted to begging within a specific area.]
When we see the opinion which Chaucer has expressed of the regular clergy of his time, in some of his other tales, we are tempted to suspect some mixture of irony in the compliment which ascribes the exile of the fairies, with whih the land was “fulfilled” in King Arthur’s time, to the warmth and zeal of the devotion of the limitary friars. Individual instances of scepticism there might exist among scholars, but a more modern poet, with a vein of humour not unworthy of Geoffrey himself, has with greater probability delayed the final banishment of the fairies from England, that is, from popular faith, till the reign of Queen Elizabeth, and has represented their expulsion as a consequence of the change of religion. Two or three verses of this lively satire may be very well worth the reader’s notice, who must, at the same time, be informed that the author, Dr. Corbett, was nothing less than the Bishop of Oxford and Norwich in the beginning of the seventeenth century. The poem is named “A proper new Ballad, entitled the Fairies’ Farewell, to be sung or whistled to the tune of the Meadow Brow by the learned; by the unlearned to the tune of Fortune:”—
When we look at Chaucer's views on the regular clergy of his time in some of his other tales, we might wonder if there's a hint of irony in the compliment that attributes the disappearance of fairies—who had filled the land during King Arthur’s era—to the warmth and enthusiasm of the mendicant friars. While there may be some skepticism among scholars, a more modern poet, with a sense of humor not unlike Geoffrey’s, has suggested that the fairies' final banishment from England—specifically in terms of popular belief—happened during Queen Elizabeth's reign, linking their expulsion to the shift in religion. A couple of lines from this witty satire are definitely worth the reader's attention. It’s important to note that the author, Dr. Corbett, was none other than the Bishop of Oxford and Norwich at the start of the seventeenth century. The poem is titled “A proper new Ballad, entitled the Fairies’ Farewell, to be sung or whistled to the tune of the Meadow Brow by the learned; by the unlearned to the tune of Fortune:”
“Farewell, rewards and fairies, Good housewives now may say, For now foul sluts in dairies Do fare as well as they; And though they sweep their hearths no less Than maids were wont to do, Yet who of late for cleanliness Finds sixpence in her shoe? “Lament, lament, old abbies, The fairies’ lost command; They did but change priests’ babies, But some have changed your land; And all your children sprung from hence Are now grown Puritans, Who live as changelings ever since For love of your domains. “At morning and at evening both, You merry were and glad, So little care of sleep and sloth Those pretty ladies had. When Tom came home from labour. Or Cis to milking rose, Then merrily, merrily went their tabor, And merrily went their toes. “Witness those rings and roundelays Of theirs, which yet remain, Were footed, in Queen Mary’s days, On many a grassy plain; But since of late Elizabeth, And later James came in, They never danced on any heath As when the time hath bin. “By which we note, the fairies Were of the old profession, Their songs were Ave Maries, Their dances were procession. But now, alas! they all are dead, Or gone beyond the seas; Or farther for religion fled, Or else they take their ease.”
“Goodbye, rewards and fairies, Good housewives can now say, Because now dirty women in dairies Do as well as they; And even though they sweep their hearths just as Maids used to do, Who now finds sixpence in her shoe for being clean? “Mourn, mourn, old abbeys, For the fairies’ lost rule; They only swapped priests’ babies, But some have changed your land; And all your children born from here Have now become Puritans, Who live like changelings ever since For the love of your lands. “In the morning and in the evening, You were merry and glad, So little care for sleep and laziness Those lovely ladies had. When Tom came home from work, Or Cis got up to milk, Then merrily, merrily went their drum, And merrily moved their feet. “Look at those rings and dances Of theirs that still remain, Were danced, in Queen Mary’s time, On many a grassy field; But since the arrival of Elizabeth, And later James, They haven't danced on any heath As they used to before. “From this, we see that the fairies Were from the old tradition, Their songs were Ave Maries, Their dances were processions. But now, alas! they are all dead, Or gone across the seas; Or fled further for religion, Or they're just taking it easy.”
The remaining part of the poem is dedicated to the praise and glory of old William Chourne of Staffordshire, who remained a true and stanch evidence in behalf of the departed elves, and kept, much it would seem to the amusement of the witty bishop, an inexhaustible record of their pranks and feats, whence the concluding verse—
The rest of the poem is dedicated to honoring old William Chourne of Staffordshire, who stood as a loyal supporter of the vanished elves and kept, to the apparent amusement of the clever bishop, an endless account of their tricks and adventures, from which the final verse—
“To William all give audience, And pray ye for his noddle, For all the fairies’ evidence Were lost if that were addle."41
“To William, everyone listen, And please pray for his head, For all the fairies’ proof Would be gone if it were addled.”41
41 (return)
[ Corbett’s Poems, edited
by Octavuis Gilchrist, p. 213.]
41 (return)
[ Corbett’s Poems, edited by Octavius Gilchrist, p. 213.]
This William Chourne appears to have attended Dr. Corbett’s party on the iter septentrionale, “two of which were, and two desired to be, doctors;” but whether William was guide, friend, or domestic seems uncertain. The travellers lose themselves in the mazes of Chorley Forest on their way to Bosworth, and their route becomes so confused that they return on their steps and labour—
This William Chourne seems to have been at Dr. Corbett’s party on the iter septentrionale, “two of whom were, and two wanted to be, doctors;” but it’s unclear whether William was a guide, a friend, or a servant. The travelers get lost in the twists and turns of Chorley Forest on their way to Bosworth, and their path becomes so confused that they have to retrace their steps and struggle—
“As in a conjuror’s circle—William found A mean for our deliverance,—‘Turn your cloaks,’ Quoth he, ‘for Puck is busy in these oaks; If ever you at Bosworth would be found, Then turn your cloaks, for this is fairy ground.’ But ere this witchcraft was performed, we meet A very man who had no cloven feet. Though William, still of little faith, has doubt, ‘Tis Robin, or some sprite that walks about. ‘Strike him,’ quoth he, ‘and it will turn to air— Cross yourselves thrice and strike it.’—‘Strike that dare,’ Thought I, ‘for sure this massy forester, In strokes will prove the better conjuror.’ But ‘twas a gentle keeper, one that knew Humanity and manners, where they grew, And rode along so far, till he could say, ‘See, yonder Bosworth stands, and this your way.’”42
“Like in a magician’s circle—William found A way for us to escape, ‘Turn your cloaks,’ He said, ‘because Puck is busy in these woods; If you ever want to be at Bosworth, Then turn your cloaks, because this is fairy ground.’ But before this spell was cast, we encountered A real man who had no cloven feet. Though William, still skeptical, had his doubts, ‘It’s Robin, or some spirit wandering around. ‘Strike him,’ he said, ‘and it will vanish— Cross yourselves three times and then strike it.’—‘Strike that dare,’ I thought, ‘because surely this big forester, In blows will prove the better magician.’ But it was a kind keeper, one who understood Humanity and manners, where they mattered, And rode along so far, until he could say, ‘Look, over there is Bosworth, and this is your way.’”42
In this passage the bishop plainly shows the fairies maintained their influence in William’s imagination, since the courteous keeper was mistaken by their associate champion for Puck or Robin Goodfellow. The spells resorted to to get rid of his supposed delusions are alternatively that of turning the cloak—(recommended in visions of the second-sight or similar illusions as a means of obtaining a certainty concerning the being which is before imperfectly seen43)—and that of exorcising the spirit with a cudgel; which last, Corbett prudently thinks, ought not to be resorted to unless under an absolute conviction that the exorcist is the stronger party. Chaucer, therefore, could not be serious in averring that the fairy superstitions were obsolete in his day, since they were found current three centuries afterwards.
In this passage, the bishop clearly shows that fairies still had a strong influence on William's imagination, as their associate mistakenly thought the courteous keeper was Puck or Robin Goodfellow. The spells used to rid him of these supposed delusions were either turning the cloak—(recommended in visions of second sight or similar illusions as a way to gain certainty about something that's only partially seen 43)—or using a cudgel to exorcise the spirit; the latter, Corbett wisely believes, should only be done if the exorcist is absolutely sure they are the stronger one. Therefore, Chaucer couldn't really be serious in claiming that fairy superstitions were outdated in his time, since they were still prevalent three centuries later.
43 (return)
[ A common instance is that
of a person haunted with a resemblance whose face he cannot see. If he
turn his cloak or plaid, he will obtain the full sight which he desires,
and may probably find it to be his own fetch, or wraith, or
double-ganger.]
43 (return)
[ A typical example is someone tormented by a familiar face they can't see. If they flip their cloak or plaid, they'll get the full view they've been longing for and might discover it's their own spirit, ghost, or doppelgänger.]
It is not the less certain that, as knowledge and religion became more widely and brightly displayed over any country, the superstitious fancies of the people sunk gradually in esteem and influence; and in the time of Queen Elizabeth the unceasing labour of many and popular preachers, who declaimed against the “splendid miracles” of the Church of Rome, produced also its natural effect upon the other stock of superstitions. “Certainly,” said Reginald Scot, talking of times before his own, “some one knave in a white sheet hath cozened and abused many thousands, specially when Robin Goodfellow kept such a coil in the country. In our childhood our mothers’ maids have so terrified us with an ugly devil having horns on his head, fire in his mouth, and a tail at his breech; eyes like a basin, fangs like a dog, claws like a bear, a skin like a negro, and a voice roaring like a lion, whereby we start and are afraid when we hear one cry, Boh! and they have so frayd us with bull-beggars, spirits, witches, urchins, elves, hags, fairies, satyrs, Pans, faunes, sylvans, Kitt-with-the-candlestick, tritons, centaurs, dwarfs, giants, imps, calcars, conjurers, nymphs, changelings, incubus, Robin Goodfellow, the spoorn, the man-in-the-oak, the hellwain, the fire-drake, the puckle, Tom Thumb, Hobgoblin, Tom Tumbler, Boneless, and such other bugbears, that we are afraid of our own shadows, insomuch that some never fear the devil but on a dark night; and then a polled sheep is a perilous beast, and many times is taken for our father’s soul, specially in a churchyard, where a right hardy man heretofore durst not to have passed by night but his hair would stand upright. Well, thanks be to God, this wretched and cowardly infidelity, since the preaching of the Gospel, is in part forgotten, and doubtless the rest of these illusions will in a short time, by God’s grace, be detected and vanish away."44
It's certainly true that as knowledge and religion became more openly and clearly expressed throughout a country, the superstitions of the people gradually lost their value and influence. During the time of Queen Elizabeth, the relentless efforts of many popular preachers who spoke out against the “splendid miracles” of the Church of Rome naturally impacted other superstitions as well. “Indeed,” said Reginald Scot, referring to earlier times, “some deceitful person in a white sheet has tricked and fooled countless people, especially when Robin Goodfellow was causing such a fuss in the countryside. In our childhood, our mothers' maids frightened us with tales of an ugly devil with horns on his head, fire in his mouth, and a tail behind; eyes like bowls, fangs like a dog, claws like a bear, skin like a Black person, and a voice roaring like a lion, making us jump and fear when we hear someone shout, Boo! They terrified us with bull-beggars, spirits, witches, goblins, elves, hags, fairies, satyrs, Pans, fauns, forest spirits, Kitt-with-the-candlestick, tritons, centaurs, dwarfs, giants, imps, calcars, conjurers, nymphs, changelings, incubus, Robin Goodfellow, the spoorn, the man-in-the-oak, the hellwain, the fire-drake, the puckle, Tom Thumb, Hobgoblin, Tom Tumbler, Boneless, and many other scary figures, to the point that we’re afraid of our own shadows. Some people only fear the devil on dark nights; then even a shorn sheep seems dangerous and is often mistaken for our father’s soul, especially in a churchyard, where a truly brave man wouldn’t dare pass by at night without his hair standing on end. Well, thank God, this miserable and cowardly disbelief has partly been forgotten since the preaching of the Gospel, and surely, by God’s grace, the rest of these illusions will soon be revealed and disappear."44
44 (return)
[ Reginald Scot’s
“Discovery of Witchcraft,” book vii. chap. 15.]
44 (return)
[ Reginald Scot’s “Discovery of Witchcraft,” book vii. chap. 15.]
It would require a better demonologist than I am to explain the various obsolete superstitions which Reginald Scot has introduced as articles of the old English faith, into the preceding passage. I might indeed say the Phuca is a Celtic superstition, from which the word Pook or Puckle was doubtless derived; and I might conjecture that the man-in-the-oak was the same with the Erl-König of the Germans; and that the hellwain were a kind of wandering spirits, the descendants of a champion named Hellequin, who are introduced into the romance of Richard sans Peur. But most antiquaries will be at fault concerning the spoorn, Kitt-with-the-candlestick, Boneless, and some others. The catalogue, however, serves to show what progress the English have made in two centuries, in forgetting the very names of objects which had been the sources of terror to their ancestors of the Elizabethan age.
It would take a better expert on demons than I am to explain the various outdated superstitions that Reginald Scot has mentioned as part of the old English belief in the passage above. I could say that the Phuca is a Celtic superstition, and that's likely where the words Pook or Puckle came from; I could also guess that the man-in-the-oak is the same as the Erl-König from German folklore, and that the hellwain are a type of wandering spirits, descended from a champion named Hellequin, who appear in the stories of Richard sans Peur. But most historians will struggle to explain the spoorn, Kitt-with-the-candlestick, Boneless, and a few others. Still, this list highlights how much progress the English have made over the past two centuries in forgetting the very names of things that used to terrify their ancestors from the Elizabethan era.
Before leaving the subject of fairy superstition in England we may remark that it was of a more playful and gentle, less wild and necromantic character, than that received among the sister people. The amusements of the southern fairies were light and sportive; their resentments were satisfied with pinching or scratching the objects of their displeasure; their peculiar sense of cleanliness rewarded the housewives with the silver token in the shoe; their nicety was extreme concerning any coarseness or negligence which could offend their delicacy; and I cannot discern, except, perhaps, from the insinuations of some scrupulous divines, that they were vassals to or in close alliance with the infernals, as there is too much reason to believe was the case with their North British sisterhood.45 The common nursery story cannot be forgotten, how, shortly after the death of what is called a nice tidy housewife, the Elfin band was shocked to see that a person of different character, with whom the widower had filled his deserted arms, instead of the nicely arranged little loaf of the whitest bread, and a basin of sweet cream, duly placed for their refreshment by the deceased, had substituted a brown loaf and a cobb of herrings. Incensed at such a coarse regale, the elves dragged the peccant housewife out of bed, and pulled her down the wooden stairs by the heels, repeating, at the same time, in scorn of her churlish hospitality—
Before we move on from the topic of fairy superstition in England, it's worth noting that it was more playful and gentle, and less wild and sinister than what you’d find among their counterparts. The southern fairies enjoyed light and playful antics; when they got upset, they were satisfied with pinching or scratching those who displeased them; their particular sense of cleanliness rewarded housewives with a silver token in their shoe; they were extremely picky about any roughness or negligence that could offend their sensibilities; and I can't see any evidence, except possibly from the hints of some overly cautious clergymen, that they were subordinate to or closely linked with the forces of darkness, as seems to be the case with their Scottish counterparts. The common nursery tale won’t be forgotten, how, shortly after the passing of what was known as a neat and tidy housewife, the Elfin band was shocked to discover that the person the widower had taken up with, instead of the well-prepared little loaf of the whitest bread and a bowl of sweet cream that the deceased had always set out for them, had replaced it with a brown loaf and a barrel of herring. Furious at such a poor offering, the elves dragged the offending housewife out of bed and pulled her down the wooden stairs by her feet, mocking her rude hospitality as they did so—
“Brown bread and herring cobb! Thy fat sides shall have many a bob!”
“Brown bread and herring cobb! Your fat sides are going to make a lot of money!”
But beyond such playful malice they had no desire to extend their resentment.
But aside from their playful malice, they didn't want to hold onto their resentment any longer.
45 (return)
[ Dr. Jackson, in his
“Treatise on Unbelief,” opines for the severe opinion. “Thus are the
Fayries, from difference of events ascribed to them, divided into good and
bad, when as it is but one and the same malignant fiend that meddles in
both; seeking sometimes to be feared, otherwhiles to be loued as God, for
the bodily harmes or good turnes supposed to be in his power.”—Jackson
on Unbelief, p. 178, edit. 1625.]
45 (return)
[ Dr. Jackson, in his
“Treatise on Unbelief,” argues for a strong viewpoint. “Thus, the Fairies are divided into good and bad based on the different events attributed to them, when in fact it is one and the same malicious spirit that interferes in both; sometimes seeking to be feared, other times wanting to be loved like God, due to the physical harm or good deeds they are believed to control.”—Jackson
on Unbelief, p. 178, edit. 1625.]
The constant attendant upon the English Fairy court was the celebrated Puck, or Robin Goodfellow, who to the elves acted in some measure as the jester or clown of the company—(a character then to be found in the establishment of every person of quality)—or to use a more modern comparison, resembled the Pierrot of the pantomime. His jests were of the most simple and at the same time the broadest comic character—to mislead a clown on his path homeward, to disguise himself like a stool, in order to induce an old gossip to commit the egregious mistake of sitting down on the floor when she expected to repose on a chair, were his special enjoyments. If he condescended to do some work for the sleeping family, in which he had some resemblance to the Scottish household spirit called a Brownie, the selfish Puck was far from practising this labour on the disinterested principle of the northern goblin, who, if raiment or food was left in his way and for his use, departed from the family in displeasure. Robin Goodfellow, on the contrary, must have both his food and his rest, as Milton informs us, amid his other notices of country superstitions, in the poem of L’Allegro. And it is to be noticed that he represents these tales of the fairies, told round the cottage hearth, as of a cheerful rather than a serious cast; which illustrates what I have said concerning the milder character of the southern superstitions, as compared with those of the same class in Scotland—the stories of which are for the most part of a frightful and not seldom of a disgusting quality.
The constant companion of the English Fairy court was the famous Puck, or Robin Goodfellow, who acted as the jester or clown for the elves—similar to the Pierrot seen in pantomimes today. His jokes were simple yet broad in their humor—leading a clown off course on his way home or disguising himself as a stool to trick an old gossip into mistakenly sitting on the floor instead of a chair were his favorite pastimes. If he ever helped out a sleeping family, he resembled the Scottish household spirit known as a Brownie, but selfish Puck did not work out of kindness like the northern goblin, who would leave a household in annoyance if offered clothing or food. Robin Goodfellow, on the other hand, needed his food and rest, as Milton points out in his poem L’Allegro, where he observes country superstitions. It’s worth noting that he describes these fairy tales told around the cottage hearth as cheerful rather than serious, which illustrates what I said about the milder nature of southern superstitions compared to those of Scotland, where stories are often frightening and sometimes quite disgusting.
Poor Robin, however, between whom and King Oberon Shakespeare contrives to keep a degree of distinct subordination, which for a moment deceives us by its appearance of reality, notwithstanding his turn for wit and humour, had been obscured by oblivion even in the days of Queen Bess. We have already seen, in a passage quoted from Reginald Scot, that the belief was fallen into abeyance; that which follows from the same author affirms more positively that Robin’s date was over:—
Poor Robin, however, is placed in a situation of clear subordination to King Oberon, which for a moment tricks us into thinking it's real, despite his knack for wit and humor. He had already been forgotten even in the days of Queen Bess. We’ve already seen in a passage from Reginald Scot that this belief had faded away; the next part from the same author states even more clearly that Robin's time had passed:—
“Know ye this, by the way, that heretofore Robin Goodfellow and Hobgoblin were as terrible, and also as credible, to the people as hags and witches be now; and in time to come a witch will be as much derided and condemned, and as clearly perceived, as the illusion and knavery of Robin Goodfellow, upon whom there have gone as many and as credible tales as witchcraft, saving that it hath not pleased the translators of the Bible to call spirits by the name of Robin Goodfellow, as they have diviners, soothsayers, poisoners, and cozeners by the name of witches."46 In the same tone Reginald Scot addresses the reader in the preface:—“To make a solemn suit to you that are partial readers to set aside partiality, to take in good part my writings, and with indifferent eyes to look upon my book, were labour lost and time ill-employed; for I should no more prevail herein than if, a hundred years since, I should have entreated your predecessors to believe that Robin Goodfellow, that great and ancient bull-beggar, had been but a cozening merchant, and no devil indeed. But Robin Goodfellow ceaseth now to be much feared, and Popery is sufficiently discovered; nevertheless, witches’ charms and conjurers’ cozenage are yet effectual.” This passage seems clearly to prove that the belief in Robin Goodfellow and his fairy companions was now out of date; while that as to witchcraft, as was afterwards but too well shown, kept its ground against argument and controversy, and survived “to shed more blood.”
“Just so you know, back in the day, Robin Goodfellow and Hobgoblin were just as frightening and believable to people as witches are now; and in the future, a witch will be ridiculed and condemned just like the tricks and deceit of Robin Goodfellow. There have been just as many credible stories about him as there are about witchcraft, except it hasn't suited the translators of the Bible to refer to spirits as Robin Goodfellow, unlike diviners, soothsayers, poisoners, and tricksters who are called witches.”46 Reginald Scot addresses the reader similarly in the preface: “It would be a waste of effort to ask you, who have your biases, to put aside those biases, to take my writings in a good spirit, and to look at my book without judgment. I would have no more success in this than if, a hundred years ago, I had asked your ancestors to believe that Robin Goodfellow, that old trickster, was just a fraudulent merchant and not a devil at all. But Robin Goodfellow is no longer feared much, and the truths about Popery are clearer now; still, witches’ spells and the tricks of conjurers are still effective.” This passage clearly shows that belief in Robin Goodfellow and his fairy friends was becoming outdated; meanwhile, beliefs about witchcraft, as later events would sadly confirm, continued to hold strong against criticism and debate, leading to “more bloodshed.”
46 (return)
[ Reginald Scot’s
“Discovery of Witchcraft,” book vii. chap, ii.]
46 (return)
[ Reginald Scot’s
“Discovery of Witchcraft,” book 7, chapter 2.]
We are then to take leave of this fascinating article of the popular creed, having in it so much of interest to the imagination that we almost envy the credulity of those who, in the gentle moonlight of a summer night in England, amid the tangled glades of a deep forest, or the turfy swell of her romantic commons, could fancy they saw the fairies tracing their sportive ring. But it is in vain to regret illusions which, however engaging, must of necessity yield their place before the increase of knowledge, like shadows at the advance of morn. These superstitions have already survived their best and most useful purpose, having been embalmed in the poetry of Milton and of Shakespeare, as well as writers only inferior to these great names. Of Spenser we must say nothing, because in his “Faery Queen” the title is the only circumstance which connects his splendid allegory with the popular superstition, and, as he uses it, means nothing more than an Utopia or nameless country.
We should now say goodbye to this intriguing aspect of popular beliefs, which captivates the imagination so much that we almost envy those who, on a warm summer night in England, under the soft moonlight in a deep forest or across the grassy hills of her scenic commons, could imagine seeing fairies dancing in a circle. But it's pointless to mourn for illusions that, no matter how charming, must inevitably give way to the growth of knowledge, just like shadows fade as morning arrives. These superstitions have already outlived their most valuable purpose, being preserved in the poetry of Milton and Shakespeare, along with other writers who are nearly as esteemed. We won't discuss Spenser because in his "Faery Queen," the title is the only detail linking his magnificent allegory to the popular superstition; in his use, it simply refers to an ideal place or an unnamed land.
With the fairy popular creed fell, doubtless, many subordinate articles of credulity in England, but the belief in witches kept its ground. It was rooted in the minds of the common people, as well by the easy solution it afforded of much which they found otherwise hard to explain, as in reverence to the Holy Scriptures, in which the word witch, being used in several places, conveyed to those who did not trouble themselves about the nicety of the translation from the Eastern tongues, the inference that the same species of witches were meant as those against whom modern legislation had, in most European nations, directed the punishment of death. These two circumstances furnished the numerous believers in witchcraft with arguments in divinity and law which they conceived irrefragable. They might say to the theologist, Will you not believe in witches? the Scriptures aver their existence;—to the jurisconsult, Will you dispute the existence of a crime against which our own statute-book, and the code of almost all civilized countries, have attested, by laws upon which hundreds and thousands have been convicted, many or even most of whom have, by their judicial confessions, acknowledged their guilt and the justice of their punishment? It is a strange scepticism, they might add, which rejects the evidence of Scripture, of human legislature, and of the accused persons themselves.
With the fairy popular belief faded away, many secondary ideas of gullibility in England probably fell too, but the belief in witches remained strong. It was deeply ingrained in the minds of ordinary people, not only because it provided easy explanations for things they found hard to understand but also due to respect for the Holy Scriptures, which mentioned the word witch in several places. This led those who didn’t bother with the nuances of translation from ancient languages to conclude that the same type of witches were meant as those whom modern laws in most European countries had condemned to death. These two factors gave the many believers in witchcraft strong arguments from both religion and law that they thought were unassailable. They might ask the theologian, “Will you not believe in witches? The Scriptures affirm their existence.” To the legal expert, they could say, “Can you deny the existence of a crime for which our own laws, as well as those of nearly all civilized nations, have established punishments, with hundreds and thousands convicted, many of whom admitted their guilt and the justice of their punishment during their trials?” They might add that it’s a strange skepticism that dismisses the evidence of Scripture, human law, and the accused themselves.
Notwithstanding these specious reasons, the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries were periods when the revival of learning, the invention of printing, the fearless investigations of the Reformers into subjects thought formerly too sacred for consideration of any save the clergy, had introduced a system of doubt, enquiry, disregard of authority, when unsupported by argument, and unhesitating exercise of the private judgment, on subjects which had occupied the bulls of popes and decrees of councils. In short, the spirit of the age was little disposed to spare error, however venerable, or countenance imposture, however sanctioned by length of time and universal acquiescence. Learned writers arose in different countries to challenge the very existence of this imaginary crime, to rescue the reputation of the great men whose knowledge, superior to that of their age, had caused them to be suspected of magic, and to put a stop to the horrid superstition whose victims were the aged, ignorant, and defenceless, and which could only be compared to that which sent victims of old through the fire to Moloch.
Despite these misleading reasons, the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries were times when the revival of learning, the invention of printing, and the bold inquiries of the Reformers into topics once only discussed by clergy introduced a culture of doubt, inquiry, and disregard for authority when it lacked supporting arguments. People started exercising their private judgment on issues that had preoccupied popes and councils. In short, the spirit of the age was not inclined to tolerate error, no matter how respected, or to endorse deceit, no matter how long it had been accepted. Scholars emerged in various countries to question the very existence of this imagined crime, to defend the reputations of great thinkers whose advanced knowledge had led them to be suspected of witchcraft, and to put an end to the horrifying superstition whose victims were the elderly, uneducated, and defenseless—comparable only to the ancient practice of sacrificing victims to Moloch.
The courageous interposition of those philosophers who opposed science and experience to the prejudices of superstition and ignorance, and in doing so incurred much misrepresentation, and perhaps no little ill-will, in the cause of truth and humanity, claim for them some distinction in a work on Demonology. The pursuers of exact science to its coy retreats, were sure to be the first to discover that the most remarkable phenomena in Nature are regulated by certain fixed laws, and cannot rationally be referred to supernatural agency, the sufficing cause to which superstition attributes all that is beyond her own narrow power of explanation. Each advance in natural knowledge teaches us that it is the pleasure of the Creator to govern the world by the laws which he has imposed, and which are not in our times interrupted or suspended.
The brave stand taken by those philosophers who challenged science and experience against the biases of superstition and ignorance, and in doing so faced significant misrepresentation and probably some resentment, deserves recognition in a discussion on Demonology. Those who pursue precise science into its hidden corners are likely to be the first to realize that the most astonishing phenomena in Nature are governed by specific fixed laws and cannot reasonably be attributed to supernatural forces, which superstition assigns to everything beyond its limited understanding. Each step forward in natural knowledge shows us that it is the will of the Creator to oversee the world through the laws He has set, which are not interrupted or suspended in our time.
The learned Wier, or Wierus, was a man of great research in physical science, and studied under the celebrated Cornelius Agrippa, against whom the charge of sorcery was repeatedly alleged by Paulus Jovius and other authors, while he suffered, on the other hand, from the persecution of the inquisitors of the Church, whose accusation against this celebrated man was, that he denied the existence of spirits, a charge very inconsistent with that of sorcery, which consists in corresponding with them. Wierus, after taking his degree as a doctor of medicine, became physician to the Duke of Cleves, at whose court he practised for thirty years with the highest reputation. This learned man, disregarding the scandal which, by so doing, he was likely to bring upon himself, was one of the first who attacked the vulgar belief, and boldly assailed, both by serious arguments and by ridicule, the vulgar credulity on the subject of wizards and witches.
The knowledgeable Wier, or Wierus, was a man who conducted extensive research in physical science and studied under the famous Cornelius Agrippa. He faced accusations of sorcery from Paulus Jovius and other writers, while also enduring persecution from the Church’s inquisitors. They accused this well-known figure of denying the existence of spirits, which contradicted the sorcery charges that involved interacting with them. After earning his medical degree, Wierus became the physician to the Duke of Cleves, practicing at his court for thirty years with a stellar reputation. This learned individual, despite the potential scandal he might bring upon himself, was among the first to challenge common beliefs and boldly critiqued both through serious arguments and mockery the widespread credulity surrounding wizards and witches.
Gabriel Naudé, or Naudæus, as he termed himself, was a perfect scholar and man of letters, busied during his whole life with assembling books together, and enjoying the office of librarian to several persons of high rank, amongst others, to Queen Christina of Sweden. He was, besides, a beneficed clergyman, leading a most unblemished life, and so temperate as never to taste any liquor stronger than water; yet did he not escape the scandal which is usually flung by their prejudiced contemporaries upon those disputants whom it is found more easy to defame than to answer. He wrote an interesting work, entitled “Apologie pour les Grands Homines Accusés de Magie;” and as he exhibited a good deal of vivacity of talent, and an earnestness in pleading his cause, which did not always spare some of the superstitions of Rome herself, he was charged by his contemporaries as guilty of heresy and scepticism, when justice could only accuse him of an incautious eagerness to make good his argument.
Gabriel Naudé, or Naudæus, as he called himself, was an ideal scholar and a man of letters who dedicated his entire life to collecting books and served as a librarian for several high-ranking individuals, including Queen Christina of Sweden. He was also a clergyman with a good reputation, living a very upright life and so temperate that he never touched any drink stronger than water; however, he did not escape the criticism that often comes from those who find it easier to slander others rather than engage in debate. He wrote an intriguing book titled “Apologie pour les Grands Homines Accusés de Magie,” showcasing a lot of talent and passion in defending his views, which sometimes challenged the superstitions of Rome itself. His contemporaries accused him of heresy and skepticism, when in truth, the only valid criticism could be his overly zealous attempt to support his arguments.
Among persons who, upon this subject, purged their eyes with rue and euphrasie, besides the Rev. Dr. Harsnet and many others (who wrote rather on special cases of Demonology than on the general question), Reginald Scot ought to be distinguished. Webster assures us that he was a “person of competent learning, pious, and of a good family.” He seems to have been a zealous Protestant, and much of his book, as well as that of Harsnet, is designed to throw upon the Papists in particular those tricks in which, by confederacy and imposture, the popular ideas concerning witchcraft, possession, and other supernatural fancies, were maintained and kept in exercise; but he also writes on the general question with some force and talent, considering that his subject is incapable of being reduced into a regular form, and is of a nature particularly seductive to an excursive talent. He appears to have studied legerdemain for the purpose of showing how much that is apparently unaccountable can nevertheless be performed without the intervention of supernatural assistance, even when it is impossible to persuade the vulgar that the devil has not been consulted on the occasion. Scot also had intercourse with some of the celebrated fortune-tellers, or Philomaths, of the time; one of whom he brings forward to declare the vanity of the science which he himself had once professed.
Among people who, on this topic, cleared their vision with rue and euphrasia, besides the Rev. Dr. Harsnet and many others (who focused more on specific cases of Demonology than the overall issue), Reginald Scot stands out. Webster tells us that he was a “qualified scholar, devout, and from a good family.” He seems to have been a passionate Protestant, and much of his book, like Harsnet's, aims to expose the tricks used by the Papists to uphold and perpetuate popular beliefs about witchcraft, possession, and other supernatural ideas through conspiracy and deceit. However, he also addresses the general issue with considerable skill and insight, even though his topic defies straightforward organization and is particularly tempting to a wandering mind. He appears to have studied sleight of hand to demonstrate how many seemingly unexplainable things can actually be done without any supernatural help, despite it being difficult to convince the public that the devil wasn’t involved. Scot also interacted with some of the well-known fortune-tellers, or Philomaths, of his time; one of them he showcases to highlight the futility of the very science he once practiced.
To defend the popular belief of witchcraft there arose a number of advocates, of whom Bodin and some others neither wanted knowledge nor powers of reasoning. They pressed the incredulous party with the charge that they denied the existence of a crime against which the law had denounced a capital punishment. As that law was understood to emanate from James himself, who was reigning monarch during the hottest part of the controversy, the English authors who defended the opposite side were obliged to entrench themselves under an evasion, to avoid maintaining an argument unpalatable to a degree to those in power, and which might perchance have proved unsafe to those who used it. With a certain degree of sophistry they answered that they did not doubt the possibility of witches, but only demurred to what is their nature, and how they came to be such—according to the scholastic jargon, that the question in respect to witches was not de existentia, but only de modo existendi.
To support the common belief in witchcraft, several advocates emerged, including Bodin and a few others who lacked knowledge and reasoning skills. They challenged skeptics by accusing them of denying the existence of a crime that the law had condemned with a death penalty. Since this law was thought to come directly from James himself, the reigning king during the peak of the controversy, English authors who opposed this view had to resort to evasive tactics to avoid arguing against a position that was extremely unpopular with those in power, which could be risky for them. With some degree of cunning reasoning, they claimed that while they didn’t deny the possibility of witches, they only questioned what they were and how they came to be that way—according to scholarly terminology, the debate about witches was not about de existentia, but only de modo existendi.
By resorting to so subtle an argument those who impugned the popular belief were obliged, with some inconsistency, to grant that witchcraft had existed, and might exist, only insisting that it was a species of witchcraft consisting of they knew not what, but certainly of something different from that which legislators, judges, and juries had hitherto considered the statute as designed to repress.
By using such a subtle argument, those who challenged the common belief had to, somewhat inconsistently, admit that witchcraft had existed and could still exist. They just insisted that it was a type of witchcraft that they couldn't quite define, but it was definitely something different from what lawmakers, judges, and juries had previously thought the law was meant to control.
In the meantime (the rather that the debate was on a subject particularly difficult of comprehension) the debating parties grew warm, and began to call names. Bodin, a lively Frenchman of an irritable habit, explained the zeal of Wierus to protect the tribe of sorcerers from punishment, by stating that he himself was a conjurer and the scholar of Cornelius Agrippa, and might therefore well desire to save the lives of those accused of the same league with Satan. Hence they threw on their antagonists the offensive names of witch-patrons and witch-advocates, as if it were impossible for any to hold the opinion of Naudæus, Wierus, Scot, &c., without patronizing the devil and the witches against their brethren of mortality. Assailed by such heavy charges, the philosophers themselves lost patience, and retorted abuse in their turn, calling Bodin, Delrio, and others who used their arguments, witch-advocates, and the like, as the affirming and defending the existence of the crime seemed to increase the number of witches, and assuredly augmented the list of executions. But for a certain time the preponderance of the argument lay on the side of the Demonologists, and we may briefly observe the causes which gave their opinions, for a period, greater influence than their opponents on the public mind.
In the meantime, as the debate was particularly complex, the participants got heated and started hurling insults. Bodin, an outspoken Frenchman with a short temper, suggested that Wierus’s eagerness to defend sorcerers from punishment stemmed from the fact that he was a conjurer and a student of Cornelius Agrippa, which made him want to protect those accused of associating with Satan. Consequently, they labeled their opponents with derogatory terms like witch-patrons and witch-advocates, as if it were impossible for anyone to share the views of Naudæus, Wierus, Scot, and others without endorsing the devil and witches against their fellow humans. Faced with such serious accusations, the philosophers also lost their cool and retaliated with insults, calling Bodin, Delrio, and others who supported their arguments witch-advocates, claiming that affirming and defending the existence of witchcraft only increased the number of witches and certainly added to the list of executions. However, at that time, the balance of the argument favored the Demonologists, and we can briefly note the reasons why their views held more sway over public opinion for a period.
It is first to be observed that Wierus, for what reason cannot well be conjectured, except to show the extent of his cabalistical knowledge, had introduced into his work against witchcraft the whole Stenographia of Trithemius, which he had copied from the original in the library of Cornelius Agrippa; and which, suspicious from the place where he found it, and from the long catalogue of fiends which it contained, with the charms for raising and for binding them to the service of mortals, was considered by Bodin as containing proof that Wierus himself was a sorcerer; not one of the wisest, certainly, since he thus unnecessarily placed at the disposal of any who might buy the book the whole secrets which formed his stock-in-trade.
It should first be noted that Wierus, for reasons that aren't entirely clear—perhaps to showcase his knowledge of the occult—included the entire Stenographia of Trithemius in his work against witchcraft. He copied it from the original in Cornelius Agrippa's library. Given its source and the extensive list of demons it included, along with the spells for summoning and controlling them, Bodin viewed it as evidence that Wierus was himself a sorcerer. He certainly wasn't among the wisest, as he carelessly made all of his secrets available to anyone who purchased the book.
Secondly, we may notice that, from the state of physical science at the period when Van Helmont, Paracelsus, and others began to penetrate into its recesses, it was an unknown, obscure, and ill-defined region, and did not permit those who laboured in it to give that precise and accurate account of their discoveries which the progress of reasoning experimentally and from analysis has enabled the late discoverers to do with success. Natural magic—a phrase used to express those phenomena which could be produced by a knowledge of the properties of matter—had so much in it that was apparently uncombined and uncertain, that the art of chemistry was accounted mystical, and an opinion prevailed that the results now known to be the consequence of laws of matter, could not be traced through their various combinations even by those who knew the effects themselves. Physical science, in a word, was cumbered by a number of fanciful and incorrect opinions, chiefly of a mystical character. If, for instance, it was observed that a flag and a fern never grew near each other, the circumstance was imputed to some antipathy between these vegetables; nor was it for some time resolved by the natural rule, that the flag has its nourishment in marshy ground, whereas the fern loves a deep dryish soil. The attributes of the divining-rod were fully credited; the discovery of the philosopher’s stone was daily hoped for; and electricity, magnetism, and other remarkable and misconceived phenomena were appealed to as proof of the reasonableness of their expectations. Until such phenomena were traced to their sources, imaginary and often mystical causes were assigned to them, for the same reason that, in the wilds of a partially discovered country, according to the satirist,
Secondly, we can see that during the time when Van Helmont, Paracelsus, and others started to explore the depths of physical science, it was an unknown, unclear, and vaguely defined area. This lack of clarity made it difficult for those working in it to provide the precise and accurate accounts of their findings that later researchers have been able to achieve thanks to advances in reasoning through experimentation and analysis. Natural magic—a term used to describe phenomena that could be produced through an understanding of the properties of matter—had many aspects that seemed disorganized and uncertain, leading to the belief that the art of chemistry was mystical. There was a prevailing view that the results we now understand as consequences of the laws of matter could not be traced through their various combinations, even by those who recognized the effects themselves. In short, physical science was burdened by numerous fanciful and incorrect beliefs, mostly of a mystical nature. For example, when it was observed that a flag and a fern never grew near each other, people attributed this to some kind of enmity between the two plants. It took time before it was understood that the flag thrives in marshy soil, while the fern prefers a drier area. The properties of the divining rod were widely believed, people hoped to discover the philosopher’s stone every day, and phenomena like electricity, magnetism, and other remarkable and misunderstood occurrences were cited as evidence supporting their expectations. Until these phenomena were traced back to their true causes, imaginary and often mystical explanations were assigned to them, similar to how a satirist might describe a partially explored land.
“Geographers on pathless downs Place elephants for want of towns.”
“Geographers on open plains Place elephants where there are no towns.”
This substitution of mystical fancies for experimental reasoning gave, in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, a doubtful and twilight appearance to the various branches of physical philosophy. The learned and sensible Dr. Webster, for instance, writing in detection of supposed witchcraft, assumes, as a string of undeniable facts, opinions which our more experienced age would reject as frivolous fancies; “for example, the effects of healing by the weapon-salve, the sympathetic powder, the curing of various diseases by apprehensions, amulets, or by transplantation.” All of which undoubted wonders he accuses the age of desiring to throw on the devil’s back—an unnecessary load certainly, since such things do not exist, and it is therefore in vain to seek to account for them. It followed that, while the opposers of the ordinary theory might have struck the deepest blows at the witch hypothesis by an appeal to common sense, they were themselves hampered by articles of philosophical belief which they must have been sensible contained nearly as deep draughts upon human credulity as were made by the Demonologists, against whose doctrine they protested. This error had a doubly bad effect, both as degrading the immediate department in which it occurred, and as affording a protection for falsehood in other branches of science. The champions who, in their own province, were obliged by the imperfect knowledge of the times to admit much that was mystical and inexplicable—those who opined, with Bacon, that warts could be cured by sympathy—who thought, with Napier, that hidden treasures could be discovered by the mathematics—who salved the weapon instead of the wound, and detected murders as well as springs of water by the divining-rod, could not consistently use, to confute the believers in witches, an argument turning on the impossible or the incredible.
The replacement of mystical beliefs with experimental reasoning gave, in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries, a questionable and unclear look to various branches of physical philosophy. For example, the learned Dr. Webster, writing to debunk alleged witchcraft, presents as undeniable facts ideas that our more informed society would dismiss as silly fantasies; “for instance, the healing effects of weapon-salve, sympathetic powder, curing various diseases through belief, amulets, or by transplantation.” He claims that the era is wrong to attribute these obvious wonders to the devil—an unreasonable assumption since such things don’t actually exist, making it pointless to try to explain them. As a result, while those who opposed the standard theory could have effectively challenged the witch hypothesis through common sense, they were constrained by philosophical beliefs that likely tapped into human gullibility just as much as the Demonologists’ ideas, which they opposed. This mistake had a doubly negative impact, both by degrading the specific area in which it arose and by providing cover for falsehoods in other fields of science. The defenders who, in their own realm, were forced by the limited knowledge of the time to accept various mystical and unexplained ideas—those who believed, like Bacon, that warts could be cured through sympathy—who thought, like Napier, that treasures could be found using mathematics—who treated the weapon instead of the wound, and solved murders and found water sources with the divining rod, could not consistently use an argument based on the impossible or unbelievable to refute believers in witches.
Such were the obstacles arising from the vanity of philosophers and the imperfection of their science, which suspended the strength of their appeal to reason and common sense against the condemning of wretches to a cruel death on account of crimes which the nature of things rendered in modern times totally impossible. We cannot doubt that they suffered considerably in the contest, which was carried on with much anger and malevolence; but the good seed which they had sown remained uncorrupted in the soil, to bear fruit so soon as the circumstances should be altered which at first impeded its growth. In the next letter I shall take a view of the causes which helped to remove these impediments, in addition, it must always be remembered, to the general increase of knowledge and improvement of experimental philosophy.
Such were the challenges stemming from the arrogance of philosophers and the flaws in their science, which weakened their argument for reason and common sense against sentencing people to a cruel death for crimes that, in modern times, were completely impossible. There's no doubt they faced significant struggles in this battle, which was filled with anger and hostility; however, the good ideas they planted remained intact, ready to flourish as soon as the circumstances that initially hindered their growth changed. In the next letter, I will explore the factors that helped eliminate these obstacles, along with the overall increase in knowledge and the advancement of experimental philosophy.
LETTER VII.
Penal Laws unpopular when rigidly exercised—Prosecution of Witches placed in the hand of Special Commissioners, ad inquirendum—Prosecution for Witchcraft not frequent in the Elder Period of the Roman Empire—Nor in the Middle Ages—Some Cases took place, however—The Maid of Orleans—The Duchess of Gloucester—Richard the Third’s Charge against the Relations of the Queen Dowager—But Prosecutions against Sorcerers became more common in the end of the Fourteenth Century—Usually united with the Charge of Heresy—Monstrelet’s Account of the Persecution against the Waldenses, under pretext of Witchcraft—Florimond’s Testimony concerning the Increase of Witches in his own Time—Bull of Pope Innocent VIII.—Various Prosecutions in Foreign Countries under this severe Law—Prosecutions in Labourt by the Inquisitor De Lancre and his Colleague—Lycanthropy—Witches in Spain—In Sweden—and particularly those Apprehended at Mohra.
Penal laws became unpopular when applied too strictly—Prosecution of witches was given to Special Commissioners, ad inquirendum—Prosecution for witchcraft was not common during the earlier years of the Roman Empire—Nor in the Middle Ages—However, some cases did occur—The Maid of Orleans—The Duchess of Gloucester—Richard the Third’s accusations against the relatives of the Queen Dowager—But prosecutions against sorcerers became more frequent by the late Fourteenth Century—Usually linked with charges of heresy—Monstrelet’s account of the persecution against the Waldenses, under the guise of witchcraft—Florimond’s testimony about the rise in witchcraft during his time—The papal bull from Pope Innocent VIII.—Various prosecutions in other countries under this harsh law—Prosecutions in Labourt by the Inquisitor De Lancre and his colleague—Lycanthropy—Witches in Spain—In Sweden—and especially those captured at Mohra.
Penal laws, like those of the Middle Ages, denounced against witchcraft, may be at first hailed with unanimous acquiescence and approbation, but are uniformly found to disgust and offend at least the more sensible part of the public when the punishments become frequent and are relentlessly inflicted. Those against treason are no exception. Each reflecting government will do well to shorten that melancholy reign of terror which perhaps must necessarily follow on the discovery of a plot or the defeat of an insurrection. They ought not, either in humanity or policy, to wait till the voice of the nation calls to them, as Mecænas to Augustus, “Surge tandem carnifex!”
Penal laws, like those from the Middle Ages that targeted witchcraft, may initially receive wide approval and agreement, but they inevitably end up upsetting and alienating the more reasonable members of society when the punishments become frequent and are harshly enforced. This applies to laws against treason as well. Any thoughtful government should work to reduce that unfortunate period of terror that often follows the discovery of a conspiracy or the suppression of a rebellion. They should not wait for the public outcry to urge them, like Mecænas to Augustus, “Surge tandem carnifex!”
It is accordingly remarkable, in different countries, how often at some particular period of their history there occurred an epidemic of terror of witches, which, as fear is always cruel and credulous, glutted the public with seas of innocent blood; and how uniformly men loathed the gore after having swallowed it, and by a reaction natural to the human mind desired, in prudence, to take away or restrict those laws which had been the source of carnage, in order that their posterity might neither have the will nor the means to enter into similar excesses.
It's striking how, in various countries, there have been times in their history when there was a widespread panic about witches, which, fueled by fear that is both ruthless and gullible, led to a flood of innocent blood being shed. After indulging in this violence, people consistently came to despise the bloodshed and, driven by a natural human response, sought to repeal or limit the laws that caused the bloodbath, so that future generations would neither want to nor be able to repeat such atrocities.
A short review of foreign countries, before we come to notice the British Islands and their Colonies, will prove the truth of this statement. In Catholic countries on the Continent, the various kingdoms adopted readily that part of the civil law, already mentioned, which denounces sorcerers and witches as rebels to God, and authors of sedition in the empire. But being considered as obnoxious equally to the canon and civil law, Commissions of Inquisition were especially empowered to weed out of the land the witches and those who had intercourse with familiar spirits, or in any other respect fell under the ban of the Church, as well as the heretics who promulgated or adhered to false doctrine. Special warrants were thus granted from time to time in behalf of such inquisitors, authorizing them to visit those provinces of Germany, France, or Italy where any report concerning witches or sorcery had alarmed the public mind; and those Commissioners, proud of the trust reposed in them, thought it becoming to use the utmost exertions on their part, that the subtlety of the examinations, and the severity of the tortures they inflicted, might wring the truth out of all suspected persons, until they rendered the province in which they exercised their jurisdiction a desert from which the inhabitants fled. It would be impossible to give credit to the extent of this delusion, had not some of the inquisitors themselves been reporters of their own judicial exploits: the same hand which subscribed the sentence has recorded the execution.
A brief look at foreign countries, before we examine the British Islands and their colonies, will confirm this statement. In Catholic countries on the Continent, the various kingdoms quickly adopted parts of civil law that branded sorcerers and witches as rebels to God and sources of unrest in the empire. Since they were seen as equally guilty under both canon and civil law, Inquisition Commissions were specifically authorized to root out witches and those who consorted with familiar spirits, or who otherwise fell under the Church's disapproval, along with heretics who spread or supported false beliefs. Special warrants were periodically issued for these inquisitors, allowing them to investigate regions of Germany, France, or Italy where reports of witchcraft or sorcery had caused public concern. Those Commissioners, proud of the trust placed in them, felt it necessary to exert themselves fully to ensure that their interrogations were thorough, and the harsh tortures they applied would extract confessions from all suspected individuals, often turning the provinces where they operated into desolate places from which the inhabitants fled. It would be hard to believe the scale of this delusion if some of the inquisitors hadn't documented their own judicial actions: the same hand that signed the verdict also recorded the executions.
In the earlier period of the Church of Rome witchcraft is frequently alluded to, and a capital punishment assigned to those who were supposed to have accomplished by sorcery the death of others, or to have attempted, by false prophecies or otherwise, under pretext of consulting with the spiritual world, to make innovation in the state. But no general denunciation against witchcraft itself, as a league with the Enemy of Man, or desertion of the Deity, and a crime sui generis, appears to have been so acted upon, until the later period of the sixteenth century, when the Papal system had attained its highest pitch of power and of corruption. The influence of the Churchmen was in early times secure, and they rather endeavoured, by the fabrication of false miracles, to prolong the blind veneration of the people, than to vex others and weary themselves by secret investigations into dubious and mystical trespasses, in which probably the higher and better instructed members of the clerical order put as little faith at that time as they do now. Did there remain a mineral fountain, respected for the cures which it had wrought, a huge oak-tree, or venerated mount, which beauty of situation had recommended to traditional respect, the fathers of the Roman Church were in policy reluctant to abandon such impressive spots, or to represent them as exclusively the rendezvous of witches or of evil spirits. On the contrary, by assigning the virtues of the spring or the beauty of the tree to the guardianship of some saint, they acquired, as it were, for the defence of their own doctrine, a frontier fortress which they wrested from the enemy, and which it was at least needless to dismantle, if it could be conveniently garrisoned and defended. Thus the Church secured possession of many beautiful pieces of scenery, as Mr. Whitfield is said to have grudged to the devil the monopoly of all the fine tunes.
In the early days of the Church of Rome, witchcraft was often mentioned, and those believed to have caused the death of others through sorcery or attempted to do so through false prophecies, under the guise of consulting the spiritual world, faced severe punishment. However, there wasn’t a widespread condemnation of witchcraft itself as a pact with the Evil One, or a betrayal of God, and a unique crime until the later part of the sixteenth century, when the Papal system reached its peak of power and corruption. Early on, church leaders had a secure influence and preferred to create false miracles to maintain the blind devotion of the people rather than exhaust themselves with secret investigations into questionable and mystical actions, which even the more knowledgeable members of the clergy probably didn't believe in any more than they do now. If there was a mineral spring known for its healing powers, a majestic oak, or a revered hill, praised for its scenic beauty, the leaders of the Roman Church were politically hesitant to give up these impressive locations or portray them solely as meeting places for witches or evil spirits. Instead, by attributing the spring's healing properties or the beauty of the tree to the protection of a saint, they essentially fortified their own doctrines, capturing a kind of stronghold from the enemy, which it was better to defend than dismantle if they could manage it. This way, the Church maintained control over many beautiful landscapes, much like how Mr. Whitfield is said to have begrudged the devil the exclusive rights to all the good tunes.
It is true that this policy was not uniformly observed. The story of the celebrated Jeanne d’Arc, called the Maid of Orleans, preserves the memory of such a custom, which was in that case turned to the prejudice of the poor woman who observed it.
It’s true that this policy wasn’t followed consistently. The story of the famous Jeanne d’Arc, known as the Maid of Orleans, keeps the memory of this custom alive, which in her case ended up causing trouble for the unfortunate woman who adhered to it.
It is well known that this unfortunate female fell into the hands of the English, after having, by her courage and enthusiasm manifested on many important occasions, revived the drooping courage of the French, and inspired them with the hope of once more freeing their country. The English vulgar regarded her as a sorceress—the French as an inspired heroine; while the wise on both sides considered her as neither the one nor the other, but a tool used by the celebrated Dunois to play the part which he assigned her. The Duke of Bedford, when the ill-starred Jeanne fell into his hands, took away her life in order to stigmatize her memory with sorcery and to destroy the reputation she had acquired among the French. The mean recurrence to such a charge against such a person had no more success than it deserved, although Jeanne was condemned both by the Parliament of Bordeux and the University of Paris. Her indictment accused her of having frequented an ancient oak-tree, and a fountain arising under it, called the Fated or Fairy Oak of Bourlemont. Here she was stated to have repaired during the hours of divine service, dancing, skipping, and making gestures, around the tree and fountain, and hanging on the branches chaplets and garlands of flowers, gathered for the purpose, reviving, doubtless, the obsolete idolatry which in ancient times had been rendered on the same spot to the Genius Loci. The charmed sword and blessed banner, which she had represented as signs of her celestial mission, were in this hostile charge against her described as enchanted implements, designed by the fiends and fairies whom she worshipped to accomplish her temporary success. The death of the innocent, high-minded, and perhaps amiable enthusiast, was not, we are sorry to say, a sacrifice to a superstitious fear of witchcraft, but a cruel instance of wicked policy mingled with national jealousy and hatred.
It’s well known that this unfortunate woman fell into the hands of the English after showing remarkable bravery and passion on many important occasions, which reignited the fading courage of the French and inspired them to hope for a chance to free their country again. The English common folk saw her as a witch, while the French viewed her as a heroic figure; however, those with insight on both sides recognized her as neither, but rather a pawn used by the famous Dunois for the role he assigned her. When the ill-fated Jeanne was captured by the Duke of Bedford, he took her life to tarnish her memory with accusations of witchcraft and to undermine the reputation she had earned among the French. The petty charge against such a person achieved no more success than it deserved, even though Jeanne was condemned by both the Parliament of Bordeaux and the University of Paris. Her indictment claimed she had visited an ancient oak tree and a spring beneath it, known as the Fated or Fairy Oak of Bourlemont. It stated that she would go there during church services, dancing and making gestures around the tree and fountain, hanging wreaths and garlands of flowers she had collected for that purpose, presumably reviving the old idolatry that had once taken place at the same site in honor of the Genius Loci. The charmed sword and blessed banner she had presented as symbols of her divine mission were described in this hostile accusation as enchanted objects created by the demons and fairies she supposedly worshiped to achieve her temporary success. The death of this innocent, noble, and perhaps kind-hearted enthusiast was, unfortunately, not simply a victim of superstitious fears about witchcraft, but a cruel example of malicious politics mixed with national jealousy and hatred.
To the same cause, about the same period, we may impute the trial of the Duchess of Gloucester, wife of the good Duke Humphrey, accused of consulting witches concerning the mode of compassing the death of her husband’s nephew, Henry VI. The Duchess was condemned to do penance, and thereafter banished to the Isle of Man, while several of her accomplices died in prison or were executed. But in this instance also the alleged witchcraft was only the ostensible cause of a procedure which had its real source in the deep hatred between the Duke of Gloucester and Cardinal Beaufort, his half-brother. The same pretext was used by Richard III. when he brought the charge of sorcery against the Queen Dowager, Jane Shore, and the queen’s kinsmen; and yet again was by that unscrupulous prince directed against Morton, afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury, and other adherents of the Earl of Richmond. The accusation in both cases was only chosen as a charge easily made and difficult to be eluded or repelled.
Around the same time, we can link the trial of the Duchess of Gloucester, the wife of the good Duke Humphrey, to the same cause. She was accused of consulting witches to plot the death of her husband’s nephew, Henry VI. The Duchess was forced to do penance and then banished to the Isle of Man, while several of her accomplices either died in prison or were executed. However, just like in previous cases, the supposed witchcraft was merely a cover for a process stemming from the intense rivalry between the Duke of Gloucester and Cardinal Beaufort, his half-brother. Richard III. used the same excuse when he charged the Queen Dowager, Jane Shore, and her relatives with sorcery; he also targeted Morton, who later became Archbishop of Canterbury, along with other supporters of the Earl of Richmond. In both situations, the accusations were simply chosen because they were easy to make and hard to refute or escape.
But in the meanwhile, as the accusation of witchcraft thus afforded to tyranny or policy the ready means of assailing persons whom it might not have been possible to convict of any other crime, the aspersion itself was gradually considered with increase of terror as spreading wider and becoming more contagious. So early as the year 1398 the University of Paris, in laying down rules for the judicial prosecuting of witches, express their regret that the crime was growing more frequent than in any former age. The more severe enquiries and frequent punishments by which the judges endeavoured to check the progress of this impious practice seem to have increased the disease, as indeed it has been always remarked that those morbid affections of mind which depend on the imagination are sure to become more common in proportion as public attention is fastened on stories connected with their display.
But in the meantime, as the accusation of witchcraft provided an easy way for those in power to target people they might not have been able to convict of any other crime, the rumor itself was increasingly viewed with fear as it seemed to spread and become more contagious. As early as 1398, the University of Paris, while establishing rules for the judicial prosecution of witches, expressed their concern that the crime was becoming more common than ever before. The harsher investigations and more frequent punishments that judges used to try to stop this wicked practice appear to have made the situation worse, as it has always been noted that mental issues driven by imagination are likely to increase as public interest is drawn to stories about them.
In the same century schisms arising from different causes greatly alarmed the Church of Rome. The universal spirit of enquiry which was now afloat, taking a different direction in different countries, had in almost all of them stirred up a sceptical dissatisfaction with the dogmas of the Church—such views being rendered more credible to the poorer classes through the corruption of manners among the clergy, too many of whom wealth and ease had caused to neglect that course of morality which best recommends religious doctrine. In almost every nation in Europe there lurked in the crowded cities, or the wild solitude of the country, sects who agreed chiefly in their animosity to the supremacy of Rome and their desire to cast off her domination. The Waldenses and Albigenses were parties existing in great numbers through the south of France. The Romanists became extremely desirous to combine the doctrine of the heretics with witchcraft, which, according to their account, abounded especially where the Protestants were most numerous; and, the bitterness increasing, they scrupled not to throw the charge of sorcery, as a matter of course, upon those who dissented from the Catholic standard of faith. The Jesuit Delrio alleges several reasons for the affinity which he considers as existing between the Protestant and the sorcerer; he accuses the former of embracing the opinion of Wierus and other defenders of the devil (as he calls all who oppose his own opinions concerning witchcraft), thus fortifying the kingdom of Satan against that of the Church.47
In the same century, conflicts arising from various causes greatly concerned the Church of Rome. The widespread spirit of inquiry that was now emerging, taking different forms in various countries, had stirred up a general dissatisfaction with the Church’s teachings in almost all of them—these views were made more believable to the poorer classes due to the moral decay among the clergy, many of whom had neglected the moral path that best supports religious doctrine because of their wealth and comfort. In nearly every nation in Europe, there were groups hiding in crowded cities or in the remote countryside that primarily united in their opposition to the authority of Rome and their desire to break free from her control. The Waldenses and Albigenses were significant groups present in large numbers in the south of France. The Roman Catholics became very eager to associate the beliefs of the heretics with witchcraft, which they claimed was especially rampant where Protestants were most numerous; as resentment grew, they did not hesitate to accuse anyone who disagreed with the Catholic faith of witchcraft as a matter of course. Jesuit Delrio provided several reasons for the connection he believed existed between Protestants and sorcerers; he accused the former of adopting the ideas of Wierus and other defenders of the devil (as he referred to anyone opposing his views on witchcraft), thus strengthening the kingdom of Satan against that of the Church.47
47 (return)
[ Delrio, “De Magia.” See
the Preface.]
47 (return)
[ Delrio, “Of Magic.” See the Preface.]
A remarkable passage in Monstrelet puts in a clear view the point aimed at by the Catholics in thus confusing and blending the doctrines of heresy and the practice of witchcraft, and how a meeting of inoffensive Protestants could be cunningly identified with a Sabbath of hags and fiends.
A notable excerpt in Monstrelet clearly highlights the goal of the Catholics in confusing and merging the ideas of heresy and witchcraft. It shows how a gathering of harmless Protestants could be cleverly linked to a witches' Sabbath.
“In this year (1459), in the town of Arras and county of Artois, arose, through a terrible and melancholy chance, an opinion called, I know not why, the Religion of Vaudoisie. This sect consisted, it is said, of certain persons, both men and women, who, under cloud of night, by the power of the devil, repaired to some solitary spot, amid woods and deserts, where the devil appeared before them in a human form—save that his visage is never perfectly visible to them—read to the assembly a book of his ordinances, informing them how he would be obeyed; distributed a very little money and a plentiful meal, which was concluded by a scene of general profligacy; after which each one of the party was conveyed home to her or his own habitation.
“In this year (1459), in the town of Arras and the county of Artois, a terrible and sad event led to the emergence of a belief known, for reasons unknown to me, as the Religion of Vaudoisie. This group was made up of certain individuals, both men and women, who, under the cover of night and through the power of the devil, would gather in some remote location, deep in the woods and wilderness. There, the devil would appear before them in human form—except his face was never fully visible—reading to the group a book of his rules, explaining how he wanted to be obeyed; he distributed a small amount of money and a generous meal, which ended with an act of widespread debauchery; after this, each person was sent back to their own home.
“On accusations of access to such acts of madness,” continues Monstrelet, “several creditable persons of the town of Arras were seized and imprisoned along with some foolish women and persons of little consequence. These were so horribly tortured that some of them admitted the truth of the whole accusations, and said, besides, that they had seen and recognised in their nocturnal assembly many persons of rank, prelates, seigneurs, and governors of bailliages and cities, being such names as the examinators had suggested to the persons examined, while they constrained them by torture to impeach the persons to whom they belonged. Several of those who had been thus informed against were arrested, thrown into prison, and tortured for so long a time that they also were obliged to confess what was charged against them. After this those of mean condition were executed and inhumanly burnt, while the richer and more powerful of the accused ransomed themselves by sums of money, to avoid the punishment and the shame attending it. Many even of those also confessed being persuaded to take that course by the interrogators, who promised them indemnity for life and fortune. Some there were, of a truth, who suffered with marvellous patience and constancy the torments inflicted on them, and would confess nothing imputed to their charge; but they, too, had to give large sums to the judges, who exacted that such of them as, notwithstanding their mishandling, were still able to move, should banish themselves from that part of the country.” Monstrelet winds up this shocking narrative by informing us “that it ought not to be concealed that the whole accusation was a stratagem of wicked men for their own covetous purposes, and in order, by these false accusations and forced confessions, to destroy the life, fame, and fortune of wealthy persons.”
“Regarding accusations of such acts of madness,” continues Monstrelet, “several respectable people from the town of Arras were seized and imprisoned along with some foolish women and people of little importance. They were so brutally tortured that some admitted to the truth of the entire accusations and claimed they had seen and recognized many prominent individuals—prelates, lords, and governors of regions and cities—during their nighttime gatherings, including names that the interrogators had put forward while torturing them to implicate those individuals. Several of those who had been accused were arrested, thrown into prison, and tortured for such a long time that they, too, were forced to confess to the charges against them. Following this, those of lower status were executed and horrifically burned, while the richer and more powerful accused managed to pay their way out of punishment and the associated shame. Many of them confessed, having been convinced by the interrogators who promised them immunity for their lives and fortunes. However, there were indeed some who endured the torment with remarkable patience and resilience, refusing to confess to anything attributed to them; still, they had to pay hefty sums to the judges, who demanded that those who, despite their mistreatment, could still manage to move, should leave the region. Monstrelet concludes this shocking account by stating, “it should not be hidden that the entire accusation was a scheme devised by wicked men for their own greedy purposes, aiming to ruin the life, reputation, and wealth of affluent individuals through these false allegations and coerced confessions.”
Delrio himself confesses that Franciscus Balduinus gives an account of the pretended punishment, but real persecution, of these Waldenses, in similar terms with Monstrelet, whose suspicions are distinctly spoken out, and adds that the Parliament of Paris, having heard the affair by appeal, had declared the sentence illegal and the judges iniquitous, by an arrét dated 20th May, 1491. The Jesuit Delrio quotes the passage, but adheres with lingering reluctance to the truth of the accusation. “The Waldenses (of whom the Albigenses are a species) were,” he says, “never free from the most wretched excess of fascination;” and finally, though he allows the conduct of the judges to have been most odious, he cannot prevail on himself to acquit the parties charged by such interested accusers with horrors which should hardly have been found proved even upon the most distinct evidence. He appeals on this occasion to Florimond’s work on Antichrist. The introduction of that work deserves to be quoted, as strongly illustrative of the condition to which the country was reduced, and calculated to make an impression the very reverse probably of that which the writer would have desired:—
Delrio himself admits that Franciscus Balduinus describes the supposed punishment, but actual persecution, of these Waldenses in a way similar to Monstrelet, whose doubts are clearly expressed. He adds that the Parliament of Paris, after hearing the case on appeal, declared the judgment illegal and the judges corrupt, in an arrét dated May 20, 1491. The Jesuit Delrio cites this passage, yet he clings to the accusation with lingering reluctance. “The Waldenses (of whom the Albigenses are a type),” he states, “were never free from the most dreadful excess of fascination.” Ultimately, although he acknowledges that the judges acted despicably, he can’t bring himself to clear those accused by such biased accusers of horrors that would have been hard to prove even with the clearest evidence. He refers to Florimond’s work on Antichrist in this context. The introduction of that work deserves to be quoted as it vividly illustrates the state to which the country had descended, likely leaving an impression opposite to what the author intended:—
“All those who have afforded us some signs of the approach of Antichrist agree that the increase of sorcery and witchcraft is to distinguish the melancholy period of his advent; and was ever age so afflicted with them as ours? The seats destined for criminals before our judicatories are blackened with persons accused of this guilt. There are not judges enough to try them. Our dungeons are gorged with them. No day passes that we do not render our tribunals bloody by the dooms which we pronounce, or in which we do not return to our homes discountenanced and terrified at the horrible contents of the confessions which it has been our duty to hear. And the devil is accounted so good a master that we cannot commit so great a number of his slaves to the flames but what there shall arise from their ashes a number sufficient to supply their place."48
“All those who have given us hints about the coming of Antichrist agree that the rise in sorcery and witchcraft defines the dark time of his arrival; and has any era been so plagued by them as ours? The benches meant for criminals in our courts are filled with people accused of this crime. There aren’t enough judges to try them. Our jails are overflowing with them. Not a day goes by that we don’t stain our courts with the sentences we hand down, or return home feeling disheartened and terrified by the awful details in the confessions we’ve had to hear. And the devil is considered such a skilled master that we can’t throw so many of his followers into the flames without a new group rising from their ashes to take their place.”48
48 (return)
[ Florimond, “Concerning
the Antichrist,” cap. 7, n. 5, quoted by Delrio, “De Magia,” p. 820.]
48 (return)
[ Florimond, “About the Antichrist,” cap. 7, n. 5, quoted by Delrio, “On Magic,” p. 820.]
This last statement, by which it appears that the most active and unsparing inquisition was taking place, corresponds with the historical notices of repeated persecutions upon this dreadful charge of sorcery. A bull of Pope Innocent VIII. rang the tocsin against this formidable crime, and set forth in the most dismal colours the guilt, while it stimulated the inquisitors to the unsparing discharge of their duty in searching out and punishing the guilty. “It is come to our ears,” says the bull, “that numbers of both sexes do not avoid to have intercourse with the infernal fiends, and that by their sorceries they afflict both man and beast; that they blight the marriage-bed, destroy the births of women, and the increase of cattle; they blast the corn on the ground, the grapes of the vineyard, the fruits of the trees, the grass and herbs of the field.” For which reasons the inquisitors were armed with the apostolic power, and called upon to “convict, imprison, and punish,” and so forth.
This last statement, which suggests that a very active and relentless investigation was underway, aligns with historical accounts of repeated persecutions over the terrifying accusation of witchcraft. A bull from Pope Innocent VIII raised an alarm against this serious crime, depicting the guilt in the bleakest terms while encouraging the inquisitors to fulfill their duty of identifying and punishing the offenders without mercy. “It has come to our attention,” states the bull, “that many people, both men and women, engage in relations with infernal beings, and that through their sorcery, they harm both humans and animals; they taint the marriage bed, disrupt women’s pregnancies, and diminish livestock; they ruin the crops in the fields, the grapes in the vineyards, the fruits of the trees, and the grass and herbs of the land.” For these reasons, the inquisitors were granted apostolic power and called upon to “convict, imprison, and punish,” and so on.
Dreadful were the consequences of this bull all over the Continent, especially in Italy, Germany, and France,49 About 1485 Cumanus burnt as witches forty-one poor women in one year in the county of Burlia. In the ensuing years he continued the prosecution with such unremitting zeal that many fled from the country.
Dreadful were the consequences of this bull all over the Continent, especially in Italy, Germany, and France,49 About 1485 Cumanus burned forty-one poor women as witches in just one year in the county of Burlia. In the years that followed, he continued the prosecutions with such relentless enthusiasm that many fled the country.
49 (return)
[ Dr. Hutchinson quotes “H.
Institor,” 105, 161.]
49 (return)
[ Dr. Hutchinson cites “H. Institor,” 105, 161.]
Alciatus states that an inquisitor, about the same period, burnt an hundred sorcerers in Piedmont, and persevered in his inquiries till human patience was exhausted, and the people arose and drove him out of the country, after which the jurisdiction was deferred to the archbishop. That prelate consulted Alciatus himself, who had just then obtained his doctor’s degree in civil law, to which he was afterwards an honour. A number of unfortunate wretches were brought for judgment, fitter, according to the civilian’s opinion, for a course of hellebore than for the stake. Some were accused of having dishonoured the crucifix and denied their salvation; others of having absconded to keep the Devil’s Sabbath, in spite of bolts and bars; others of having merely joined in the choral dances around the witches’ tree of rendezvous. Several of their husbands and relatives swore that they were in bed and asleep during these pretended excursions. Alciatus recommended gentle and temperate measures; and the minds of the country became at length composed.50
Alciatus mentions that during the same time period, an inquisitor burned a hundred sorcerers in Piedmont and continued his investigations until people's patience ran out, leading them to rise up and drive him out of the country. After that, the authority was passed to the archbishop. That prelate consulted Alciatus himself, who had just earned his doctor’s degree in civil law, which later brought him recognition. A number of unfortunate souls were brought for judgment, who, according to the lawyer's opinion, deserved treatment with hellebore rather than being executed. Some were accused of dishonoring the crucifix and denying their salvation; others were said to have escaped to participate in the Devil’s Sabbath, despite being locked up; and others merely joined in the choral dances around the witches' meeting tree. Several of their husbands and relatives swore they were in bed and asleep during these supposed escapades. Alciatus suggested gentle and reasonable approaches, and eventually, the minds of the people settled down. 50
50 (return)
[ Alciat. “Parerg. Juris,”
lib. viii. chap. 22.]
50 (return)
[ Alciat. “Parerg. Juris,” lib. viii. chap. 22.]
In 1488, the country four leagues around Constance was laid waste by lightning and tempest, and two women being, by fair means or foul, made to confess themselves guilty as the cause of the devastation, suffered death.
In 1488, the region four leagues around Constance was devastated by lightning and storms, and two women were forced, by any means necessary, to confess that they were responsible for the destruction, and they were executed.
About 1515, 500 persons were executed at Geneva, under the character of “Protestant witches,” from which we may suppose many suffered for heresy. Forty-eight witches were burnt at Ravensburgh within four years, as Hutchison reports, on the authority of Mengho, the author of the “Malleus Malleficarum.” In Lorraine the learned inquisitor, Remigius, boasts that he put to death 900 people in fifteen years. As many were banished from that country, so that whole towns were on the point of becoming desolate. In 1524, 1,000 persons were put to death in one year at Como, in Italy, and about 100 every year after for several years.51
Around 1515, 500 people were executed in Geneva, labeled as “Protestant witches,” which suggests that many were killed for heresy. Forty-eight witches were burned in Ravensburgh over a span of four years, according to Hutchison, citing Mengho, the author of the “Malleus Malleficarum.” In Lorraine, the inquisitor Remigius claims he executed 900 individuals in fifteen years. Many were also banished from the region, leading to entire towns nearly becoming desolate. In 1524, 1,000 people were killed in a single year in Como, Italy, with about 100 executed each subsequent year for several years.51
In the beginning of the next century the persecution of witches broke out in France with a fury which was hardly conceivable, and multitudes were burnt amid that gay and lively people. Some notion of the extreme prejudice of their judges may be drawn from the words of one of the inquisitors themselves. Pierre de Lancre, royal councillor in the Parliament of Bourdeaux, with whom the President Espaignel was joined in a commission to enquire into certain acts of sorcery, reported to have been committed in Labourt and its neighbourhood, at the foot of the Pyrenees, about the month of May, 1619. A few extracts from the preface will best evince the state of mind in which he proceeded to the discharge of his commission.
At the start of the next century, the witch hunts erupted in France with a level of intensity that was hard to imagine, and countless people were burned among that cheerful and vibrant population. One can get a sense of the extreme bias of their judges from the words of one of the inquisitors. Pierre de Lancre, a royal councilor in the Parliament of Bordeaux, along with President Espaignel, was part of a commission to investigate reported acts of witchcraft in Labourt and the surrounding areas at the foot of the Pyrenees around May 1619. A few excerpts from the preface will best illustrate the mindset he had as he undertook his duties on the commission.
His story assumes the form of a narrative of a direct war between Satan on the one side and the Royal Commissioners on the other, “because,” says Councillor de Lancre, with self-complaisance, “nothing is so calculated to strike terror into the fiend and his dominions as a commission with such plenary powers.”
His story takes the shape of a narrative about a direct battle between Satan on one side and the Royal Commissioners on the other, “because,” says Councillor de Lancre, with self-satisfaction, “nothing is more likely to instill fear in the devil and his realms than a commission with such complete authority.”
At first, Satan endeavoured to supply his vassals who were brought before the judges with strength to support the examinations, so that if, by intermission of the torture, the wretches should fall into a doze, they declared, when they were recalled from it to the question, that the profound stupor “had something of Paradise in it, being gilded,” said the judge, “with the immediate presence of the devil;” though, in all probability, it rather derived its charms from the natural comparison between the insensibility of exhaustion and the previous agony of acute torture. The judges took care that the fiend seldom obtained any advantage in the matter by refusing their victims, in most cases, any interval of rest or sleep. Satan then proceeded, in the way of direct defiance, to stop the mouth of the accused openly, and by mere force, with something like a visible obstruction in their throat. Notwithstanding this, to put the devil to shame, some of the accused found means, in spite of him, to confess and be hanged, or rather burnt. The fiend lost much credit by his failure on this occasion. Before the formidable Commissioners arrived, he had held his cour plénière before the gates of Bourdeaux, and in the square of the palace of Galienne, whereas he was now insulted publicly by his own vassals, and in the midst of his festival of the Sabbath the children and relations of the witches who had suffered not sticking to say to him, “Out upon you! Your promise was that our mothers who were prisoners should not die; and look how you have kept your word with us! They have been burnt, and are a heap of ashes.” To appease this mutiny Satan had two evasions. He produced illusory fires, and encouraged the mutinous to walk through them, assuring them that the judicial pile was as frigid and inoffensive as those which he exhibited to them. Again, taking his refuge in lies, of which he is well known to be the father, he stoutly affirmed that their parents, who seemed to have suffered, were safe in a foreign country, and that if their children would call on them they would receive an answer. They made the invocation accordingly, and Satan answered each of them in a tone which resembled the voice of the lamented parent almost as successfully as Monsieur Alexandra could have done.
At first, Satan tried to give his followers, who were brought before the judges, the strength to withstand the interrogations. When the torture would pause, if the miserable victims fell into a daze, they claimed that this deep stupor “had something of Paradise in it, being gilded,” the judge remarked, “with the immediate presence of the devil.” However, it was likely that its appeal came from the natural contrast between the numbness of exhaustion and the prior agony of intense torture. The judges made sure that Satan rarely gained the upper hand by denying their victims, in most cases, any break for rest or sleep. Satan then openly attempted to silence the accused by force, creating a visible blockage in their throats. Despite this, to embarrass the devil, some of the accused found a way, against his interference, to confess and face execution by hanging or, more accurately, burning. The fiend lost a lot of credibility due to this failure. Before the intimidating Commissioners arrived, he had held his cour plénière at the gates of Bordeaux and in the square of the Galienne palace, but now he faced public mockery from his own followers. In the midst of his Sabbath festival, the children and relatives of the witches who had suffered openly confronted him, saying, “Shame on you! You promised that our mothers who were imprisoned wouldn’t die; look how you’ve kept your word! They’ve been burned and turned to ashes.” To calm this rebellion, Satan used two deceptions. He conjured false fires and urged the dissenters to walk through them, reassuring them that the execution pyre was just as cold and harmless as the illusions he showed them. Then, falling back on his lies, of which he is well known to be the source, he boldly claimed that their parents, who seemed to have suffered, were safe in another country, and that if their children called out to them, they would receive a response. They invoked their parents, and Satan answered each of them in a voice that closely mimicked that of their beloved parent, almost as well as Monsieur Alexandra could have done.
Proceeding to a yet more close attack, the Commissioners, on the eve of one of the Fiend’s Sabbaths, placed the gibbet on which they executed their victims just on the spot where Satan’s gilded chair was usually stationed. The devil was much offended at such an affront, and yet had so little power in the matter that he could only express his resentment by threats that he would hang Messieurs D’Amon and D’Urtubbe, gentlemen who had solicited and promoted the issuing of the Commission, and would also burn the Commissioners themselves in their own fire. We regret to say that Satan was unable to execute either of these laudable resolutions. Ashamed of his excuses, he abandoned for three or four sittings his attendance on the Sabbaths, sending as his representative an imp of subordinate account, and in whom no one reposed confidence. When he took courage again to face his parliament, the Arch-fiend covered his defection by assuring them that he had been engaged in a lawsuit with the Deity, which he had gained with costs, and that six score of infant children were to be delivered up to him in name of damages, and the witches were directed to procure such victims accordingly. After this grand fiction he confined himself to the petty vengeance of impeding the access of confessors to the condemned, which was the more easy as few of them could speak the Basque language. I have no time to detail the ingenious method by which the learned Councillor de Lancre explains why the district of Labourt should be particularly exposed to the pest of sorcery. The chief reason seems to be that it is a mountainous, a sterile, and a border country, where the men are all fishers and the women smoke tobacco and wear short petticoats.
Moving to a more direct approach, the Commissioners, right before one of the Devil’s Sabbaths, set up the gallows where they executed their victims exactly where Satan’s golden chair usually stood. The Devil was really upset by this insult, but he was so powerless in the situation that he could only show his anger by threatening to hang Messieurs D’Amon and D’Urtubbe, the gentlemen who had pushed for the Commission to be established, and would also burn the Commissioners in their own flames. Sadly, Satan wasn’t able to carry out either of these noble plans. Embarrassed by his excuses, he skipped out on attending the Sabbaths for three or four gatherings, sending a lesser imp as his representative, someone in whom nobody had any trust. When he finally gathered the courage to face his assembly again, the Arch-fiend covered up his absence by claiming he had been caught up in a lawsuit with God, which he had won along with costs, and that he was set to receive sixty infant children in damages, with the witches instructed to gather these victims accordingly. After this grand deceit, he limited himself to small acts of revenge, like preventing confessors from getting to the condemned, which was easier since few of them spoke Basque. I don’t have time to go into detail about the clever method the learned Councillor de Lancre uses to explain why the Labourt region is particularly vulnerable to the curse of witchcraft. The main reason seems to be that it’s mountainous, barren, and situated on the border, where the men are all fishermen, and the women smoke tobacco and wear short skirts.
To a person who, in this presumptuous, trifling, and conceited spirit, has composed a quarto volume full of the greatest absurdities and grossest obscenities ever impressed on paper, it was the pleasure of the most Christian Monarch to consign the most absolute power which could be exercised on these poor people; and he might with as much prudence have turned a ravenous wolf upon an undefended flock, of whom the animal was the natural enemy, as they were his natural prey. The priest, as well as the ignorant peasant, fell under the suspicion of this fell Commission; and De Lancre writes, with much complacency, that the accused were brought to trial to the number of forty in one day—with what chance of escape, when the judges were blinded with prejudice, and could only hear the evidence and the defence through the medium of an interpreter, the understanding of the reader may easily anticipate.
To someone who, in this arrogant, trivial, and self-important attitude, has written a large book filled with the most ridiculous absurdities and crude obscenities ever printed, it was the pleasure of the most Christian monarch to give absolute power over these unfortunate people; he might as well have unleashed a hungry wolf on an unprotected flock, as the wolf was their natural enemy and they were his natural prey. Both the priest and the uneducated farmer fell under the suspicion of this ruthless Commission; and De Lancre writes, with much satisfaction, that the accused were brought to trial in groups of forty in a single day—with what chance of escaping, when the judges were blinded by bias and could only hear the evidence and defense through an interpreter, the understanding of the reader can easily predict.
Among other gross transgressions of the most ordinary rules, it may be remarked that the accused, in what their judges called confessions, contradicted each other at every turn respecting the description of the Domdaniel in which they pretended to have been assembled, and the fiend who presided there. All spoke to a sort of gilded throne; but some saw a hideous wild he-goat seated there; some a man disfigured and twisted, as suffering torture; some, with better taste, beheld a huge indistinct form, resembling one of those mutilated trunks of trees found in ancient forests. But De Lancre was no “Daniel come to judgment,” and the discrepancy of evidence, which saved the life and fame of Susannah, made no impression in favour of the sorcerers of Labourt.
Among other major violations of basic rules, it’s worth noting that the accused, in what their judges called confessions, contradicted each other in every way about the description of the Domdaniel where they claimed to have gathered, and the demon who led them. They all mentioned a kind of gilded throne; however, some saw a grotesque wild he-goat sitting there, some a man disfigured and twisted as if in pain, and some, with better taste, saw a massive vague shape, resembling one of those mutilated tree trunks found in ancient forests. But De Lancre was no “Daniel come to judgment,” and the conflicting testimonies, which saved the life and reputation of Susannah, had no impact in favor of the sorcerers of Labourt.
Instances occur in De Lancre’s book of the trial and condemnation of persons accused of the crime of lycanthropy, a superstition which was chiefly current in France, but was known in other countries, and is the subject of great debate between Wier, Naudé, Scot, on the one hand, and their demonological adversaries on the other. The idea, said the one party, was that a human being had the power, by sorcery, of transforming himself into the shape of a wolf, and in that capacity, being seized with a species of fury, he rushed out and made havoc among the flocks, slaying and wasting, like the animal whom he represented, far more than he could devour. The more incredulous reasoners would not allow of a real transformation, whether with or without the enchanted hide of a wolf, which in some cases was supposed to aid the metamorphosis, and contended that lycanthropy only subsisted as a woful species of disease, a melancholy state of mind, broken with occasional fits of insanity, in which the patient imagined that he committed the ravages of which he was accused. Such a person, a mere youth, was tried at Besançon, who gave himself out for a servant, or yeoman pricker, of the Lord of the Forest—so he called his superior—who was judged to be the devil. He was, by his master’s power, transformed into the likeness and performed the usual functions of a wolf, and was attended in his course by one larger, which he supposed the Lord of the Forest himself. These wolves, he said, ravaged the flocks, and throttled the dogs which stood in their defence. If either had not seen the other, he howled, after the manner of the animal, to call his comrade to his share of the prey; if he did not come upon this signal, he proceeded to bury it the best way he could.
Instances occur in De Lancre’s book about the trial and condemnation of people accused of the crime of lycanthropy, a superstition mostly found in France, but also recognized in other countries. This topic sparked significant debate between Wier, Naudé, and Scot on one side, and their demonological opponents on the other. One group argued that a person had the ability, through sorcery, to transform into a wolf and, in that form, driven by a kind of fury, they would rush out and wreak havoc on livestock, killing and destroying far more than they could eat. The more skeptical thinkers rejected the possibility of real transformation, whether or not aided by a magical wolf hide, which was sometimes believed to facilitate the change. They argued that lycanthropy was merely a tragic kind of illness—a troubled state of mind, interspersed with bouts of insanity, during which the individual believed they were committing the acts of destruction for which they were accused. One such individual, a young man, was tried in Besançon. He claimed to be a servant, or yeoman pricker, of the Lord of the Forest—whom he referred to as his master—who was thought to be the devil. By his master’s power, he believed he was transformed into a wolf and performed the usual functions of that creature, accompanied on his hunts by another larger wolf, which he assumed to be the Lord of the Forest himself. He stated that these wolves devastated the flocks and strangled the dogs that tried to protect them. If either wolf didn't see the other, he howled like an animal to summon his companion to share in the kill; if the other didn’t respond to the call, he would do his best to bury the prey.
Such was the general persecution under Messieurs Espiagnel and De Lancre. Many similar scenes occurred in France, till the edict of Louis XIV. discharging all future prosecutions for witchcraft, after which the crime itself was heard of no more.52
Such was the widespread persecution under Messieurs Espiagnel and De Lancre. Many similar incidents took place in France until the edict of Louis XIV, which put an end to all future prosecutions for witchcraft. After that, the crime itself was no longer mentioned.52
52 (return)
[ The reader may sup full
on such wild horrors in the causes célèbres.]
52 (return)
[ Readers can fully indulge in such wild horrors in the causes célèbres.]
While the spirit of superstition was working such horrors in France, it was not, we may believe, more idle in other countries of Europe. In Spain, particularly, long the residence of the Moors, a people putting deep faith in all the day-dreams of witchcraft, good and evil genii, spells and talismans, the ardent and devotional temper of the old Christians dictated a severe research after sorcerers as well as heretics, and relapsed Jews or Mahommedans. In former times, during the subsistence of the Moorish kingdoms in Spain, a school was supposed to be kept open in Toboso for the study, it is said, of magic, but more likely of chemistry, algebra, and other sciences, which, altogether mistaken by the ignorant and vulgar, and imperfectly understood even by those who studied them, were supposed to be allied to necromancy, or at least to natural magic. It was, of course, the business of the Inquisition to purify whatever such pursuits had left of suspicious Catholicism, and their labours cost as much blood on accusations of witchcraft and magic as for heresy and relapse.
While superstition was causing such horrors in France, it was likely just as active in other parts of Europe. In Spain, especially, which had long been home to the Moors—people who deeply believed in all the fantasies of witchcraft, both good and evil spirits, spells, and talismans—the passionate and devout nature of the old Christians led to a thorough search for sorcerers, as well as for heretics and those who had converted back from Judaism or Islam. In earlier times, when the Moorish kingdoms existed in Spain, a school was said to be established in Toboso for the study of magic, but more probably for chemistry, algebra, and other sciences, which, misunderstood by the ignorant and the masses, and imperfectly grasped even by those who learned them, were thought to be connected to necromancy, or at the very least to natural magic. Naturally, it was the Inquisition's role to cleanse any remnants of suspicious Catholicism that these pursuits might have left, and their efforts resulted in just as much bloodshed over accusations of witchcraft and magic as they did for heresy and apostasy.
Even the colder nations of Europe were subject to the same epidemic terror for witchcraft, and a specimen of it was exhibited in the sober and rational country of Sweden about the middle of last century, an account of which, being translated into English by a respectable clergyman, Doctor Horneck, excited general surprise how a whole people could be imposed upon to the degree of shedding much blood, and committing great cruelty and injustice, on account of the idle falsehoods propagated by a crew of lying children, who in this case were both actors and witnesses.
Even the colder countries in Europe faced the same epidemic fear of witchcraft, and an example of this occurred in the sensible and rational nation of Sweden around the middle of the last century. An account of this, translated into English by a respected clergyman, Doctor Horneck, sparked widespread amazement at how an entire population could be deceived to the point of shedding blood and committing severe cruelty and injustice due to the pointless lies spread by a group of dishonest children, who were both participants and witnesses.
The melancholy truth that “the human heart is deceitful above all things, and desperately wicked,” is by nothing proved so strongly as by the imperfect sense displayed by children of the sanctity of moral truth. Both the gentlemen and the mass of the people, as they advance in years, learn to despise and avoid falsehood; the former out of pride, and from a remaining feeling, derived from the days of chivalry, that the character of a liar is a deadly stain on their honour; the other, from some general reflection upon the necessity of preserving a character for integrity in the course of life, and a sense of the truth of the common adage, that “honesty is the best policy.” But these are acquired habits of thinking. The child has no natural love of truth, as is experienced by all who have the least acquaintance with early youth. If they are charged with a fault while they can hardly speak, the first words they stammer forth are a falsehood to excuse it. Nor is this all: the temptation of attracting attention, the pleasure of enjoying importance, the desire to escape from an unpleasing task, or accomplish a holiday, will at any time overcome the sentiment of truth, so weak is it within them. Hence thieves and housebreakers, from a surprisingly early period, find means of rendering children useful in their mystery; nor are such acolytes found to evade justice with less dexterity than the more advanced rogues. Where a number of them are concerned in the same mischief, there is something resembling virtue in the fidelity with which the common secret is preserved. Children, under the usual age of their being admitted to give evidence, were necessarily often examined in witch trials; and it is terrible to see how often the little impostors, from spite or in mere gaiety of spirit, have by their art and perseverance made shipwreck of men’s lives. But it would be hard to discover a case which, supported exclusively by the evidence of children (the confessions under torture excepted), and obviously existing only in the young witnesses’ own imagination, has been attended with such serious consequences, or given cause to so extensive and fatal a delusion, as that which occurred in Sweden.
The sad reality that “the human heart is deceitful above all things, and desperately wicked” is most clearly shown by how children have a poor understanding of the importance of moral truth. As they get older, both men and the general public learn to dislike and avoid lying; the former do so out of pride and a lingering sense from the days of chivalry that being a liar is a serious mark against their honor, while the latter reflect on the need to maintain a reputation for honesty in life, realizing the truth in the saying, “honesty is the best policy.” However, these are learned ways of thinking. Children don’t have an innate love for truth, as anyone who spends time with young ones will know. When they are blamed for something before they can hardly talk, the first words they utter are often a lie to cover it up. That’s not all: the urge to get attention, the thrill of feeling important, the wish to avoid an unpleasant task, or the desire to have some fun can easily overpower their sense of truth. As a result, thieves and burglars, starting surprisingly young, find ways to use children in their schemes; and these young accomplices often avoid capture just as skillfully as older criminals. When several kids are involved in the same wrongdoing, there's a strange sense of virtue in how well they keep the shared secret. Children, usually too young to be witnesses, were often questioned during witch trials; it’s shocking how often these little deceivers, out of spite or just for fun, have managed to ruin lives with their tricks and persistence. Yet, it’s hard to find a case that was only based on the evidence of children (excluding confessions gained through torture) and clearly existed only in the imaginations of the young witnesses that led to such serious outcomes or caused such widespread and deadly delusion as the one that happened in Sweden.
The scene was the Swedish village of Mohra, in the province of Elfland, which district had probably its name from some remnant of ancient superstition. The delusion had come to a great height ere it reached the ears of government, when, as was the general procedure, Royal Commissioners were sent down, men well fitted for the duty entrusted to them; that is, with ears open to receive the incredibilities with which they were to be crammed, and hearts hardened against every degree of compassion to the accused. The complaints of the common people, backed by some persons of better condition, were that a number of persons, renowned as witches, had drawn several hundred children of all classes under the devil’s authority. They demanded, therefore, the punishment of these agents of hell, reminding the judges that the province had been clear of witches since the burning of some on a former occasion. The accused were numerous, so many as threescore and ten witches and sorcerers being seized in the village of Mohra; three-and-twenty confessed their crimes, and were sent to Faluna, where most of them were executed. Fifteen of the children were also led to death. Six-and-thirty of those who were young were forced to run the gauntlet, as it is called, and were, besides, lashed weekly at the church doors for a whole year. Twenty of the youngest were condemned to the same discipline for three days only.
The scene was the Swedish village of Mohra in the province of Elfland, a name likely derived from some ancient superstition. The situation had escalated significantly before it reached the government’s attention, at which point, following standard procedure, Royal Commissioners were dispatched—men suited for the task, who were ready to hear the unbelievable claims they would be fed and were emotionally detached from any sympathy for the accused. The complaints from the common people, supported by some from higher social classes, were that a group of individuals known as witches had placed several hundred children from all walks of life under the devil’s influence. They demanded that these agents of hell be punished, reminding the judges that the province had been free of witches since some had been executed previously. The number of accused was considerable, with seventy witches and sorcerers captured in the village of Mohra; twenty-three confessed to their crimes and were sent to Faluna, where most were executed. Fifteen of the children were also put to death. Thirty-six of the young were forced to run the gauntlet, as it’s called, and were additionally whipped weekly at the church doors for an entire year. Twenty of the youngest were subjected to the same punishment for only three days.
The process seems to have consisted in confronting the children with the witches, and hearing the extraordinary story which the former insisted upon maintaining. The children, to the number of three hundred, were found more or less perfect in a tale as full of impossible absurdities as ever was told around a nursery fire. Their confession ran thus:—
The process seemed to involve confronting the children with the witches and hearing the unbelievable story that the kids insisted was true. The children, numbering around three hundred, told a tale packed with utterly impossible absurdities, just like those shared around a nursery fire. Their confession went like this:—
They were taught by the witches to go to a cross way, and with certain ceremonies to invoke the devil by the name of Antecessor, begging him to carry them off to Blockula, meaning, perhaps, the Brockenberg, in the Hartz forest, a mountain infamous for being the common scene of witches’ meetings, and to which Goethe represents the spirit Mephistopheles as conducting his pupil Faustus. The devil courteously appeared at the call of the children in various forms, but chiefly as a mad Merry-Andrew, with a grey coat, red and blue stockings, a red beard, a high-crowned hat, with linen of various colours wrapt round it, and garters of peculiar length. He set each child on some beast of his providing, and anointed them with a certain unguent composed of the scrapings of altars and the filings of church clocks. There is here a discrepancy of evidence which in another court would have cast the whole. Most of the children considered their journey to be corporeal and actual. Some supposed, however, that their strength or spirit only travelled with the fiend, and that their body remained behind. Very few adopted this last hypothesis, though the parents unanimously bore witness that the bodies of the children remained in bed, and could not be awakened out of a deep sleep, though they shook them for the purpose of awakening them. So strong was, nevertheless, the belief of nurses and mothers in their actual transportation, that a sensible clergyman, mentioned in the preface, who had resolved he would watch his son the whole night and see what hag or fiend would take him from his arms, had the utmost difficulty, notwithstanding, in convincing his mother that the child had not been transported to Blockula during the very night he held him in his embrace.
They were taught by the witches to go to a crossroads and, with specific rituals, call upon the devil by the name of Antecessor, asking him to take them to Blockula, which likely refers to Brockenberg, a mountain in the Hartz forest known for being a popular spot for witches’ gatherings, and to which Goethe depicts the spirit Mephistopheles leading his student Faustus. The devil showed up at the children’s summons in various forms, mainly as a jester, wearing a grey coat, red and blue stockings, a red beard, a tall hat wrapped with colorful fabric, and long garters. He placed each child on some animal he provided, and anointed them with a certain ointment made from altar scrapings and clock shavings from churches. There are inconsistencies in the evidence that would have undermined the case in other circumstances. Most of the children believed their journey was physical and real. However, some thought that only their spirit or strength traveled with the devil while their bodies stayed behind. Very few accepted this last idea, even though the parents unanimously testified that the children's bodies remained in bed and could not be awakened from a deep sleep, despite being shaken to rouse them. Nevertheless, the belief of nurses and mothers in their actual transportation was so strong that a rational clergyman, mentioned in the preface, who had decided to watch his son all night to see which witch or demon would take him from his arms, found it incredibly challenging to convince his mother that the child had not been taken to Blockula that very night he held him close.
The learned translator candidly allows, “out of so great a multitude as were accused, condemned, and executed, there might be some who suffered unjustly, and owed their death more to the malice of their enemies than to their skill in the black art, I will readily admit. Nor will I deny,” he continues, “but that when the news of these transactions and accounts, how the children bewitched fel into fits and strange unusual postures, spread abroad in the kingdom, some fearful and credulous people, if they saw their children any way disordered, might think they were bewitched or ready to be carried away by imps."53 The learned gentleman here stops short in a train of reasoning, which, followed out, would have deprived the world of the benefit of his translation. For if it was possible that some of these unfortunate persons fell a sacrifice to the malice of their neighbours or the prejudices of witnesses, as he seems ready to grant, is it not more reasonable to believe that the whole of the accused were convicted on similar grounds, than to allow, as truth, the slightest part of the gross and vulgar impossibilities upon which alone their execution can be justified?
The knowledgeable translator honestly states, “out of such a large number of those who were accused, condemned, and executed, there might be some who suffered unfairly, and whose deaths were more due to the spite of their enemies than to their expertise in the dark arts, I will gladly acknowledge. And I won’t deny,” he continues, “that when news of these events and accounts, how the bewitched children fell into fits and strange, unusual postures, spread across the kingdom, some fearful and gullible people, if they saw their children behaving oddly, might think they were bewitched or about to be taken by demons."53 The learned gentleman stops short in his reasoning, which, if followed through, would have deprived the world of the benefit of his translation. For if it’s possible that some of these unfortunate individuals became victims of their neighbors' malice or the biases of witnesses, as he seems willing to concede, isn’t it more logical to believe that all of the accused were convicted on similar grounds, rather than accept, as truth, even the slightest part of the blatant and ridiculous impossibilities upon which their executions can be justified?
53 (return)
[ Translator’s preface to
Horneck’s “Account of what happened in the Kingdom of Sweden.” See
appendix to Glanville’s work.]
53 (return)
[ Translator’s preface to Horneck’s “Account of what happened in the Kingdom of Sweden.” See appendix to Glanville’s work.]
The Blockula, which was the object of their journey, was a house having a fine gate painted with divers colours, with a paddock, in which they turned the beasts to graze which had brought them to such scenes of revelry. If human beings had been employed they were left slumbering against the wall of the house. The plan of the devil’s palace consisted of one large banqueting apartment and several withdrawing-rooms. Their food was homely enough, being broth made of coleworts and bacon, with bread and butter, and milk and cheese. The same acts of wickedness and profligacy were committed at Blockula which are usually supposed to take place upon the devil’s Sabbath elsewhere; but there was this particular, that the witches had sons and daughters by the fiends, who were married together, and produced an offspring of toads and serpents.
The Blockula, which was the destination of their journey, was a house with a beautifully painted gate in various colors and a paddock where they let the animals graze that had brought them to such wild festivities. If any humans had been involved, they were left sleeping against the wall of the house. The layout of the devil’s palace included one large dining room and several smaller sitting rooms. Their food was pretty simple, consisting of broth made from greens and bacon, along with bread, butter, milk, and cheese. The same kinds of wickedness and debauchery happened at Blockula that are usually believed to occur at the devil’s Sabbath in other places; however, there was one distinction: the witches had sons and daughters with the demons, who were married to each other and produced offspring of toads and snakes.
These confessions being delivered before the accused witches, they at first stoutly denied them. At last some of them burst into tears, and acquiesced in the horrors imputed to them. They said the practice of carrying off children had been enlarged very lately (which shows the whole rumours to have arisen recently); and the despairing wretches confirmed what the children said, with many other extravagant circumstances, as the mode of elongating a goat’s back by means of a spit, on which we care not to be particular. It is worth mentioning that the devil, desirous of enjoying his own reputation among his subjects, pretended at one time to be dead, and was much lamented at Blockula—but he soon revived again.
These confessions were made in front of the accused witches, and at first, they strongly denied them. Eventually, some of them broke down in tears and admitted to the terrible things attributed to them. They claimed that the practice of abducting children had only recently become more widespread (which indicates that these rumors started not long ago); and the desperate individuals confirmed what the children had said, along with many other bizarre details, like stretching a goat’s back using a spit, which we won't go into. It's worth noting that the devil, wanting to maintain his reputation among his followers, once pretended to be dead and was mourned in Blockula—but he soon came back to life.
Some attempts these witches had made to harm individuals on middle earth, but with little success. One old sorceress, indeed, attempted to strike a nail, given her by the devil for that purpose, into the head of the minister of Elfland; but as the skull was of unusual solidity, the reverend gentleman only felt a headache from her efforts. They could not be persuaded to exhibit any of their tricks before the Commissioners, excusing themselves by alleging that their witchcraft had left them, and that the devil had amused them with the vision of a burning pit, having a hand thrust out of it.
Some of these witches tried to harm people in middle earth, but they didn’t have much luck. One old sorceress even tried to drive a nail, given to her by the devil for that purpose, into the head of the minister of Elfland; but since his skull was unusually sturdy, the poor guy only ended up with a headache from her efforts. They refused to show any of their tricks to the Commissioners, claiming that their witchcraft had abandoned them and that the devil had entertained them with a vision of a burning pit, from which a hand was reaching out.
The total number who lost their lives on this singular occasion was fourscore and four persons, including fifteen children; and at this expense of blood was extinguished a flame that arose as suddenly, burned as fiercely, and decayed as rapidly, as any portent of the kind within the annals of superstition. The Commissioners returned to Court with the high approbation of all concerned; prayers were ordered through the churches weekly, that Heaven would be pleased to restrain the powers of the devil, and deliver the poor creatures who hitherto had groaned under it, as well as the innocent children, who were carried off by hundreds at once.
The total number of people who lost their lives on that tragic occasion was eighty-four, including fifteen children. This loss of life extinguished a fire that had ignited as suddenly, burned as fiercely, and faded as quickly as any similar event in the history of superstition. The Commissioners returned to Court with the full approval of everyone involved; prayers were ordered in churches every week, asking Heaven to restrain the powers of the devil and deliver the poor souls who had suffered under it, as well as the innocent children who were taken away by the hundreds all at once.
If we could ever learn the true explanation of this story, we should probably find that the cry was led by some clever mischievous boy, who wished to apologise to his parents for lying an hour longer in the morning by alleging he had been at Blockula on the preceding night; and that the desire to be as much distinguished as their comrade had stimulated the bolder and more acute of his companions to the like falsehoods; whilst those of weaker minds assented, either from fear of punishment or the force of dreaming over at night the horrors which were dinned into their ears all day. Those who were ingenuous, as it was termed, in their confessions, received praise and encouragement; and those who denied or were silent, and, as it was considered, impenitent, were sure to bear the harder share of the punishment which was addressed to all. It is worth while also to observe, that the smarter children began to improve their evidence and add touches to the general picture of Blockula. “Some of the children talked much of a white angel, which used to forbid them what the devil bid them do, and told them that these doings should not last long. And (they added) this better being would place himself sometimes at the door betwixt the witches and the children, and when they came to Blockula he pulled the children back, but the witches went in.”
If we could ever uncover the real story behind this, we’d probably find that some clever, mischievous boy started the rumor. He wanted to make excuses to his parents for sleeping in an hour longer by claiming he had been at Blockula the night before. This desire to stand out like their friend pushed the bolder, sharper kids to come up with similar lies, while the ones with weaker minds just went along with it, either out of fear of punishment or because they couldn't shake off the terrifying things they heard all day. Those who were honest in their confessions received praise and support, while those who denied the accusations or stayed silent were seen as unrepentant and ended up facing harsher punishment, which affected everyone. It’s interesting to note that the smarter kids started to embellish their stories, adding details to the overall narrative of Blockula. “Some of the kids talked a lot about a white angel who stopped them from doing what the devil wanted, telling them that this wouldn’t go on for long. They also said this good being would sometimes stand at the door between the witches and the kids, and whenever the kids got to Blockula, he would pull them back, but the witches would go in.”
This additional evidence speaks for itself, and shows the whole tale to be the fiction of the children’s imagination, which some of them wished to improve upon. The reader may consult “An Account of what happened in the Kingdom of Sweden in the years 1669 and 1670, and afterwards translated out of High Dutch into English by Dr. Antony Horneck,” attached to Glanville’s “Sadducismus Triumphatus.” The translator refers to the evidence of Baron Sparr, Ambassador from the Court of Sweden to the Court of England in 1672; and that of Baron Lyonberg, Envoy Extraordinary of the same power, both of whom attest the confession and execution of the witches. The King of Sweden himself answered the express inquiries of the Duke of Holstein with marked reserve. “His judges and commissioners,” he said, “had caused divers men, women, and children, to be burnt and executed on such pregnant evidence as was brought before them. But whether the actions confessed and proved against them were real, or only the effects of strong imagination, he was not as yet able to determine”—a sufficient reason, perhaps, why punishment should have been at least deferred by the interposition of the royal authority.
This additional evidence speaks for itself and shows the whole story to be a fabrication of the children’s imagination, which some of them wanted to embellish. The reader may refer to “An Account of what happened in the Kingdom of Sweden in the years 1669 and 1670, and afterwards translated out of High Dutch into English by Dr. Antony Horneck,” attached to Glanville’s “Sadducismus Triumphatus.” The translator mentions the evidence of Baron Sparr, the Ambassador from the Court of Sweden to the Court of England in 1672, and Baron Lyonberg, the Extraordinary Envoy of the same power, both of whom confirm the confession and execution of the witches. The King of Sweden himself responded to the specific inquiries of the Duke of Holstein with notable caution. “His judges and commissioners,” he said, “had caused several men, women, and children to be burned and executed based on the strong evidence presented to them. But whether the actions confessed and proven against them were real or merely the result of vivid imagination, he could not yet determine”—perhaps a good reason why punishment should have at least been postponed through the royal authority's intervention.
We must now turn our eyes to Britain, in which our knowledge as to such events is necessarily more extensive, and where it is in a high degree more interesting to our present purpose.
We now need to focus on Britain, where our knowledge of these events is much broader and is significantly more relevant to our current goals.
LETTER VIII.
The Effects of the Witch Superstition are to be traced in the Laws of a Kingdom—Usually punished in England as a Crime connected with Politics—Attempt at Murder for Witchcraft not in itself Capital—Trials of Persons of Rank for Witchcraft, connected with State Crimes—Statutes of Henry VIII—How Witchcraft was regarded by the three Leading Sects of Religion in the Sixteenth Century; first, by the Catholics; second, by the Calvinists; third, by the Church of England and Lutherans—Impostures unwarily countenanced by individual Catholic Priests, and also by some Puritanic Clergymen—Statute of 1562, and some cases upon it—Case of Dugdale—Case of the Witches of Warbois, and the execution of the Family of Samuel—That of Jane Wenham, in which some Church of England Clergymen insisted on the Prosecution—Hutchison’s Rebuke to them—James the First’s Opinion of Witchcraft—His celebrated Statute, 1 Jac. I.—Canon passed by the Convocation against Possession—Case of Mr. Fairfax’s Children—Lancashire Witches in 1613—Another Discovery in 1634—Webster’s Account of the manner in which the Imposture was managed—Superiority of the Calvinists is followed by a severe Prosecution of Witches—Executions in Suffolk, &c. to a dreadful extent—Hopkins, the pretended Witchfinder, the cause of these Cruelties—His Brutal Practices—His Letter—Execution of Mr. Lowis—Hopkins Punished—Restoration of Charles—Trial of Coxe—Of Dunny and Callendar before Lord Hales—Royal Society and Progress of Knowledge—Somersetshire Witches—Opinions of the Populace—A Woman Swum for Witchcraft at Oakly—- Murder at Tring—Act against Witchcraft abolished, and the belief in the Crime becomes forgotten—Witch Trials in New England—Dame Glover’s Trial—Affliction of the Parvises, and frightful Increase of the Prosecutions—Suddenly put a stop to—The Penitence of those concerned in them.
The effects of witch superstition can be seen in the laws of a kingdom—typically punished in England as a crime linked to politics—attempting to murder for witchcraft wasn’t in itself a capital offense—trials of high-ranking individuals for witchcraft were associated with state crimes—statutes of Henry VIII—how witchcraft was viewed by the three leading religious sects in the sixteenth century: first, by Catholics; second, by Calvinists; third, by the Church of England and Lutherans—impostures mistakenly supported by individual Catholic priests and some Puritan clergymen—the statute of 1562 and some related cases—the case of Dugdale—the case of the Witches of Warbois, and the execution of the Samuel family—that of Jane Wenham, where some Church of England clergymen insisted on prosecution—Hutchison’s rebuke of them—James the First’s views on witchcraft—his famous statute, 1 Jac. I.—canon passed by the Convocation against possession—the case of Mr. Fairfax’s children—Lancashire witches in 1613—another discovery in 1634—Webster’s account of how the imposture was executed—the Calvinists’ dominance led to severe witch prosecutions—executions in Suffolk, etc., to a dreadful extent—Hopkins, the self-proclaimed witchfinder, was the cause of these cruelties—his brutal practices—his letter—execution of Mr. Lowis—Hopkins punished—restoration of Charles—trial of Coxe—of Dunny and Callendar before Lord Hales—Royal Society and the progress of knowledge—Somersetshire witches—opinions of the public—A woman was tested for witchcraft at Oakly—murder at Tring—the act against witchcraft was repealed, and belief in the crime faded away—witch trials in New England—Dame Glover’s trial—affliction of the Parvises, and the frightening rise in prosecutions—suddenly brought to a halt—the remorse of those involved in them.
Our account of Demonology in England must naturally, as in every other country, depend chiefly on the instances which history contains of the laws and prosecutions against witchcraft. Other superstitions arose and decayed, were dreaded or despised, without greater embarrassment, in the provinces in which they have a temporary currency, than that cowards and children go out more seldom at night, while the reports of ghosts and fairies are peculiarly current. But when the alarm of witchcraft arises, Superstition dips her hand in the blood of the persons accused, and records in the annals of jurisprudence their trials and the causes alleged in vindication of their execution. Respecting other fantastic allegations, the proof is necessarily transient and doubtful, depending upon the inaccurate testimony of vague report and of doting tradition. But in cases of witchcraft we have before us the recorded evidence upon which judge and jury acted, and can form an opinion with some degree of certainty of the grounds, real or fanciful, on which they acquitted or condemned. It is, therefore, in tracing, this part of Demonology, with its accompanying circumstances, that we have the best chance of obtaining an accurate view of our subject.
Our account of demonology in England, like in every other country, primarily relies on historical examples of laws and prosecutions for witchcraft. Other superstitions may have come and gone, being feared or dismissed without much trouble in the regions where they temporarily existed, causing cowards and children to simply go out less often at night, especially when stories of ghosts and fairies were told. However, when the fear of witchcraft arises, superstition takes a deadly turn, and the trials and alleged reasons for the execution of the accused are documented in legal history. For other bizarre claims, the evidence is often fleeting and uncertain, based on vague reports and unreliable traditions. But in witchcraft cases, we have the recorded evidence that judges and juries relied on, allowing us to form a more informed opinion about the actual reasons—whether real or imagined—behind their decisions to acquit or condemn. Therefore, in exploring this aspect of demonology and its related circumstances, we have the best opportunity to gain an accurate understanding of our subject.
The existence of witchcraft was, no doubt, received and credited in England, as in the countries on the Continent, and originally punished accordingly. But after the fourteenth century the practices which fell under such a description were thought unworthy of any peculiar animadversion, unless they were connected with something which would have been of itself a capital crime, by whatever means it had been either essayed or accomplished. Thus the supposed paction between a witch and the demon was perhaps deemed in itself to have terrors enough to prevent its becoming an ordinary crime, and was not, therefore, visited with any statutory penalty. But to attempt or execute bodily harm to others through means of evil spirits, or, in a word, by the black art, was actionable at common law as much as if the party accused had done the same harm with an arrow or pistol-shot. The destruction or abstraction of goods by the like instruments, supposing the charge proved, would, in like manner, be punishable. A fortiori, the consulting soothsayers, familiar spirits, or the like, and the obtaining and circulating pretended prophecies to the unsettlement of the State and the endangering of the King’s title, is yet a higher degree of guilt. And it may be remarked that the inquiry into the date of the King’s life bears a close affinity with the desiring or compassing the death of the Sovereign, which is the essence of high treason. Upon such charges repeated trials took place in the courts of the English, and condemnations were pronounced, with sufficient justice, no doubt, where the connexion between the resort to sorcerers and the design to perpetrate a felony could be clearly proved. We would not, indeed, be disposed to go the length of so high an authority as Selden, who pronounces (in his “Table-Talk”) that if a man heartily believed that he could take the life of another by waving his hat three times and crying Buzz! and should, under this fixed opinion, wave his hat and cry Buzz! accordingly, he ought to be executed as a murderer. But a false prophecy of the King’s death is not to be dealt with exactly on the usual principle; because, however idle in itself, the promulgation of such a prediction has, in times such as we are speaking of, a strong tendency to work its completion.
Witchcraft was definitely acknowledged and believed in England, just like in other countries in Europe, and was originally punished accordingly. However, after the fourteenth century, the practices considered witchcraft were seen as unworthy of special attention unless they were linked to something that would have been a serious crime, no matter how it was attempted or carried out. So, the supposed pact between a witch and a demon was thought to have enough fear factor on its own to prevent it from becoming a common crime and therefore didn't receive specific legal penalties. However, trying to harm others using evil spirits or, in simple terms, through black magic, was actionable under common law as if the accused had caused the same harm with a bow or a gun. The destruction or theft of property through similar means, if the accusation was proven, would also be punishable. Moreover, consulting clairvoyants, familiar spirits, or similar entities, and obtaining and spreading fake prophecies that could upset the State and threaten the King's authority, is an even more serious offense. It’s worth noting that inquiring about the King’s lifespan closely relates to wishing for the Sovereign's death, which is the core of high treason. On such charges, there were multiple trials in English courts, and just sentences were passed, especially when it was clearly shown that the use of sorcerers was linked to plans to commit a crime. We wouldn’t go as far as Selden, who claims in his “Table-Talk” that if someone truly believed they could kill another person by waving their hat three times and shouting "Buzz!" and actually did it, they should be executed for murder. But a false prophecy about the King’s death isn’t treated exactly like other cases; because, although it may seem silly, spreading such a prediction has, in times like those, a strong likelihood of coming true.
Many persons, and some of great celebrity, suffered for the charge of trafficking with witches, to the prejudice of those in authority. We have already mentioned the instance of the Duchess of Gloucester, in Henry the Sixth’s reign, and that of the Queen Dowager’s kinsmen, in the Protectorate of Richard, afterwards the Third. In 1521, the Duke of Buckingham was beheaded, owing much to his having listened to the predictions of one Friar Hopkins. In the same reign, the Maid of Kent, who had been esteemed a prophetess, was put to death as a cheat. She suffered with seven persons who had managed her fits for the support of the Catholic religion, and confessed her fraud upon the scaffold. About seven years after this, Lord Hungerford was beheaded for consulting certain soothsayers concerning the length of Henry the Eighth’s life. But these cases rather relate to the purpose for which the sorcery was employed, than to the fact of using it.
Many people, including some very famous ones, faced serious consequences for being accused of dealing with witches, which harmed those in power. We’ve already noted the case of the Duchess of Gloucester during Henry the Sixth’s reign, as well as that of the Queen Dowager’s relatives during Richard's Protectorate, who later became King Richard III. In 1521, the Duke of Buckingham was executed, largely because he had listened to the predictions of a man named Friar Hopkins. In the same reign, the Maid of Kent, who was regarded as a prophetess, was killed as a fraud. She was executed alongside seven others who had helped her fake her fits to support the Catholic faith, and she admitted her deception on the scaffold. About seven years later, Lord Hungerford was beheaded for consulting certain soothsayers about how long Henry the Eighth would live. However, these cases mostly relate to the reasons sorcery was used rather than the fact that it was used at all.
Two remarkable statutes were passed in the year 1541; one against false prophecies, the other against the act of conjuration, witchcraft, and sorcery, and at the same time against breaking and destroying crosses. The former enactment was certainly made to ease the suspicious and wayward fears of the tetchy King Henry. The prohibition against witchcraft might be also dictated by the king’s jealous doubts of hazard to the succession. The enactment against breaking crosses was obviously designed to check the ravages of the Reformers, who in England as well as elsewhere desired to sweep away Popery with the besom of destruction. This latter statute was abrogated in the first year of Edward VI., perhaps as placing an undue restraint on the zeal of good Protestants against idolatry.
Two significant laws were passed in 1541; one targeting false prophecies and the other addressing conjuration, witchcraft, and sorcery, along with prohibiting the destruction of crosses. The first law clearly aimed to calm the paranoid and erratic fears of the irritable King Henry. The ban on witchcraft might also stem from the king’s jealous concerns about threats to the succession. The law against breaking crosses was clearly intended to curb the destructive actions of the Reformers, who wanted to eliminate Catholicism in England and beyond. This latter law was repealed in the first year of Edward VI, possibly because it was seen as overly restrictive on the enthusiasm of good Protestants against idolatry.
At length, in 1562, a formal statute against sorcery, as penal in itself, was actually passed; but as the penalty was limited to the pillory for the first transgression, the legislature probably regarded those who might be brought to trial as impostors rather than wizards. There are instances of individuals tried and convicted as impostors and cheats, and who acknowledged themselves such before the court and people; but in their articles of visitation the prelates directed enquiry to be made after those who should use enchantments, witchcraft, sorcery, or any like craft, invented by the devil.
Finally, in 1562, a formal law against sorcery was actually passed, which was punishable in itself; however, since the penalty was limited to being put in the pillory for the first offense, the lawmakers probably viewed those who were put on trial as frauds rather than actual witches. There are examples of people who were tried and convicted as frauds and cheats, and they openly admitted this before the court and the public; nevertheless, in their visitation articles, the church leaders instructed inquiries to be made into those who practiced enchantments, witchcraft, sorcery, or any similar practices, invented by the devil.
But it is here proper to make a pause for the purpose of enquiring in what manner the religious disputes which occupied all Europe about this time influenced the proceedings of the rival sects in relation to Demonology.
But it's important to pause here to explore how the religious disputes that filled Europe during this time affected the actions of the competing sects regarding Demonology.
The Papal Church had long reigned by the proud and absolute humour which she had assumed, of maintaining every doctrine which her rulers had adopted in dark ages; but this pertinacity at length made her citadel too large to be defended at every point by a garrison whom prudence would have required to abandon positions which had been taken in times of darkness, and were unsuited to the warfare of a more enlightened age. The sacred motto of the Vatican was, “Vestigia nulla retrorsum;” and this rendered it impossible to comply with the more wise and moderate of her own party, who would otherwise have desired to make liberal concessions to the Protestants, and thus prevent, in its commencement, a formidable schism in the Christian world.
The Papal Church had long ruled with the proud and unwavering attitude of sticking to every doctrine that her leaders had adopted during the dark ages. However, this stubbornness eventually made her stronghold too vast to defend at every point, especially given that caution would have advised abandoning positions established in times of ignorance, which were unsuitable for the challenges of a more enlightened era. The Vatican's sacred motto was, “Vestigia nulla retrorsum,” and this made it impossible to align with the more sensible and moderate members of her own faction, who would have otherwise wanted to make generous concessions to the Protestants, thus preventing a serious split in the Christian world from happening right at the start.
To the system of Rome the Calvinists offered the most determined opposition, affecting upon every occasion and on all points to observe an order of church-government, as well as of worship, expressly in the teeth of its enactments;—in a word, to be a good Protestant, they held it almost essential to be in all things diametrically opposite to the Catholic form and faith. As the foundation of this sect was laid in republican states, as its clerical discipline was settled on a democratic basis, and as the countries which adopted that form of government were chiefly poor, the preachers having lost the rank and opulence enjoyed by the Roman Church, were gradually thrown on the support of the people. Insensibly they became occupied with the ideas and tenets natural to the common people, which, if they have usually the merit of being honestly conceived and boldly expressed, are not the less often adopted with credulity and precipitation, and carried into effect with unhesitating harshness and severity.
The Calvinists offered the strongest opposition to the Roman system, consistently insisting on a church governance and worship style that directly challenged its regulations. In short, they believed that being a good Protestant meant being completely contrary to Catholic beliefs
Betwixt these extremes the Churchmen of England endeavoured to steer a middle course, retaining a portion of the ritual and forms of Rome, as in themselves admirable, and at any rate too greatly venerated by the people to be changed merely for opposition’s sake. Their comparatively undilapidated revenue, the connexion of their system with the state, with views of ambition as ample as the station of a churchman ought to command, rendered them independent of the necessity of courting their flocks by any means save regular discharge of their duty; and the excellent provisions made for their education afforded them learning to confute ignorance and enlighten prejudice.
Between these extremes, the Churchmen of England tried to find a middle ground, keeping some of the rituals and practices of Rome, which they found admirable and were too highly respected by the people to be changed just for the sake of opposition. Their relatively intact revenue, the connection of their system with the state, and their ambitious aspirations befitting their positions allowed them to remain independent from having to win over their congregations in any way other than by fulfilling their duties. The excellent educational opportunities provided for them equipped them to counter ignorance and challenge prejudice.
Such being the general character of the three Churches, their belief in and persecution of such crimes as witchcraft and sorcery were necessarily modelled upon the peculiar tenets which each system professed, and gave rise to various results in the countries where they were severally received.
Given the overall nature of the three Churches, their beliefs in and persecution of crimes like witchcraft and sorcery were shaped by the specific principles each system upheld, leading to different outcomes in the countries where they were adopted.
The Church of Rome, as we have seen, was unwilling, in her period of undisputed power, to call in the secular arm to punish men for witchcraft—a crime which fell especially under ecclesiastical cognizance, and could, according to her belief, be subdued by the spiritual arm alone. The learned men at the head of the establishment might safely despise the attempt at those hidden arts as impossible; or, even if they were of a more credulous disposition, they might be unwilling to make laws by which their own enquiries in the mathematics, algebra, chemistry, and other pursuits vulgarly supposed to approach the confines of magic art, might be inconveniently restricted. The more selfish part of the priesthood might think that a general belief in the existence of witches should be permitted to remain, as a source both of power and of revenue—that if there were no possessions, there could be no exorcism-fees—and, in short, that a wholesome faith in all the absurdities of the vulgar creed as to supernatural influences was necessary to maintain the influence of Diana of Ephesus. They suffered spells to be manufactured, since every friar had the power of reversing them; they permitted poison to be distilled, because every convent had the antidote, which was disposed of to all who chose to demand it. It was not till the universal progress of heresy, in the end of the fifteenth century, that the bull of Pope Innocent VIII., already quoted, called to convict, imprison, and condemn the sorcerers, chiefly because it was the object to transfer the odium of these crimes to the Waldenses, and excite and direct the public hatred against the new sect by confounding their doctrines with the influences of the devil and his fiends. The bull of Pope Innocent was afterwards, in the year 1523, enforced by Adrian VI. with a new one, in which excommunication was directed against sorcerers and heretics.
The Church of Rome, as we've noted, was hesitant during its time of unquestioned authority to rely on secular power to punish people for witchcraft—a crime that was particularly under the Church's jurisdiction and could, according to its beliefs, be addressed solely through spiritual means. The educated leaders of the Church might dismiss attempts at these hidden arts as impossible; or, even if they were more gullible, they might hesitate to create laws that would restrict their own explorations in mathematics, algebra, chemistry, and other fields commonly thought to border on magical practices. The more self-serving members of the clergy might think that a widespread belief in the existence of witches should be allowed to continue, as it served as a source of both power and income—that without possessions, there would be no fees for exorcisms—and, ultimately, that a strong belief in all the irrationalities of popular beliefs about supernatural influences was essential to maintain the power of Diana of Ephesus. They allowed spells to be cast since any friar could reverse them; they permitted poison to be created, knowing that every convent had the antidote, which was made available to anyone who asked for it. It wasn't until the widespread rise of heresy toward the end of the fifteenth century that Pope Innocent VIII’s bull, already mentioned, was issued to convict, imprison, and condemn sorcerers, primarily because it aimed to shift the blame for these crimes onto the Waldenses and stoke public animosity against the new sect by linking their beliefs to the influence of the devil and his demons. Pope Innocent’s bull was later reinforced in 1523 by Adrian VI with a new decree that called for excommunication against sorcerers and heretics.
While Rome thus positively declared herself against witches and sorcerers, the Calvinists, in whose numbers must be included the greater part of the English Puritans, who, though they had not finally severed from the communion of the Anglican Church, yet disapproved of her ritual and ceremonies as retaining too much of the Papal stamp, ranked themselves, in accordance with their usual policy, in diametrical opposition to the doctrine of the Mother Church. They assumed in the opposite sense whatever Rome pretended to as a proof of her omnipotent authority. The exorcisms, forms, and rites, by which good Catholics believed that incarnate fiends could be expelled and evil spirits of every kind rebuked—these, like the holy water, the robes of the priest, and the sign of the cross, the Calvinists considered either with scorn and contempt as the tools of deliberate quackery and imposture, or with horror and loathing, as the fit emblems and instruments of an idolatrous system.
While Rome firmly announced her stance against witches and sorcerers, the Calvinists, which included most of the English Puritans, who, although they had not completely broken away from the Anglican Church, still criticized its rituals and ceremonies for having too much of a Papal influence, positioned themselves, as was their habit, in complete opposition to the teachings of the Mother Church. They interpreted everything Rome claimed as evidence of her absolute authority in the opposite way. The exorcisms, forms, and rites that devout Catholics believed could expel evil spirits and confront all kinds of malevolent entities—these, along with holy water, priestly robes, and the sign of the cross, were viewed by the Calvinists either with scorn and contempt as instruments of outright deception and fraud, or with horror and disgust, seeing them as fitting symbols and tools of an idolatrous system.
Such of them as did not absolutely deny the supernatural powers of which the Romanists made boast, regarded the success of the exorcising priest, to whatever extent they admitted it, as at best a casting out of devils by the power of Beelzebub, the King of the Devils. They saw also, and resented bitterly, the attempt to confound any dissent from the doctrines of Rome with the proneness to an encouragement of rites of sorcery. On the whole, the Calvinists, generally speaking, were of all the contending sects the most suspicious of sorcery, the most undoubting believers in its existence, and the most eager to follow it up with what they conceived to be the due punishment of the most fearful of crimes.
Those who didn't completely reject the supernatural powers that the Romans boasted about viewed the success of the exorcising priest, no matter how much they accepted it, as merely a casting out of demons by the power of Beelzebub, the King of the Demons. They also recognized and deeply resented the effort to equate any disagreement with the doctrines of Rome with a tendency to promote sorcery practices. Overall, the Calvinists, in general, were the most suspicious of sorcery among all the competing sects, the most convinced of its existence, and the most eager to impose what they believed to be the proper punishment for the most heinous of crimes.
The leading divines of the Church of England were, without doubt, fundamentally as much opposed to the doctrines of Rome as those who altogether disclaimed opinions and ceremonies merely because she had entertained them. But their position in society tended strongly to keep them from adopting, on such subjects as we are now discussing, either the eager credulity of the vulgar mind or the fanatic ferocity of their Calvinistic rivals. We have no purpose to discuss the matter in detail—enough has probably been said to show generally why the Romanist should have cried out a miracle respecting an incident which the Anglican would have contemptuously termed an imposture; while the Calvinist, inspired with a darker zeal, and, above all, with the unceasing desire of open controversy with the Catholics, would have styled the same event an operation of the devil.
The leading theologians of the Church of England were definitely just as opposed to the beliefs of Rome as those who completely rejected opinions and ceremonies simply because she had accepted them. However, their social status likely kept them from adopting, in discussions like the ones we’re having now, either the naive gullibility of the common people or the intense fervor of their Calvinist counterparts. We don't intend to go into the details—it's probably enough to say that this explains why a Catholic would have shouted about a miracle regarding an event that an Anglican would have callously dismissed as a fraud; meanwhile, a Calvinist, fueled by a darker passion and a constant desire for open debate with Catholics, would have labeled the same incident as an act of the devil.
It followed that, while the divines of the Church of England possessed the upper hand in the kingdom, witchcraft, though trials and even condemnations for that offence occasionally occurred, did not create that epidemic terror which the very suspicion of the offence carried with it elsewhere; so that Reginald Scot and others alleged it was the vain pretences and empty forms of the Church of Rome, by the faith reposed in them, which had led to the belief of witchcraft or sorcery in general. Nor did prosecutions on account of such charges frequently involve a capital punishment, while learned judges were jealous of the imperfection of the evidence to support the charge, and entertained a strong and growing suspicion that legitimate grounds for such trials seldom actually existed. On the other hand, it usually happened that wherever the Calvinist interest became predominant in Britain, a general persecution of sorcerers and witches seemed to take place of consequence. Fearing and hating sorcery more than other Protestants, connecting its ceremonies and usages with those of the detested Catholic Church, the Calvinists were more eager than other sects in searching after the traces of this crime, and, of course, unusually successful, as they might suppose, in making discoveries of guilt, and pursuing it to the expiation of the fagot. In a word, a principle already referred to by Dr. Francis Hutchison will be found to rule the tide and the reflux of such cases in the different churches. The numbers of witches, and their supposed dealings with Satan, will increase or decrease according as such doings are accounted probable or impossible. Under the former supposition, charges and convictions will be found augmented in a terrific degree. When the accusations are disbelieved and dismissed as not worthy of attention, the crime becomes unfrequent, ceases to occupy the public mind, and affords little trouble to the judges.
It followed that while the leaders of the Church of England held significant power in the kingdom, witchcraft—though trials and even condemnations for it did happen from time to time—did not create the widespread panic that the mere suspicion of the offense caused in other places. Reginald Scot and others suggested that it was the empty rituals and superficial authority of the Catholic Church that led to the belief in witchcraft and sorcery in general. Moreover, prosecutions for such charges rarely resulted in capital punishment, as learned judges were skeptical of the quality of the evidence supporting the accusations and increasingly suspicious that legitimate grounds for such trials seldom existed. On the other hand, it often happened that wherever Calvinist interests gained the upper hand in Britain, a general persecution of sorcerers and witches followed. Fearing and detesting sorcery more than other Protestants, and linking its practices to those of the hated Catholic Church, the Calvinists were more zealous than other groups in tracking down this crime, and, as they believed, unusually successful in uncovering guilt, often leading to execution by burning. In short, a principle previously mentioned by Dr. Francis Hutchison governs the rise and fall of such cases across different churches. The number of witches and their supposed dealings with Satan will rise or fall depending on whether such actions are seen as likely or unlikely. Under the former view, accusations and convictions will increase dramatically. When the claims are dismissed and seen as unworthy of attention, the crime becomes rare, stops occupying the public’s attention, and causes little trouble for judges.
The passing of Elizabeth’s statute against witchcraft in 1562 does not seem to have been intended to increase the number of trials, or cases of conviction at least; and the fact is, it did neither the one nor the other. Two children were tried in 1574 for counterfeiting possession, and stood in the pillory for impostors. Mildred Norrington, called the Maid of Westwell, furnished another instance of possession; but she also confessed her imposture, and publicly showed her fits and tricks of mimicry. The strong influence already possessed by the Puritans may probably be sufficient to account for the darker issue of certain cases, in which both juries and judges in Elizabeth’s time must be admitted to have shown fearful severity.
The passage of Elizabeth’s law against witchcraft in 1562 doesn’t seem to have been meant to increase the number of trials, or at least not the number of convictions; and the truth is, it did neither. Two kids were tried in 1574 for faking possession and were publicly humiliated in the pillory as frauds. Mildred Norrington, known as the Maid of Westwell, provided another example of possession; however, she also admitted her deceit and publicly displayed her fits and mimicry tricks. The strong influence already held by the Puritans likely explains the harsher outcomes in certain cases, where both juries and judges during Elizabeth’s reign must be recognized for their extreme severity.
These cases of possession were in some respects sore snares to the priests of the Church of Rome, who, while they were too sagacious not to be aware that the pretended fits, contortions, strange sounds, and other extravagances, produced as evidence of the demon’s influence on the possessed person, were nothing else than marks of imposture by some idle vagabond, were nevertheless often tempted to admit them as real, and take the credit of curing them. The period was one when the Catholic Church had much occasion to rally around her all the respect that remained to her in a schismatic and heretical kingdom; and when her fathers and doctors announced the existence of such a dreadful disease, and of the power of the church’s prayers, relics, and ceremonies, to cure it, it was difficult for a priest, supposing him more tender of the interest of his order than that of truth, to avoid such a tempting opportunity as a supposed case of possession offered for displaying the high privilege in which his profession made him a partaker, or to abstain from conniving at the imposture, in order to obtain for his church the credit of expelling the demon. It was hardly to be wondered at, if the ecclesiastic was sometimes induced to aid the fraud of which such motives forbade him to be the detector. At this he might hesitate the less, as he was not obliged to adopt the suspected and degrading course of holding an immediate communication in limine with the impostor, since a hint or two, dropped in the supposed sufferer’s presence, might give him the necessary information what was the most exact mode of performing his part, and if the patient was possessed by a devil of any acuteness or dexterity, he wanted no further instruction how to play it. Such combinations were sometimes detected, and brought more discredit on the Church of Rome than was counterbalanced by any which might be more cunningly managed. On this subject the reader may turn to Dr. Harsnett’s celebrated book on Popish Impostures, wherein he gives the history of several notorious cases of detected fraud, in which Roman ecclesiastics had not hesitated to mingle themselves. That of Grace Sowerbutts, instructed by a Catholic priest to impeach her grandmother of witchcraft, was a very gross fraud.
These cases of possession were, in some ways, major traps for the priests of the Roman Catholic Church. They were smart enough to realize that the supposed fits, convulsions, strange noises, and other bizarre behaviors claimed as evidence of demonic influence were nothing more than signs of trickery by some idle vagrant. However, they were often tempted to accept these claims as real and take credit for curing them. This was a time when the Catholic Church needed to rally whatever respect it could in a divided and heretical kingdom. When church leaders and scholars declared that such a horrible disease existed and that the church's prayers, relics, and rituals had the power to heal it, it became hard for a priest, who might care more about his order's interests than the truth, to pass up an opportunity, like a supposed case of possession, to showcase the unique privilege his position afforded him. It was also difficult to resist turning a blind eye to the deception in order to gain praise for expelling the demon on behalf of his church. It’s no surprise that some clergy were persuaded to support the fraud that their motives discouraged them from exposing. They could do this without having to engage directly with the charlatan, as just a few hints dropped in front of the supposed victim might provide the necessary guidance on how to perform their roles. If the patient was possessed by a clever or skillful devil, they wouldn't need further instruction on how to act. Such schemes were sometimes uncovered and ended up bringing more shame to the Roman Catholic Church than any cleverly orchestrated fraud could offset. For more on this topic, readers can refer to Dr. Harsnett’s famous book on Popish Impostures, where he recounts the history of several notorious cases of exposed fraud involving Roman clerics. One notable case was that of Grace Sowerbutts, who was guided by a Catholic priest to accuse her grandmother of witchcraft, which was a blatant fraud.
Such cases were not, however, limited to the ecclesiastics of Rome. We have already stated that, as extremes usually approach each other, the Dissenters, in their violent opposition to the Papists, adopted some of their ideas respecting demoniacs; and we have now to add that they also claimed, by the vehemence of prayer and the authority of their own sacred commission, that power of expelling devils which the Church of Rome pretended to exercise by rites, ceremonies, and relics. The memorable case of Richard Dugdale, called the Surrey Impostor, was one of the most remarkable which the Dissenters brought forward. This youth was supposed to have sold his soul to the devil, on condition of being made the best dancer in Lancashire, and during his possession played a number of fantastic tricks, not much different from those exhibited by expert posture-masters of the present day. This person threw himself into the hands of the Dissenters, who, in their eagerness, caught at an opportunity to relieve an afflicted person, whose case the regular clergy appeared to have neglected. They fixed a committee of their number, who weekly attended the supposed sufferer, and exercised themselves in appointed days of humiliation and fasting during the course of a whole year. All respect for the demon seems to have abandoned the reverend gentlemen, after they had relieved guard in this manner for some little time, and they got so regardless of Satan as to taunt him with the mode in which he executed his promise to teach his vassal dancing. The following specimen of raillery is worth commemoration:—“What, Satan! is this the dancing that Richard gave himself to thee for? &c. Canst thou dance no better? &c. Ransack the old records of all past times and places in thy memory; canst thou not there find out some better way of trampling? Pump thine invention dry; cannot the universal seed-plot of subtile wiles and stratagems spring up one new method of cutting capers? Is this the top of skill and pride, to shuffle feet and brandish knees thus, and to trip like a doe and skip like a squirrel? And wherein differ thy leapings from the hoppings of a frog, or the bouncings of a goat, or friskings of a dog, or gesticulations of a monkey? And cannot a palsy shake such a loose leg as that? Dost thou not twirl like a calf that hath the turn, and twitch up thy houghs just like a springhault tit?"54 One might almost conceive the demon replying to this raillery in the words of Dr. Johnson, “This merriment of parsons is extremely offensive.”
Such cases weren't just limited to the clergy in Rome. We've already mentioned that, as extremes often meet, the Dissenters, in their strong opposition to the Papists, took on some of their ideas about demoniacs. We also need to add that they claimed, through fervent prayer and their own sacred authority, the power to expel devils, similar to what the Church of Rome claimed to do through rites, ceremonies, and relics. The notable case of Richard Dugdale, known as the Surrey Impostor, was one of the most remarkable examples that the Dissenters presented. This young man was believed to have sold his soul to the devil in exchange for being the best dancer in Lancashire. While possessed, he performed a variety of bizarre tricks, not much different from those seen today from skilled performers. This individual gave himself over to the Dissenters, who eagerly seized the opportunity to help someone they felt had been neglected by the regular clergy. They formed a committee of their members to attend to the supposed sufferer weekly and engaged in days of humiliation and fasting for an entire year. After some time, the reverend gentlemen seemed to lose any respect for the demon and became so dismissive of Satan that they would mock him for how he taught his follower to dance. A noteworthy example of their teasing goes: “What, Satan! is this the dancing that Richard gave himself to you for? Can’t you dance any better? Go through the old records of all times and places in your memory; can’t you find a better way to dance? Squeeze your creativity dry; can't the universal fund of subtle tricks come up with one new way to cut a rug? Is this the peak of skill and pride, shuffling your feet and flailing your knees like this, tripping like a doe and skipping like a squirrel? How do your leaps differ from the hops of a frog, the bounds of a goat, the jumps of a dog, or the antics of a monkey? Couldn’t a shake from palsy move such a loose leg? Don’t you whirl like a calf with the turn, and twitch your hind legs just like a springy young horse?” One might almost imagine the demon responding to this mockery with Dr. Johnson's words, “This merriment of parsons is extremely offensive.”
The dissenters were probably too honest, however simple, to achieve a complete cure on Dugdale by an amicable understanding; so, after their year of vigil, they relinquished their task by degrees. Dugdale, weary of his illness, which now attracted little notice, attended a regular physician, and was cured of that part of his disease which was not affected in a regular way par ordonnance du médecin. But the reverend gentlemen who had taken his case in hand still assumed the credit of curing him, and if anything could have induced them to sing Te Deum, it would have been this occasion. They said that the effect of their public prayers had been for a time suspended, until seconded by the continued earnestness of their private devotions!
The dissenters were probably too genuine, though simple, to fully heal Dugdale through a friendly agreement; so, after a year of watch, they gradually gave up their efforts. Dugdale, tired of his illness, which now drew little attention, visited a regular doctor and was cured of that part of his disease that didn’t respond to standard treatment par ordonnance du médecin. However, the reverend gentlemen who had taken on his case still claimed credit for his recovery, and if anything could have made them celebrate with a Te Deum, it would have been this moment. They claimed that the impact of their public prayers had been temporarily set aside, only to be revived by the ongoing sincerity of their private prayers!
The ministers of the Church of England, though, from education, intercourse with the world, and other advantages, they were less prone to prejudice than those of other sects, are yet far from being entirely free of the charge of encouraging in particular instances the witch superstition. Even while Dr. Hutchison pleads that the Church of England has the least to answer for in that matter, he is under the necessity of acknowledging that some regular country clergymen so far shared the rooted prejudices of congregations, and of the government which established laws against it, as to be active in the persecution of the suspected, and even in countenancing the superstitious signs by which in that period the vulgar thought it possible to ascertain the existence of the afflictions by witchcraft, and obtain the knowledge of the perpetrator. A singular case is mentioned of three women, called the Witches of Warbois. Indeed, their story is a matter of solemn enough record; for Sir Samuel Cromwell, having received the sum of forty pounds as lord of the manor, out of the estate of the poor persons who suffered, turned it into a rent-charge of forty shillings yearly, for the endowment of an annual lecture on the subject of witchcraft, to be preached by a doctor or bachelor of divinity of Queen’s College, Cambridge. The accused, one Samuel and his wife, were old and very poor persons, and their daughter a young woman. The daughter of a Mr. Throgmorton, seeing the poor old woman in a black knitted cap, at a time when she was not very well, took a whim that she had bewitched her, and was ever after exclaiming against her. The other children of this fanciful family caught up the same cry, and the eldest of them at last got up a vastly pretty drama, in which she herself furnished all the scenes and played all the parts.
The ministers of the Church of England, thanks to their education, interactions with the world, and other advantages, were generally less biased than those from other religious groups, but they were still not completely free from the accusation of supporting witchcraft beliefs in some cases. Even though Dr. Hutchison argues that the Church of England has the least to answer for regarding this issue, he must admit that some regular country clergymen shared the deep-rooted prejudices of their congregations and the government, which had laws against witchcraft, and were involved in the persecution of those suspected of it. They even endorsed the superstitious signs that people at that time believed could reveal if someone was afflicted by witchcraft and identify the perpetrator. A notable case is that of three women known as the Witches of Warbois. Their story is formally recorded; Sir Samuel Cromwell received a sum of forty pounds as lord of the manor from the estate of the impoverished victims and then turned it into a yearly rent charge of forty shillings to fund an annual lecture on witchcraft, to be given by a doctor or bachelor of divinity from Queen’s College, Cambridge. The accused, Samuel and his wife, were elderly and very poor, and their daughter was a young woman. The daughter of Mr. Throgmorton, seeing the poor old woman wearing a black knitted cap during a time when she wasn’t feeling well, fancied that she had been bewitched and continuously complained about her afterward. The other children of this imaginative family echoed this sentiment, and the eldest among them eventually created a rather elaborate play in which she provided all the scenes and played all the roles.
Such imaginary scenes, or make-believe stories, are the common amusement of lively children; and most readers may remember having had some Utopia of their own. But the nursery drama of Miss Throgmorton had a horrible conclusion. This young lady and her sisters were supposed to be haunted by nine spirits, dispatched by the wicked Mother Samuel for that purpose. The sapient parents heard one part of the dialogue, when the children in their fits returned answers, as was supposed, to the spirits who afflicted them; and when the patients from time to time recovered, they furnished the counterpart by telling what the spirits had said to them. The names of the spirits were Pluck, Hardname, Catch, Blue, and three Smacks, who were cousins. Mrs. Joan Throgmorton, the eldest (who, like other young women of her age, about fifteen, had some disease on her nerves, and whose fancy ran apparently on love and gallantry), supposed that one of the Smacks was her lover, did battle for her with the less friendly spirits, and promised to protect her against Mother Samuel herself; and the following curious extract will show on what a footing of familiarity the damsel stood with her spiritual gallant: “From whence come you, Mr. Smack?” says the afflicted young lady; “and what news do you bring?” Smack, nothing abashed, informed her he came from fighting with Pluck: the weapons, great cowl-staves; the scene, a ruinous bakehouse in Dame Samuel’s yard. “And who got the mastery, I pray you?” said the damsel. Smack answered, he had broken Pluck’s head. “I would,” said the damsel, “he had broken your neck also.” “Is that the thanks I am to have for my labour?” said the disappointed Smack. “Look you for thanks at my hand?” said the distressed maiden. “I would you were all hanged up against each other, with your dame for company, for you are all naught.” On this repulse, exit Smack, and enter Pluck, Blue, and Catch, the first with his head broken, the other limping, and the third with his arm in a sling, all trophies of Smack’s victory. They disappeared after having threatened vengeance upon the conquering Smack. However, he soon afterwards appeared with his laurels. He told her of his various conflicts. “I wonder,” said Mrs. Joan, or Jane, “that you are able to beat them; you are little, and they very big.” “He cared not for that,” he replied; “he would beat the best two of them, and his cousins Smacks would beat the other two.” This most pitiful mirth, for such it certainly is, was mixed with tragedy enough. Miss Throgmorton and her sisters railed against Darne Samuel; and when Mr. Throgmorton brought her to his house by force, the little fiends longed to draw blood of her, scratch her, and torture her, as the witch-creed of that period recommended; yet the poor woman incurred deeper suspicion when she expressed a wish to leave a house where she was so coarsely treated and lay under such odious suspicions.
Such imaginary scenes, or *make-believe* stories, are a common source of fun for energetic kids; and most readers can probably remember having their own little utopia. But Miss Throgmorton’s nursery drama had a terrifying ending. This young lady and her sisters were thought to be haunted by nine spirits sent by the evil Mother Samuel for that purpose. The wise parents overheard part of the conversation, where the children, in their fits, were believed to be responding to the spirits that tormented them. When the children occasionally regained their composure, they shared what the spirits had said to them. The spirits were named Pluck, Hardname, Catch, Blue, and three cousins named Smack. Mrs. Joan Throgmorton, the eldest (who, like many girls her age, around fifteen, was troubled by a nervous condition, and whose imagination seemed to dwell on love and romance), thought one of the Smacks was her boyfriend, who fought the more hostile spirits and promised to protect her from Mother Samuel herself. The following curious exchange illustrates the level of familiarity the girl had with her spiritual suitor: “Where do you come from, Mr. Smack?” asked the troubled young lady, “and what news do you bring?” Smack, unfazed, replied he came from fighting Pluck: the weapons were thick staffs; the location was a crumbling bakery in Dame Samuel’s yard. “And who won, if I may ask?” said the young lady. Smack replied he had broken Pluck’s head. “I wish,” said the young lady, “that he had broken your neck too.” “Is that the thanks I’m supposed to get for my efforts?” said the disgruntled Smack. “You expect thanks from me?” retorted the distressed girl. “I wish you were all strung up next to each other with your dame for company, because you’re all worthless.” Hurt by this rejection, Smack exited, and in came Pluck, Blue, and Catch, with Pluck sporting a broken head, Blue limping, and Catch with his arm in a sling, all trophies of Smack’s victory. They left after threatening revenge on conquering Smack. However, soon after, he reappeared, boasting of his victories. “I’m surprised,” said Mrs. Joan, or Jane, “that you can beat them; you’re small, and they’re really big.” “He didn’t care about that,” he replied; “he could take the best two of them, and his cousins Smack would handle the other two.” This most absurd humor, for such it certainly was, was mixed with enough tragedy. Miss Throgmorton and her sisters cursed Darne Samuel; and when Mr. Throgmorton forcibly brought her to his home, the little demons yearned to draw blood from her, scratch her, and torment her, as the witch beliefs of that time suggested; yet the poor woman faced even greater suspicion when she expressed a desire to leave a place where she was treated so harshly and was under such terrible suspicion.
It was in vain that this unhappy creature endeavoured to avert their resentment by submitting to all the ill-usage they chose to put upon her; in vain that she underwent unresistingly the worst usage at the hand of Lady Cromwell, her landlady, who, abusing her with the worst epithets, tore her cap from her head, clipped out some of her hair, and gave it to Mrs. Throgmorton to burn it for a counter-charm. Nay, Mother Samuel’s complaisance in the latter case only led to a new charge. It happened that the Lady Cromwell, on her return home, dreamed of her day’s work, and especially of the old dame and her cat; and, as her ladyship died in a year and quarter from that very day, it was sagaciously concluded that she must have fallen a victim to the witcheries of the terrible Dame Samuel. Mr. Throgmorton also compelled the old woman and her daughter to use expressions which put their lives in the power of these malignant children, who had carried on the farce so long that they could not well escape from their own web of deceit but by the death of these helpless creatures. For example, the prisoner, Dame Samuel, was induced to say to the supposed spirit, “As I am a witch, and a causer of Lady Cromwell’s death, I charge thee to come out of the maiden.” The girl lay still; and this was accounted a proof that the poor woman, who, only subdued and crushed by terror and tyranny, did as she was bidden, was a witch. One is ashamed of an English judge and jury when it must be repeated that the evidence of these enthusiastic and giddy-pated girls was deemed sufficient to the condemnation of three innocent persons. Goody Samuel, indeed, was at length worried into a confession of her guilt by the various vexations which were practised on her. But her husband and daughter continued to maintain their innocence. The last showed a high spirit and proud value for her character. She was advised by some, who pitied her youth, to gain at least a respite by pleading pregnancy; to which she answered disdainfully, “No, I will not be both held witch and strumpet!” The mother, to show her sanity of mind and the real value of her confession, caught at the advice recommended to her daughter. As her years put such a plea out of the question, there was a laugh among the unfeeling audience, in which the poor old victim joined loudly and heartily. Some there were who thought it no joking matter, and were inclined to think they had a Joanna Southcote before them, and that the devil must be the father. These unfortunate Samuels were condemned at Huntingdon, before Mr. Justice Fenner, 4th April, 1593. It was a singular case to be commemorated by an annual lecture, as provided by Sir Samuel Cromwell, for the purposes of justice were never so perverted, nor her sword turned to a more flagrant murder.
It was pointless for this unfortunate woman to try to avoid their anger by putting up with all the abuse they directed at her; it was pointless for her to endure the worst treatment from Lady Cromwell, her landlady, who insulted her with harsh words, ripped her cap off her head, cut some of her hair, and gave it to Mrs. Throgmorton to burn as part of a spell. Moreover, Mother Samuel’s compliance only led to more accusations. It turned out that Lady Cromwell, upon returning home, dreamt of her day, especially about the old woman and her cat; and since her ladyship died a year and quarter from that day, it was cleverly concluded that she must have been a victim of the dark magic of the terrible Dame Samuel. Mr. Throgmorton also forced the old woman and her daughter to say things that put their lives at the mercy of these spiteful girls, who had been playing this game for so long that they couldn’t escape their own web of lies except by the deaths of these helpless souls. For instance, the prisoner, Dame Samuel, was made to tell the supposed spirit, “As I am a witch and the cause of Lady Cromwell’s death, I command you to come out of the girl.” The girl lay still, and this was taken as proof that the poor woman, who was only subdued and crushed by fear and cruelty, was indeed a witch. It’s embarrassing to think that an English judge and jury considered the testimony of these overexcited and naive girls enough to convict three innocent people. Goody Samuel eventually confessed to her so-called guilt due to the various pressures inflicted upon her. However, her husband and daughter continued to assert their innocence. The daughter held her head high and valued her reputation. Some, who sympathized with her youth, advised her to at least buy time by claiming she was pregnant; to which she replied disdainfully, “No, I won’t be seen as both a witch and a harlot!” The mother, wanting to show her sanity and the real meaning behind her confession, grabbed onto the suggestion made to her daughter. Since her age made such a claim impossible, the heartless crowd laughed, and the poor old victim joined in the laughter loudly and wholeheartedly. Some believed it wasn’t a laughing matter and suspected they had a Joanna Southcote in front of them, thinking the devil must be the father. The unfortunate Samuels were condemned at Huntingdon, before Mr. Justice Fenner, on April 4, 1593. It was a unique case that deserved to be remembered with an annual lecture, as outlined by Sir Samuel Cromwell, for justice had never been so twisted, nor had her sword been turned to such a blatant act of murder.
We may here mention, though mainly for the sake of contrast, the much-disputed case of Jane Wenham, the Witch of Walkerne, as she was termed, which was of a much later date. Some of the country clergy were carried away by the land-flood of superstition in this instance also and not only encouraged the charge, but gave their countenance to some of the ridiculous and indecent tricks resorted to as proofs of witchcraft by the lowest vulgar. But the good sense of the judge, seconded by that of other reflecting and sensible persons, saved the country from the ultimate disgrace attendant on too many of these unhallowed trials. The usual sort of evidence was brought against this poor woman, by pretences of bewitched persons vomiting fire—a trick very easy to those who chose to exhibit such a piece of jugglery amongst such as rather desire to be taken in by it than to detect the imposture. The witchfinder practised upon her the most vulgar and ridiculous tricks or charms; and out of a perverted examination they drew what they called a confession, though of a forced and mutilated character. Under such proof the jury brought her in guilty, and she was necessarily condemned to die. More fortunate, however, than many persons placed in the like circumstances, Jane Wenham was tried before a sensible and philosophic judge, who could not understand that the life of an Englishwoman, however mean, should be taken away by a set of barbarous tricks and experiments, the efficacy of which depended on popular credulity. He reprieved the witch before he left the assize-town. The rest of the history is equally a contrast to some we have told and others we shall have to recount. A humane and high-spirited gentleman, Colonel Plummer of Gilston, putting at defiance popular calumny, placed the poor old woman in a small house near his own and under his immediate protection. Here she lived and died, in honest and fair reputation, edifying her visitors by her accuracy and attention in repeating her devotions; and, removed from her brutal and malignant neighbours, never afterwards gave the slightest cause of suspicion or offence till her dying day. As this was one of the last cases of conviction in England, Dr Hutchison has been led to dilate upon it with some strength of eloquence as well as argument.
We should mention, mainly for contrast, the highly debated case of Jane Wenham, known as the Witch of Walkerne, which happened much later. Some local clergy were swept up in the wave of superstition in this case as well and not only encouraged the accusation but also supported some of the ridiculous and inappropriate tricks used as proof of witchcraft by the lowest classes. However, the common sense of the judge, along with others who were thoughtful and sensible, spared the country from the ultimate shame associated with too many of these wrongful trials. The usual kind of evidence was brought against this poor woman, claiming that bewitched individuals were spitting fire—a trick that was easy for those who wanted to show off such deception to people who were more interested in believing it than spotting the scam. The witchfinder subjected her to the most absurd and ridiculous tricks or charms; and from a twisted interrogation, they extracted what they called a confession, although it was coerced and distorted. Based on such evidence, the jury found her guilty, and she was sentenced to death. Fortunately, unlike many others in similar situations, Jane Wenham was tried before a sensible and thoughtful judge, who could not grasp why an Englishwoman’s life, no matter how lowly, should be taken based on a series of cruel tricks and experiments that relied on public gullibility. He postponed her execution before he left the assize-town. The rest of the story contrasts sharply with others we have told and those we will recount. A compassionate and spirited gentleman, Colonel Plummer of Gilston, disregarding public slander, took the poor old woman into a small house near his own and under his direct protection. She lived and died there, in good and fair standing, impressing her visitors with her diligence and attention in performing her devotions; and, having been removed from her cruel and spiteful neighbors, she never gave the slightest reason for suspicion or offense until the day she died. Since this was one of the last cases of conviction in England, Dr. Hutchison has been inspired to discuss it with notable eloquence and strong argument.
He thus expostulates with some of the better class who were eager for the prosecution:—“(1) What single fact of sorcery did this Jane Wenham do? What charm did she use, or what act of witchcraft could you prove upon her? Laws are against evil actions that can be proved to be of the person’s doing. What single fact that was against the statute could you fix upon her? I ask (2) Did she so much as speak an imprudent word, or do an immoral action, that you could put into the narrative of her case? When she was denied a few turnips, she laid them down very submissively; when she was called witch and bitch, she only took the proper means for the vindication of her good name; when she saw this storm coming upon her she locked herself in her own house and tried to keep herself out of your cruel hands; when her door was broken open, and you gave way to that barbarous usage that she met with, she protested her innocence, fell upon her knees, and begged she might not go to gaol, and, in her innocent simplicity, would have let you swim her; and at her trial she declared herself a clear woman. This was her behaviour. And what could any of us have done better, excepting in that case where she complied with you too much, and offered to let you swim her?
He argues with some of the upper-class people who were eager to prosecute her:—“(1) What evidence of witchcraft did this Jane Wenham show? What spell did she use, or what act of witchcraft can you prove she committed? Laws target bad actions that can be proven to be someone’s doing. What specific act that breaks the law can you point to? I ask (2) Did she even say an improper word or do something immoral that could be included in her case? When she was denied a few turnips, she accepted it very calmly; when she was called a witch and a bitch, she only took reasonable steps to defend her good name; when she saw the trouble coming her way, she locked herself in her house to protect herself from your cruel actions; when her door was broken down, and you subjected her to that brutal treatment, she claimed her innocence, fell to her knees, and begged not to be sent to jail, and, in her innocent simplicity, would have let you test her by water; and at her trial, she declared herself innocent. This was her behavior. And what could any of us have done better, except for that time when she went along with you a bit too much and offered to let you test her?”
“(3) When you used the meanest of paganish and popish superstitions—when you scratched and mangled and ran pins into her flesh, and used that ridiculous trial of the bottle, &c.—whom did you consult, and from whom did you expect your answers? Who was your father? and into whose hands did you put yourselves? and (if the true sense of the statute had been turned upon you) which way would you have defended yourselves? (4) Durst you have used her in this manner if she had been rich? and doth not her poverty increase rather than lessen your guilt in what you did?
“(3) When you resorted to the most pitiful pagan and Catholic superstitions—when you scratched, tortured, and stuck pins into her skin, and used that silly bottle test, etc.—who did you consult, and who did you expect your answers from? Who was your father? And into whose hands did you place yourselves? And (if the true meaning of the law had been applied to you) how would you have defended yourselves? (4) Would you have treated her this way if she had been wealthy? And doesn’t her poverty make your guilt in what you did even greater?”
“And therefore, instead of closing your book with a liberavimus animas nostras, and reflecting upon the court, I ask you (5) Whether you have not more reason to give God thanks that you met with a wise judge, and a sensible gentleman, who kept you from shedding innocent blood, and reviving the meanest and cruelest of all superstitions amongst us?"55
“And so, instead of finishing your book with a liberavimus animas nostras and thinking about the court, I ask you (5) whether you don’t have even more reason to thank God that you encountered a wise judge and a sensible gentleman who prevented you from spilling innocent blood and bringing back the lowest and cruelest of all superstitions among us?"55
55 (return)
[ Hutchison’s “Essay on
Witchcraft,” p. 166.]
55 (return)
[ Hutchison’s “Essay on Witchcraft,” p. 166.]
But although individuals of the English Church might on some occasions be justly accused of falling into lamentable errors on a subject where error was so general, it was not an usual point of their professional character; and it must be admitted that the most severe of the laws against witchcraft originated with a Scottish King of England, and that the only extensive persecution following that statute occurred during the time of the Civil Wars, when the Calvinists obtained for a short period a predominating influence in the councils of Parliament.
But while members of the English Church could sometimes be fairly criticized for making regrettable mistakes on a topic where mistakes were so common, this wasn’t typical of their professional conduct. It’s also true that the harshest laws against witchcraft came from a Scottish King of England, and the only major persecution that followed that law happened during the Civil Wars, when the Calvinists briefly held significant power in Parliament.
James succeeded to Elizabeth amidst the highest expectations on the part of his new people, who, besides their general satisfaction at coming once more under the rule of a king, were also proud of his supposed abilities and real knowledge of books and languages, and were naturally, though imprudently, disposed to gratify him by deferring to his judgment in matters wherein his studies were supposed to have rendered him a special proficient. Unfortunately, besides the more harmless freak of becoming a prentice in the art of poetry, by which words and numbers were the only sufferers, the monarch had composed a deep work upon Demonology, embracing in their fullest extent the most absurd and gross of the popular errors on this subject. He considered his crown and life as habitually aimed at by the sworn slaves of Satan. Several had been executed for an attempt to poison him by magical arts; and the turbulent Francis Stewart, Earl of Bothwell, whose repeated attempts on his person had long been James’s terror, had begun his course of rebellion by a consultation with the weird sisters and soothsayers. Thus the king, who had proved with his pen the supposed sorcerers to be the direct enemies of the Deity, and who conceived he knew them from experience to be his own—who, moreover, had upon much lighter occasions (as in the case of Vorstius) showed no hesitation at throwing his royal authority into the scale to aid his arguments—very naturally used his influence, when it was at the highest, to extend and enforce the laws against a crime which he both hated and feared.
James took over from Elizabeth with great expectations from his new subjects, who, aside from being generally pleased to be ruled by a king again, were also proud of his supposed abilities and real knowledge of books and languages. They were naturally, though recklessly, inclined to indulge him by deferring to his judgment in areas where his studies were thought to have made him especially knowledgeable. Unfortunately, besides dabbling in poetry—which affected only words and numbers—he also wrote an extensive work on Demonology that included the most absurd and extreme popular beliefs on the topic. He believed that his crown and life were constantly targeted by sworn followers of Satan. Several people had been executed for attempting to poison him using magical methods, and the rebellious Francis Stewart, Earl of Bothwell, who had long terrified James with his repeated assassination attempts, began his path to rebellion by consulting with witches and fortune-tellers. Thus, the king, who had declared through his writings that supposed sorcerers were direct enemies of God, and who believed from personal experience that they were indeed his enemies, had previously shown no hesitation in leveraging his royal authority to support his arguments on much less serious occasions (as with Vorstius). Therefore, it was only natural that he used his influence, at its peak, to expand and enforce the laws against a crime he both hated and feared.
The English statute against witchcraft, passed in the very first year of that reign, is therefore of a most special nature, describing witchcraft by all the various modes and ceremonies in which, according to King James’s fancy, that crime could be perpetrated; each of which was declared felony, without benefit of clergy.
The English law against witchcraft, enacted in the very first year of that reign, is particularly notable, detailing witchcraft through all the different methods and rituals in which, according to King James’s imagination, that offense could be committed; each of which was classified as a felony, with no option for clergy intervention.
This gave much wider scope to prosecution on the statute than had existed under the milder acts of Elizabeth. Men might now be punished for the practice of witchcraft, as itself a crime, without necessary reference to the ulterior objects of the perpetrator. It is remarkable that in the same year, when the legislature rather adopted the passions and fears of the king than expressed their own by this fatal enactment, the Convocation of the Church evinced a very different spirit; for, seeing the ridicule brought on their sacred profession by forward and presumptuous men, in the attempt to relieve demoniacs from a disease which was commonly occasioned by natural causes, if not the mere creature of imposture, they passed a canon, establishing that no minister or ministers should in future attempt to expel any devil or devils, without the license of his bishop; thereby virtually putting a stop to a fertile source of knavery among the people, and disgraceful folly among the inferior churchmen.
This expanded the prosecution's ability under the law much more than the gentler laws of Elizabeth did. Now, people could be punished for practicing witchcraft as a crime on its own, without having to consider the motives behind it. Interestingly, in the same year that the legislature chose to act on the king's fears and emotions with this harmful law, the Church's Convocation showed a completely different attitude. They recognized the ridicule that arrogant individuals brought upon their sacred profession by trying to cure those possessed by what were often naturally occurring ailments or outright frauds. In response, they passed a canon stating that no minister should attempt to cast out any demons without their bishop's permission, effectively putting an end to a major source of trickery among the public and embarrassing foolishness among the lower clergy.
The new statute of James does not, however, appear to have led at first to many prosecutions. One of the most remarkable was (proh pudor!) instigated by a gentleman, a scholar of classical taste, and a beautiful poet, being no other than Edward Fairfax of Fayston, in Knaresborough Forest, the translator of Tasso’s “Jerusalem Delivered.” In allusion to his credulity on such subjects, Collins has introduced the following elegant lines:—
The new law from James didn’t seem to result in many prosecutions at first. One of the most notable cases was (proh pudor!) initiated by a gentleman who was a scholar with classical tastes and a talented poet—none other than Edward Fairfax of Fayston, in Knaresborough Forest, the translator of Tasso’s “Jerusalem Delivered.” Referring to his naivety on these matters, Collins included the following elegant lines:—
“How have I sate while piped the pensive wind, To hear thy harp, by British Fairfax strung; Prevailing poet, whose undoubting mind Believed the magic wonders which he sung!”
“How have I sat while the thoughtful wind played, To hear your harp, strung by British Fairfax; Dominant poet, whose confident mind Believed in the magical wonders he sang!”
Like Mr. Throgmorton in the Warbois case, Mr. Fairfax accused six of his neighbours of tormenting his children by fits of an extraordinary kind, by imps, and by appearing before the afflicted in their own shape during the crisis of these operations. The admitting this last circumstance to be a legitimate mode of proof, gave a most cruel advantage against the accused, for it could not, according to the ideas of the demonologists, be confuted even by the most distinct alibi. To a defence of that sort it was replied that the afflicted person did not see the actual witch, whose corporeal presence must indeed have been obvious to every one in the room as well as to the afflicted, but that the evidence of the sufferers related to the appearance of their spectre, or apparition; and this was accounted a sure sign of guilt in those whose forms were so manifested during the fits of the afflicted, and who were complained of and cried out upon by the victim. The obvious tendency of this doctrine, as to visionary or spectral evidence, as it was called, was to place the life and fame of the accused in the power of any hypochondriac patient or malignant impostor, who might either seem to see, or aver she saw, the spectrum of the accused old man or old woman, as if enjoying and urging on the afflictions which she complained of; and, strange to tell, the fatal sentence was to rest, not upon the truth of the witnesses’ eyes, but that of their imagination. It happened fortunately for Fairfax’s memory, that the objects of his prosecution were persons of good character, and that the judge was a man of sense, and made so wise and skilful a charge to the jury, that they brought in a verdict of not guilty.
Like Mr. Throgmorton in the Warbois case, Mr. Fairfax accused six of his neighbors of tormenting his children with unusual fits, by means of evil spirits, and by appearing before the victims in their true forms during these episodes. Accepting this last point as valid evidence gave a cruel advantage to the accuser, because, according to the beliefs of demonologists, it couldn’t be disproven even with the clearest alibi. In response to such a defense, it was argued that the afflicted person did not actually see the witch, whose physical presence would have been obvious to everyone in the room, including the victim, but that the testimonies from the sufferers were about the appearance of their specter or apparition. This was seen as a clear sign of guilt for those whose forms were witnessed during the victims' fits and who were called out by the victim. The clear implication of this doctrine, known as visionary or spectral evidence, was to put the lives and reputations of the accused at the mercy of any anxious individual or deceptive fraud who might claim to see the accused's spirit, as if relishing the afflictions that were reported. Strangely enough, the final verdict relied not on the truthfulness of the witnesses' perceptions, but rather on the workings of their imagination. Fortunately for Fairfax’s reputation, the individuals he prosecuted were of good character, and the judge was sensible, giving a wise and skillful instruction to the jury, which led them to a verdict of not guilty.
The celebrated case of “the Lancashire witches” (whose name was and will be long remembered, partly from Shadwell’s play, but more from the ingenious and well-merited compliment to the beauty of the females of that province which it was held to contain), followed soon after. Whether the first notice of this sorcery sprung from the idle head of a mischievous boy, is uncertain; but there is no doubt that it was speedily caught up and fostered for the purpose of gain. The original story ran thus:—
The famous case of “the Lancashire witches” (a name that will be remembered for a long time, partly because of Shadwell’s play, but more so due to the clever and well-deserved praise of the beauty of the women from that region it was thought to include), came soon after. It's unclear whether the first mention of this witchcraft came from the playful imagination of a mischievous boy, but it’s clear that it was quickly embraced and exploited for profit. The original story went like this:—
These Lancaster trials were at two periods, the one in 1613, before Sir James Altham and Sir Edward Bromley, Barons of Exchequer, when nineteen witches were tried at once at Lancaster, and another of the name of Preston at York. The report against these people is drawn up by Thomas Potts. An obliging correspondent sent me a sight of a copy of this curious and rare book. The chief personage in the drama is Elizabeth Southam, a witch redoubted under the name of Dembdike, an account of whom may be seen in Mr. Roby’s “Antiquities of Lancaster,” as well as a description of Maulkins’ Tower, the witches’ place of meeting. It appears that this remote county was full of Popish recusants, travelling priests, and so forth; and some of their spells are given in which the holy names and things alluded to form a strange contrast with the purpose to which they were applied, as to secure a good brewing of ale or the like. The public imputed to the accused parties a long train of murders, conspiracies, charms, mischances, hellish and damnable practices, “apparent,” says the editor, “on their own examinations and confessions,” and, to speak the truth, visible nowhere else. Mother Dembdike had the good luck to die before conviction. Among other tales, we have one of two female devils, called Fancy and Tib. It is remarkable that some of the unfortunate women endeavoured to transfer the guilt from themselves to others with whom they had old quarrels, which confessions were held good evidence against those who made them, and against the alleged accomplice also. Several of the unhappy women were found not guilty, to the great displeasure of the ignorant people of the county. Such was the first edition of the Lancashire witches. In that which follows the accusation can be more clearly traced to the most villanous conspiracy.
These Lancaster trials took place during two periods: one in 1613, before Sir James Altham and Sir Edward Bromley, Barons of Exchequer, where nineteen witches were tried at once in Lancaster, and another in the town of Preston at York. The report against these individuals was put together by Thomas Potts. A helpful correspondent shared a copy of this curious and rare book with me. The main figure in this story is Elizabeth Southam, a witch known as Dembdike, whose account can be found in Mr. Roby’s “Antiquities of Lancaster,” along with a description of Maulkins’ Tower, the witches’ meeting place. It seems that this remote county was filled with Catholic recusants, traveling priests, and so on; some of their spells are included, showcasing a strange contrast between the holy names and references used and their actual purpose, like ensuring a good brew of ale. The general public accused the individuals of a long list of murders, conspiracies, charms, misfortunes, and other evil practices, which the editor notes were “apparent” from their own examinations and confessions, but, to be honest, were visible nowhere else. Mother Dembdike was lucky enough to die before her trial. Among other stories, there’s one about two female demons named Fancy and Tib. It’s notable that some of the unfortunate women attempted to shift blame onto others with whom they had past disputes, and their confessions were accepted as valid evidence against themselves and the alleged accomplice. Several of these unfortunate women were found not guilty, which greatly angered the ignorant people of the county. This was the first account of the Lancashire witches. In the following account, the accusations can be more clearly traced back to a despicable conspiracy.
About 1634 a boy called Edmund Robinson, whose father, a very poor man, dwelt in Pendle Forest, the scene of the alleged witching, declared that while gathering bullees (wild plums, perhaps) in one of the glades of the forest, he saw two greyhounds, which he imagined to belong to gentlemen in that neighbourhood. The boy reported that, seeing nobody following them, he proposed to have a course; but though a hare was started, the dogs refused to run. On this, young Robinson was about to punish them with a switch, when one Dame Dickenson, a neighbour’s wife, started up instead of the one greyhound; a little boy instead of the other. The witness averred that Mother Dickenson offered him money to conceal what he had seen, which he refused, saying “Nay, thou art a witch.” Apparently she was determined he should have full evidence of the truth of what he said, for, like the Magician Queen in the Arabian Tales, she pulled out of her pocket a bridle and shook it over the head of the boy who had so lately represented the other greyhound. He was directly changed into a horse; Mother Dickenson mounted, and took Robinson before her. They then rode to a large house or barn called Hourstoun, into which Edmund Robinson entered with others. He there saw six or seven persons pulling at halters, from which, as they pulled them, meat ready dressed came flying in quantities, together with lumps of butter, porringers of milk, and whatever else might, in the boy’s fancy, complete a rustic feast. He declared that while engaged in the charm they made such ugly faces and looked so fiendish that he was frightened. There was more to the same purpose—as the boy’s having seen one of these hags sitting half-way up his father’s chimney, and some such goodly matter. But it ended in near a score of persons being committed to prison; and the consequence was that young Robinson was carried from church to church in the neighbourhood, that he might recognise the faces of any persons he had seen at the rendezvous of witches. Old Robinson, who had been an evidence against the former witches in 1613, went along with his son, and knew, doubtless, how to make his journey profitable; and his son probably took care to recognise none who might make a handsome consideration. “This boy,” says Webster, “was brought into the church at Kildwick, a parish church, where I, being then curate there, was preaching at the time, to look about him, which made some little disturbance for the time.” After prayers Mr. Webster sought and found the boy, and two very unlikely persons, who, says he, “did conduct him and manage the business: I did desire some discourse with the boy in private, but that they utterly denied. In the presence of a great many many people I took the boy near me and said, ‘Good boy, tell me truly and in earnest, didst thou hear and see such strange things of the motions of the witches as many do report that thou didst relate, or did not some person teach thee to say such things of thyself?’ But the two men did pluck the boy from me, and said he had been examined by two able justices of peace, and they never asked him such a question. To whom I replied, ‘The persons accused had the more wrong.’” The boy afterwards acknowledged, in his more advanced years, that he was instructed and suborned to swear these things against the accused persons by his father and others, and was heard often to confess that on the day which he pretended to see the said witches at the house or barn, he was gathering plums in a neighbour’s orchard.56
Around 1634, a boy named Edmund Robinson, whose father was very poor and lived in Pendle Forest, the place where the supposed witchcraft occurred, claimed that while he was picking bullees (wild plums, maybe) in one of the forest's clearings, he saw two greyhounds that he thought belonged to local gentlemen. The boy said that since he saw no one following them, he suggested having a race; however, even when a hare was flushed out, the dogs wouldn’t chase it. Just then, young Robinson was about to punish them with a stick when a neighbor’s wife, Dame Dickenson, appeared instead of one greyhound, and a little boy took the place of the other dog. The boy insisted that Mother Dickenson tried to bribe him to keep quiet about what he saw, but he refused, saying, “No, you’re a witch.” Seemingly determined to prove his claims true, like the Magician Queen from the Arabian Tales, she pulled a bridle out of her pocket and shook it over the head of the boy who had recently impersonated the other greyhound. He was instantly transformed into a horse; Mother Dickenson mounted him and took Robinson along with her. They then rode to a large house or barn called Hourstoun, where Edmund Robinson went inside with others. There, he saw six or seven people pulling on halters, and as they did, food started flying in large quantities, including cooked meat, chunks of butter, bowls of milk, and whatever else could complete a rustic feast in the boy’s imagination. He claimed that while they participated in this bizarre scene, they made such grotesque faces and looked so demonic that it terrified him. There were more similar stories, like the boy seeing one of these witches sitting halfway up his father’s chimney, and other striking matters. Ultimately, nearly twenty people were arrested, leading to Edmund being taken from church to church nearby to identify anyone he recognized from the witches' meeting. Old Robinson, who had acted as a witness against previous witches in 1613, accompanied his son, likely knowing how to benefit from the situation; his son probably made sure not to identify anyone who could offer a good payout. “This boy,” says Webster, “was brought into the church at Kildwick, a parish church, where I was the curate preaching at the time, causing a bit of a commotion.” After the prayers, Mr. Webster found the boy, along with two very suspicious individuals who, as he mentioned, "managed the situation." I wanted to speak with the boy privately, but they completely denied my request. In front of a large crowd, I took the boy close and asked, “Good boy, tell me truly, did you truly hear and see such strange things regarding the witches as many say you did, or did someone teach you to say such things about yourself?” However, the two men pulled the boy away from me, claiming he had already been questioned by two competent justices of the peace, who never asked him such a question. To them, I replied, “The accused had more cause for complaint.” Later, when he was older, the boy admitted that he had been coached and bribed by his father and others to testify against those accused and often confessed that on the day he claimed to have seen the witches at the house or barn, he had actually been picking plums in a neighbor’s orchard.56
56 (return)
[ Webster on Witchcraft,
edition 1677, p. 278.]
56 (return)
[ Webster on Witchcraft, edition 1677, p. 278.]
There was now approaching a time when the law against witchcraft, sufficiently bloody in itself, was to be pushed to more violent extremities than the quiet scepticism of the Church of England clergy gave way to. The great Civil War had been preceded and anticipated by the fierce disputes of the ecclesiastical parties. The rash and ill-judged attempt to enforce upon the Scottish a compliance with the government and ceremonies of the High Church divines, and the severe prosecutions in the Star Chamber and Prerogative Courts, had given the Presbyterian system for a season a great degree of popularity in England; and as the King’s party declined during the Civil War, and the state of church-government was altered, the influence of the Calvinistic divines increased. With much strict morality and pure practice of religion, it is to be regretted these were still marked by unhesitating belief in the existence of sorcery, and a keen desire to extend and enforce the legal penalties against it. Wier has considered the clergy of every sect as being too eager in this species of persecution: Ad gravem hanc impietatem, connivent theologi plerique omnes. But it is not to be denied that the Presbyterian ecclesiastics who, in Scotland, were often appointed by the Privy Council Commissioners for the trial of witchcraft, evinced a very extraordinary degree of credulity in such cases, and that the temporary superiority of the same sect in England was marked by enormous cruelties of this kind. To this general error we must impute the misfortune that good men, such as Calamy and Baxter, should have countenanced or defended such proceedings as those of the impudent and cruel wretch called Matthew Hopkins, who, in those unsettled times, when men did what seemed good in their own eyes, assumed the title of Witchfinder General, and, travelling through the counties of Essex, Sussex, Norfolk, and Huntingdon, pretended to discover witches, superintending their examination by the most unheard-of tortures, and compelling forlorn and miserable wretches to admit and confess matters equally absurd and impossible; the issue of which was the forfeiture of their lives. Before examining these cases more minutely, I will quote Baxter’s own words; for no one can have less desire to wrong a devout and conscientious man, such as that divine most unquestionably was, though borne aside on this occasion by prejudice and credulity.
There was a time coming when the law against witchcraft, already quite violent, would be taken to even more extreme measures than the cautious skepticism of the Church of England clergy allowed. The intense debates among religious factions had preceded and foreshadowed the great Civil War. The reckless and poorly judged attempt to force the Scots to accept the government and practices of the High Church leaders, along with the harsh prosecutions in the Star Chamber and Prerogative Courts, had temporarily increased the popularity of the Presbyterian system in England. As the King's supporters weakened during the Civil War and the structure of church governance changed, the influence of Calvinist ministers grew. While they upheld strict morality and pure religious practices, it is unfortunate that they were also marked by an unwavering belief in sorcery and a strong desire to expand and enforce legal penalties against it. Wier noted that clergy from every denomination were too eager in this kind of persecution: Ad gravem hanc impietatem, connivent theologi plerique omnes. However, it cannot be denied that the Presbyterian ministers in Scotland, who were often appointed by the Privy Council Commissioners to try witchcraft cases, displayed an extraordinary level of credulity. The temporary dominance of this sect in England was characterized by horrific cruelties. We must attribute to this widespread error the unfortunate fact that good men, like Calamy and Baxter, supported or defended the actions of the shameless and cruel Matthew Hopkins, who, in those turbulent times when people acted according to their own whims, took on the title of Witchfinder General. He traveled through the counties of Essex, Sussex, Norfolk, and Huntingdon, claiming to identify witches, overseeing their interrogation by unimaginable tortures, and forcing desperate and suffering individuals to confess to things that were equally absurd and impossible, resulting in the loss of their lives. Before diving deeper into these cases, I will quote Baxter’s own words, as no one would want to misrepresent a devout and conscientious man, which he undoubtedly was, even though he was swayed on this occasion by bias and credulity.
“The hanging of a great number of witches in 1645 and 1646 is famously known. Mr. Calamy went along with the judges on the circuit to hear their confessions, and see there was no fraud or wrong done them. I spoke with many understanding, pious, learned, and credible persons that lived in the counties, and some that went to them in the prisons, and heard their sad confessions. Among the rest an old reading parson, named Lowis, not far from Framlingham, was one that was hanged, who confessed that he had two imps, and that one of them was always putting him upon doing mischief; and he, being near the sea, as he saw a ship under sail, it moved him to send it to sink the ship; and he consented, and saw the ship sink before them.” Mr. Baxter passes on to another story of a mother who gave her child an imp like a mole, and told her to keep it in a can near the fire, and she would never want; and more such stuff as nursery-maids tell froward children to keep them quiet.
The hanging of many witches in 1645 and 1646 is widely known. Mr. Calamy accompanied the judges on their circuit to listen to the witches' confessions and ensure that no fraud or wrongdoing had been committed against them. I spoke with many knowledgeable, faithful, educated, and trustworthy people from the counties, as well as some who visited them in prison and heard their tragic confessions. One of those was an old minister named Lowis, not far from Framlingham, who was hanged. He confessed that he had two familiar spirits and that one of them often encouraged him to cause trouble. Living close to the sea, he would see a ship sailing and felt compelled to make it sink; he agreed to it and watched the ship go down before them. Mr. Baxter then shares another story about a mother who gave her child a familiar spirit that looked like a mole and told her to keep it in a can by the fire, claiming that it would ensure they would never go without; and more stories like those nursery maids tell unruly children to keep them calm.
It is remarkable that in this passage Baxter names the Witchfinder General rather slightly as “one Hopkins,” and without doing him the justice due to one who had discovered more than one hundred witches, and brought them to confessions, which that good man received as indubitable. Perhaps the learned divine was one of those who believed that the Witchfinder General had cheated the devil out of a certain memorandum-book, in which Satan, for the benefit of his memory certainly, had entered all the witches’ names in England, and that Hopkins availed himself of this record.57
It's interesting that in this passage, Baxter refers to the Witchfinder General just as “one Hopkins,” without giving him the credit he deserves for discovering over one hundred witches and getting them to confess, which that good man accepted as undeniable. It's possible that the learned divine was one of those who thought that the Witchfinder General had tricked the devil out of a certain notebook, where Satan had presumably written down all the witches' names in England for his own memory, and that Hopkins used this record.
57 (return)
[ This reproach is noticed
in a very rare tract, which was bought at Mr. Lort’s sale, by the
celebrated collector Mr. Bindley, and is now in the author’s possession.
Its full title is, “The Discovery of Witches, in Answer to several Queries
lately delivered to the Judge of Assize for the County of Norfolk; and now
published by Matthew Hopkins, Witchfinder, for the Benefit of the whole
Kingdom. Printed for R. Royston, at the Angel, in Inn Lane. 1647.”]
57 (return)
[ This criticism is mentioned in a very rare pamphlet, which was purchased at Mr. Lort’s auction by the famous collector Mr. Bindley, and is now in the author’s possession. Its full title is, “The Discovery of Witches, in Response to several Questions recently presented to the Judge of Assize for the County of Norfolk; and now published by Matthew Hopkins, Witchfinder, for the Benefit of the entire Kingdom. Printed for R. Royston, at the Angel, in Inn Lane. 1647.”]
It may be noticed that times of misrule and violence seem to create individuals fitted to take advantage from them, and having a character suited to the seasons which raise them into notice and action; just as a blight on any tree or vegetable calls to life a peculiar insect to feed upon and enjoy the decay which it has produced. A monster like Hopkins could only have existed during the confusion of civil dissension. He was perhaps a native of Manningtree, in Essex; at any rate, he resided there in the year 1644, when an epidemic outcry of witchcraft arose in that town. Upon this occasion he had made himself busy, and, affecting more zeal and knowledge than other men, learned his trade of a witchfinder, as he pretends, from experiment. He was afterwards permitted to perform it as a legal profession, and moved from one place to another, with an assistant named Sterne, and a female. In his defence against an accusation of fleecing the country, he declares his regular charge was twenty shillings a town, including charges of living and journeying thither and back again with his assistants. He also affirms that he went nowhere unless called and invited. His principal mode of discovery was to strip the accused persons naked, and thrust pins into various parts of their body, to discover the witch’s mark, which was supposed to be inflicted by the devil as a sign of his sovereignty, and at which she was also said to suckle her imps. He also practised and stoutly defended the trial by swimming, when the suspected person was wrapped in a sheet, having the great toes and thumbs tied together, and so dragged through a pond or river. If she sank, it was received in favour of the accused; but if the body floated (which must have occurred ten times for once, if it was placed with care on the surface of the water), the accused was condemned, on the principle of King James, who, in treating of this mode of trial, lays down that, as witches have renounced their baptism, so it is just that the element through which the holy rite is enforced should reject them, which is a figure of speech, and no argument. It was Hopkins’s custom to keep the poor wretches waking, in order to prevent them from having encouragement from the devil, and, doubtless, to put infirm, terrified, overwatched persons in the next state to absolute madness; and for the same purpose they were dragged about by their keepers till extreme weariness and the pain of blistered feet might form additional inducements to confession. Hopkins confesses these last practices of keeping the accused persons waking, and forcing them to walk for the same purpose, had been originally used by him. But as his tract is a professed answer to charges of cruelty and oppression, he affirms that both practices were then disused, and that they had not of late been resorted to.
It can be seen that times of chaos and violence tend to produce people who are ready to take advantage of the situation, possessing a character that fits the circumstances that bring them to attention and action; similar to how a blight on a tree or plant attracts a specific insect that thrives on the decay. Someone like Hopkins could only have thrived during a time of civil unrest. He was likely from Manningtree in Essex; at least, he lived there in 1644, when a widespread panic over witchcraft broke out in that town. During this time, he became actively involved, asserting he had more passion and insight than others, and learned his trade as a witchfinder through experience. He was later allowed to practice it as a legal profession, traveling from place to place with an assistant named Sterne and a woman. In defense of accusations that he was exploiting the community, he stated that his usual fee was twenty shillings per town, which covered his living expenses and travel to and from the locations with his helpers. He also claimed he only went where he was called and invited. His main method of identifying witches was to strip the accused naked and insert pins into various parts of their bodies to find the witch's mark, thought to be a sign from the devil of his control, and where she supposedly fed her demons. He also practiced and strongly defended the swimming test, where the suspected person would be wrapped in a sheet with their big toes and thumbs tied together, then dragged through a pond or river. If they sank, it was considered favorable for the accused; but if they floated (which would likely happen frequently if placed carefully on the water's surface), the accused was condemned, based on King James’s view that since witches had renounced their baptism, it was fair for the water, which symbolizes the holy rite, to reject them. This reasoning is a figure of speech, not a valid argument. Hopkins would often keep the unfortunate accused awake to prevent them from receiving support from the devil, which surely drove frightened and exhausted individuals towards madness; and to achieve the same effect, they were dragged around by their keepers until extreme fatigue and the pain of blistered feet encouraged them to confess. Hopkins admitted that these methods of keeping accused individuals awake and forcing them to walk originated with him. However, as his writing was meant to address accusations of cruelty and oppression, he claimed that these practices were no longer used and had not been employed recently.
The boast of the English nation is a manly independence and common-sense, which will not long permit the license of tyranny or oppression on the meanest and most obscure sufferers. Many clergymen and gentlemen made head against the practices of this cruel oppressor of the defenceless, and it required courage to do so when such an unscrupulous villain had so much interest.
The pride of the English nation is a strong sense of independence and practicality, which won't allow the freedom of tyranny or oppression against even the most downtrodden and unnoticed victims for long. Many clergy and gentlemen stood up against the actions of this brutal oppressor of the defenseless, and it took courage to do so when such a ruthless villain had so much power.
Mr. Gaul, a clergyman, of Houghton, in Huntingdonshire, had the courage to appear in print on the weaker side; and Hopkins, in consequence, assumed the assurance to write to some functionaries of the place the following letter, which is an admirable medley of impudence, bullying, and cowardice:—
Mr. Gaul, a clergyman from Houghton in Huntingdonshire, had the courage to openly support the weaker side; as a result, Hopkins felt bold enough to write a letter to some local officials, which is a perfect mix of arrogance, intimidation, and cowardice:—
“My service to your worship presented.—I have this day received a letter to come to a town called Great Houghton to search for evil-disposed persons called witches (though I hear your minister is far against us, through ignorance). I intend to come, God willing, the sooner to hear his singular judgment in the behalf of such parties. I have known a minister in Suffolk as much against this discovery in a pulpit, and forced to recant it by the Committee58 in the same place. I much marvel such evil men should have any (much more any of the clergy, who should daily speak terror to convince such offenders) stand up to take their parts against such as are complainants for the king, and sufferers themselves, with their families and estates. I intend to give your town a visit suddenly. I will come to Kimbolton this week, and it will be ten to one but I will come to your town first; but I would certainly know before whether your town affords many sticklers for such cattle, or is willing to give and allow us good welcome and entertainment, as others where I have been, else I shall waive your shire (not as yet beginning in any part of it myself), and betake me to such places where I do and may punish (not only) without control, but with thanks and recompense. So I humbly take my leave, and rest your servant to be commanded,
“My service to you. I received a letter today asking me to come to a town called Great Houghton to look for people who are said to be witches (though I hear your minister is strongly opposed to us, probably out of ignorance). I plan to come soon, God willing, to hear his unique opinion on these matters. I’ve known a minister in Suffolk who was just as against this investigation in the pulpit, but was forced to take it back by the Committee58 in that same place. I find it surprising that such wicked people should have anyone, especially members of the clergy who should regularly speak out against such wrongdoers, support them against those who are appealing to the king and suffering alongside their families and properties. I plan to visit your town very soon. I will be in Kimbolton this week, and it’s likely that I’ll come to your town first; however, I would like to know beforehand if your town has many supporters for such people or if you are willing to offer us a good welcome and hospitality, like other places I’ve been to. If not, I may choose to avoid your county (not that I’ve started anything there yet) and go to places where I can punish those wrongdoings freely, and even receive gratitude and compensation for it. So I humbly take my leave and remain your servant to command,"
“MATTHEW HOPKINS.”
58 (return)
[ Of Parliament.]
58 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[Of Parliament.]
The sensible and courageous Mr. Gaul describes the tortures employed by this fellow as equal to any practised in the Inquisition. “Having taken the suspected witch, she is placed in the middle of a room, upon a stool or table, cross-legged, or in some other uneasy posture, to which, if she submits not, she is then bound with cords; there she is watched and kept without meat or sleep for four-and-twenty hours, for, they say, they shall within that time see her imp come and suck. A little hole is likewise made in the door for the imps to come in at; and lest they should come in some less discernible shape, they that watch are taught to be ever and anon sweeping the room, and if they see any spiders or flies, to kill them; and if they cannot kill them, they may be sure they are their imps.”
The sensible and brave Mr. Gaul describes the torments used by this man as comparable to those practiced during the Inquisition. “Once a suspected witch is captured, she is positioned in the center of a room, sitting cross-legged on a stool or table, or in some other uncomfortable position; if she refuses to comply, she is then tied up with ropes. From there, she is monitored and deprived of food or sleep for twenty-four hours because, they claim, they will see her imp come to suckle within that time. A small hole is also made in the door for the imps to enter; and to prevent them from appearing in some less recognizable form, the watchers are instructed to constantly sweep the room, and if they spot any spiders or flies, they must kill them; and if they can’t kill them, they can be sure these are their imps.”
If torture of this kind was applied to the Reverend Mr. Lewis, whose death is too slightly announced by Mr. Baxter, we can conceive him, or any man, to have indeed become so weary of his life as to acknowledge that, by means of his imps, he sunk a vessel, without any purpose of gratification to be procured to himself by such iniquity. But in another cause a judge would have demanded some proof of the corpus delecti, some evidence of a vessel being lost at the period, whence coming and whither bound; in short, something to establish that the whole story was not the idle imagination of a man who might have been entirely deranged, and certainly was so at the time he made the admission. John Lewis was presented to the vicarage of Brandiston, near Framlington, in Suffolk, 6th May, 1596, where he lived about fifty years, till executed as a wizard on such evidence as we have seen. Notwithstanding the story of his alleged confession, he defended himself courageously at his trial, and was probably condemned rather as a royalist and malignant than for any other cause. He showed at the execution considerable energy, and to secure that the funeral service of the church should be said over his body, he read it aloud for himself while on the road to the gibbet.
If this kind of torture was applied to Reverend Mr. Lewis, whose death is barely mentioned by Mr. Baxter, we can imagine him, or any person, becoming so exhausted by life that they would admit, through the help of his demons, that he destroyed a ship without any desire for personal gain from such wickedness. However, in a different situation, a judge would have requested some proof of the corpus delecti, some evidence that a ship was lost at the time, where it was coming from, and where it was headed; in short, something to prove that the entire story wasn't just the fanciful thinking of a man who might have been completely unhinged, and definitely was at the moment he made that confession. John Lewis was appointed to the vicarage of Brandiston, near Framlington, in Suffolk, on May 6, 1596, where he lived for about fifty years until he was executed as a wizard based on the evidence we've reviewed. Despite the claims about his confession, he defended himself bravely at his trial and was likely condemned more for being a royalist and outsider than for any other reason. He displayed considerable strength at the execution, and to ensure that the funeral service of the church would be held over his body, he read it aloud for himself on the way to the gallows.
We have seen that in 1647 Hopkins’s tone became lowered, and he began to disavow some of the cruelties he had formerly practised. About the same time a miserable old woman had fallen into the cruel hands of this miscreant near Hoxne, a village in Suffolk, and had confessed all the usual enormities, after being without food or rest a sufficient time. “Her imp,” she said, “was called Nan.” A gentleman in the neighbourhood, whose widow survived to authenticate the story, was so indignant that he went to the house, took the woman out of such inhuman hands, dismissed the witchfinders, and after due food and rest the poor old woman could recollect nothing of the confession, but that she gave a favourite pullet the name of Nan. For this Dr. Hutchison may be referred to, who quotes a letter from the relict of the humane gentleman.
We’ve seen that in 1647, Hopkins’s tone changed, and he started to reject some of the cruelties he had practiced before. Around the same time, a poor old woman fell into the brutal clutches of this villain near Hoxne, a village in Suffolk, and after being without food or rest for a long enough period, she confessed to all the usual horrors. “Her imp,” she said, “was named Nan.” A local gentleman, whose widow lived on to confirm the story, was so furious that he went to the house, rescued the woman from such inhuman treatment, sent away the witch hunters, and after getting proper food and rest, the poor old woman couldn’t remember anything from her confession, except that she had named a favorite hen Nan. For this, Dr. Hutchison can be referred to, who quotes a letter from the widow of the kind gentleman.
In the year 1645 a Commission of Parliament was sent down, comprehending two clergymen in esteem with the leading party, one of whom, Mr. Fairclough of Kellar, preached before the rest on the subject of witchcraft; and after this appearance of enquiry the inquisitions and executions went on as before. But the popular indignation was so strongly excited against Hopkins, that some gentlemen seized on him, and put him to his own favourite experiment of swimming, on which, as he happened to float, he stood convicted of witchcraft, and so the country was rid of him. Whether he was drowned outright or not does not exactly appear, but he has had the honour to be commemorated by the author of Hudibras:—
In 1645, a Parliamentary Commission was sent out, including two respected clergymen close to the ruling party. One of them, Mr. Fairclough of Kellar, gave a sermon on witchcraft to the others. Despite this inquiry, the investigations and executions continued as usual. However, public outrage against Hopkins grew so intense that some gentlemen captured him and subjected him to his preferred method of trial by water. As he floated, he was declared guilty of witchcraft, and this got rid of him for good. It's unclear if he drowned or not, but he has been honored by the author of Hudibras:—
“Hath not this present Parliament A leiger to the devil sent, Fully empower’d to treat about Finding revolted witches out? And has he not within a year Hang’d threescore of them in one shire? Some only for not being drown’d, And some for sitting above ground Whole days and nights upon their breeches, And feeling pain, were hang’d for witches. And some for putting knavish tricks Upon green geese or turkey chicks; Or pigs that suddenly deceased Of griefs unnatural, as he guess’d, Who proved himself at length a witch, And made a rod for his own breech.” 59
“Hasn’t this current Parliament Sent a representative to the devil, Fully authorized to negotiate Finding rebellious witches? And hasn’t he, within a year, Hanged sixty of them in one county? Some just for not being drowned, And some for sitting above ground Whole days and nights on their behinds, And feeling pain, were hanged as witches. And some for playing tricks On green geese or turkey chicks; Or pigs that suddenly died From unnatural causes, as he guessed, Who ultimately proved to be a witch, And created trouble for himself.” 59
The understanding reader will easily conceive that this alteration of the current in favour of those who disapproved of witch-prosecutions, must have received encouragement from some quarter of weight and influence; yet it may sound strangely enough that this spirit of lenity should have been the result of the peculiar principles of those sectarians of all denominations, classed in general as Independents, who, though they had originally courted the Presbyterians as the more numerous and prevailing party, had at length shaken themselves loose of that connexion, and finally combated with and overcome them. The Independents were distinguished by the wildest license in their religious tenets, mixed with much that was nonsensical and mystical. They disowned even the title of a regular clergy, and allowed the preaching of any one who could draw together a congregation that would support him, or who was willing, without recompense, to minister to the spiritual necessities of his hearers. Although such laxity of discipline afforded scope to the wildest enthusiasm, and room for all possible varieties of doctrine, it had, on the other hand, this inestimable recommendation, that it contributed to a degree of general toleration which was at that time unknown to any other Christian establishment. The very genius of a religion which admitted of the subdivision of sects ad infinitum, excluded a legal prosecution of any one of these for heresy or apostasy. If there had even existed a sect of Manichæans, who made it their practice to adore the Evil Principle, it may be doubted whether the other sectaries would have accounted them absolute outcasts from the pale of the church; and, fortunately, the same sentiment induced them to regard with horror the prosecutions against witchcraft. Thus the Independents, when, under Cromwell, they attained a supremacy over the Presbyterians, who to a certain point had been their allies, were disposed to counteract the violence of such proceedings under pretence of witchcraft, as had been driven forward by the wretched Hopkins, in Essex, Norfolk, and Suffolk, for three or four years previous to 1647.
The understanding reader can easily see that this shift in favor of those against witch prosecutions must have been supported by someone influential; however, it might sound strange that this spirit of leniency came from the distinct beliefs of various sects generally grouped as Independents. They initially sought the support of the Presbyterians, the more numerous and dominant party, but eventually broke free from that connection and ultimately fought against and defeated them. The Independents were known for their extreme freedom in religious beliefs, mixed with a lot of nonsense and mysticism. They even rejected the title of a formal clergy and allowed anyone who could gather a congregation to preach, or who was willing to help meet the spiritual needs of his audience without pay. While such a loose discipline allowed for wild enthusiasm and countless variations in doctrine, it also had the invaluable benefit of fostering a level of tolerance not found in any other Christian establishment at that time. The very nature of a religion that allowed for infinite division of sects excluded the legal prosecution of any of them for heresy or apostasy. Even if there had been a sect of Manichaeans who worshipped the Evil Principle, it's doubtful the other sects would have considered them completely excluded from the church; fortunately, this same mindset led them to view the witchcraft prosecutions with horror. Thus, when the Independents gained power over the Presbyterians under Cromwell, who had been their allies to some extent, they were inclined to oppose the violent actions taken against supposed witches that had been pushed forward by the unfortunate Hopkins in Essex, Norfolk, and Suffolk, for three or four years prior to 1647.
The return of Charles II. to his crown and kingdom, served in some measure to restrain the general and wholesale manner in which the laws against witchcraft had been administered during the warmth of the Civil War. The statute of the 1st of King James, nevertheless, yet subsisted; nor is it in the least likely, considering the character of the prince, that he, to save the lives of a few old men or women, would have run the risk of incurring the odium of encouraging or sparing a crime still held in horror by a great part of his subjects. The statute, however, was generally administered by wise and skilful judges, and the accused had such a chance of escape as the rigour of the absurd law permitted.
The return of Charles II to his crown and kingdom helped to limit the widespread enforcement of witchcraft laws that had been in place during the height of the Civil War. The statute from the 1st of King James was still in effect; however, given the prince's character, it was unlikely he would risk the backlash of appearing to support or excuse a crime that many of his subjects still viewed with horror, just to save the lives of a few old men or women. That being said, the statute was typically enforced by wise and capable judges, giving the accused a chance to escape as much as the harshness of the ridiculous law allowed.
Nonsense, it is too obvious, remained in some cases predominant. In the year 1663 an old dame, named Julian Coxe, was convicted chiefly on the evidence of a huntsman, who declared on his oath, that he laid his greyhounds on a hare, and coming up to the spot where he saw them mouth her, there he found, on the other side of a bush, Julian Coxe lying panting and breathless, in such a manner as to convince him that she had been the creature which afforded him the course. The unhappy woman was executed on this evidence.
Nonsense, it was too obvious, remained dominant in some cases. In 1663, an elderly woman named Julian Coxe was convicted mainly based on the testimony of a huntsman who swore that he set his greyhounds after a hare. When he reached the spot where he saw them catch the hare, he found Julian Coxe on the other side of a bush, panting and breathless, convincing him that she was the one who had provided the chase. The unfortunate woman was executed based on this evidence.
Two years afterwards (1664), it is with regret we must quote the venerable and devout Sir Matthew Hales, as presiding at a trial, in consequence of which Amy Dunny and Rose Callender were hanged at Saint Edmondsbury. But no man, unless very peculiarly circumstanced, can extricate himself from the prejudices of his nation and age. The evidence against the accused was laid, 1st, on the effect of spells used by ignorant persons to counteract the supposed witchcraft; the use of which was, under the statute of James I., as criminal as the act of sorcery which such counter-charms were meant to neutralize, 2ndly, The two old women, refused even the privilege of purchasing some herrings, having expressed themselves with angry impatience, a child of the herring-merchant fell ill in consequence. 3rdly, A cart was driven against the miserable cottage of Amy Dunny. She scolded, of course; and shortly after the cart—(what a good driver will scarce comprehend)—stuck fast in a gate, where its wheels touched neither of the posts, and yet was moved easily forward on one of the posts (by which it was not impeded) being cut down. 4thly, One of the afflicted girls being closely muffled, went suddenly into a fit upon being touched by one of the supposed witches. But upon another trial it was found that the person so blindfolded fell into the same rage at the touch of an unsuspected person. What perhaps sealed the fate of the accused was the evidence of the celebrated Sir Thomas Browne, “that the fits were natural, but heightened by the power of the devil co-operating with the malice of witches;”—a strange opinion, certainly, from the author of a treatise on “Vulgar Errors!”60
Two years later (1664), it’s unfortunate that we have to mention the respected and pious Sir Matthew Hales, who presided over a trial that resulted in Amy Dunny and Rose Callender being hanged in Saint Edmondsbury. However, no one, unless in very unique circumstances, can free themselves from the biases of their society and time. The evidence against the accused was based on: 1st, the impact of spells used by ignorant people to counteract the alleged witchcraft; using these spells was, under the statute of James I., just as criminal as the act of witchcraft they were meant to counter, 2nd, the two elderly women were denied even the opportunity to buy some herrings after expressing their impatience, leading to the illness of a child of the herring merchant. 3rd, a cart crashed into the unfortunate cottage of Amy Dunny. She reacted angrily, and shortly after, the cart—something a competent driver would hardly understand—got stuck in a gate, where its wheels didn’t touch either post, yet it was easily moved forward when one of the posts (which wasn’t blocking it) was removed. 4th, one of the afflicted girls, heavily wrapped up, suddenly had a fit when touched by one of the alleged witches. However, upon another test, it was discovered that the blindfolded person reacted with the same fury when touched by someone who wasn’t suspected. What likely sealed the fate of the accused was the testimony of the renowned Sir Thomas Browne, “that the fits were natural, but intensified by the power of the devil cooperating with the malice of witches;”—a strange viewpoint from the author of a work on “Vulgar Errors!”60
60 (return)
[ See the account of Sir T.
Browne in No. XIV. of the “Family Library” (“Lives of British
Physicians”), p. 60.]
60 (return)
[Check out the account of Sir T. Browne in No. XIV. of the “Family Library” (“Lives of British Physicians”), p. 60.]
But the torch of science was now fairly lighted, and gleamed in more than one kingdom of the world, shooting its rays on every side, and catching at all means which were calculated to increase the illumination. The Royal Society, which had taken its rise at Oxford from a private association who met in Dr. Wilkin’s chambers about the year 1652, was, the year after the Restoration, incorporated by royal charter, and began to publish their Transactions, and give a new and more rational character to the pursuits of philosophy.
But the light of science was now well established, shining in more than one part of the world, spreading its influence everywhere, and embracing every method aimed at enhancing knowledge. The Royal Society, which originated at Oxford from a private group that met in Dr. Wilkin’s rooms around 1652, was officially recognized by royal charter a year after the Restoration and started publishing their Transactions, giving a fresh and more logical approach to the study of philosophy.
In France, where the mere will of the government could accomplish greater changes, the consequence of an enlarged spirit of scientific discovery was, that a decisive stop was put to the witch-prosecutions which had heretofore been as common in that kingdom as in England. About the year 1672 there was a general arrest of very many shepherds and others in Normandy, and the Parliament of Rouen prepared to proceed in the investigation with the usual severity. But an order, or arret, from the king (Louis XIV.), with advice of his council, commanding all these unfortunate persons to be set at liberty and protected, had the most salutary effects all over the kingdom. The French Academy of Sciences was also founded; and, in imitation, a society of learned Germans established a similar institution at Leipsic. Prejudices, however old, were overawed and controlled—much was accounted for on natural principles that had hitherto been imputed to spiritual agency—everything seemed to promise that farther access to the secrets of nature might be opened to those who should prosecute their studies experimentally and by analysis—and the mass of ancient opinions which overwhelmed the dark subject of which we treat began to be derided and rejected by men of sense and education.
In France, where the government's will could bring about significant changes, the growing spirit of scientific discovery led to a decisive end to the witch trials that had been as common there as in England. Around 1672, there was a widespread arrest of many shepherds and others in Normandy, and the Parliament of Rouen was ready to investigate with its usual harshness. However, an order, or arret, from King Louis XIV, with advice from his council, commanded that all these unfortunate individuals be released and protected, having a hugely positive impact across the kingdom. The French Academy of Sciences was also established; imitating this, a group of learned Germans started a similar institution in Leipsic. Long-held prejudices were challenged and controlled—many things that had previously been attributed to spiritual forces were explained through natural principles—everything seemed to promise that further insight into the secrets of nature could be gained by those who pursued their studies through experiments and analysis—and the outdated beliefs surrounding the dark subject we discuss began to be mocked and dismissed by educated individuals.
In many cases the prey was now snatched from the spoiler. A pragmatical justice of peace in Somersetshire commenced a course of enquiry after offenders against the statute of James I., and had he been allowed to proceed, Mr. Hunt might have gained a name as renowned for witch-finding as that of Mr. Hopkins; but his researches were stopped from higher authority—the lives of the poor people arrested (twelve in number) were saved, and the country remained at quiet, though the supposed witches were suffered to live. The examinations attest some curious particulars, which may be found in Sadducismus Triumphatus: for among the usual string of froward, fanciful, or, as they were called, afflicted children, brought forward to club their startings, starings, and screamings, there appeared also certain remarkable confessions of the accused, from which we learn that the Somerset Satan enlisted his witches, like a wily recruiting sergeant, with one shilling in hand and twelve in promises; that when the party of weird-sisters passed to the witch-meeting they used the magic words, Thout, tout, throughout, and about; and that when they departed they exclaimed, Rentum, Tormentum! We are further informed that his Infernal Highness, on his departure, leaves a smell, and that (in nursery-maid’s phrase) not a pretty one, behind him. Concerning this fact we have a curious exposition by Mr. Glanville. “This,”—according to that respectable authority, “seems to imply the reality of the business, those ascititious particles which he held together in his sensible shape being loosened at the vanishing, and so offending the nostrils by their floating and diffusing themselves in the open air."61 How much are we bound to regret that Mr. Justice Hunt’s discovery “of this hellish kind of witches,” in itself so clear and plain, and containing such valuable information, should have been smothered by meeting with opposition and discouragement from some then in authority!
In many cases, the prey was now taken from the predator. A practical justice of the peace in Somerset began an investigation into offenders against the law of James I. If he had been allowed to continue, Mr. Hunt might have become as famous for witch-hunting as Mr. Hopkins. However, his inquiries were halted by higher authorities—the lives of the twelve poor people arrested were saved, and the country remained calm, even though the supposed witches were allowed to live. The examinations provide some interesting details, which can be found in Sadducismus Triumphatus: among the usual group of unruly, imaginative, or, as they were called, afflicted children, there were also some notable confessions from the accused, revealing that the Somerset devil recruited his witches like a cunning recruiting sergeant, offering one shilling in hand and twelve in promises; that when the group of weird sisters went to the witch meeting, they used the magical words, Thout, tout, throughout, and about; and that when they left, they shouted, Rentum, Tormentum! We are also informed that his Infernal Highness leaves a smell behind him upon his departure, and not a pleasant one, according to nursery rhyme. Mr. Glanville gives an interesting explanation about this fact. “This,” according to that reliable source, “seems to suggest the reality of the matter, as those extraneous particles he held together in his visible form became loosened when he vanished, thus offending the nostrils by spreading through the air." 61 How much we should regret that Mr. Justice Hunt’s findings about “this hellish kind of witches,” which were so clear and obvious and contained such valuable information, were dismissed due to opposition and discouragement from those in power at the time!
61 (return)
[ Glanville’s “Collection
of Relations.”]
61 (return)
[ Glanville’s “Collection of Relations.”]
Lord Keeper Guildford was also a stifler of the proceedings against witches. Indeed, we may generally remark, during the latter part of the seventeenth century, that where the judges were men of education and courage, sharing in the information of the times, they were careful to check the precipitate ignorance and prejudice of the juries, by giving them a more precise idea of the indifferent value of confessions by the accused themselves, and of testimony derived from the pretended visions of those supposed to be bewitched. Where, on the contrary, judges shared with the vulgar in their ideas of such fascination, or were contented to leave the evidence with the jury, fearful to withstand the general cry too common on such occasions, a verdict of guilty often followed.
Lord Keeper Guildford was also someone who held back the actions against witches. In fact, we can generally observe that during the later part of the seventeenth century, when the judges were educated and brave, and aware of contemporary knowledge, they took care to counteract the rash ignorance and bias of the juries. They did this by providing a clearer understanding of the unreliable nature of confessions made by the accused and the evidence based on the alleged visions of those believed to be bewitched. On the other hand, when judges shared the common misconceptions or were hesitant to challenge the widespread public sentiment in such cases, a guilty verdict often resulted.
We are informed by Roger North that a case of this kind happened at the assizes in Exeter, where his brother, the Lord Chief Justice, did not interfere with the crown trials, and the other judge left for execution a poor old woman, condemned, as usual, on her own confession, and on the testimony of a neighbour, who deponed that he saw a cat jump into the accused person’s cottage window at twilight, one evening, and that he verily believed the said cat to be the devil; on which precious testimony the poor wretch was accordingly hanged. On another occasion, about the same time, the passions of the great and little vulgar were so much excited by the aquittal of an aged village dame, whom the judge had taken some pains to rescue, that Sir John Long, a man of rank and fortune, came to the judge in the greatest perplexity, requesting that the hag might not be permitted to return to her miserable cottage on his estates, since all his tenants had in that case threatened to leave him. In compassion to a gentleman who apprehended ruin from a cause so whimsical, the dangerous old woman was appointed to be kept by the town where she was acquitted, at the rate of half-a-crown a week, paid by the parish to which she belonged. But behold! in the period betwixt the two assizes Sir John Long and his farmers had mustered courage enough to petition that this witch should be sent back to them in all her terrors, because they could support her among them at a shilling a week cheaper than they were obliged to pay to the town for her maintenance. In a subsequent trial before Lord Chief Justice North himself, that judge detected one of those practices which, it is to be feared, were too common at the time, when witnesses found their advantage in feigning themselves bewitched. A woman, supposed to be the victim of the male sorcerer at the bar, vomited pins in quantities, and those straight, differing from the crooked pins usually produced at such times, and less easily concealed in the mouth. The judge, however, discovered, by cross-examining a candid witness, that in counterfeiting her fits of convulsion the woman sunk her head on her breast, so as to take up with her lips the pins which she had placed ready in her stomacher. The man was acquitted, of course. A frightful old hag, who was present, distinguished herself so much by her benedictions on the judge, that he asked the cause of the peculiar interest which she took in the acquittal. “Twenty years ago,” said the poor woman, “they would have hanged me for a witch, but could not; and now, but for your lordship, they would have murdered my innocent son."62
We're told by Roger North that a situation like this occurred at the court sessions in Exeter, where his brother, the Lord Chief Justice, didn’t intervene in the crown trials, and the other judge allowed a poor old woman to be executed, as usual, based on her own confession and the testimony of a neighbor. This neighbor claimed he saw a cat jump into the accused person's cottage window one evening at twilight and genuinely believed that cat was the devil; on this ridiculous testimony, the poor woman was hanged. On another occasion around the same time, the passions of both the upper class and common folk were stirred up by the acquittal of an elderly village woman, whom the judge had made efforts to save. Sir John Long, a man of high status and wealth, approached the judge in great distress, asking that this old woman not be allowed to return to her miserable cottage on his land, as all his tenants had threatened to leave him. Out of compassion for a gentleman facing ruin from such a bizarre situation, the dangerous old woman was ordered to be housed by the town where she was acquitted, at a rate of half a crown a week, paid by her parish. But lo and behold! Between the two court sessions, Sir John Long and his farmers found the courage to petition for the witch to be sent back to them in her full terror because they could support her for a shilling a week less than what they were required to pay the town for her upkeep. In a later trial presided over by Lord Chief Justice North himself, that judge uncovered one of those practices that, sadly, were too common at the time, where witnesses would pretend to be bewitched for their gain. A woman, believed to be the victim of the male sorcerer on trial, vomited pins in large quantities, and these were straight, unlike the bent pins typically produced in such cases, which are harder to hide. However, the judge learned through cross-examining a truthful witness that the woman, while faking her convulsions, had lowered her head to her chest so she could use her lips to collect the pins she had hidden in her bodice. The man was acquitted, of course. An alarming old hag who was present made herself known by her blessings on the judge, prompting him to ask why she seemed so invested in the acquittal. “Twenty years ago,” the poor woman replied, “they would have hanged me for being a witch, but they couldn’t; and now, but for your lordship, they would have killed my innocent son." 62
62 (return)
[ Roger North’s “Life of
Lord-Keeper Guilford.”]
62 (return)
[ Roger North’s “Life of Lord Keeper Guilford.”]
Such scenes happened frequently on the assizes, while country gentlemen, like the excellent Sir Roger de Coverley, retained a private share in the terror with which their tenants, servants, and retainers regarded some old Moll White, who put the hounds at fault and ravaged the fields with hail and hurricanes. Sir John Reresby, after an account of a poor woman tried for a witch at York in 1686 and acquitted, as he thought, very properly, proceeds to tell us that, notwithstanding, the sentinel upon the jail where she was confined avowed “that he saw a scroll of paper creep from under the prison-door, and then change itself first into a monkey and then into a turkey, which the under-keeper confirmed. This,” says Sir John, “I have heard from the mouth of both, and now leave it to be believed or disbelieved as the reader may be inclined."63 We may see that Reresby, a statesman and a soldier, had not as yet “plucked the old woman out of his heart.” Even Addison himself ventured no farther in his incredulity respecting this crime than to contend that although witchcraft might and did exist, there was no such thing as a modern instance competently proved.
Such scenes often occurred at the courts, while country gentlemen, like the great Sir Roger de Coverley, still held a private fear of some old Moll White, who confused the hounds and wreaked havoc on the fields with storms and hail. Sir John Reresby, after recounting the trial of a poor woman accused of witchcraft in York in 1686, which he thought ended rightly with her acquittal, goes on to tell us that, nevertheless, the guard at the jail where she was held claimed “that he saw a piece of paper creep out from under the prison door, then turn into a monkey and finally into a turkey,” which the under-keeper also confirmed. “I heard this from both of them,” says Sir John, “and I now leave it to the reader to believe or not as they choose.” 63 It's clear that Reresby, both a politician and a soldier, had not yet “removed the old woman from his heart.” Even Addison himself only went so far in his skepticism about this crime, arguing that while witchcraft might exist, there were no recent cases that had been convincingly proven.
63 (return)
[ “Memoirs of Sir John
Reresby,” p. 237.]
63 (return)
[ “Memoirs of Sir John Reresby,” p. 237.]
As late as 1682 three unhappy women named Susan Edwards, Mary Trembles, and Temperance Lloyd were hanged at Exeter for witchcraft, and, as usual, on their own confession. This is believed to be the last execution of the kind in England under form of judicial sentence. But the ancient superstition, so interesting to vulgar credulity, like sediment clearing itself from water, sunk down in a deeper shade upon the ignorant and lowest classes of society in proportion as the higher regions were purified from its influence. The populace, including the ignorant of every class, were more enraged against witches when their passions were once excited in proportion to the lenity exercised towards the objects of their indignation by those who administered the laws. Several cases occurred in which the mob, impressed with a conviction of the guilt of some destitute old creatures, took the law into their own hands, and proceeding upon such evidence as Hopkins would have had recourse to, at once, in their own apprehension, ascertained their criminality and administered the deserved punishment.
As late as 1682, three unfortunate women named Susan Edwards, Mary Trembles, and Temperance Lloyd were hanged in Exeter for witchcraft, and as usual, based on their own confessions. This is thought to be the last execution of its kind in England carried out under judicial sentence. However, the ancient superstition, which was so appealing to popular belief, faded into the background among the ignorant lower classes as the more educated society moved away from its influence. The general public, including those who were uninformed from all social classes, became more furious at witches when their emotions were stirred, especially since the authorities often showed leniency towards those they were angry with. There were several instances where the mob, convinced of the guilt of some defenseless old women, took the law into their own hands and, based on the kind of flimsy evidence that Hopkins would have relied on, quickly determined their guilt and executed the punishment they believed was deserved.
The following instance of such illegal and inhuman proceedings occurred at Oakly, near Bedford, on 12th July, 1707. There was one woman, upwards of sixty years of age, who, being under an imputation of witchcraft, was desirous to escape from so foul a suspicion, and to conciliate the good-will of her neighbours, by allowing them to duck her. The parish officers so far consented to their humane experiment as to promise the poor woman a guinea if she should clear herself by sinking. The unfortunate object was tied up in a wet sheet, her thumbs and great toes were bound together, her cap torn off, and all her apparel searched for pins; for there is an idea that a single pin spoils the operation of the charm. She was then dragged through the river Ouse by a rope tied round her middle. Unhappily for the poor woman, her body floated, though her head remained under water. The experiment was made three times with the same effect. The cry to hang or drown the witch then became general, and as she lay half-dead on the bank they loaded the wretch with reproaches, and hardly forbore blows. A single humane bystander took her part, and exposed himself to rough usage for doing so. Luckily one of the mob themselves at length suggested the additional experiment of weighing the witch against the church Bible. The friend of humanity caught at this means of escape, supporting the proposal by the staggering argument that the Scripture, being the work of God himself, must outweigh necessarily all the operations or vassals of the devil. The reasoning was received as conclusive, the more readily as it promised a new species of amusement. The woman was then weighed against a church Bible of twelve pounds jockey weight, and as she was considerably preponderant, was dismissed with honour. But many of the mob counted her acquittal irregular, and would have had the poor dame drowned or hanged on the result of her ducking, as the more authentic species of trial.
The following instance of such illegal and inhumane actions happened in Oakly, near Bedford, on July 12, 1707. There was a woman over sixty years old who, being accused of witchcraft, wanted to clear her name and earn the goodwill of her neighbors by letting them dunk her. The parish officers agreed to this cruel experiment and promised the poor woman a guinea if she could prove her innocence by sinking. The unfortunate woman was wrapped in a wet sheet, her thumbs and big toes were tied together, her cap was ripped off, and her clothes were searched for pins, as it was believed that even one pin could ruin the test. She was then pulled through the River Ouse with a rope around her waist. Unfortunately for her, her body floated, even though her head stayed under water. The experiment was repeated three times with the same result. The crowd's cries to hang or drown the witch grew louder, and as she lay half-dead on the riverbank, they showered her with insults and nearly attacked her. Only one kind bystander defended her, risking rough treatment in the process. Fortunately, someone in the mob then suggested the idea of weighing the witch against the church Bible. The humanitarian jumped at this chance of escape, arguing that the Bible, being the word of God, must weigh more than anything associated with the devil. This reasoning was accepted eagerly, especially as it promised a new kind of entertainment. The woman was weighed against a twelve-pound church Bible, and since she was significantly heavier, she was freed with honor. However, many in the crowd considered her acquittal unfair and wanted her drowned or hanged based on the results of her dunking, viewing that as a more valid trial.
At length a similar piece of inhumanity, which had a very different conclusion, led to the final abolition of the statute of James I. as affording countenance for such brutal proceedings. An aged pauper, named Osborne, and his wife, who resided near Tring, in Staffordshire, fell under the suspicion of the mob on account of supposed witchcraft. The overseers of the poor, understanding that the rabble entertained a purpose of swimming these infirm creatures, which indeed they had expressed in a sort of proclamation, endeavoured to oppose their purpose by securing the unhappy couple in the vestry-room, which they barricaded. They were unable, however, to protect them in the manner they intended. The mob forced the door, seized the accused, and, with ineffable brutality, continued dragging the wretches through a pool of water till the woman lost her life. A brute in human form, who had superintended the murder, went among the spectators, and requested money for the sport he had shown them! The life of the other victim was with great difficulty saved. Three men were tried for their share in this inhuman action. Only one of them, named Colley, was condemned and hanged. When he came to execution, the rabble, instead of crowding round the gallows as usual, stood at a distance, and abused those who were putting to death, they said, an honest fellow for ridding the parish of an accursed witch. This abominable murder was committed July 30, 1751.
Eventually, a similar act of cruelty, which had a very different outcome, led to the final repeal of the statute of James I, which had supported such brutal actions. An elderly pauper, named Osborne, and his wife, who lived near Tring in Staffordshire, were suspected by the mob of witchcraft. The overseers of the poor, realizing that the mob intended to "swim" these defenseless individuals, as they had declared in a sort of announcement, tried to stop them by locking the unfortunate couple in the vestry-room and barricading it. However, they were unable to protect them as they had planned. The mob broke down the door, seized the accused, and, with unspeakable brutality, dragged them through a pool of water until the woman lost her life. A monster in human form, who oversaw the murder, went among the spectators and asked for money for the show he had given them! The life of the other victim was saved only with great difficulty. Three men were tried for their involvement in this horrific act. Only one of them, named Colley, was convicted and hanged. When he was executed, instead of the usual crowd surrounding the gallows, the rabble stood at a distance, cursing those who were killing what they called an honest man for getting rid of a cursed witch. This atrocious murder occurred on July 30, 1751.
The repetition of such horrors, the proneness of the people to so cruel and heart-searing a superstition, was traced by the legislature to its source, namely, the yet unabolished statute of James I. Accordingly, by the 9th George II. cap. 5, that odious law, so long the object of horror to all ancient and poverty-stricken females in the kingdom, was abrogated, and all criminal procedure on the subject of sorcery or witchcraft discharged in future throughout Great Britain; reserving for such as should pretend to the skill of fortune-tellers, discoverers of stolen goods, or the like, the punishment of the correction-house, as due to rogues and vagabonds. Since that period witchcraft has been little heard of in England, and although the belief in its existence has in remote places survived the law that recognised the evidence of the crime, and assigned its punishment—yet such faith is gradually becoming forgotten since the rabble have been deprived of all pretext to awaken it by their own riotous proceedings. Some rare instances have occurred of attempts similar to that for which Colley suffered; and I observe one is preserved in that curious register of knowledge, Mr. Hone’s “Popular Amusements,” from which it appears that as late as the end of last century this brutality was practised, though happily without loss of life.
The repeated occurrence of such horrors and the people's tendency to fall for such a cruel and heartbreaking superstition was traced by the legislature back to its source, specifically the still-active statute of James I. As a result, through the 9th George II. cap. 5, that detestable law, which had long been a source of fear for all elderly and impoverished women in the kingdom, was repealed, and all criminal procedures related to sorcery or witchcraft were discharged going forward throughout Great Britain. Those who claimed to possess the skills of fortune-telling or recovering stolen items would face punishment in a correction house, deemed appropriate for con artists and vagrants. Since then, witchcraft has rarely been mentioned in England, and while belief in its existence has lingered in remote areas despite the law that once acknowledged the crime and its punishment, such beliefs are gradually fading as the public has lost all reason to stir them up through their own chaotic actions. There have been a few rare cases of attempts similar to what Colley faced, and one such instance is recorded in Mr. Hone’s “Popular Amusements,” which shows that as recently as the end of the last century, this brutality was still practiced, although thankfully without any loss of life.
The Irish statute against witchcraft still exists, as it would seem. Nothing occurred in that kingdom which recommended its being formally annulled; but it is considered as obsolete, and should so wild a thing be attempted in the present day, no procedure, it is certain, would now be permitted to lie upon it.
The Irish law against witchcraft is still technically in place, it seems. Nothing happened in that country to suggest it should be officially repealed, but it's seen as outdated. If such a ridiculous thing were attempted today, there’s no way any legal action would be allowed to proceed based on it.
If anything were wanted to confirm the general proposition that the epidemic terror of witchcraft increases and becomes general in proportion to the increase of prosecutions against witches, it would be sufficient to quote certain extraordinary occurrences in New England. Only a brief account can be here given of the dreadful hallucination under which the colonists of that province were for a time deluded and oppressed by a strange contagious terror, and how suddenly and singularly it was cured, even by its own excess; but it is too strong evidence of the imaginary character of this hideous disorder to be altogether suppressed.
If anything confirms the idea that the widespread fear of witchcraft grows alongside the number of witch trials, it's the unusual events that happened in New England. Here, we can only provide a brief overview of the terrible delusion that the colonists faced, as they were for a time misled and burdened by a strange, contagious panic, and how it was abruptly and uniquely resolved, even by its own intensity; but this serves as strong evidence of the fictional nature of this frightening phenomenon that shouldn't be completely ignored.
New England, as is well known, was peopled mainly by emigrants who had been disgusted with the government of Charles I. in church and state, previous to the great Civil War. Many of the more wealthy settlers were Presbyterians and Calvinists; others, fewer in number and less influential from their fortune, were Quakers, Anabaptists, or members of the other sects who were included under the general name of Independents. The Calvinists brought with them the same zeal for religion and strict morality which everywhere distinguished them. Unfortunately, they were not wise according to their zeal, but entertained a proneness to believe in supernatural and direct personal intercourse between the devil and his vassals, an error to which, as we have endeavoured to show, their brethren in Europe had from the beginning been peculiarly subject. In a country imperfectly cultivated, and where the partially improved spots were embosomed in inaccessible forests, inhabited by numerous tribes of savages, it was natural that a disposition to superstition should rather gain than lose ground, and that to other dangers and horrors with which they were surrounded, the colonists should have added fears of the devil, not merely as the Evil Principle tempting human nature to sin, and thus endangering our salvation, but as combined with sorcerers and witches to inflict death and torture upon children and others.
New England, as is well known, was mainly settled by emigrants who were fed up with the government of Charles I in both church and state before the great Civil War. Many of the wealthier settlers were Presbyterians and Calvinists; others, fewer in number and less influential due to their wealth, were Quakers, Anabaptists, or members of other groups collectively known as Independents. The Calvinists brought with them a strong commitment to religion and strict morality that set them apart. Unfortunately, their zeal was not always matched by wisdom, as they tended to believe in supernatural events and direct personal contact between the devil and his followers—an issue their counterparts in Europe had always been particularly susceptible to. In a place that was not fully cultivated, where the more developed areas were surrounded by dense forests inhabited by many tribes of indigenous people, it was natural for superstitious beliefs to thrive. The colonists added to their existing fears of danger and horror by worrying about the devil, not just as the Evil Principle leading humans away from salvation but also in connection with sorcerers and witches who were seen as capable of causing harm to children and others.
The first case which I observe was that of four children of a person called John Goodwin, a mason. The eldest, a girl, had quarrelled with the laundress of the family about some linen which was amissing. The mother of the laundress, an ignorant, testy, and choleric old Irishwoman, scolded the accuser; and shortly after, the elder Goodwin, her sister and two brothers, were seized with such strange diseases that all their neighbours concluded they were bewitched. They conducted themselves as those supposed to suffer under maladies created by such influence were accustomed to do. They stiffened their necks so hard at one time that the joints could not be moved; at another time their necks were so flexible and supple that it seemed the bone was dissolved. They had violent convulsions, in which their jaws snapped with the force of a spring-trap set for vermin. Their limbs were curiously contorted, and to those who had a taste for the marvellous, seemed entirely dislocated and displaced. Amid these distortions, they cried out against the poor old woman, whose name was Glover, alleging that she was in presence with them adding to their torments. The miserable Irishwoman, who hardly could speak the English language, repeated her Pater Noster and Ave Maria like a good Catholic; but there were some words which she had forgotten. She was therefore supposed to be unable to pronounce the whole consistently and correctly, and condemned and executed accordingly.
The first case I noticed was that of four children of a man named John Goodwin, a mason. The oldest, a girl, had a dispute with the family’s laundress over some missing laundry. The laundress's mother, an irritable and hot-tempered old Irishwoman, yelled at the girl; shortly after, the older Goodwin, along with her sister and two brothers, started showing strange symptoms that made all their neighbors think they were bewitched. They acted just like people typically do when they're believed to be suffering from such curses. At times, they stiffened their necks so much that their joints couldn’t move; other times, their necks became so flexible and loose that it appeared their bones were gone. They had violent convulsions that made their jaws snap like a spring trap for catching pests. Their limbs twisted in bizarre ways, and to those fascinated by the extraordinary, it looked like they were completely dislocated. Amid these contortions, they accused the poor old woman, named Glover, claiming she was there with them, adding to their suffering. The unfortunate Irishwoman, who could barely speak English, recited her Our Father and Hail Mary like a faithful Catholic; however, she forgot some words. Because of this, she was thought to be unable to say the prayers correctly and was condemned and executed as a result.
But the children of Goodwin found the trade they were engaged in to be too profitable to be laid aside, and the eldest in particular continued all the external signs of witchcraft and possession. Some of these were excellently calculated to flatter the self-opinion and prejudices of the Calvinist ministers by whom she was attended, and accordingly bear in their very front the character of studied and voluntary imposture. The young woman, acting, as was supposed, under the influence of the devil, read a Quaker treatise with ease and apparent satisfaction; but a book written against the poor inoffensive Friends the devil would not allow his victim to touch, She could look on a Church of England Prayer-book, and read the portions of Scripture which it contains without difficulty or impediment; but the spirit which possessed her threw her into fits if she attempted to read the same Scriptures from the Bible, as if the awe which it is supposed the fiends entertain for Holy Writ depended, not on the meaning of the words, but the arrangement of the page, and the type in which they were printed. This singular species of flattery was designed to captivate the clergyman through his professional opinions; others were more strictly personal. The afflicted damsel seems to have been somewhat of the humour of the Inamorata of Messrs. Smack, Pluck, Catch, and Company, and had, like her, merry as well as melancholy fits. She often imagined that her attendant spirits brought her a handsome pony to ride off with them to their rendezvous. On such occasions she made a spring upwards, as if to mount her horse, and then, still seated on her chair, mimicked with dexterity and agility the motions of the animal pacing, trotting, and galloping, like a child on the nurse’s knee; but when she cantered in this manner upstairs, she affected inability to enter the clergyman’s study, and when she was pulled into it by force, used to become quite well, and stand up as a rational being. “Reasons were given for this,” says the simple minister, “that seem more kind than true.” Shortly after this, she appears to have treated the poor divine with a species of sweetness and attention, which gave him greater embarrassment than her former violence. She used to break in upon him at his studies to importune him to come downstairs, and thus advantaged doubtless the kingdom of Satan by the interruption of his pursuits. At length the Goodwins were, or appeared to be, cured. But the example had been given and caught, and the blood of poor Dame Glover, which had been the introduction to this tale of a hobby-horse, was to be the forerunner of new atrocities and fearfully more general follies.
But the Goodwin kids found their activities way too profitable to give up, and the oldest one, in particular, kept up all the outward signs of witchcraft and possession. Some of these were cleverly designed to flatter the self-esteem and biases of the Calvinist ministers attending her, and clearly showed signs of being a deliberate fake. The young woman, supposedly under the devil’s influence, read a Quaker book with ease and visible enjoyment; however, she couldn't even touch a book criticizing the harmless Quakers because the devil wouldn’t allow it. She could look at a Church of England Prayer Book and read the Scriptures it contained without any problems, but the spirit possessing her would throw her into fits if she tried to read those same Scriptures from the Bible, as if the demons’ horror of the Holy Scriptures depended not on the content but on how the pages were arranged and the font they were printed in. This peculiar form of flattery seemed aimed at winning over the clergyman through his professional beliefs; other aspects were more personal. The troubled young woman seemed to have a temperament similar to that of the characters created by Messrs. Smack, Pluck, Catch, and Company, exhibiting both playful and melancholic fits. She often imagined that her spirit companions brought her a beautiful pony to ride away with them to their secret meeting place. On those occasions, she would jump up as if to mount her horse and then, still sitting in her chair, would mimic the movements of a horse walking, trotting, and galloping, like a child bouncing on a nurse’s knee; but when she trotted this way upstairs, she pretended she couldn't enter the clergyman's study. When forced into the room, she would suddenly become completely fine and stand up like a rational person. “There were reasons given for this,” says the naïve minister, “that seemed kinder than truthful.” Not long after, she began to treat the poor minister with a kind of sweetness and attention that caused him even more embarrassment than her earlier outbursts. She would interrupt him during his studies, begging him to come downstairs, undoubtedly advancing the kingdom of Satan by disrupting his work. Eventually, the Goodwins seemed to be cured. But the example had been set and taken, and the fate of poor Dame Glover, which introduced this tale of a hobby horse, would be the precursor to new atrocities and far more widespread foolishness.
This scene opened by the illness of two girls, a daughter and niece of Mr. Parvis, the minister of Salem, who fell under an affliction similar to that of the Goodwins. Their mouths were stopped, their throats choked, their limbs racked, thorns were stuck into their flesh, and pins were ejected from their stomachs. An Indian and his wife, servants of the family, endeavouring, by some spell of their own, to discover by whom the fatal charm had been imposed on their master’s children, drew themselves under suspicion, and were hanged. The judges and juries persevered, encouraged by the discovery of these poor Indians’ guilt, and hoping they might thus expel from the colony the authors of such practices. They acted, says Mather, the historian, under a conscientious wish to do justly; but the cases of witchcraft and possession increased as if they were transmitted by contagion, and the same sort of spectral evidence being received which had occasioned the condemnation of the Indian woman Titu, became generally fatal. The afflicted persons failed not to see the spectres, as they were termed, of the persons by whom they were tormented. Against this species of evidence no alibi could be offered, because it was admitted, as we have said elsewhere, that the real persons of the accused were not there present; and everything rested upon the assumption that the afflicted persons were telling the truth, since their evidence could not be redargued. These spectres were generally represented as offering their victims a book, on signing which they would be freed from their torments. Sometimes the devil appeared in person, and added his own eloquence to move the afflicted persons to consent.
This scene starts with the illness of two girls, the daughter and niece of Mr. Parvis, the minister of Salem, who suffered from an affliction similar to that of the Goodwins. Their mouths were shut, their throats were choked, their limbs were in pain, thorns were embedded in their flesh, and pins came out of their stomachs. An Indian and his wife, who worked for the family, tried to figure out who had cursed their master’s children with their own spell, and ended up under suspicion, leading to their execution. The judges and juries continued their efforts, spurred on by the discovery of these poor Indians’ supposed guilt, hoping to eliminate the causes of such practices from the colony. According to Mather, the historian, they acted out of a sincere desire to pursue justice; however, the cases of witchcraft and possession grew as if they were spreading like a disease, and the same kind of spectral evidence used to condemn the Indian woman Titu became fatally common. The afflicted individuals consistently claimed to see the “spectres” of those who tormented them. There was no way to provide an alibi against this kind of evidence because it was accepted, as noted elsewhere, that the actual accused individuals were not present; everything leaned on the assumption that the afflicted were being truthful, as their testimonies couldn’t be challenged. These spectres were usually depicted as offering their victims a book, which, if signed, would release them from their suffering. Occasionally, the devil himself would appear, using his own persuasive speech to convince the afflicted individuals to agree.
At first, as seems natural enough, the poor and miserable alone were involved; but presently, when such evidence was admitted as incontrovertible, the afflicted began to see the spectral appearances of persons of higher condition and of irreproachable lives, some of whom were arrested, some made their escape, while several were executed. The more that suffered the greater became the number of afflicted persons, and the wider and the more numerous were the denunciations against supposed witches. The accused were of all ages. A child of five years old was indicted by some of the afflicted, who imagined they saw this juvenile wizard active in tormenting them, and appealed to the mark of little teeth on their bodies, where they stated it had bitten them. A poor dog was also hanged as having been alleged to be busy in this infernal persecution. These gross insults on common reason occasioned a revulsion in public feeling, but not till many lives had been sacrificed. By this means nineteen men and women were executed, besides a stouthearted man named Cory, who refused to plead, and was accordingly pressed to death according to the old law. On this horrible occasion a circumstance took place disgusting to humanity, which must yet be told, to show how superstition can steel the heart of a man against the misery of his fellow-creature. The dying man, in the mortal agony, thrust out his tongue, which the sheriff crammed with his cane back again into his mouth. Eight persons were condemned besides those who had actually suffered, and no less than two hundred were in prison and under examination.
At first, it mostly involved only the poor and miserable, which seemed natural enough. But soon, when undeniable evidence came to light, the afflicted started seeing ghostly figures of people from higher social classes and who lived respectable lives. Some of these individuals were arrested, some managed to escape, while several were executed. The more people suffered, the more the number of afflicted grew, and the accusations against supposed witches became more widespread and numerous. The accused spanned all ages. A five-year-old child was charged by some of the afflicted, who claimed to see this young wizard tormenting them, pointing to bite marks on their bodies as proof. A poor dog was also hanged, accused of being involved in this evil persecution. These outrageous assaults on common sense stirred public sentiment, but not until many lives had been lost. In total, nineteen men and women were executed, in addition to a brave man named Cory, who refused to plead and was pressed to death according to old laws. A particularly disturbing incident occurred during this horrifying time, reflecting how superstition can harden a man's heart against the suffering of others. As the dying man writhed in agony, he stuck out his tongue, which the sheriff forcibly pushed back into his mouth with his cane. Eight more people were condemned in addition to those who had already died, and at least two hundred were imprisoned and under investigation.
Men began then to ask whether the devil might not artfully deceive the afflicted into the accusation of good and innocent persons by presenting witches and fiends in the resemblance of blameless persons, as engaged in the tormenting of their diseased country-folk. This argument was by no means inconsistent with the belief in witchcraft, and was the more readily listened to on that account. Besides, men found that no rank or condition could save them from the danger of this horrible accusation if they continued to encourage the witnesses in such an unlimited course as had hitherto been granted to them. Influenced by these reflections, the settlers awoke as from a dream, and the voice of the public, which had so lately demanded vengeance on all who were suspected of sorcery, began now, on the other hand, to lament the effusion of blood, under the strong suspicion that part of it at least had been innocently and unjustly sacrificed. In Mather’s own language, which we use as that of a man deeply convinced of the reality of the crime, “experience showed that the more were apprehended the more were still afflicted by Satan, and the number of confessions increasing did but increase the number of the accused, and the execution of some made way to the apprehension of others. For still the afflicted complained of being tormented by new objects as the former were removed, so that some of those that were concerned grew amazed at the number and condition of those that were accused, and feared that Satan, by his wiles, had enwrapped innocent persons under the imputation of that crime; and at last, as was evidently seen, there must be a stop put, or the generation of the kingdom of God would fall under condemnation."64
Men then began to wonder if the devil might trick the afflicted into accusing good and innocent people by making witches and demons appear as blameless individuals who were tormenting their suffering neighbors. This idea was not at all inconsistent with the belief in witchcraft and was more readily accepted for that reason. Moreover, people realized that no social status could protect them from the threat of this terrible accusation if they kept supporting the witnesses in the unrestricted manner they had allowed until now. Prompted by these thoughts, the settlers awoke from their stupor, and public sentiment, which had recently called for revenge against anyone suspected of witchcraft, now began to mourn the loss of life, strongly suspecting that at least some of it had been taken from innocent and unjustly accused individuals. In Mather’s own words, which reflect his deep belief in the reality of the crime, “experience showed that the more were arrested, the more were still tormented by Satan, and the rising number of confessions only led to more accusations, while the execution of some opened the door to the arrest of others. For the afflicted continued to complain of being tormented by new entities as the previous ones were removed, leading some involved to be astonished by the number and status of the accused, and to fear that Satan, through his tricks, had ensnared innocent people under the charge of that crime; and eventually, as was clearly observed, there had to be a halt, or the community of God’s kingdom would fall into condemnation."64
64 (return)
[ Mather’s “Magnalia,” book
vi. chap. lxxxii. The zealous author, however, regrets the general gaol
delivery on the score of sorcery and thinks, had the times been calm, the
case might have required a farther investigation, and that, on the whole,
the matter was ended too abruptly But, the temper of the times considered,
he admits candidly that it is better to act moderately in matters capital,
and to let the guilty escape, than run the risk of destroying the
innocent.]
64 (return)
[ Mather’s “Magnalia,” book vi. chap. lxxxii. The passionate author, however, regrets the widespread release of prisoners accused of witchcraft and believes that if the times had been calmer, the situation might have warranted a deeper investigation. He feels that, overall, the issue was resolved too hastily. However, considering the climate of the times, he honestly acknowledges that it’s better to take a moderate approach in serious matters and allow some guilty people to go free rather than risk harming the innocent.]
The prosecutions were therefore suddenly stopped, the prisoners dismissed, the condemned pardoned, and even those who had confessed, the number of whom was very extraordinary, were pardoned amongst others; and the author we have just quoted thus records the result:—“When this prosecution ceased, the Lord so chained up Satan that the afflicted grew presently well. The accused were generally quiet, and for five years there was no such molestation among us.”
The prosecutions were suddenly halted, the prisoners released, the condemned pardoned, and even those who had confessed—of whom there were many—were also pardoned. The author we just quoted notes the outcome: “When this prosecution ended, the Lord restrained Satan so that the afflicted soon recovered. The accused were generally at peace, and for five years, there was no such trouble among us.”
To this it must be added that the congregation of Salem compelled Mr. Parvis, in whose family the disturbance had begun, and who, they alleged, was the person by whom it was most fiercely driven on in the commencement, to leave his settlement amongst them. Such of the accused as had confessed the acts of witchcraft imputed to them generally denied and retracted their confessions, asserting them to have been made under fear of torture, influence of persuasion, or other circumstances exclusive of their free will. Several of the judges and jurors concerned in the sentence of those who were executed published their penitence for their rashness in convicting these unfortunate persons; and one of the judges, a man of the most importance in the colony, observed, during the rest of his life, the anniversary of the first execution as a day of solemn fast and humiliation for his own share in the transaction. Even the barbarous Indians were struck with wonder at the infatuation of the English colonists on this occasion, and drew disadvantageous comparisons between them and the French, among whom, as they remarked, “the Great Spirit sends no witches.”
To this, it should be noted that the congregation of Salem forced Mr. Parvis, whose family was at the center of the disturbance and who they claimed was the main instigator, to leave his community. Many of the accused who initially confessed to the acts of witchcraft later recanted, stating that their confessions were made under the threat of torture, coercion, or other circumstances that removed their free will. Several judges and jurors involved in sentencing those who were executed expressed regret for their hasty decisions to convict these unfortunate individuals. One judge, a significant figure in the colony, commemorated the anniversary of the first execution as a day of fasting and reflection for his role in the events for the rest of his life. Even the savage Indians were amazed by the foolishness of the English colonists during this time and made unfavorable comparisons between them and the French, noting that among the French, “the Great Spirit sends no witches.”
The system of witchcraft, as believed in Scotland, must next claim our attention, as it is different in some respects from that of England, and subsisted to a later period, and was prosecuted with much more severity.
The system of witchcraft, as believed in Scotland, must next claim our attention, as it is different in some respects from that of England, and persisted for a longer time, and was prosecuted with much more severity.
LETTER IX.
Scottish Trials—Earl of Mar—Lady Glammis—William Barton—Witches of Auldearne—Their Rites and Charms—Their Transformation into Hares—Satan’s Severity towards them—Their Crimes—Sir George Mackenzie’s Opinion of Witchcraft—Instances of Confessions made by the Accused, in despair, and to avoid future annoyance and persecution—Examination by Pricking—The Mode of Judicial Procedure against Witches, and nature of the Evidence admissible, opened a door to Accusers, and left the Accused no chance of escape—The Superstition of the Scottish Clergy in King James VI.‘s time led them, like their Sovereign, to encourage Witch-Prosecutions—Case of Bessie Graham—Supposed Conspiracy to Shipwreck James in his Voyage to Denmark—Meetings of the Witches, and Rites performed to accomplish their purpose—Trial of Margaret Barclay in 1618—Case of Major Weir—Sir John Clerk among the first who declined acting as Commissioner on the Trial of a Witch—Paisley and Pittenweem Witches—A Prosecution in Caithness prevented by the Interference of the King’s Advocate in 1718—The Last Sentence of Death for Witchcraft pronounced in Scotland in 1722—Remains of the Witch Superstition—Case of supposed Witchcraft, related from the Author’s own knowledge, which took place so late as 1800.
Scottish Trials—Earl of Mar—Lady Glammis—William Barton—Witches of Auldearne—Their Rites and Charms—Their Transformation into Hares—Satan’s Severity towards them—Their Crimes—Sir George Mackenzie’s Opinion on Witchcraft—Instances of Confessions made by the Accused, out of despair, and to avoid further annoyance and persecution—Examination by Pricking—The Process of Judicial Procedure against Witches, and the nature of the Evidence allowed, created an opportunity for Accusers and left the Accused no chance of escape—The Superstition of the Scottish Clergy during King James VI.’s reign led them, like their Sovereign, to promote Witch-Prosecutions—Case of Bessie Graham—Alleged Conspiracy to Shipwreck James during his Voyage to Denmark—Meetings of the Witches, and Rites performed to achieve their goals—Trial of Margaret Barclay in 1618—Case of Major Weir—Sir John Clerk was one of the first to refuse to act as Commissioner during the Trial of a Witch—Paisley and Pittenweem Witches—A Prosecution in Caithness stopped by the Interference of the King’s Advocate in 1718—The Last Death Sentence for Witchcraft pronounced in Scotland in 1722—Remnants of Witch Superstition—Case of alleged Witchcraft, shared from the Author’s personal knowledge, which occurred as recently as 1800.
For many years the Scottish nation had been remarkable for a credulous belief in witchcraft, and repeated examples were supplied by the annals of sanguinary executions on this sad accusation. Our acquaintance with the slender foundation on which Boetius and Buchanan reared the early part of their histories may greatly incline us to doubt whether a king named Duffus ever reigned in Scotland, and, still more, whether he died by the agency of a gang of witches, who inflicted torments upon an image made in his name, for the sake of compassing his death. In the tale of Macbeth, which is another early instance of Demonology in Scottish history, the weird-sisters, who were the original prophetesses, appeared to the usurper in a dream, and are described as volæ, or sibyls, rather than as witches, though Shakspeare has stamped the latter character indelibly upon them.
For many years, the Scottish nation was known for its gullible belief in witchcraft, with numerous examples of brutal executions based on this tragic accusation. Our familiarity with the weak foundations on which Boetius and Buchanan built the early parts of their histories makes us doubt whether a king named Duffus ever actually ruled in Scotland, or even if he died because of a group of witches who tortured an image made in his name to bring about his death. In the story of Macbeth, which is another early example of demonology in Scottish history, the weird sisters—originally seen as prophetesses—appeared to the usurper in a dream and are described as volæ or sibyls, rather than witches, though Shakespeare has permanently associated them with the latter role.
One of the earliest real cases of importance founded upon witchcraft was, like those of the Duchess of Gloucester and others in the sister country, mingled with an accusation of a political nature, which, rather than the sorcery, brought the culprits to their fate. The Earl of Mar, brother of James III. of Scotland, fell under the king’s suspicion for consulting with witches and sorcerers how to shorten the king’s days. On such a charge, very inexplicitly stated, the unhappy Mar was bled to death in his own lodgings without either trial or conviction; immediately after which catastrophe twelve women of obscure rank and three or four wizards, or warlocks, as they were termed, were burnt at Edinburgh, to give a colour to the Earl’s guilt.
One of the earliest significant cases involving witchcraft was, similar to those of the Duchess of Gloucester and others in the neighboring country, mixed with a political accusation, which, rather than the actual sorcery, led to the downfall of the accused. The Earl of Mar, brother of James III of Scotland, caught the king's suspicion for consulting witches and sorcerers on how to shorten the king's life. Based on this vaguely stated charge, the unfortunate Mar was bled to death in his own quarters without any trial or conviction; immediately after this tragedy, twelve women of low status and three or four wizards, or warlocks as they were called, were burned in Edinburgh to paint a picture of the Earl's guilt.
In the year 1537 a noble matron fell a victim to a similar charge. This was Janet Douglas, Lady Glammis, who, with her son, her second husband, and several others, stood accused of attempting James’s life by poison, with a view to the restoration of the Douglas family, of which Lady Glammis’s brother, the Earl of Angus, was the head. She died much pitied by the people, who seem to have thought the articles against her forged for the purpose of taking her life, her kindred and very name being so obnoxious to the King.
In 1537, a noblewoman became a victim of a similar accusation. This was Janet Douglas, Lady Glammis, who, along with her son, her second husband, and several others, was accused of trying to poison James in hopes of restoring the Douglas family, led by her brother, the Earl of Angus. She died with much sympathy from the people, who believed the charges against her were fabricated to justify her execution, as her family and even her very name were particularly disliked by the King.
Previous to this lady’s execution there would appear to have been but few prosecuted to death on the score of witchcraft, although the want of the justiciary records of that period leaves us in uncertainty. But in the end of the fifteenth and beginning of the sixteenth centuries, when such charges grew general over Europe, cases of the kind occurred very often in Scotland, and, as we have already noticed, were sometimes of a peculiar character. There is, indeed, a certain monotony in most tales of the kind. The vassals are usually induced to sell themselves at a small price to the Author of Ill, who, having commonly to do with women, drives a very hard bargain. On the contrary, when he was pleased to enact the female on a similar occasion, he brought his gallant, one William Barton, a fortune of no less than fifteen pounds, which, even supposing it to have been the Scottish denomination of coin, was a very liberal endowment compared with his niggardly conduct towards the fair sex on such an occasion. Neither did he pass false coin on this occasion, but, on the contrary, generously gave Burton a merk, to keep the fifteen pounds whole. In observing on Satan’s conduct in this matter, Master George Sinclair observes that it is fortunate the Enemy is but seldom permitted to bribe so high (as £15 Scots); for were this the case, he might find few men or women capable of resisting his munificence. I look upon this as one of the most severe reflections on our forefathers’ poverty which is extant.
Before this woman's execution, it seems there were only a few people prosecuted to death for witchcraft, but the lack of judicial records from that time leaves us uncertain. However, by the end of the fifteenth century and the start of the sixteenth, when such charges became widespread across Europe, cases of this nature frequently occurred in Scotland and, as we've already noted, sometimes had unique characteristics. Many of these stories tend to be quite similar. The vassals are typically tempted to sell their souls for a small price to the Author of Evil, who generally deals with women and makes a very tough bargain. In contrast, when he decided to embody a woman in a similar situation, he offered his suitor, William Barton, an impressive sum of fifteen pounds, which, even if it were the Scottish currency, was a generous gift compared to his stingy treatment of women in similar cases. He didn't pass off counterfeit money this time; instead, he kindly gave Burton a merk to preserve the entire fifteen pounds. Commenting on Satan’s actions in this regard, Master George Sinclair notes that it's fortunate the Enemy is rarely allowed to bribe so much (£15 Scots); if that were the case, he might find few men or women able to resist his generosity. I consider this one of the harshest comments on our ancestors’ poverty that exists.
In many of the Scottish witches’ trials, as to the description of Satan’s Domdaniel, and the Sabbath which he there celebrates, the northern superstition agrees with that of England. But some of the confessions depart from the monotony of repetition, and add some more fanciful circumstances than occur in the general case. Isobel Gowdie’s confession, already mentioned, is extremely minute, and some part of it at least may be quoted, as there are other passages not very edifying. The witches of Auldearne, according to this penitent, were so numerous, that they were told off into squads, or covines, as they were termed, to each of which were appointed two officers. One of these was called the Maiden of the Covine, and was usually, like Tam o’ Shanter’s Nannie, a girl of personal attractions, whom Satan placed beside himself, and treated with particular attention, which greatly provoked the spite of the old hags, who felt themselves insulted by the preference.65 When assembled, they dug up graves, and possessed themselves of the carcases (of unchristened infants in particular), whose joints and members they used in their magic unguents and salves. When they desired to secure for their own use the crop of some neighbour, they made a pretence of ploughing it with a yoke of paddocks. These foul creatures drew the plough, which was held by the devil himself. The plough-harness and soams were of quicken grass, the sock and coulter were made out of a riglen’s horn, and the covine attended on the operation, praying the devil to transfer to them the fruit of the ground so traversed, and leave the proprietors nothing but thistles and briars. The witches’ sports, with their elfin archery, I have already noticed (page 136). They entered the house of the Earl of Murray himself, and such other mansions as were not fenced against them by vigil and prayer, and feasted on the provisions they found there.
In many of the Scottish witch trials, the description of Satan’s Domdaniel and the Sabbath he celebrated aligns with the superstitions found in England. However, some of the confessions vary from the usual repetitive accounts and include more imaginative details than what is typically reported. Isobel Gowdie’s confession, already mentioned, is very detailed, and parts of it can be quoted, as some other passages are less than uplifting. According to this penitent, the witches of Auldearne were so numerous that they were divided into groups, or covines, each led by two officers. One of these was called the Maiden of the Covine and was usually, like Tam o’ Shanter’s Nannie, an attractive girl whom Satan favored and treated with special attention, which annoyed the older witches who felt slighted by this preference. When they gathered, they dug up graves and took the bodies (especially those of unbaptized infants), using their joints and limbs in their magical potions and balms. When they wanted to claim a neighbor's crop for themselves, they pretended to plow it with a team of toads. These grotesque creatures pulled the plow, which was held by the devil himself. The plow harness and straps were made from quicken grass, and the plow blade and share were crafted from a deer's horn, while the covine assisted with the process, praying to the devil to transfer the bounty of the land they had disturbed to them, leaving the owners with nothing but thistles and briars. I've already mentioned the witches’ games with their fairy archery (page 136). They entered the house of the Earl of Murray himself and other homes that hadn’t been protected by vigilance and prayer, feasting on the provisions they found inside.
65 (return)
[ This word Covine seems to
signify a subdivision or squad. The tree near the front of an ancient
castle was called the Covine tree, probably because the lord
received his company there.
65 (return)
[ The word Covine seems to refer to a subgroup or team. The tree near the entrance of an old castle was known as the Covine tree, likely because the lord gathered his group there.
“He is lord of the hunting horn, And king of the Covine tree; He’s well loo’d in the western waters, But best of his ain minnie.”]
“He is the master of the hunting horn, And ruler of the Covine tree; He’s well liked in the western waters, But best by his own mother.”
As these witches were the countrywomen of the weird sisters in Macbeth, the reader may be desirous to hear some of their spells, and of the poetry by which they were accompanied and enforced. They used to hash the flesh of an unchristened child, mixed with that of dogs and sheep, and place it in the house of those whom they devoted to destruction in body or goods, saying or singing—
As these witches were the countrywomen of the weird sisters in Macbeth, the reader may be curious to know some of their spells and the accompanying poetry. They would mix the flesh of an unbaptized child with that of dogs and sheep and place it in the homes of those they intended to ruin in body or property, saying or singing—
“We put this intill this hame, In our lord the Devil’s name; The first hands that handle thee, Burn’d and scalded may they be! We will destroy houses and hald, With the sheep and nolt into the fauld; And little sall come to the fore, Of all the rest of the little store!”
“We put this into this home, In our lord the Devil’s name; The first hands that touch you, May they be burned and scalded! We will destroy houses and shelters, With the sheep and cattle into the fold; And little will come to the surface, Of all the rest of the little stock!”
Metamorphoses were, according to Isobel, very common among them, and the forms of crows, cats, hares, and other animals, were on such occasions assumed. In the hare shape Isobel herself had a bad adventure. She had been sent by the devil to Auldearne in that favourite disguise, with some message to her neighbours, but had the misfortune to meet Peter Papley of Killhill’s servants going to labour, having his hounds with them. The hounds sprung on the disguised witch, “and I,” says Isobel, “run a very long time, but being hard pressed, was forced to take to my own house, the door being open, and there took refuge behind a chest.” But the hounds came in and took the other side of the chest, so that Isobel only escaped by getting into another house, and gaining time to say the disenchanting rhyme:—
According to Isobel, transformations were pretty common among them, and they often took on forms like crows, cats, hares, and other animals. Isobel herself had a bad experience while in hare form. She had been sent by the devil to Auldearne in that favorite disguise with a message for her neighbors, but unfortunately ran into Peter Papley of Killhill’s servants who were out working with their hounds. The hounds jumped on the disguised witch, and Isobel said, “I ran for a long time, but being chased hard, I had to make a break for my own house, the door being open, and there I took refuge behind a chest.” But the hounds came in and took the other side of the chest, so Isobel only managed to escape by getting into another house, giving her time to recite the disenchanting rhyme:—
“Hare, hare, God send thee care! I am in a hare’s likeness now; But I shall be a woman even now— Hare, hare, God send thee care!”
“Hare, hare, may God take care of you! I’m like a hare right now; But I’ll be a woman again soon— Hare, hare, may God take care of you!”
Such accidents, she said, were not uncommon, and the witches were sometimes bitten by the dogs, of which the marks remained after their restoration to human shape. But none had been killed on such occasions.
Such incidents, she said, weren't unusual, and the witches were sometimes bitten by the dogs, leaving marks even after they returned to their human form. But none had died in those cases.
The ceremonial of the Sabbath meetings was very strict. The Foul Fiend was very rigid in exacting the most ceremonious attention from his votaries, and the title of Lord when addressed by them. Sometimes, however, the weird sisters, when whispering amongst themselves, irreverently spoke of their sovereign by the name of Black John; upon such occasions the Fiend rushed on them like a schoolmaster who surprises his pupils in delict, and beat and buffeted them without mercy or discretion, saying, “I ken weel eneugh what you are saying of me.” Then might be seen the various tempers of those whom he commanded. Alexander Elder, in Earlseat, often fell under his lord’s displeasure for neglect of duty, and, being weak and simple, could never defend himself save with tears, cries, and entreaties for mercy; but some of the women, according to Isobel Gowdie’s confession, had more of the spirit which animated the old dame of Kellyburn Braes. Margaret Wilson, in Auldearne, would “defend herself finely,” and make her hands save her head, after the old Scottish manner. Bessie Wilson could also speak very crustily with her tongue, and “belled the cat” with the devil stoutly. The others chiefly took refuge in crying “Pity! mercy!” and such like, while Satan kept beating them with wool cards and other sharp scourges, without attending to their entreaties or complaints. There were attendant devils and imps, who served the witches. They were usually distinguished by their liveries, which were sad-dun, grass-green, sea-green, and yellow. The witches were taught to call these imps by names, some of which might belong to humanity, while others had a diabolical sound. These were Robert the Jakis, Saunders the Red Reaver, Thomas the Feary, Swein, an old Scandinavian Duerg probably; the Roaring Lion, Thief of Hell, Wait-upon-Herself, MacKeeler, Robert the Rule, Hendrie Craig, and Rorie. These names, odd and uncouth enough, are better imagined at least than those which Hopkins contrived for the imps which he discovered—such as Pyewacket, Peck-in-the-Crown, Sack-and-Sugar, News, Vinegar-Tom, and Grizell Greedigut, the broad vulgarity of which epithets shows what a flat imagination he brought to support his impudent fictions.
The Sabbath meetings were very formal. The Foul Fiend insisted on strict attention and expected to be called Lord by his followers. However, sometimes the weird sisters, while whispering among themselves, disrespectfully referred to their master as Black John. On those occasions, the Fiend would confront them like a teacher catching students misbehaving, beating and striking them without mercy, declaring, “I know very well what you’re saying about me.” You could see the different reactions among those he controlled. Alexander Elder from Earlseat often faced his lord’s anger for failing to do his duties, and being weak and simple, he could only defend himself with tears, cries, and pleas for mercy. But some of the women, like Isobel Gowdie confessed, had more of the spirit of the old woman of Kellyburn Braes. Margaret Wilson from Auldearne would “defend herself fiercely,” using her hands to protect her head, following the old Scottish way. Bessie Wilson could also speak quite bluntly and faced the devil boldly. The others mostly cried out for “Pity! Mercy!” and similar things while Satan continued to strike them with wool cards and other sharp objects, ignoring their pleas and complaints. There were also devils and imps who served the witches, usually recognized by their gloomy colors like sad-dun, grass-green, sea-green, and yellow. The witches were taught to call these imps by names, some of which sounded human while others were more sinister. These included Robert the Jakis, Saunders the Red Reaver, Thomas the Feary, Swein, possibly an old Scandinavian Duerg, the Roaring Lion, Thief of Hell, Wait-upon-Herself, MacKeeler, Robert the Rule, Hendrie Craig, and Rorie. These odd and strange names are at least more imaginative than those that Hopkins came up with for the imps he discovered—like Pyewacket, Peck-in-the-Crown, Sack-and-Sugar, News, Vinegar-Tom, and Grizell Greedigut, showing the lack of creativity in his shameless fabrications.
The devil, who commanded the fair sisterhood, being fond of mimicking the forms of the Christian church, used to rebaptize the witches with their blood, and in his own great name. The proud-stomached Margaret Wilson, who scorned to take a blow unrepaid, even from Satan himself, was called Pickle-nearest-the-Wind; her compeer, Bessie Wilson, was Throw-the-Cornyard; Elspet Nishe’s was Bessie Bald; Bessie Hay’s nickname was Able-and-Stout; and Jane Mairten, the Maiden of the Covine, was called Ower-the-Dike-with-it.
The devil, who led the group of fair women, enjoyed imitating the Christian church, and would rebaptize the witches with their blood, using his own powerful name. Margaret Wilson, who was too proud to take a hit without retaliation, even from Satan himself, was nicknamed Pickle-nearest-the-Wind; her companion, Bessie Wilson, was called Throw-the-Cornyard; Elspet Nishe was known as Bessie Bald; Bessie Hay went by Able-and-Stout; and Jane Mairten, the Maiden of the Covine, was referred to as Ower-the-Dike-with-it.
Isobel took upon herself, and imputed to her sisters, as already mentioned, the death of sundry persons shot with elf-arrows, because they had omitted to bless themselves as the aerial flight of the hags swept past them.66 She had herself the temerity to shoot at the Laird of Park as he was riding through a ford, but missed him through the influence of the running stream, perhaps, for which she thanks God in her confession; and adds, that at the time she received a great cuff from Bessie Hay for her awkwardness. They devoted the male children of this gentleman (of the well-known family of Gordon of Park, I presume) to wasting illness, by the following lines, placing at the same time in the fire figures composed of clay mixed with paste, to represent the object:—
Isobel took it upon herself and blamed her sisters, as mentioned earlier, for the deaths of several people shot with elf-arrows because they forgot to bless themselves as the witches flew past them. 66 She even had the audacity to shoot at the Laird of Park while he was crossing a stream but missed him, probably due to the flowing water, for which she thanks God in her confession. She adds that at that time, she got a good slap from Bessie Hay for her clumsiness. They condemned the sons of this gentleman (from the well-known Gordon family of Park, I believe) to a wasting illness by using the following lines while simultaneously placing figures made of clay mixed with paste into the fire to represent the target:—
“We put this water amongst this meal, For long dwining67 and ill heal; We put it in into the fire, To burn them up stook and stour.68 That they be burned with our will, Like any stikkle69 in a kiln.”
“We add this water to the meal, For a long time lingering and being sick; We put it into the fire, To burn them up with smoke and ash. That they be burned as we want, Like any stick in a kiln.”
66 (return)
[ See p. 136.]
66 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[See page 136.]
67 (return)
[ Pining.]
67 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[ Longing.]
68 (return)
[ We should read perhaps,
“limb and lire.”]
68 (return)
[ We might consider reading it as, “limb and lire.”]
69 (return)
[ Stubble.]
69 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[ Stubble. ]
Such was the singular confession of Isobel Gowdie, made voluntarily, it would seem, and without compulsion of any kind, judicially authenticated by the subscription of the notary, clergymen, and gentlemen present; adhered to after their separate diets, as they are called, of examination, and containing no variety or contradiction in its details. Whatever might be her state of mind in other respects, she seems to have been perfectly conscious of the perilous consequence of her disclosures to her own person. “I do not deserve,” says she, “to be seated here at ease and unharmed, but rather to be stretched on an iron rack: nor can my crimes be atoned for, were I to be drawn asunder by wild horses.”
This was the unique confession of Isobel Gowdie, which she made voluntarily, it seems, without any pressure or coercion. It was officially recorded with the signatures of the notary, clergy, and gentlemen who were present; it remained consistent after their individual interviews, which they referred to as diets, and there were no discrepancies or contradictions in what she said. No matter what her mental state was in other respects, she appeared to fully understand the dangerous consequences her revelations could have for her. “I do not deserve,” she said, “to sit here comfortably and unscathed, but rather to be stretched on an iron rack: nor can my crimes be made right, even if I were torn apart by wild horses.”
It only remains to suppose that this wretched creature was under the dominion of some peculiar species of lunacy, to which a full perusal of her confession might perhaps guide a medical person of judgment and experience. Her case is interesting, as throwing upon the rites and ceremonies of the Scottish witches a light which we seek in vain elsewhere.
It seems we can only assume that this unfortunate person was suffering from some kind of unique madness, which a thorough reading of her confession might help a knowledgeable medical professional understand. Her situation is intriguing because it sheds light on the rituals and ceremonies of Scottish witches in a way we can't find anywhere else.
Other unfortunate persons were betrayed to their own reproof by other means than the derangement of mind which seems to have operated on Isobel Gowdie. Some, as we have seen, endeavoured to escape from the charge of witchcraft by admitting an intercourse with the fairy people; an excuse which was never admitted as relevant. Others were subjected to cruel tortures, by which our ancestors thought the guilty might be brought to confession, but which far more frequently compelled the innocent to bear evidence against themselves. On this subject the celebrated Sir George Mackenzie, “that noble wit of Scotland,” as he is termed by Dryden, has some most judicious reflections, which we shall endeavour to abstract as the result of the experience of one who, in his capacity of Lord Advocate, had often occasion to conduct witch-trials, and who, not doubting the existence of the crime, was of opinion that, on account of its very horror, it required the clearest and most strict probation.
Other unfortunate people were betrayed by their own admissions through means other than the madness that seems to have affected Isobel Gowdie. Some, as we've seen, tried to escape the accusation of witchcraft by claiming to have had contact with fairies; an excuse that was never considered valid. Others endured brutal torture, which our ancestors believed could force the guilty to confess but more often made the innocent incriminate themselves. On this topic, the well-known Sir George Mackenzie, “that noble wit of Scotland,” as Dryden called him, has some very insightful thoughts, which we will summarize as the opinion of someone who, as Lord Advocate, frequently had to oversee witch trials and, while not doubting the existence of the crime, believed that, because of its very terrifying nature, it required the clearest and most rigorous proof.
He first insists on the great improbability of the fiend, without riches to bestow, and avowedly subjected to a higher power, being able to enlist such numbers of recruits, and the little advantage which he himself would gain by doing so. But, 2dly, says Mackenzie, “the persons ordinarily accused of this crime are poor ignorant men, or else women, who understand not the nature of what they are accused of; and many mistake their own fears and apprehensions for witchcraft, of which I shall give two instances. One, of a poor weaver who, after he had confessed witchcraft, being asked how he saw the devil, made answer, ‘Like flies dancing about the candle.’ Another, of a woman, who asked seriously, when she was accused, if a woman might be a witch and not know it? And it is dangerous that persons, of all others the most simple, should be tried for a crime of all others the most mysterious. 3rdly, These poor creatures, when they are defamed, become so confounded with fear and the close prison in which they are kept, and so starved for want of meat and drink, either of which wants is enough to disarm the strongest reason, that hardly wiser and more serious people than they would escape distraction; and when men are confounded with fear and apprehension, they will imagine things the most ridiculous and absurd” of which instances are given. 4thly, “Most of these poor creatures are tortured by their keepers, who, being persuaded they do God good service, think it their duty to vex and torment poor prisoners delivered up to them as rebels to heaven and enemies to men; and I know” (continues Sir George), “ex certissima scientia, that most of all that ever were taken were tormented in this manner, and this usage was the ground of all their confession; and albeit the poor miscreants cannot prove this usage, the actors being the only witnesses, yet the judge should be jealous of it, as that which did at first elicit the confession, and for fear of which they dare not retract it.” 5thly, This learned author gives us an instance how these unfortunate creatures might be reduced to confession by the very infamy which the accusation cast upon them, and which was sure to follow, condemning them for life to a state of necessity, misery, and suspicion, such as any person of reputation would willingly exchange for a short death, however painful.
He first emphasizes the unlikely scenario of the devil, with no wealth to offer and clearly under a higher authority, being able to recruit so many followers, and the minimal benefit he would gain from it. Secondly, Mackenzie notes, "the people usually accused of this crime are poor, ignorant men, or women who don’t understand the nature of the accusations against them; many confuse their own fears and anxieties for witchcraft, and I will provide two examples. One is a poor weaver who, after confessing to witchcraft, was asked how he saw the devil and replied, 'Like flies dancing around a candle.' The other is a woman who seriously asked when accused if a woman could be a witch and not know it? It’s concerning that the most simple-minded individuals are put on trial for a crime that is so mysterious. Thirdly, these poor individuals, when slandered, become so overwhelmed with fear and the confinement of their prison, and are so starved for food and drink, either of which is enough to undermine even the strongest reasoning, that hardly anyone wiser and more serious than they would avoid madness; and when people are overwhelmed with fear and anxiety, they will imagine the most ridiculous and absurd things, examples of which can be found. Fourthly, "Most of these unfortunate souls are tortured by their jailers, who, believing they are doing God's work, see it as their duty to harass and torment poor prisoners who they see as rebels against heaven and enemies of humanity; and I know" (continues Sir George), "ex certissima scientia, that most who were ever captured were tormented in this way, and this mistreatment was the source of all their confessions; and although the poor wretches cannot prove this abuse, since the perpetrators are the only witnesses, the judge should be wary of it, as it was what initially prompted the confession, and they fear the repercussions of taking it back." Fifthly, this scholarly author gives an example of how these unfortunate individuals might be driven to confess simply due to the disgrace attached to the accusation, which would ensure a lifetime of necessity, misery, and suspicion, a state that any person of good standing would gladly trade for a brief death, no matter how painful.
“I went when I was a justice-deput to examine some women who had confessed judicially, and one of them, who was a silly creature, told me under secresie, that she had not confest because she was guilty, but being a poor creature who wrought for her meat, and being defamed for a witch, she knew she would starve, for no person thereafter would either give her meat or lodging, and that all men would beat her and hound dogs at her, and that therefore she desired to be out of the world; whereupon she wept most bitterly, and upon her knees called God to witness to what she said. Another told me that she was afraid the devil would challenge a right to her, after she was said to be his servant, and would haunt her, as the minister said, when he was desiring her to confess, and therefore she desired to die. And really ministers are oft times indiscreet in their zeal to have poor creatures to confess in this; and I recommend to judges that the wisest ministers should be sent to them, and those who are sent should be cautious in this particular."70
“I went when I was a deputy judge to interview some women who had confessed in court, and one of them, who was quite simple, told me in confidence that she hadn’t confessed because she was guilty but because she was poor and needed to work for her food. Being accused of being a witch, she knew she would starve, as no one would give her food or a place to stay afterward. All men would beat her and set dogs on her, and that’s why she wanted to be out of this world. She wept bitterly and, on her knees, called God to witness what she said. Another woman told me she was afraid the devil would lay claim to her after she was labeled his servant and would haunt her, just as the minister said when he was trying to get her to confess; because of this, she wished to die. Honestly, ministers can sometimes be reckless in their eagerness to get these poor souls to confess, and I suggest that judges make sure the most sensible ministers are the ones who come to speak with them, and that those who do come should be careful in this regard.”70
As a corollary to this affecting story, I may quote the case of a woman in Lauder jail, who lay there with other females on a charge of witchcraft. Her companions in prison were adjudged to die, and she too had, by a confession as full as theirs, given herself up as guilty. She therefore sent for the minister of the town, and entreated to be put to death with the others who had been appointed to suffer upon the next Monday. The clergyman, however, as well as others, had adopted a strong persuasion that this confession was made up in the pride of her heart, for the destruction of her own life, and had no foundation in truth. We give the result in the minister’s words:—
As a follow-up to this touching story, I can mention the case of a woman in Lauder jail, where she was held with other women on charges of witchcraft. Her fellow inmates were sentenced to death, and she had also confessed, just like they did, admitting her guilt. Therefore, she asked the town's minister to be executed along with the others who were set to die the following Monday. However, the clergyman, along with others, strongly believed her confession was fueled by her pride, aimed at ensuring her own death, and had no basis in reality. We present the outcome in the minister’s words:—
“Therefore much pains was taken on her by ministers and others on Saturday, Sunday, and Monday morning, that she might resile from that confession which was suspected to be but a temptation of the devil, to destroy both her soul and body; yea, it was charged home upon her by the ministers, that there was just ground of jealousy that her confession was not sincere, and she was charged before the Lord to declare the truth, and not to take her blood upon her own head. Yet she stiffly adhered to what she had said, and cried always to be put away with the rest. Whereupon, on Monday morning, being called before the judges, and confessing before them what she had said, she was found guilty and condemned to die with the rest that same day. Being carried forth to the place of execution, she remained silent during the first, second, and third prayer, and then perceiving that there remained no more but to rise and go to the stake, she lifted up her body, and with a loud voice cried out, ‘Now all you that see me this day, know that I am now to die as a witch by my own confession, and I free all men, especially the ministers and magistrates, of the guilt of my blood. I take it wholly upon myself—my blood be upon my own head; and as I must make answer to the God of Heaven presently, I declare I am as free of witchcraft as any child; but being delated by a malicious woman, and put in prison under the name of a witch, disowned by my husband and friends, and seeing no ground of hope of my coming out of prison, or ever coming in credit again, through the temptation of the devil I made up that confession on purpose to destroy my own life, being weary of it, and choosing rather to die than live;’—and so died. Which lamentable story, as it did then astonish all the spectators, none of which could restrain themselves from tears; so it may be to all a demonstration of Satan’s subtlety, whose design is still to destroy all, partly by tempting many to presumption, and some others to despair. These things to be of truth, are attested by an eye and ear witness who is yet alive, a faithful minister of the gospel."71 It is strange the inference does not seem to have been deduced, that as one woman out of very despair renounced her own life, the same might have been the case in many other instances, wherein the confessions of the accused constituted the principal if not sole evidence of the guilt.
“Much effort was put into her by ministers and others on Saturday, Sunday, and Monday morning, trying to get her to take back her confession, which they suspected was just a temptation of the devil meant to ruin both her soul and body. The ministers directly confronted her, claiming there were valid reasons to doubt her sincerity, and urged her before the Lord to tell the truth, warning her not to take her blood upon her own head. Still, she firmly stuck to what she had said and always asked to be put away with the others. So, on Monday morning, when she was called before the judges and confessed again, she was found guilty and condemned to die with the rest that very day. As she was taken to the execution site, she stayed silent during the first, second, and third prayers. However, when she realized there was nothing left but to get up and go to the stake, she raised her body and shouted, ‘Now all of you who see me today, know that I am about to die as a witch because of my own confession, and I absolve all men, especially the ministers and magistrates, of any guilt regarding my blood. I take full responsibility—my blood is on my own head; and as I must answer to the God of Heaven right now, I declare that I am as innocent of witchcraft as any child. But because I was accused by a spiteful woman and imprisoned under the label of a witch, abandoned by my husband and friends, and seeing no hope of ever leaving prison or regaining my reputation, I made that confession out of temptation from the devil, intending to end my own life because I was weary of it and preferred to die rather than live;’—and with that, she died. This tragic story astonished all who witnessed it, and none could hold back their tears; it serves as a demonstration of Satan’s cunning, whose aim is still to destroy everyone, sometimes by tempting many to be overly confident, and other times pushing some to despair. These truths are confirmed by a living eyewitness, a faithful minister of the gospel."71 It is strange that no one seems to have concluded that, just as one woman out of pure despair renounced her own life, the same might have happened in many other cases, where the confessions of the accused were the primary, if not the only, evidence of guilt.
71 (return)
[ Sinclair’s “Satan’s
Invisible World Discovered,” p. 43.]
71 (return)
[ Sinclair’s “Satan’s Invisible World Discovered,” p. 43.]
One celebrated mode of detecting witches and torturing them at the same time, to draw forth confession, was by running pins into their body, on pretence of discovering the devil’s stigma, or mark, which was said to be inflicted by him upon all his vassals, and to be insensible to pain. This species of search, the practice of the infamous Hopkins, was in Scotland reduced to a trade; and the young witchfinder was allowed to torture the accused party, as if in exercise of a lawful calling, although Sir George Mackenzie stigmatises it as a horrid imposture. I observe in the Collections of Mr. Pitcairn, that at the trial of Janet Peaston of Dalkeith the magistrates and ministers of that market town caused John Kincaid of Tranent, the common pricker, to exercise his craft upon her, “who found two marks of what he called the devil’s making, and which appeared indeed to be so, for she could not feel the pin when it was put into either of the said marks, nor did they (the marks) bleed when they were taken out again; and when she was asked where she thought the pins were put in, she pointed to a part of her body distant from the real place. They were pins of three inches in length.”
One infamous way of detecting witches and torturing them at the same time to get confessions was by sticking pins into their bodies, pretending to look for the devil’s mark, which was believed to be given by him to all his followers and was said to be insensitive to pain. This type of examination, practiced by the notorious Hopkins, had become a trade in Scotland; and the young witchfinder was allowed to torture the accused as if it were a legitimate profession, even though Sir George Mackenzie condemned it as a terrible deception. I see in the Collections of Mr. Pitcairn that during the trial of Janet Peaston from Dalkeith, the magistrates and ministers of that market town had John Kincaid from Tranent, the common pricker, use his skills on her, “who found two marks of what he called the devil’s doing, which did indeed seem to be so, because she couldn’t feel the pin when it was inserted into either of those marks, nor did they (the marks) bleed when the pins were taken out; and when she was asked where she thought the pins were inserted, she pointed to a part of her body far from the actual location. They were pins three inches long.”
Besides the fact that the persons of old people especially sometimes contain spots void of sensibility, there is also room to believe that the professed prickers used a pin the point or lower part of which was, on being pressed down, sheathed in the upper, which was hollow for the purpose, and that which appeared to enter the body did not pierce it at all. But, were it worth while to dwell on a subject so ridiculous, we might recollect that in so terrible an agony of shame as is likely to convulse a human being under such a trial, and such personal insults, the blood is apt to return to the heart, and a slight wound, as with a pin, may be inflicted without being followed by blood. In the latter end of the seventeenth century this childish, indecent, and brutal practice began to be called by its right name. Fountainhall has recorded that in 1678 the Privy Council received the complaint of a poor woman who had been abused by a country magistrate and one of those impostors called prickers. They expressed high displeasure against the presumption of the parties complained against, and treated the pricker as a common cheat.72
Besides the fact that older people sometimes have spots that lack feeling, there's also reason to believe that the so-called prickers used a pin where the tip or lower part of it was designed to retract back into the upper part, which was hollow for this purpose, so that what looked like it was piercing the body didn’t actually break the skin at all. However, if it were worth spending time on such a ridiculous subject, we might remember that in a terrible moment of shame like that which can shake a person during such an ordeal and face such personal insults, blood tends to rush back to the heart, and a minor injury, like that from a pin, can occur without bleeding. By the late seventeenth century, this childish, disgraceful, and brutal practice started being referred to by its proper name. Fountainhall recorded that in 1678 the Privy Council received a complaint from a poor woman who had been mistreated by a local magistrate and one of those frauds known as prickers. They expressed strong disapproval of the arrogance of those being complained about and regarded the pricker as a common con artist.72
72 (return)
[ Fountainhall’s
“Decisions,” vol. i. p. 15.]
72 (return)
[ Fountainhall’s
“Decisions,” vol. i. p. 15.]
From this and other instances it appears that the predominance of the superstition of witchcraft, and the proneness to persecute those accused of such practices in Scotland, were increased by the too great readiness of subordinate judges to interfere in matters which were, in fact, beyond their jurisdiction. The Supreme Court of Justiciary was that in which the cause properly and exclusively ought to have been tried. But, in practice, each inferior judge in the country, the pettiest bailie in the most trifling burgh, the smallest and most ignorant baron of a rude territory, took it on him to arrest, imprison, and examine, in which examinations, as we have already seen, the accused suffered the grossest injustice. The copies of these examinations, made up of extorted confessions, or the evidence of inhabile witnesses, were all that were transmitted to the Privy Council, who were to direct the future mode of procedure. Thus no creature was secure against the malice or folly of some defamatory accusation, if there was a timid or superstitious judge, though of the meanest denomination, to be found within the district.
From this and other examples, it seems that the intensity of the witchcraft superstition and the tendency to persecute those accused of such practices in Scotland were fueled by the excessive eagerness of lower judges to get involved in matters that were actually outside their authority. The Supreme Court of Justiciary was the proper place for these cases to be tried. However, in reality, every lower judge in the country, even the smallest bailiff in the most insignificant town, or the least knowledgeable lord in a rough area, took it upon themselves to arrest, imprison, and interrogate. In these interrogations, as we've already seen, the accused faced serious injustices. The records of these interrogations, filled with coerced confessions or the testimony of unreliable witnesses, were all that got sent to the Privy Council, who were supposed to decide on the next steps. Thus, no one was safe from the malice or stupidity of a false accusation if there was a fearful or superstitious judge, no matter how lowly, in the area.
But, secondly, it was the course of the Privy Council to appoint commissions of the gentlemen of the country, and particularly of the clergymen, though not likely, from their education, to be freed from general prejudice, and peculiarly liable to be affected by the clamour of the neighbourhood againt the delinquent. Now, as it is well known that such a commission could not be granted in a case of murder in the county where the crime was charged, there seems no good reason why the trial of witches, so liable to excite the passions, should not have been uniformly tried by a court whose rank and condition secured them from the suspicion of partiality. But our ancestors arranged it otherwise, and it was the consequence that such commissioners very seldom, by acquitting the persons brought before them, lost an opportunity of destroying a witch.
But, secondly, it was standard practice for the Privy Council to appoint commissions made up of local gentlemen, especially clergymen, who, due to their education, were unlikely to be free from general biases and were especially prone to being swayed by the neighborhood's outcry against the accused. Now, since it’s well known that such a commission couldn’t be granted in a murder case in the county where the crime occurred, there doesn’t seem to be a good reason why witch trials, which were so likely to stir up emotions, shouldn’t have been consistently overseen by a court in a position that protected them from accusations of bias. But our ancestors set it up differently, and as a result, these commissioners very rarely, by acquitting the people brought before them, missed an opportunity to condemn a witch.
Neither must it be forgotten that the proof led in support of the prosecution was of a kind very unusual in jurisprudence. The lawyers admitted as evidence what they called damnum minatum, et malum secutum—some mischief, that is to say, following close upon a threat, or wish of revenge, uttered by the supposed witch, which, though it might be attributed to the most natural course of events, was supposed necessarily to be in consequence of the menaces of the accused.
It should not be overlooked that the evidence presented for the prosecution was quite unusual in legal terms. The lawyers accepted as evidence what they referred to as damnum minatum, et malum secutum—essentially, some harm that occurred right after a threat or vengeful statement made by the alleged witch. Although this harm could be seen as a natural outcome of events, it was assumed to be a direct result of the threats made by the accused.
Sometimes this vague species of evidence was still more loosely adduced, and allegations of danger threatened and mischief ensuing were admitted, though the menaces had not come from the accused party herself. On 10th June, 1661, as John Stewart, one of a party of stout burghers of Dalkeith appointed to guard an old woman called Christian Wilson from that town to Niddrie, was cleaning his gun, he was slyly questioned by Janet Cocke, another confessing witch, who probably saw his courage was not entirely constant, “What would you think if the devil raise a whirlwind, and take her from you on the road to-morrow?” Sure enough, on their journey to Niddrie the party actually were assailed by a sudden gust of wind (not a very uncommon event in that climate), which scarce permitted the valiant guard to keep their feet, while the miserable prisoner was blown into a pool of water, and with difficulty raised again. There is some ground to hope that this extraordinary evidence was not admitted upon the trial.
Sometimes this vague type of evidence was even more loosely presented, and claims of danger and resulting harm were accepted, even though the threats hadn't come from the accused party herself. On June 10, 1661, while John Stewart, one of a group of strong citizens from Dalkeith assigned to escort an old woman named Christian Wilson from that town to Niddrie, was cleaning his gun, he was slyly questioned by Janet Cocke, another confessing witch, who probably noticed his courage was wavering, “What would you think if the devil raised a whirlwind and took her from you on the road tomorrow?” Sure enough, during their journey to Niddrie, the group was actually hit by a sudden gust of wind (which wasn't unusual for that climate), making it hard for the brave guards to stay on their feet, while the unfortunate prisoner was blown into a pool of water and had to be pulled out with difficulty. There is some reason to hope that this extraordinary evidence was not accepted during the trial.
There is a story told of an old wizard, whose real name was Alexander Hunter, though he was more generally known by the nickname of Hatteraick, which it had pleased the devil to confer upon him. The man had for some time adopted the credit of being a conjurer, and curing the diseases of man and beast by spells and charms. One summer’s day, on a green hill-side, the devil appeared to him in shape of a grave “Mediciner,” addressing him thus roundly, “Sandie, you have too long followed my trade without acknowledging me for a master. You must now enlist with me and become my servant, and I will teach you your trade better.” Hatteraick consented to the proposal, and we shall let the Rev. Mr. George Sinclair tell the rest of the tale.
There’s a story about an old wizard named Alexander Hunter, who was more commonly known by the nickname Hatteraick, a name the devil had given him. For a while, he had built a reputation as a conjurer, claiming to cure the ailments of both people and animals through spells and charms. One summer day, while on a green hillside, the devil appeared to him disguised as a serious doctor, and said to him directly, “Sandie, you’ve been practicing my trade for too long without recognizing me as your master. You need to join me and become my servant, and I’ll teach you your trade better.” Hatteraick agreed to the deal, and we’ll let Rev. Mr. George Sinclair share the rest of the story.
“After this he grew very famous through the country for his charming and curing of diseases in men and beasts, and turned a vagrant fellow like a jockie,73 gaining meal, and flesh, and money by his charms, such was the ignorance of many at that time. Whatever house he came to none durst refuse Hatteraick an alms, rather for his ill than his good. One day he came to the yait (gate) of Samuelston, when some friends after dinner were going to horse. A young gentleman, brother to the lady, seeing him, switcht him about the ears, saying—‘You warlock carle, what have you to do here?’ Whereupon the fellow goes away grumbling, and was overheard to say, ‘You shall dear buy this ere it be long.’ This was damnum minatum. The young gentleman conveyed his friends a far way off, and came home that way again, where he supped. After supper, taking his horse and crossing Tyne water to go home, he rides through a shady piece of a haugh, commonly called Allers, and the evening being somewhat dark, he met with some persons there that begat a dreadful consternation in him, which for the most part he would never reveal. This was malum secutum. When he came home the servants observed terror and fear in his countenance. The next day he became distracted, and was bound for several days. His sister, the Lady Samuelston, hearing of it, was heard say, ‘Surely that knave Hatteraick is the cause of his trouble; call for him in all haste.’ When he had come to her, ‘Sandie,’ says she, ‘what is this you have done to my brother William?’ ‘I told him,’ says he, ‘I should make him repent of his striking me at the yait lately.’ She, giving the rogue fair words, and promising him his pockful of meal, with beef and cheese, persuaded the fellow to cure him again. He undertook the business. ‘But I must first,’ says he, ‘have one of his sarks’ (shirts), which was soon gotten. What pranks he played with it cannot be known, but within a short while the gentleman recovered his health. When Hatteraick came to receive his wages he told the lady, ‘Your brother William shall quickly go off the country, but shall never return,’ She, knowing the fellow’s prophecies to hold true, caused the brother to make a disposition to her of all his patrimony, to the defrauding of his younger brother, George. After that this warlock had abused the country for a long time, he was at last apprehended at Dunbar, and brought into Edinburgh, and burnt upon the Castlehill."74
“After this, he became quite famous across the country for his charm and ability to heal both people and animals. He turned into a wandering figure, like a juggler, making a living by his spells, due to the ignorance of many people at that time. Wherever he went, no one dared to refuse Hatteraick a donation, often more out of fear than goodwill. One day, he arrived at the gate of Samuelston, where some friends were setting off on horseback after dinner. A young man, the brother of the lady, saw him and hit him around the ears, saying, ‘You warlock, what are you doing here?’ Hatteraick left grumbling and was overheard saying, ‘You’ll pay dearly for this before long.’ This was damnum minatum. The young man took his friends quite a distance away and returned home that way, where he had dinner. After supper, he saddled his horse and crossed the Tyne River on his way home, riding through a dark, shady area known as Allers, where he encountered some people that filled him with dread, a secret he mostly kept to himself. This was malum secutum. When he got home, the servants noticed fear on his face. The next day, he became disturbed and had to be restrained for several days. His sister, Lady Samuelston, hearing of this, was heard to say, ‘Surely that rogue Hatteraick is the reason for his troubles; get him here quickly.’ When he arrived, she said, ‘Sandie, what have you done to my brother William?’ He replied, ‘I told him I’d make him regret striking me at the gate recently.’ She, using pleasant words and promising him a bag full of food, persuaded him to help her brother. He agreed but said, ‘First, I need one of his shirts,’ which was quickly obtained. What tricks he played with it remain unknown, but soon the gentleman regained his health. When Hatteraick came to collect his payment, he told the lady, ‘Your brother William will soon leave the country and will never come back.’ Knowing that the fellow’s predictions often came true, she had her brother make a will that left his entire inheritance to her, cheating his younger brother George out of it. After Hatteraick had exploited the country for a long time, he was finally captured at Dunbar, brought to Edinburgh, and burned at Castlehill."74
74 (return)
[ Sinclair’s “Satan’s
Invisible World Discovered,” p. 98.]
74 (return)
[ Sinclair’s “Satan’s Invisible World Discovered,” p. 98.]
Now, if Hatteraick was really put to death on such evidence, it is worth while to consider what was its real amount. A hot-tempered swaggering young gentleman horsewhips a beggar of ill fame for loitering about the gate of his sister’s house. The beggar grumbles, as any man would. The young man, riding in the night, and probably in liquor, through a dark shady place, is frightened by, he would not, and probably could not, tell what, and has a fever fit. His sister employs the wizard to take off the spell according to his profession; and here is damnum minatum, et malum secutum, and all legal cause for burning a man to ashes! The vagrant Hatteraick probably knew something of the wild young man which might soon oblige him to leave the country; and the selfish Lady Samuelston, learning the probability of his departure, committed a fraud which ought to have rendered her evidence inadmissible.
Now, if Hatteraick was really executed based on such evidence, it's worth considering what that evidence truly amounted to. A hot-headed, cocky young guy whips a beggar with a bad reputation for hanging around the gate of his sister's house. The beggar complains, as anyone would. The young man, riding through a dark place at night and likely drunk, gets scared by something he couldn’t identify, which causes him to have a seizure. His sister hires the wizard to lift the spell as per his job, and here we have damnum minatum, et malum secutum, and all the legal reason to burn a man to ashes! The homeless Hatteraick probably knew something about the reckless young man that might soon force him to flee the country; and the selfish Lady Samuelston, realizing that he was likely to leave, committed a fraud that should have made her testimony inadmissible.
Besides these particular disadvantages, to which the parties accused of this crime in Scotland were necessarily exposed, both in relation to the judicature by which they were tried and the evidence upon which they were convicted, their situation was rendered intolerable by the detestation in which they were held by all ranks. The gentry hated them because the diseases and death of their relations and children were often imputed to them; the grossly superstitious vulgar abhorred them with still more perfect dread and loathing. And amongst those natural feelings, others of a less pardonable description found means to shelter themselves. In one case, we are informed by Mackenzie, a poor girl was to die for witchcraft, of whom the real crime was that she had attracted too great a share, in the lady’s opinion, of the attention of the laird.
Aside from these specific disadvantages that the accused in Scotland faced—related to the court that tried them and the evidence that led to their conviction—their situation became unbearable due to the hatred directed at them from all social classes. The gentry despised them because illnesses and deaths in their families were often blamed on them; the deeply superstitious common folk feared and loathed them even more. Amidst these natural feelings, less forgivable emotions found refuge. In one case noted by Mackenzie, a poor girl was sentenced to death for witchcraft, but her real "crime" was that she had attracted too much attention from the laird, according to the lady's opinion.
Having thus given some reasons why the prosecutions for witchcraft in Scotland were so numerous and fatal, we return to the general history of the trials recorded from the reign of James V. to the union of the kingdoms. Through the reign of Queen Mary these trials for sorcery became numerous, and the crime was subjected to heavier punishment by the 73rd Act of her 9th Parliament. But when James VI. approached to years of discretion, the extreme anxiety which he displayed to penetrate more deeply into mysteries which others had regarded as a very millstone of obscurity, drew still larger attention to the subject. The sovereign had exhausted his talents of investigation on the subject of witchcraft, and credit was given to all who acted in defence of the opinions of the reigning prince. This natural tendency to comply with the opinions of the sovereign was much augmented by the disposition of the Kirk to the same sentiments. We have already said that these venerable persons entertained, with good faith, the general erroneous belief respecting witchcraft—regarding it indeed as a crime which affected their own order more nearly than others in the state, since, especially called to the service of heaven, they were peculiarly bound to oppose the incursions of Satan. The works which remain behind them show, among better things, an unhesitating belief in what were called by them “special providences;” and this was equalled, at least, by their credulity as to the actual interference of evil spirits in the affairs of this world. They applied these principles of belief to the meanest causes. A horse falling lame was a snare of the devil to keep the good clergyman from preaching; the arrival of a skilful farrier was accounted a special providence to defeat the purpose of Satan. This was, doubtless, in a general sense true, since nothing can happen without the foreknowledge and will of Heaven; but we are authorized to believe that the period of supernatural interference has long passed away, and that the great Creator is content to execute his purposes by the operation of those laws which influence the general course of nature. Our ancient Scottish divines thought otherwise. Surrounded, as they conceived themselves, by the snares and temptations of hell, and relying on the aid of Heaven, they entered into war with the kingdom of Satan, as the crusaders of old invaded the land of Palestine, with the same confidence in the justice of their cause and similar indifference concerning the feelings of those whom they accounted the enemies of God and man. We have already seen that even the conviction that a woman was innocent of the crime of witchcraft did not induce a worthy clergyman to use any effort to withdraw her from the stake; and in the same collection75 there occur some observable passages of God’s providence to a godly minister in giving him “full clearness” concerning Bessie Grahame, suspected of witchcraft. The whole detail is a curious illustration of the spirit of credulity which well-disposed men brought with them to such investigations, and how easily the gravest doubts were removed rather than a witch should be left undetected.
Having outlined some reasons for the high number and fatal consequences of witchcraft prosecutions in Scotland, we now return to the overall history of the trials recorded from the reign of James V. to the union of the kingdoms. During Queen Mary’s reign, these trials for sorcery became frequent, and the punishment for the crime was made harsher by the 73rd Act of her 9th Parliament. However, when James VI. reached maturity, his intense desire to delve deeper into mysteries that others considered too dark attracted even greater attention to the issue. The king had exhausted his investigative talents on witchcraft, and those defending his views gained credibility. This natural tendency to align with the sovereign’s opinions was significantly reinforced by the Kirk’s alignment with the same beliefs. We’ve already noted that these respected figures sincerely held the widespread misconception about witchcraft, viewing it as a crime that affected their own ranks more directly than others in society, as they were especially tasked with serving heaven and were particularly responsible for combatting Satan’s incursions. Their surviving works demonstrate, among other things, an unwavering belief in what they referred to as "special providences," and this belief was matched by their gullibility regarding the actual involvement of evil spirits in worldly affairs. They applied these beliefs to even the most trivial matters. A horse becoming lame was seen as a devilish trap to prevent a good clergyman from preaching, while the arrival of a skilled farrier was interpreted as divine intervention to thwart Satan’s plans. This was generally true since nothing occurs without Heaven’s foreknowledge and will; however, we can reason that the time of supernatural interference has long passed, and that the great Creator is satisfied executing His intentions through the natural laws that govern the world. Our ancient Scottish divines believed otherwise. Surrounded, as they viewed themselves, by the traps and temptations of hell, and relying on divine support, they waged war against Satan’s kingdom, much like the crusaders of old invaded Palestine, with the same confidence in the righteousness of their cause and similar indifference towards the feelings of those they considered enemies of God and humanity. We've already seen that even if a worthy clergyman believed a woman was innocent of witchcraft, he still wouldn't make an effort to save her from execution; and in the same collection75 there are notable examples of God's providence towards a righteous minister, providing him with “full clarity” about Bessie Grahame, who was suspected of witchcraft. This entire account is an interesting illustration of the credulous spirit that well-meaning men brought to these investigations, and how easily serious doubts were dismissed rather than allow a witch to go undetected.
75 (return)
[ “Satan’s Invisible
World,” by Mr. George Sinclair. The author was Professor of Moral
Philosophy in the University of Glasgow, and afterwards minister of
Eastwood, in Renfrewshire.]
75 (return)
[ “Satan’s Invisible World,” by George Sinclair. The author was a Professor of Moral Philosophy at the University of Glasgow and later served as the minister of Eastwood in Renfrewshire.]
Bessie Grahame had been committed, it would seem, under suspicions of no great weight, since the minister, after various conferences, found her defence so successful, that he actually pitied her hard usage, and wished for her delivery from prison, especially as he doubted whether a civil court would send her to an assize, or whether an assize would be disposed to convict her. While the minister was in this doubt, a fellow named Begg was employed as a skilful pricker; by whose authority it is not said, he thrust a great brass pin up to the head in a wart on the woman’s back, which he affirmed to be the devil’s mark. A commission was granted for trial; but still the chief gentlemen in the county refused to act, and the clergyman’s own doubts were far from being removed. This put the worthy man upon a solemn prayer to God, “that if he would find out a way for giving the minister full clearness of her guilt, he would acknowledge it as a singular favour and mercy.” This, according to his idea, was accomplished in the following manner, which he regarded as an answer to his prayer. One evening the clergyman, with Alexander Simpson, the kirk-officer, and his own servant, had visited Bessie in her cell, to urge her to confession, but in vain. As they stood on the stair-head behind the door, they heard the prisoner, whom they had left alone in her place of confinement, discoursing with another person, who used a low and ghostly tone, which the minister instantly recognised as the Foul Fiend’s voice. But for this discovery we should have been of opinion that Bessie Grahame talked to herself, as melancholy and despairing wretches are in the habit of doing. But as Alexander Simpson pretended to understand the sense of what was said within the cell, and the minister himself was pretty sure he heard two voices at the same time, he regarded the overhearing this conversation as the answer of the Deity to his petition, and thenceforth was troubled with no doubts either as to the reasonableness and propriety of his prayer, or the guilt of Bessie Grahame, though she died obstinate, and would not confess; nay, made a most decent and Christian end, acquitting her judges and jury of her blood, in respect of the strong delusion under which they laboured.
Bessie Grahame had seemingly been committed based on flimsy suspicions, as the minister, after several discussions, found her defense so compelling that he actually felt sorry for her mistreatment and wanted her released from prison, especially since he wasn't sure a civil court would send her to trial or whether a trial would be inclined to convict her. While the minister was uncertain, a man named Begg was brought in as an expert to poke and prod; it’s unclear by whose authority, but he pushed a large brass pin into a wart on the woman's back, claiming it was the devil’s mark. A commission was set up for a trial, but the leading figures in the county refused to intervene, and the clergyman’s doubts remained far from resolved. This led the devoted man to pray solemnly to God, “that if He would find a way to clarify her guilt, he would see it as a unique favor and mercy.” He believed this was granted in the following way, which he viewed as an answer to his prayer. One evening, the clergyman, along with Alexander Simpson, the kirk officer, and his servant, visited Bessie in her cell to encourage her to confess, but it was unsuccessful. As they stood at the top of the stairs behind the door, they heard the prisoner, whom they had left alone, talking to someone in a low, ghostly tone—recognized by the minister as the voice of the devil. Without this revelation, we might have thought Bessie Grahame was simply talking to herself, as often happens with depressed and hopeless individuals. However, Alexander Simpson claimed to understand the conversation going on inside the cell, and the minister was fairly confident he heard two voices at once. He interpreted overhearing this dialogue as God's response to his request, and from that point on, he was no longer troubled by doubts regarding the legitimacy of his prayer or Bessie Grahame's guilt, even though she stubbornly refused to confess; instead, she met her end with dignity, forgiving her judges and jury for her death, considering the strong delusion they were under.
Although the ministers, whose opinions were but two strongly on this head in correspondence with the prevailing superstitions of the people, nourished in the early system of church government a considerable desire to secure their own immunities and privileges as a national church, which failed not at last to be brought into contact with the king’s prerogative; yet in the earlier part of his reign, James, when freed from the influence of such a favourite as the profligate Stuart, Earl of Arran, was in his personal qualities rather acceptable to the clergy of his kingdom and period. At his departing from Scotland on his romantic expedition to bring home a consort from Denmark, he very politically recommended to the clergy to contribute all that lay in their power to assist the civil magistrates, and preserve the public peace of the kingdom. The king after his return acknowledged with many thanks the care which the clergy had bestowed in this particular. Nor were they slack in assuming the merit to themselves, for they often reminded him in their future discords that his kingdom had never been so quiet as during his voyage to Denmark, when the clergy were in a great measure intrusted with the charge of the public government.
Although the ministers, whose opinions were very much aligned with the common superstitions of the people, had a strong desire to secure their own rights and privileges as a national church within the early church government, this eventually clashed with the king's authority. However, in the earlier part of his reign, James, who had distanced himself from the influence of his morally corrupt favorite, the Earl of Arran, was generally well-regarded by the clergy of his kingdom and time. When he left Scotland on his romantic journey to bring back a bride from Denmark, he wisely urged the clergy to do everything they could to support the civil authorities and maintain public peace. After returning, the king expressed his gratitude for the efforts the clergy had made in this regard. They were also quick to take credit for it, often reminding him during future disagreements that his kingdom had never been so peaceful as during his trip to Denmark, when the clergy were largely entrusted with managing the public affairs.
During the halcyon period of union between kirk and king their hearty agreement on the subject of witchcraft failed not to heat the fires against the persons suspected of such iniquity. The clergy considered that the Roman Catholics, their principal enemies, were equally devoted to the devil, the mass, and the witches, which in their opinion were mutually associated together, and natural allies in the great cause of mischief. On the other hand, the pedantic sovereign having exercised his learning and ingenuity in the Demonologia, considered the execution of every witch who was burnt as a necessary conclusion of his own royal syllogisms. The juries were also afraid of the consequences of acquittal to themselves, being liable to suffer under an assize of error should they be thought to have been unjustly merciful; and as the witches tried were personally as insignificant as the charge itself was odious, there was no restraint whatever upon those in whose hands their fate lay, and there seldom wanted some such confession as we have often mentioned, or such evidence as that collected by the minister who overheard the dialogue between the witch and her master, to salve their consciences and reconcile them to bring in a verdict of guilty.
During the peaceful time of cooperation between the church and the king, their strong agreement on the issue of witchcraft led to increased persecution of those suspected of such wrongdoing. The clergy believed that Roman Catholics, their main enemies, were equally aligned with the devil, the mass, and witches, which they thought were all connected and collaborators in spreading evil. Meanwhile, the overly scholarly king, having applied his knowledge to Demonologia, viewed the execution of every witch he burned as a necessary outcome of his own royal reasoning. The juries were also worried about the repercussions of acquitting witches, fearing they would face penalties for being seen as too lenient. Since the witches being tried were personally unremarkable and the accusations themselves were repulsive, there was little restraint on those deciding their fates, and there was rarely a lack of some confession, like the ones we've mentioned before, or evidence gathered by the minister who overheard the exchange between the witch and her master, to ease their consciences and justify returning a guilty verdict.
The execution of witches became for these reasons very common in Scotland, where the king seemed in some measure to have made himself a party in the cause, and the clergy esteemed themselves such from the very nature of their profession. But the general spite of Satan and his adherents was supposed to be especially directed against James, on account of his match with Anne of Denmark—the union of a Protestant princess with a Protestant prince, the King of Scotland and heir of England being, it could not be doubted, an event which struck the whole kingdom of darkness with alarm. James was self-gratified by the unusual spirit which he had displayed on his voyage in quest of his bride, and well disposed to fancy that he had performed it in positive opposition, not only to the indirect policy of Elizabeth, but to the malevolent purpose of hell itself. His fleet had been tempest-tost, and he very naturally believed that the prince of the power of the air had been personally active on the occasion.
The execution of witches became quite common in Scotland for these reasons, where the king seemed somewhat complicit in the matter, and the clergy considered themselves involved due to the nature of their role. However, it was believed that Satan and his followers particularly targeted James because of his marriage to Anne of Denmark—the joining of a Protestant princess and a Protestant prince. The King of Scotland and heir to the English throne being united was undoubtedly an event that alarmed the entire realm of darkness. James felt a sense of pride from the unusual determination he had shown during his journey to find his bride, and he was inclined to believe that he had done it in direct opposition not only to Elizabeth's indirect policies but also to the malicious designs of hell itself. His fleet had faced a storm, and he naturally thought that the prince of the power of the air had been personally involved in the event.
The principal person implicated in these heretical and treasonable undertakings was one Agnes Simpson, or Samson, called the Wise Wife of Keith, and described by Archbishop Spottiswood, not as one of the base or ignorant class of ordinary witches, but a grave matron, composed and deliberate in her answers, which were all to some purpose. This grave dame, from the terms of her indictment, seems to have been a kind of white witch, affecting to cure diseases by words and charms, a dangerous profession considering the times in which she lived. Neither did she always keep the right and sheltered side of the law in such delicate operations. One article of her indictment proves this, and at the same time establishes that the Wise Woman of Keith knew how to turn her profession to account; for, being consulted in the illness of Isobel Hamilton, she gave her opinion that nothing could amend her unless the devil was raised; and the sick woman’s husband, startling at the proposal, and being indifferent perhaps about the issue, would not bestow the necessary expenses, whereupon the Wise Wife refused to raise the devil, and the patient died. This woman was principally engaged in an extensive conspiracy to destroy the fleet of the queen by raising a tempest; and to take the king’s life by anointing his linen with poisonous materials, and by constructing figures of clay, to be wasted and tormented after the usual fashion of necromancy.
The main person involved in these heretical and traitorous activities was Agnes Simpson, also known as Samson, referred to as the Wise Wife of Keith. Archbishop Spottiswood described her not as one of the lowly or uneducated types of ordinary witches, but as a serious woman, calm and thoughtful in her responses, which were always meaningful. This serious lady, based on the details of her indictment, seems to have been a kind of white witch, claiming to heal illnesses through words and charms—a risky profession given the era she lived in. She didn’t always stay on the right side of the law in her questionable practices. One item in her indictment confirms this and also shows that the Wise Woman of Keith knew how to make her profession profitable; when consulted about Isobel Hamilton's illness, she stated that nothing could help her unless the devil was summoned. The sick woman's husband, shocked by the suggestion, and possibly indifferent about the outcome, refused to pay the necessary costs, so the Wise Wife declined to raise the devil, and the patient died. This woman was mainly involved in a major conspiracy to destroy the queen's fleet by conjuring a storm, and to take the king's life by anointing his linen with poison and creating clay figures to be tortured and destroyed in the traditional manner of necromancy.
Amongst her associates was an unhappy lady of much higher degree. This was Dame Euphane MacCalzean, the widow of a Senator of the College of Justice, and a person infinitely above the rank of the obscure witches with whom she was joined in her crime. Mr. Pitcairn supposes that this connexion may have arisen from her devotion to the Catholic faith and her friendship for the Earl of Bothwell.
Among her friends was an unhappy woman of much higher status. This was Dame Euphane MacCalzean, the widow of a Senator of the College of Justice, and a person far above the level of the unknown witches with whom she was involved in her wrongdoing. Mr. Pitcairn suggests that this connection may have stemmed from her devotion to the Catholic faith and her friendship with the Earl of Bothwell.
The third person in this singular league of sorcerers was Doctor John Fian, otherwise Cunninghame, who was schoolmaster at Tranent, and enjoyed much hazardous reputation as a warlock. This man was made the hero of the whole tale of necromancy, in an account of it published at London, and entitled, “News from Scotland,” which has been lately reprinted by the Roxburghe Club. It is remarkable that the Scottish witchcrafts were not thought sufficiently horrible by the editor of this tract, without adding to them the story of a philtre being applied to a cow’s hair instead of that of the young woman for whom it was designed, and telling how the animal came lowing after the sorcerer to his schoolroom door, like a second Pasiphaë, the original of which charm occurs in the story of Apuleius.76
The third person in this exclusive group of sorcerers was Doctor John Fian, also known as Cunninghame, who was the schoolmaster in Tranent and had a notorious reputation as a warlock. This man became the central figure in the entire tale of necromancy, featured in a publication from London titled “News from Scotland,” which has recently been reprinted by the Roxburghe Club. It’s noteworthy that the Scottish witchcrafts were not considered horrifying enough by the editor of this publication, leading them to add a story about a love potion being used on a cow’s hair instead of the hair of the young woman it was meant for, and explaining how the cow followed the sorcerer to his classroom door, much like a second Pasiphaë; the original of this charm is found in Apuleius's story.76
76 (return)
[ “Lucii Apuleii
Metamorphoses,” lib. iii.]
76 (return)
[ “Lucius Apuleius
Metamorphoses,” book iii.]
Besides these persons, there was one Barbara Napier, alias Douglas, a person of some rank; Geillis Duncan, a very active witch; and about thirty other poor creatures of the lowest condition—among the rest, and doorkeeper to the conclave, a silly old ploughman, called as his nickname Graymeal, who was cuffed by the devil for saying simply, “God bless the king!”
Besides these individuals, there was one Barbara Napier, also known as Douglas, a person of some standing; Geillis Duncan, a very active witch; and about thirty other unfortunate souls from the lowest social class—among them, serving as the doorkeeper to the meeting, a foolish old farmer known by the nickname Graymeal, who was punished by the devil for simply saying, “God bless the king!”
When the monarch of Scotland sprung this strong covey of his favourite game, they afforded the Privy Council and him sport for the greatest part of the remaining winter. He attended on the examinations himself, and by one means or or other, they were indifferently well dressed to his palate.
When the king of Scotland released this strong group of his favorite game, they provided the Privy Council and him enjoyment for most of the rest of the winter. He personally oversaw the evaluations, and in one way or another, they were reasonably well-prepared to his taste.
Agnes Sampson, the grave matron before mentioned, after being an hour tortured by the twisting of a cord around her head, according to the custom of the Buccaneers, confessed that she had consulted with one Richard Grahame concerning the probable length of the king’s life, and the means of shortening it. But Satan, to whom they at length resorted for advice, told them in French respecting King James, Il est un homme de Dieu. The poor woman also acknowledged that she had held a meeting with those of her sisterhood, who had charmed a cat by certain spells, having four joints of men knit to its feet, which they threw into the sea to excite a tempest. Another frolic they had when, like the weird sisters in Macbeth, they embarked in sieves with much mirth and jollity, the Fiend rolling himself before them upon the waves, dimly seen, and resembling a huge haystack in size and appearance. They went on board of a foreign ship richly laded with wines, where, invisible to the crew, they feasted till the sport grew tiresome, and then Satan sunk the vessel and all on board.
Agnes Sampson, the serious matron mentioned before, after being tortured for an hour by having a cord twisted around her head, as was the custom of the Buccaneers, confessed that she had consulted with one Richard Grahame about how long the king might live and ways to shorten it. But Satan, whom they eventually turned to for advice, told them in French regarding King James, Il est un homme de Dieu. The unfortunate woman also admitted that she had met with others in her group, who had enchanted a cat with certain spells, tying four joints of men to its feet, which they then threw into the sea to stir up a storm. They also had a playful incident when, like the weird sisters in Macbeth, they set out in sieves, laughing and having a good time, with the Fiend rolling himself before them on the waves, barely visible, and resembling a huge haystack in both size and appearance. They boarded a foreign ship loaded with wine, where, invisible to the crew, they feasted until the fun grew dull, at which point Satan sank the vessel along with everyone on board.
Fian, or Cunninghame, was also visited by the sharpest tortures, ordinary and extraordinary. The nails were torn from his fingers with smith’s pincers; pins were driven into the places which the nails usually defended; his knees were crushed in the boots, his finger bones were splintered in the pilniewinks. At length his constancy, hitherto sustained, as the bystanders supposed, by the help of the devil, was fairly overcome, and he gave an account of a great witch-meeting at North Berwick, where they paced round the church withershinns, that is, in reverse of the motion of the sun. Fian then blew into the lock of the church-door, whereupon the bolts gave way, the unhallowed crew entered, and their master the devil appeared to his servants in the shape of a black man occupying the pulpit. He was saluted with an “Hail, Master!” but the company were dissatisfied with his not having brought a picture of the king, repeatedly promised, which was to place his majesty at the mercy of this infernal crew. The devil was particularly upbraided on this subject by divers respectable-looking females—no question, Euphane MacCalzean, Barbara Napier, Agnes Sampson, and some other amateur witch above those of the ordinary profession. The devil on this memorable occasion forgot himself, and called Fian by his own name, instead of the demoniacal sobriquet of Rob the Rowar, which had been assigned to him as Master of the Rows or Rolls. This was considered as bad taste, and the rule is still observed at every rendezvous of forgers, smugglers, or the like, where it is accounted very indifferent manners to name an individual by his own name, in case of affording ground of evidence which may upon a day of trial be brought against him. Satan, something disconcerted, concluded the evening with a divertisement and a dance after his own manner. The former consisted in disinterring a new-buried corpse, and dividing it in fragments among the company, and the ball was maintained by well-nigh two hundred persons, who danced a ring dance, singing this chant—
Fian, or Cunninghame, endured intense torture, both regular and extreme. His nails were ripped off with a blacksmith's pliers; pins were pushed into the spots where the nails used to be; his knees were crushed in the boots, and his finger bones were shattered in the pilniewinks. Eventually, his steadfastness, which bystanders assumed was supported by the devil, was finally broken, and he confessed to a significant witch gathering at North Berwick. They circled the church backwards, opposite the direction of the sun. Fian then blew into the church's lock, causing the bolts to loosen, allowing the unholy group to enter, and their master, the devil, appeared to his followers in the form of a black man in the pulpit. He was greeted with “Hail, Master!” but the group was unhappy that he hadn't brought a promised picture of the king, which was supposed to put His Majesty at the mercy of this malevolent group. The devil received particular criticism on this matter from several respectable women—likely Euphane MacCalzean, Barbara Napier, Agnes Sampson, and some other amateur witches who were above those of the usual profession. On this notable occasion, the devil lost his composure and referred to Fian by his real name instead of the demonic nickname Rob the Rowar, which had been given to him as the Master of the Rows or Rolls. This was seen as bad form, and the custom is still followed at every gathering of forgers, smugglers, or similar groups, where it's considered very poor manners to use someone's real name, as it could provide grounds for evidence that might be used against them in a trial. A bit flustered, Satan wrapped up the evening with entertainment and a dance in his own style. The entertainment involved digging up a recently buried corpse and sharing it in pieces among the guests, and the dance featured nearly two hundred people who performed a ring dance while singing this chant—
“Cummer, gang ye before; Cummer gang ye. Gif ye will not gang before, Cummers, let me.”
“Come on, you all go ahead; come on, move. If you won't go ahead, let me go.”
After this choral exhibition, the music seems to have been rather imperfect, the number of dancers considered. Geillis Duncan was the only instrumental performer, and she played on a Jew’s harp, called in Scotland a trump. Dr. Fian, muffled, led the ring, and was highly honoured, generally acting as clerk or recorder, as above mentioned.
After this choral performance, the music didn’t seem very good, especially considering the number of dancers. Geillis Duncan was the only musician, and she played a Jew’s harp, known in Scotland as a trump. Dr. Fian, dressed in a cloak, led the group and was greatly respected, usually serving as the clerk or recorder, as mentioned earlier.
King James was deeply interested in those mysterious meetings, and took great delight to be present at the examinations of the accused. He sent for Geillis Duncan, and caused her to play before him the same tune to which Satan and his companions led the brawl in North Berwick churchyard.77 His ears were gratified in another way, for at this meeting it was said the witches demanded of the devil why he did bear such enmity against the king? who returned the flattering answer that the king was the greatest enemy whom he had in the world.
King James was really intrigued by those mysterious meetings and really enjoyed being there for the interrogations of the accused. He summoned Geillis Duncan and had her play for him the same tune that Satan and his followers used to start the ruckus in North Berwick churchyard.77 He was also pleased in another way, as it was said at this meeting that the witches asked the devil why he held such a grudge against the king, to which he flattering responded that the king was his greatest enemy in the world.
77 (return)
[ The music of this witch
tune is unhappily lost. But that of another, believed to have been popular
on such occasions, is preserved.
77 (return)
[ Unfortunately, the music for this witch tune has been lost. However, the music for another tune, thought to have been popular during these events, is still preserved.
“The silly bit chicken, gar cast her a pickle, And she will grow mickle, And she will do good.”]
“The silly little chicken, gonna toss her a pickle, And she will grow big, And she will do well.”
Almost all these poor wretches were executed, nor did Euphane MacCalzean’s station in life save her from the common doom, which was strangling to death, and burning to ashes thereafter. The majority of the jury which tried Barbara Napier having acquitted her of attendance at the North Berwick meeting, were themselves threatened with a trial for wilful error upon an assize, and could only escape from severe censure and punishment by pleading guilty, and submitting themselves to the king’s pleasure. This rigorous and iniquitous conduct shows a sufficient reason why there should be so few acquittals from a charge of witchcraft where the juries were so much at the mercy of the crown.
Almost all of these poor people were executed, and Euphane MacCalzean’s position in society didn’t save her from the same fate, which involved being strangled to death and then burned to ashes. Most of the jury that tried Barbara Napier, who acquitted her of attending the North Berwick meeting, faced threats of being put on trial for willful error during the assize, and they could only avoid severe criticism and punishment by pleading guilty and submitting to the king’s decision. This harsh and unfair treatment explains why there were so few acquittals in witchcraft cases, given that the juries were so vulnerable to the crown's influence.
It would be disgusting to follow the numerous cases in which the same uniform credulity, the same extorted confessions, the same prejudiced and exaggerated evidence, concluded in the same tragedy at the stake and the pile. The alterations and trenching which lately took place for the purpose of improving the Castlehill of Edinburgh displayed the ashes of the numbers who had perished in this manner, of whom a large proportion must have been executed between 1590, when the great discovery was made concerning Euphane MacCalzean and the Wise Wife of Keith and their accomplices, and the union of the crowns.
It would be horrifying to follow the many instances where the same blind belief, the same forced confessions, and the same biased and exaggerated evidence led to the same tragic outcome at the stake and pyre. The renovations that recently took place to improve Castlehill in Edinburgh revealed the ashes of many who died this way, a significant number of whom must have been executed between 1590, when the major discovery regarding Euphane MacCalzean and the Wise Wife of Keith and their accomplices was made, and the union of the crowns.
Nor did King James’s removal to England soften this horrible persecution. In Sir Thomas Hamilton’s Minutes of Proceedings in the Privy Council, there occurs a singular entry, evincing plainly that the Earl of Mar, and others of James’s Council, were becoming fully sensible of the desperate iniquity and inhumanity of these proceedings. I have modernized the spelling that this appalling record may be legible to all my readers.
Nor did King James’s move to England lessen this terrible persecution. In Sir Thomas Hamilton’s Minutes of Proceedings in the Privy Council, there’s a notable entry showing clearly that the Earl of Mar and other members of James’s Council were starting to recognize the extreme injustice and cruelty of these actions. I have updated the spelling so this shocking record is understandable to all my readers.
“1608, December 1. The Earl of Mar declared to the Council that some women were taken in Broughton as witches, and being put to an assize and convicted, albeit they persevered constant in their denial to the end, yet they were burned quick [alive] after such a cruel manner that some of them died in despair, renouncing and blaspheming [God]; and others, half burned, brak out of the fire,78 and were cast quick in it again, till they were burned to the death.”
“1608, December 1. The Earl of Mar told the Council that some women in Broughton were captured as witches. They were put on trial and found guilty, and even though they maintained their innocence until the end, they were burned alive in such a cruel way that some died in despair, rejecting and cursing God; and others, half-burned, broke out of the fire, and were thrown back into it again until they were burned to death.”
78 (return)
[ I am obliged to the
kindness of Mr. Pitcairn for this singular extract. The southern reader
must be informed that the jurisdiction or regality of Broughton embraced
Holyrood, Canongate, Leith, and other suburban parts of Edinburgh, and
bore the same relation to that city as the borough of Southwark to
London.]
78 (return)
[ I am grateful to Mr. Pitcairn for this unique excerpt. It's important for the southern reader to know that the jurisdiction or regality of Broughton included Holyrood, Canongate, Leith, and other suburban areas of Edinburgh, and had the same connection to that city as the borough of Southwark does to London.]
This singular document shows that even in the reign of James, so soon as his own august person was removed from Edinburgh, his dutiful Privy Council began to think that they had supt full with horrors, and were satiated with the excess of cruelty which dashed half-consumed wretches back into the flames from which they were striving to escape.
This unique document reveals that even during James's reign, as soon as he left Edinburgh, his loyal Privy Council started to feel that they had had enough of the horrors and were fed up with the extreme cruelty that sent barely surviving victims back into the flames they were trying to escape from.
But the picture, however much it may have been disgusting and terrifying to the Council at the time, and though the intention of the entry upon the records was obviously for the purpose of preventing such horrid cruelties in future, had no lasting effect on the course of justice, as the severities against witches were most unhappily still considered necessary. Through the whole of the sixteenth, and the greater part of the seventeenth century, little abatement in the persecution of this metaphysical crime of witchcraft can be traced in the kingdom. Even while the Independents held the reins of government, Cromwell himself, and his major-generals and substitutes, were obliged to please the common people of Scotland by abandoning the victims accused of witchcraft to the power of the law, though the journals of the time express the horror and disgust with which the English sectarians beheld a practice so inconsistent with their own humane principle of universal toleration.
But the image, no matter how disgusting and terrifying it may have been to the Council at the time, and although the purpose of recording it was clearly to prevent such horrific cruelties in the future, had no lasting impact on the justice system, as the harsh treatment of witches was still considered necessary. Throughout the sixteenth century and most of the seventeenth century, there was little reduction in the persecution of the so-called metaphysical crime of witchcraft in the kingdom. Even while the Independents were in power, Cromwell, along with his major-generals and their substitutes, had to appease the common people of Scotland by allowing the law to target those accused of witchcraft, even though the journals from that time show the horror and disgust that English sectarians felt towards a practice so at odds with their own humane principle of universal tolerance.
Instead of plunging into a history of these events which, generally speaking, are in detail as monotonous as they are melancholy, it may amuse the reader to confine the narrative to a single trial, having in the course of it some peculiar and romantic events. It is the tale of a sailor’s wife, more tragic in its event than that of the chestnut-muncher in Macbeth.79
Instead of diving into a history of these events that are usually as dull as they are sad, it might be more interesting for the reader to focus on a single trial, which includes some unique and romantic moments. It's the story of a sailor's wife, more tragic in its outcome than that of the chestnut-eater in Macbeth.79
79 (return)
[ A copy of the record of
the trial, which took place in Ayrshire, was sent to me by a friend who
withheld his name, so that I can only thank him in this general
acknowledgment.]
79 (return)
[ A friend of mine, who wishes to remain anonymous, sent me a copy of the trial record that took place in Ayrshire, so I can only express my gratitude in this general acknowledgment.]
Margaret Barclay, wife of Archibald Dein, burgess of Irvine, had been slandered by her sister-in-law, Janet Lyal, the spouse of John Dein, brother of Archibald, and by John Dein himself, as guilty of some act of theft. Upon this provocation Margaret Barclay raised an action of slander before the church court, which prosecution, after some procedure, the kirk-session discharged by directing a reconciliation between the parties. Nevertheless, although the two women shook hands before the court, yet the said Margaret Barclay declared that she gave her hand only in obedience to the kirk-session, but that she still retained her hatred and ill-will against John Dein and his wife, Janet Lyal. About this time the bark of John Dein was about to sail for France, and Andrew Train, or Tran, provost of the burgh of Irvine, who was an owner of the vessel, went with him to superintend the commercial part of the voyage. Two other merchants of some consequence went in the same vessel, with a sufficient number of mariners. Margaret Barclay, the revengeful person already mentioned, was heard to imprecate curses upon the provost’s argosy, praying to God that sea nor salt-water might never bear the ship, and that partans (crabs) might eat the crew at the bottom of the sea.
Margaret Barclay, wife of Archibald Dein, a council member of Irvine, had been slandered by her sister-in-law, Janet Lyal, the wife of John Dein, Archibald’s brother, who accused her of theft. In response to this, Margaret Barclay filed a slander case in the church court. After some proceedings, the church session resolved the matter by encouraging reconciliation between the parties. However, although the two women shook hands in court, Margaret Barclay declared that she only did so to obey the church session, but she still held anger and bitterness towards John Dein and his wife, Janet Lyal. Around this time, John Dein's ship was about to set sail for France, and Andrew Train, the provost of Irvine and one of the ship's owners, accompanied him to manage the commercial aspects of the voyage. Two other notable merchants joined them on the same ship, along with a sufficient number of sailors. Margaret Barclay, the vengeful individual mentioned earlier, was overheard cursing the provost’s ship, praying to God that neither the sea nor the saltwater would carry it, and that crabs would eat the crew at the bottom of the ocean.
When, under these auspices, the ship was absent on her voyage, a vagabond fellow, named John Stewart, pretending to have knowledge of jugglery, and to possess the power of a spaeman, came to the residence of Tran, the provost, and dropped explicit hints that the ship was lost, and that the good woman of the house was a widow. The sad truth was afterwards learned on more certain information. Two of the seamen, after a space of doubt and anxiety, arrived, with the melancholy tidings that the bark, of which John Dein was skipper and Provost Tran part owner, had been wrecked on the coast of England, near Padstow, when all on board had been lost, except the two sailors who brought the notice. Suspicion of sorcery, in those days easily awakened, was fixed on Margaret Barclay, who had imprecated curses on the ship, and on John Stewart, the juggler, who had seemed to know of the evil fate of the voyage before he could have become acquainted with it by natural means.
When the ship was away on her voyage, a drifter named John Stewart, claiming to be skilled in sleight of hand and to have the abilities of a fortune teller, showed up at the home of Tran, the provost, and hinted that the ship had sunk and that the lady of the house was now a widow. The unfortunate truth was later confirmed through more reliable sources. After a period of uncertainty and worry, two of the sailors returned with the tragic news that the ship, captained by John Dein and partly owned by Provost Tran, had been wrecked on the coast of England near Padstow, with everyone on board lost except for the two sailors who delivered the news. In those times, suspicion of witchcraft was easily stirred, and people began to blame Margaret Barclay, who had placed curses on the ship, as well as John Stewart, the juggler, who seemed to know about the ship's misfortune before he could have learned it through ordinary means.
Stewart, who was first apprehended, acknowledged that Margaret Barclay, the other suspected person, had applied to him to teach her some magic arts, “in order that she might get gear, kye’s milk, love of man, her heart’s desire on such persons as had done her wrong, and, finally, that she might obtain the fruit of sea and land.” Stewart declared that he denied to Margaret that he possessed the said arts himself, or had the power of communicating them. So far was well; but, true or false, he added a string of circumstances, whether voluntarily declared or extracted by torture, which tended to fix the cause of the loss of the bark on Margaret Barclay. He had come, he said, to this woman’s house in Irvine, shortly after the ship set sail from harbour. He went to Margaret’s house by night, and found her engaged, with other two women, in making clay figures; one of the figures was made handsome, with fair hair, supposed to represent Provost Tran. They then proceeded to mould a figure of a ship in clay, and during this labour the devil appeared to the company in the shape of a handsome black lap-dog, such as ladies use to keep.80 He added that the whole party left the house together, and went into an empty waste-house nearer the seaport, which house he pointed out to the city magistrates. From this house they went to the sea-side, followed by the black lap-dog aforesaid, and cast in the figures of clay representing the ship and the men; after which the sea raged, roared, and became red like the juice of madder in a dyer’s cauldron.
Stewart, who was the first to be arrested, admitted that Margaret Barclay, the other person under suspicion, had asked him to teach her some magic skills, “so she could get wealth, cow’s milk, love from a man, and her heart’s desire against those who had wronged her, and, ultimately, so she could gain the bounty of sea and land.” Stewart claimed that he told Margaret he didn’t have those skills himself, nor could he pass them on. That part was fine; but, true or not, he added a series of claims—whether he said them willingly or under torture—that seemed to pin the cause of the ship's loss on Margaret Barclay. He said he had gone to this woman’s house in Irvine shortly after the ship left the harbor. He went to Margaret’s house at night and found her with two other women making clay figures; one of the figures was made to look attractive, with fair hair, and was thought to represent Provost Tran. They then started shaping a figure of a ship in clay, and while they were doing this, the devil showed up in the form of a pretty black lapdog, like ones that ladies often keep. He mentioned that the whole group left the house together and went to an empty derelict house closer to the seaport, which he pointed out to the city officials. From that house, they went to the seaside, followed by the aforementioned black lapdog, and cast the clay figures representing the ship and the men; after that, the sea became wild, roared, and turned red like the dye used by dyers.
80 (return)
[ This may remind the
reader of Cazotte’s “Diable Amoureux.”]
80 (return)
[ This might remind the reader of Cazotte’s “Diable Amoureux.”]
This confession having been extorted from the unfortunate juggler, the female acquaintances of Margaret Barclay were next convened, that he might point out her associates in forming the charm, when he pitched upon a woman called Isobel Insh, or Taylor, who resolutely denied having ever seen him before. She was imprisoned, however, in the belfry of the church. An addition to the evidence against the poor old woman Insh was then procured from her own daughter, Margaret Tailzeour, a child of eight years old, who lived as servant with Margaret Barclay, the person principally accused. This child, who was keeper of a baby belonging to Margaret Barclay, either from terror or the innate love of falsehood which we have observed as proper to childhood, declared that she was present when the fatal models of clay were formed, and that, in plunging them in the sea, Margaret Barclay her mistress, and her mother Isobel Insh, were assisted by another woman, and a girl of fourteen years old, who dwelt at the town-head. Legally considered, the evidence of this child was contradictory and inconsistent with the confession of the juggler, for it assigned other particulars and dramatis personæ in many respects different. But all was accounted sufficiently regular, especially since the girl failed not to swear to the presence of the black dog, to whose appearance she also added the additional terrors of that of a black man. The dog also, according to her account, emitted flashes from its jaws and nostrils to illuminate the witches during the performance of the spell. The child maintained this story even to her mother’s face, only alleging that Isobel Insh remained behind in the waste-house, and was not present when the images were put into the sea. For her own countenance and presence on the occasion, and to ensure her secrecy, her mistress promised her a pair of new shoes.
After the unfortunate juggler was forced to confess, the female acquaintances of Margaret Barclay were gathered next so he could identify her partners in the charm. He pointed out a woman named Isobel Insh, or Taylor, who firmly denied ever having seen him before. Nevertheless, she was locked up in the church belfry. Additional evidence against the elderly woman Insh came from her own daughter, Margaret Tailzeour, a child of eight years old, who worked as a servant for Margaret Barclay, the main person accused. This child, who looked after a baby belonging to Margaret Barclay, either out of fear or the natural tendency to lie that we often see in children, claimed that she was there when the deadly clay figures were made, and that her mistress, Margaret Barclay, and her mother, Isobel Insh, were helped by another woman and a fourteen-year-old girl who lived at the town's edge. Legally speaking, the child's testimony was contradictory and inconsistent with the juggler's confession, as it presented different details and dramatis personæ in many ways. However, it was deemed regular enough, especially since the girl didn’t fail to swear that she saw the black dog, to which she added the frightening image of a black man. According to her, the dog also shot flashes from its jaws and nostrils to light up the witches during the spell. The child stuck to this story even in front of her mother, only saying that Isobel Insh stayed behind in the waste-house and wasn’t present when the images were thrown into the sea. To ensure her silence and to preserve her own safety, her mistress promised her a new pair of shoes.
John Stewart, being re-examined and confronted with the child, was easily compelled to allow that the “little smatchet” was there, and to give that marvellous account of his correspondence with Elfland which we have noticed elsewhere.
John Stewart, during the re-examination and when faced with the child, was easily persuaded to admit that the “little smatchet” was present and to provide that incredible story of his communication with Elfland that we mentioned earlier.
The conspiracy thus far, as they conceived, disclosed, the magistrates and ministers wrought hard with Isobel Insh to prevail upon her to tell the truth; and she at length acknowledged her presence at the time when the models of the ship and mariners were destroyed, but endeavoured so to modify her declaration as to deny all personal accession to the guilt. This poor creature almost admitted the supernatural powers imputed to her, promising Bailie Dunlop (also a mariner), by whom she was imprisoned, that, if he would dismiss her, he should never make a bad voyage, but have success in all his dealings by sea and land. She was finally brought to promise that she would fully confess the whole that she knew of the affair on the morrow.
So far, the conspiracy, as they saw it, showed that the magistrates and ministers worked hard to convince Isobel Insh to tell the truth; she eventually admitted to being present when the models of the ship and the sailors were destroyed, but tried to twist her statement to deny any personal involvement in the wrongdoing. This poor woman almost accepted the supernatural powers that were attributed to her, promising Bailie Dunlop (who was also a sailor) that if he let her go, he would never have a failed voyage and would succeed in all his business dealings at sea and on land. She ultimately agreed to fully confess everything she knew about the situation the next day.
But finding herself in so hard a strait, the unfortunate woman made use of the darkness to attempt an escape. With this view she got out by a back window of the belfry, although, says the report, there were “iron bolts, locks, and fetters on her,” and attained the roof of the church, where, losing her footing, she sustained a severe fall and was greatly bruised. Being apprehended, Bailie Dunlop again urged her to confess; but the poor woman was determined to appeal to a more merciful tribunal, and maintained her innocence to the last minute of her life, denying all that she had formerly admitted, and dying five days after her fall from the roof of the church. The inhabitants of Irvine attributed her death to poison.
But finding herself in such a difficult situation, the unfortunate woman used the darkness to try to escape. With this in mind, she climbed out of a back window of the belfry, although, according to the report, there were “iron bolts, locks, and fetters on her,” and made her way to the church roof, where she lost her footing, fell hard, and ended up badly bruised. Once caught, Bailie Dunlop urged her again to confess; but the poor woman was set on appealing to a more compassionate authority and insisted on her innocence right up to the end of her life, denying everything she had previously admitted, and she died five days after her fall from the roof of the church. The people of Irvine believed her death was due to poison.
The scene began to thicken, for a commission was granted for the trial of the two remaining persons accused, namely, Stewart, the juggler, and Margaret Barclay. The day of trial being arrived, the following singular events took place, which we give as stated in the record:—
The scene grew more intense, as a commission was approved for the trial of the two remaining accused individuals, Stewart, the juggler, and Margaret Barclay. When the trial day arrived, the following unusual events occurred, which we present as noted in the record:—
“My Lord and Earl of Eglintoune (who dwells within the space of one mile to the said burgh) having come to the said burgh at the earnest request of the said justices, for giving to them of his lordship’s countenance, concurrence and assistance, in trying of the foresaid devilish practices, conform to the tenor of the foresaid commission, the said John Stewart, for his better preserving to the day of the assize, was put in a sure lockfast booth, where no manner of person might have access to him till the downsitting of the Justice Court, and for avoiding of putting violent hands on himself, he was very strictly guarded and fettered by the arms, as use is. And upon that same day of the assize, about half an hour before the downsitting of the Justice Court, Mr. David Dickson, minister at Irvine, and Mr. George Dunbar, minister of Air, having gone to him to exhort him to call on his God for mercy for his bygone wicked and evil life, and that God would of his infinite mercy loose him out of the bonds of the devil, whom he had served these many years bygone, he acquiesced in their prayer and godly exhortation, and uttered these words:—“I am so straitly guarded that it lies not in my power to get my hand to take off my bonnet, nor to get bread to my mouth.” And immediately after the departing of the two ministers from him, the juggler being sent for at the desire of my Lord of Eglintoune, to be confronted with a woman of the burgh of Air, called Janet Bous, who was apprehended by the magistrates of the burgh of Air for witchcraft, and sent to the burgh of Irvine purposely for that affair, he was found by the burgh officers who went about him, strangled and hanged by the cruik of the door, with a tait of hemp, or a string made of hemp, supposed to have been his garter, or string of his bonnet, not above the length of two span long, his knees not being from the ground half a span, and was brought out of the house, his life not being totally expelled. But notwithstanding of whatsoever means used in the contrary for remeid of his life, he revived not, but so ended his life miserably, by the help of the devil his master.
“My Lord and Earl of Eglintoune (who lives about a mile from the town) came to the town at the strong request of the justices to lend his support, cooperation, and assistance in addressing the aforementioned wicked practices, in accordance with the terms of the earlier commission. John Stewart, to ensure he was kept safe until the trial, was placed in a secure locked booth where no one could reach him until the Justice Court began. To prevent him from harming himself, he was tightly guarded and restrained by his arms, as was customary. On the same day of the trial, about half an hour before the Justice Court started, Mr. David Dickson, minister at Irvine, and Mr. George Dunbar, minister of Air, visited him to urge him to seek God’s mercy for his past wicked and sinful life, and to ask God to release him from the grip of the devil he had served for many years. He agreed to their prayer and spiritual advice, saying, “I am so tightly guarded that I can’t even take off my hat or reach food to my mouth.” Shortly after the two ministers left, the juggler was brought in at the request of my Lord of Eglintoune, to be confronted with a woman from the town of Air, named Janet Bous, who had been arrested by the local magistrates for witchcraft and sent to Irvine specifically for this purpose. The town officers found him strangled and hanging from the door hinge by a hemp cord, presumably his garter or hat string, no longer than two spans, with his knees barely half a span from the ground. He was taken out of the house, still alive, but despite any efforts to save him, he did not recover and miserably ended his life, aided by his master, the devil.
“And because there was then only in life the said Margaret Barclay, and that the persons summoned to pass upon her assize and upon the assize of the juggler who, by the help of the devil his master, had put violent hands on himself, were all present within the said burgh; therefore, and for eschewing of the like in the person of the said Margaret, our sovereign lord’s justices in that part particularly above-named, constituted by commission after solemn deliberation and advice of the said noble lord, whose concurrence and advice was chiefly required and taken in this matter, concluded with all possible diligence before the downsitting of the Justice Court to put the said Margaret in torture; in respect the devil, by God’s permission, had made her associates who were the lights of the cause, to be their own burrioes (slayers). They used the torture underwritten as being most safe and gentle (as the said noble lord assured the said justices), by putting of her two bare legs in a pair of stocks, and thereafter by onlaying of certain iron gauds (bars) severally one by one, and then eiking and augmenting the weight by laying on more gauds, and in easing of her by offtaking of the iron gauds one or more as occasion offered, which iron gauds were but little short gauds, and broke not the skin of her legs, &c.
"And since there was only the said Margaret Barclay alive at that time, and all the people called to judge her and the juggler who had violently taken his own life with the devil's help were present in the burgh, our sovereign lord's justices, particularly named above, convened after careful thought and the advice of the noble lord, whose input was especially sought in this matter, decided with all possible speed before the Justice Court started to torture Margaret. This was because the devil, with God's permission, had made her accomplices the true slayers of the cause. They employed the following torture, considered to be the safest and gentlest (as the noble lord assured the justices), by placing her bare legs in a pair of stocks, and then applying certain iron bars, one at a time, and increasing the weight by adding more bars, and easing her by removing one or more bars as needed, which were short enough not to break the skin of her legs, etc."
“After using of the which kind of gentle torture, the said Margaret began, according to the increase of the pain, to cry and crave for God’s cause to take off her shins the foresaid irons, and she should declare truly the whole matter. Which being removed, she began at her former denial; and being of new essayed in torture as of befoir, she then uttered these words: ‘Take off, take off, and before God I shall show you the whole form!’
“After using the kind of gentle torture, Margaret started crying out, asking God to remove the irons from her shins, promising that she would reveal the whole truth. Once they were taken off, she went back to her earlier denial. When they tried torturing her again, she then said, ‘Take them off, take them off, and before God, I will show you everything!’”
“And the said irons being of new, upon her faithfull promise, removed, she then desired my Lord of Eglintoune, the said four justices, and the said Mr. David Dickson, minister of the burgh, Mr. George Dunbar, minister of Ayr, and Mr. Mitchell Wallace, minister of Kilmarnock, and Mr. John Cunninghame, minister of Dalry, and Hugh Kennedy, provost of Ayr, to come by themselves and to remove all others, and she should declare truly, as she should answer to God the whole matter. Whose desire in that being fulfilled she made her confession in this manner, but (i.e., without) any kind of demand, freely, without interrogation; God’s name by earnest prayer being called upon for opening of her lips, and easing of her heart, that she, by rendering of the truth, might glorify and magnify his holy name, and disappoint the enemy of her salvation.”—Trial of Margaret Barclay, &c., 1618.
“And the new irons being removed on her faithful promise, she then asked my Lord of Eglintoune, the four justices, and Mr. David Dickson, the minister of the burgh, Mr. George Dunbar, the minister of Ayr, Mr. Mitchell Wallace, the minister of Kilmarnock, Mr. John Cunninghame, the minister of Dalry, and Hugh Kennedy, the provost of Ayr, to come alone and send everyone else away, and she would honestly declare the whole matter, as she would answer to God. When her request was fulfilled, she made her confession in this way, but without any kind of prompting, freely, without being questioned; calling upon God’s name earnestly in prayer for the opening of her lips and easing of her heart, so that by speaking the truth, she could glorify and magnify his holy name and thwart the enemy of her salvation.” —Trial of Margaret Barclay, &c., 1618.
Margaret Barclay, who was a young and lively person, had hitherto conducted herself like a passionate and high-tempered woman innocently accused, and the only appearance of conviction obtained against her was, that she carried about her rowan-tree and coloured thread, to make, as she said, her cow give milk, when it began to fail. But the gentle torture—a strange junction of words—recommended as an anodyne by the good Lord Eglinton—the placing, namely, her legs in the stocks, and loading her bare shins with bars of iron, overcame her resolution; when, at her screams and declarations that she was willing to tell all, the weights were removed. She then told a story of destroying the ship of John Dein, affirming that it was with the purpose of killing only her brother-in-law and Provost Tran, and saving the rest of the crew. She at the same time involved in the guilt Isobel Crawford. This poor woman was also apprehended, and in great terror confessed the imputed crime, retorting the principal blame on Margaret Barclay herself. The trial was then appointed to proceed, when Alexander Dein, the husband of Margaret Barclay, appeared in court with a lawyer to act in his wife’s behalf. Apparently, the sight of her husband awakened some hope and desire of life, for when the prisoner was asked by the lawyer whether she wished to be defended? she answered, “As you please But all I have confest was in agony of torture; and, before God, all I have spoken is false and untrue.” To which she pathetically added, “Ye have been too long in coming.”
Margaret Barclay, a young and lively woman, had previously acted like a passionate and hot-headed person who was wrongly accused, and the only evidence against her was that she carried around a rowan tree and colored thread, claiming it would help her cow give milk when it started to run dry. However, the so-called gentle torture—an odd choice of words—recommended by the kind Lord Eglinton, which involved putting her legs in stocks and weighing down her bare shins with iron bars, broke her resolve. When she screamed and declared she was ready to tell everything, the weights were taken off. She then recounted a story about sinking John Dein's ship, claiming it was only to kill her brother-in-law and Provost Tran while saving the rest of the crew. At the same time, she implicated Isobel Crawford in the crime. Poor Isobel was also arrested and, terrified, confessed to the alleged crime, putting most of the blame on Margaret Barclay herself. The trial was set to continue when Alexander Dein, Margaret Barclay's husband, showed up in court with a lawyer to defend her. Seeing her husband seemed to spark some hope and will to live in her because when the lawyer asked her if she wanted a defense, she replied, "As you wish. But everything I've confessed was under torture, and before God, everything I've said is false." With deep emotion, she added, "You've taken too long to come."
The jury, unmoved by these affecting circumstances, proceeded upon the principle that the confession of the accused could not be considered as made under the influence of torture, since the bars were not actually upon her limbs at the time it was delivered, although they were placed at her elbow ready to be again laid on her bare shins, if she was less explicit in her declaration than her auditors wished. On this nice distinction they in one voice found Margaret Barclay guilty. It is singular that she should have again returned to her confession after sentence, and died affirming it; the explanation of which, however, might be either that she had really in her ignorance and folly tampered with some idle spells, or that an apparent penitence for her offence, however imaginary, was the only mode in which she could obtain any share of public sympathy at her death, or a portion of the prayers of the clergy and congregation, which, in her circumstances, she might be willing to purchase, even by confession of what all believed respecting her. It is remarkable that she earnestly entreated the magistrates that no harm should be done to Isobel Crawford, the woman whom she had herself accused. This unfortunate young creature was strangled at the stake, and her body burnt to ashes, having died with many expressions of religion and penitence.
The jury, unaffected by these emotional circumstances, proceeded with the belief that the confession of the accused couldn't be seen as made under torture, since the restraints weren't actually on her limbs at the time it was given, even though they were positioned at her elbow, ready to be put back on her bare shins if she wasn't as clear in her statement as her listeners wanted. Based on this subtle distinction, they unanimously found Margaret Barclay guilty. It's notable that she reaffirmed her confession after the sentence and died standing by it; the reason for this might be that, in her ignorance and foolishness, she had actually dabbled with some meaningless spells, or that a show of regret for her crime, no matter how insincere, was the only way she could gain any public sympathy at her death or the prayers of the clergy and congregation, which she might have been willing to "buy" by admitting to what everyone believed about her. It’s also striking that she earnestly begged the magistrates not to harm Isobel Crawford, the woman she had accused. This unfortunate young woman was strangled at the stake, and her body was burned to ashes, having died with many expressions of faith and remorse.
It was one fatal consequence of these cruel persecutions, that one pile was usually lighted at the embers of another. Accordingly in the present case, three victims having already perished by this accusation, the magistrates, incensed at the nature of the crime, so perilous as it seemed to men of a maritime life, and at the loss of several friends of their own, one of “whom had been their principal magistrate, did not forbear to insist against Isobel Crawford, inculpated by Margaret Barclay’s confession. A new commission was granted for her trial, and after the assistant minister of Irvine, Mr. David Dickson, had made earnest prayers to God for opening her obdurate and closed heart, she was subjected to the torture of iron bars laid upon her bare shins, her feet being in the stocks, as in the case of Margaret Barclay.
One tragic result of these harsh persecutions was that one fire was often started from the embers of another. In this situation, three victims had already died due to this accusation, and the magistrates, furious about the nature of the crime—which seemed so dangerous to those involved in maritime life—and the loss of several of their own friends, one of whom had been their main magistrate, pressed on against Isobel Crawford, who was implicated by Margaret Barclay’s confession. A new commission was established for her trial, and after the assistant minister of Irvine, Mr. David Dickson, prayed fervently to God to open her hardened and closed heart, she was subjected to the torture of iron bars placed on her bare shins while her feet were locked in the stocks, similar to the treatment of Margaret Barclay.
She endured this torture with incredible firmness, since she did “admirably, without any kind of din or exclamation, suffer above thirty stone of iron to be laid on her legs, never shrinking thereat in any sort, but remaining, as it were, steady.” But in shifting the situation of the iron bars, and removing them to another part of her shins, her constancy gave way; she broke out into horrible cries (though not more than three bars were then actually on her person) of—“Tak aff—tak aff!” On being relieved from the torture, she made the usual confession of all that she was charged with, and of a connexion with the devil which had subsisted for several years. Sentence was given against her accordingly. After this had been denounced, she openly denied all her former confessions, and died without any sign of repentance, offering repeated interruption to the minister in his prayer, and absolutely refusing to pardon the executioner.
She endured this torture with incredible strength, as she did “admirably, without any noise or outcry, allow over thirty stone of iron to be laid on her legs, never flinching at all, but remaining, as it were, steady.” However, when the iron bars were shifted to another part of her shins, her determination faltered; she burst into terrible cries (even though only three bars were actually on her) of—“Take it off—take it off!” Once freed from the torture, she made the usual confession of everything she was accused of, including a connection with the devil that had lasted for several years. A sentence was passed against her accordingly. After this was announced, she openly denied all her previous confessions and died without any sign of remorse, repeatedly interrupting the minister during his prayer and absolutely refusing to pardon the executioner.
This tragedy happened in the year 1613, and recorded, as it is, very particularly and at considerable length, forms the most detailed specimen I have met with of a Scottish trial for witchcraft—illustrating, in particular, how poor wretches, abandoned, as they conceived, by God and the world, deprived of all human sympathy, and exposed to personal tortures of an acute description, became disposed to throw away the lives that were rendered bitter to them by a voluntary confession of guilt, rather than struggle hopelessly against so many evils. Four persons here lost their lives, merely because the throwing some clay models into the sea, a fact told differently by the witnesses who spoke of it, corresponded with the season, for no day was fixed in which a particular vessel was lost. It is scarce possible that, after reading such a story, a man of sense can listen for an instant to the evidence founded on confessions thus obtained, which has been almost the sole reason by which a few individuals, even in modern times, have endeavoured to justify a belief in the existence of witchcraft.
This tragedy occurred in 1613, and it’s recorded in detail, making it the most comprehensive account I've come across of a Scottish witchcraft trial. It specifically shows how the poor souls, feeling abandoned by both God and the world, stripped of all human compassion, and subjected to severe torture, were inclined to throw away their lives through voluntary confessions of guilt, rather than hopelessly fight against so many hardships. Four people lost their lives here simply because some clay models were thrown into the sea, with differing accounts from witnesses about it, as there was no specific day set for the loss of a particular vessel. It’s hard to believe that, after reading such a story, a rational person could accept the evidence based on confessions obtained in this manner, which has been the main reason some individuals, even in modern times, have tried to justify belief in the existence of witchcraft.
The result of the judicial examination of a criminal, when extorted by such means, is the most suspicious of all evidence, and even when voluntarily given, is scarce admissible without the corroboration of other testimony.
The outcome of a court evaluation of a criminal, when obtained through such methods, is the most questionable evidence of all, and even when given willingly, is rarely accepted without support from other testimonies.
We might here take leave of our Scottish history of witchcraft by barely mentioning that many hundreds, nay perhaps thousands, lost their lives during two centuries on such charges and such evidence as proved the death of those persons in the trial of the Irvine witches. One case, however, is so much distinguished by fame among the numerous instances which occurred in Scottish history, that we are under the necessity of bestowing a few words upon those celebrated persons, Major Weir and his sister.
We can wrap up our discussion of Scottish witchcraft history by simply noting that many hundreds, maybe thousands, lost their lives over two centuries due to charges and evidence similar to what was used in the trial of the Irvine witches. However, one case stands out among the many that occurred in Scottish history, so we need to say a few words about the famous individuals, Major Weir and his sister.
The case of this notorious wizard was remarkable chiefly from his being a man of some condition (the son of a gentleman, and his mother a lady of family in Clydesdale), which was seldom the case with those that fell under similar accusations. It was also remarkable in his case that he had been a Covenanter, and peculiarly attached to that cause. In the years of the Commonwealth this man was trusted and employed by those who were then at the head of affairs, and was in 1649 commander of the City-Guard of Edinburgh, which procured him his title of Major. In this capacity he was understood, as was indeed implied in the duties of that officer at the period, to be very strict in executing severity upon such Royalists as fell under his military charge. It appears that the Major, with a maiden sister who had kept his house, was subject to fits of melancholic lunacy, an infirmity easily reconcilable with the formal pretences which he made to a high show of religious zeal. He was peculiar in his gift of prayer, and, as was the custom of the period, was often called to exercise his talent by the bedside of sick persons, until it came to be observed that, by some association, which it is more easy to conceive than to explain, he could not pray with the same warmth and fluency of expression unless when he had in his hand a stick of peculiar shape and appearance, which he generally walked with. It was noticed, in short, that when this stick was taken from him, his wit and talent appeared to forsake him. This Major Weir was seized by the magistrates on a strange whisper that became current respecting vile practices, which he seems to have admitted without either shame or contrition. The disgusting profligacies which he confessed were of such a character that it may be charitably hoped most of them were the fruits of a depraved imagination, though he appears to have been in many respects a wicked and criminal hypocrite. When he had completed his confession, he avowed solemnly that he had not confessed the hundredth part of the crimes which he had committed. From this time he would answer no interrogatory, nor would he have recourse to prayer, arguing that, as he had no hope whatever of escaping Satan, there was no need of incensing him by vain efforts at repentance. His witchcraft seems to have been taken for granted on his own confession, as his indictment was chiefly founded on the same document, in which he alleged he had never seen the devil, but any feeling he had of him was in the dark. He received sentence of death, which he suffered 12th April, 1670, at the Gallow-hill, between Leith and Edinburgh. He died so stupidly sullen and impenitent as to justify the opinion that he was oppressed with a kind of melancholy frenzy, the consequence perhaps of remorse, but such as urged him not to repent, but to despair. It seems probable that he was burnt alive. His sister, with whom he was supposed to have had an incestuous connexion, was condemned also to death, leaving a stronger and more explicit testimony of their mutual sins than could be extracted from the Major. She gave, as usual, some account of her connexion with the queen of the fairies, and acknowledged the assistance she received from that sovereign in spinning an unusual quantity of yam. Of her brother she said that one day a friend called upon them at noonday with a fiery chariot, and invited them to visit a friend at Dalkeith, and that while there her brother received information of the event of the battle of Worcester. No one saw the style of their equipage except themselves. On the scaffold this woman, determining, as she said, to die “with the greatest shame possible,” was with difficulty prevented from throwing off her clothes before the people, and with scarce less trouble was she flung from the ladder by the executioner. Her last words were in the tone of the sect to which her brother had so long affected to belong: “Many,” she said, “weep and lament for a poor old wretch like me; but alas! few are weeping for a broken Covenant.”
The case of this infamous wizard was particularly noteworthy because he was from a respectable background (the son of a gentleman, and his mother was a woman of status in Clydesdale), which was unusual for those who faced similar accusations. It was also significant that he had been a Covenanter, deeply committed to that cause. During the Commonwealth years, this man was trusted and employed by the leaders of the time, and in 1649, he served as the commander of the City-Guard of Edinburgh, which earned him the title of Major. In this role, it was expected—based on the officer's duties at the time—that he would be very strict in dealing with any Royalists under his command. It seems that the Major, along with his unmarried sister who managed his household, suffered from episodes of severe depression, an issue that could easily align with the outward show of intense religious fervor he presented. He had a unique talent for prayer, and as was common then, he was often invited to pray by the bedside of sick individuals. However, it was noted that he could only pray with the same passion and eloquence when he held a specific stick with a distinct shape and appearance, which he typically walked with. It became apparent that when this stick was taken from him, he seemed to lose his wit and skill. Major Weir was arrested by the authorities after rumors emerged about his alleged nefarious activities, which he appeared to admit without any shame or remorse. The revolting acts he confessed to were so outrageous that one might hope most of them stemmed from a twisted imagination, yet he seemed in many ways a wicked and deceitful hypocrite. After finishing his confession, he solemnly claimed that he hadn’t revealed even a fraction of the crimes he had committed. After that, he refused to answer any questions or pray, arguing that since he had no hope of escaping the devil, there was no point in making a futile attempt at repentance. His witchcraft was largely accepted based on his own confession, as his indictment mainly relied on that document where he stated he had never seen the devil, but any sense of his presence was in darkness. He was sentenced to death, which he faced on April 12, 1670, at Gallow-Hill, between Leith and Edinburgh. He died in a state of morose stubbornness and unrepentance, which supported the belief that he was suffering from a kind of melancholic frenzy, possibly due to remorse, but instead of leading him to repent, it pushed him toward despair. It is likely that he was burned alive. His sister, who was believed to have had an incestuous relationship with him, was also sentenced to death, leaving behind clearer and more explicit proof of their shared sins than could be obtained from the Major. She spoke about her connection with the queen of the fairies and admitted to receiving help from that sovereign in spinning an unusual amount of yarn. She recounted an incident where one day, a friend visited them at noon in a fiery chariot, inviting them to see a friend in Dalkeith, and it was during this visit that her brother learned about the outcome of the battle of Worcester. No one else witnessed their peculiar mode of transportation except for them. On the scaffold, this woman, determined as she said, to die “with the greatest shame possible,” had to be restrained from undressing before the crowd, and was with great difficulty pushed off the ladder by the executioner. Her final words echoed the sentiments of the sect to which her brother had long claimed to belong: “Many,” she said, “weep and lament for a poor old wretch like me; but alas! few are weeping for a broken Covenant.”
The Scottish prelatists, upon whom the Covenanters used to throw many aspersions respecting their receiving proof against shot from the devil, and other infernal practices, rejoiced to have an opportunity, in their turn, to retort on their adversaries the charge of sorcery. Dr. Hickes, the author of “Thesaurus Septentrionalis,” published on the subject of Major Weir, and the case of Mitchell, who fired at the Archbishop of St. Andrews his book called “Ravaillac Redivivus,” written with the unjust purpose of attaching to the religious sect to which the wizard and assassin belonged the charge of having fostered and encouraged the crimes they committed or attempted.
The Scottish prelatists, whom the Covenanters often accused of taking evidence from the devil and engaging in other evil practices, were glad to have a chance to turn the accusation of sorcery back on their opponents. Dr. Hickes, the author of “Thesaurus Septentrionalis,” wrote about Major Weir and the case of Mitchell, who shot at the Archbishop of St. Andrews with his book titled “Ravaillac Redivivus.” That book unjustly aimed to link the religious group associated with the wizard and assassin to the crimes they committed or attempted.
It is certain that no story of witchcraft or necromancy, so many of which occurred near and in Edinburgh, made such a lasting impression on the public mind as that of Major Weir. The remains of the house in which he and his sister lived are still shown at the head of the West Bow, which has a gloomy aspect, well suited for a necromancer. It was at different times a brazier’s shop and a magazine for lint, and in my younger days was employed for the latter use; but no family would inhabit the haunted walls as a residence; and bold was the urchin from the High School who dared approach the gloomy ruin at the risk of seeing the Major’s enchanted staff parading through the old apartments, or hearing the hum of the necromantic wheel, which procured for his sister such a character as a spinner. At the time I am writing this last fortress of superstitious renown is in the course of being destroyed, in order to the modern improvements now carrying on in a quarter long thought unimprovable.
It's clear that no tale of witchcraft or necromancy, many of which happened around Edinburgh, left such a lasting mark on the public imagination as that of Major Weir. The ruins of the house where he and his sister lived are still shown at the top of the West Bow, which has a dark look, perfect for a necromancer. Over the years, it served as a brazier’s shop and a lint store, and in my youth, it was used for the latter; however, no family would live in those haunted walls. Only the bravest kid from the High School would dare to approach the eerie ruin, risking encounters with the Major’s enchanted staff roaming through the old rooms or the sound of the necromantic wheel, which gave his sister such a reputation as a spinner. As I write, this last stronghold of superstition is being torn down for the modern developments now taking place in an area long thought to be beyond improvement.
As knowledge and learning began to increase, the gentlemen and clergy of Scotland became ashamed of the credulity of their ancestors, and witch trials, although not discontinued, more seldom disgrace our records of criminal jurisprudence.
As knowledge and learning grew, the gentry and clergy of Scotland started to feel ashamed of their ancestors' gullibility, and witch trials, while not completely stopped, became less frequent and less shameful in our criminal justice records.
Sir John Clerk, a scholar and an antiquary, the grandfather of the late celebrated John Clerk of Eldin, had the honour to be amongst the first to decline acting as a commissioner on the trial of a witch, to which he was appointed so early as 1678,81 alleging, drily, that he did not feel himself warlock (that is, conjurer) sufficient to be a judge upon such an inquisition. Allan Ramsay, his friend, and who must be supposed to speak the sense of his many respectable patrons, had delivered his opinion on the subject in the “Gentle Shepherd,” where Mause’s imaginary witchcraft constitutes the machinery of the poem.
Sir John Clerk, a scholar and historian, who was the grandfather of the well-known John Clerk of Eldin, had the distinction of being one of the first to refuse to serve as a commissioner in a witch trial, to which he was appointed as early as 1678, alleging, rather dryly, that he didn’t consider himself a strong enough conjurer to judge such an investigation. Allan Ramsay, his friend, who likely echoed the views of his many respectable patrons, expressed his thoughts on the matter in the “Gentle Shepherd,” where Mause’s fictional witchcraft serves as the central theme of the poem.
81 (return)
[ See Fountainhall’s
“Decisions,” vol. i. p. 15.]
81 (return)
[ See Fountainhall’s “Decisions,” vol. i. p. 15.]
Yet these dawnings of sense and humanity were obscured by the clouds of the ancient superstition on more than one distinguished occasion. In 1676, Sir George Maxwell, of Pollock, apparently a man of melancholic and valetudinary habits, believed himself bewitched to death by six witches, one man and five women, who were leagued for the purpose of tormenting a clay image in his likeness. The chief evidence on the subject was a vagabond girl, pretending to be deaf and dumb. But as her imposture was afterwards discovered and herself punished, it is reasonably to be concluded that she had herself formed the picture or image of Sir George, and had hid it where it was afterwards found in consequence of her own information. In the meantime, five of the accused were executed, and the sixth only escaped on account of extreme youth.
Yet these early signs of awareness and compassion were overshadowed by ancient superstitions on more than one notable occasion. In 1676, Sir George Maxwell of Pollock, seemingly a man of melancholic and frail health, believed he was bewitched to death by six witches—one man and five women—who conspired to torment a clay figure resembling him. The main evidence in this case came from a homeless girl pretending to be deaf and mute. However, since her deception was later uncovered and she was punished, it's reasonable to conclude that she had created the figure of Sir George and had hidden it where it was eventually discovered because of her own information. In the meantime, five of the accused were executed, and the sixth only escaped due to being very young.
A still more remarkable case occurred at Paisley in 1697, where a young girl, about eleven years of age, daughter of John Shaw, of Bargarran, was the principal evidence. This unlucky damsel, beginning her practices out of a quarrel with a maid-servant, continued to imitate a case of possession so accurately that no less than twenty persons were condemned upon her evidence, of whom five were executed, besides one John Reed, who hanged himself in prison, or, as was charitably said, was strangled by the devil in person, lest he should make disclosures to the detriment of the service. But even those who believed in witchcraft were now beginning to open their eyes to the dangers in the present mode of prosecution. “I own,” says the Rev. Mr. Bell in his MS. “Treatise on Witchcraft,” “there has been much harm done to worthy and innocent persons in the common way of finding out witches, and in the means made use of for promoting the discovery of such wretches and bringing them to justice; so that oftentimes old age, poverty, features, and ill-fame, with such like grounds not worthy to be represented to a magistrate, have yet moved many to suspect and defame their neighbours, to the unspeakable prejudice of Christian charity; a late instance whereof we had in the west, in the business of the sorceries exercised upon the Laird of Bargarran’s daughter, anno 1697—a time when persons of more goodness and esteem than most of their calumniators were defamed for witches, and which was occasioned mostly by the forwardness and absurd credulity of diverse otherwise worthy ministers of the gospel, and some topping professors in and about the city of Glasgow."82
A more remarkable case took place in Paisley in 1697, where an eleven-year-old girl, the daughter of John Shaw from Bargarran, was the main witness. This unfortunate girl, starting her actions after a fight with a maid, managed to convincingly feign possession so well that twenty people were condemned based on her testimony. Five of them were executed, and one man named John Reed hanged himself in prison, or as some piously suggested, was strangled by the devil to prevent him from revealing anything that could harm their case. However, even those who believed in witchcraft began to recognize the dangers associated with the current methods of prosecution. “I admit,” wrote Rev. Mr. Bell in his manuscript "Treatise on Witchcraft," “that a lot of harm has been done to innocent and honorable people through the usual ways of identifying witches and the means used to encourage the discovery and prosecution of such miscreants. Often, factors like old age, poverty, appearance, and bad reputation—none of which should be presented to a magistrate—have led many to suspect and defame their neighbors, causing immense harm to Christian charity. A recent example of this occurred in the west regarding the alleged sorcery against the Laird of Bargarran’s daughter in 1697—a time when people of greater virtue and respectability than those who slandered them were accused of witchcraft, largely fueled by the eagerness and absurd gullibility of several otherwise respectable ministers of the gospel and some prominent figures in and around the city of Glasgow."82
82 (return)
[ Law’s “Memorialls,”
edited by C.K. Sliarpe, Esq.: Prefatory Notice, p. 93.]
82 (return)
[ Law’s “Memorialls,”
edited by C.K. Sliarpe, Esq.: Prefatory Notice, p. 93.]
Those who doubted of the sense of the law or reasonableness of the practice in such cases, began to take courage and state their objections boldly. In the year 1704 a frightful instance of popular bigotry occurred at Pittenweem. A strolling vagabond, who affected fits, laid an accusation of witchcraft against two women, who were accordingly seized on, and imprisoned with the usual severities. One of the unhappy creatures, Janet Cornfoot by name, escaped from prison, but was unhappily caught, and brought back to Pittenweem, where she fell into the hands of a ferocious mob, consisting of rude seamen and fishers. The magistrates made no attempts for her rescue, and the crowd exercised their brutal pleasure on the poor old woman, pelted her with stones, swung her suspended on a rope betwixt a ship and the shore, and finally ended her miserable existence by throwing a door over her as she lay exhausted on the beach, and heaping stones upon it till she was pressed to death. As even the existing laws against witchcraft were transgressed by this brutal riot, a warm attack was made upon the magistrates and ministers of the town by those who were shocked at a tragedy of such a horrible cast, There were answers published, in which the parties assailed were zealously defended. The superior authorities were expected to take up the affair, but it so happened; during the general distraction of the country concerning the Union, that the murder went without the investigation which a crime so horrid demanded. Still, however, it was something gained that the cruelty was exposed to the public. The voice of general opinion was now appealed to, and in the long run the sentiments which it advocates are commonly those of good sense and humanity.
Those who questioned the sense of the law or the reasonableness of the practice in such cases began to gain confidence and voice their objections clearly. In 1704, a shocking example of public prejudice occurred in Pittenweem. A wandering drifter, who claimed to have fits, accused two women of witchcraft, who were then seized and imprisoned under harsh conditions. One of these unfortunate women, named Janet Cornfoot, managed to escape from prison but was sadly recaptured and brought back to Pittenweem, where she fell into the hands of a violent mob made up of rough sailors and fishermen. The local magistrates did nothing to rescue her, and the crowd took pleasure in torturing the poor old woman, throwing stones at her, suspending her between a ship and the shore, and ultimately ending her miserable life by tossing a door over her as she lay exhausted on the beach and piling stones on it until she was crushed to death. Since even the existing laws against witchcraft were violated during this brutal riot, those who were horrified by such a tragedy launched a fierce attack on the town’s magistrates and ministers. There were published responses in which the accused parties were vigorously defended. It was expected that higher authorities would take up the case, but due to the widespread turmoil in the country regarding the Union, the murder went uninvestigated—something so horrific deserved. Still, it was a small victory that the cruelty was brought to light. The public's opinion was now called upon, and in the long run, the views it supports are usually those of common sense and compassion.
The officers in the higher branches of the law dared now assert their official authority and reserve for their own decision cases of supposed witchcraft which the fear of public clamour had induced them formerly to leave in the hands of inferior judges, operated upon by all the prejudices of the country and the populace.
The officers in the higher ranks of the law now boldly claimed their official authority and took it upon themselves to decide cases of alleged witchcraft, which their fear of public outcry had previously forced them to leave to lower judges, influenced by the biases of the country and the general public.
In 1718, the celebrated lawyer, Robert Dundas of Arniston, then King’s Advocate, wrote a severe letter of censure to the Sheriff-depute of Caithness, in the first place, as having neglected to communicate officially certain precognitions which he had led respecting some recent practices of witchcraft in his county. The Advocate reminded this local judge that the duty of inferior magistrates, in such cases, was to advise with the King’s Counsel, first, whether they should be made subject of a trial or not; and if so, before what court, and in what manner, it should take place. He also called the magistrate’s attention to a report, that he, the Sheriff-depute, intended to judge in the case himself; “a thing of too great difficulty to be tried without very deliberate advice, and beyond the jurisdiction of an inferior court.” The Sheriff-depute sends, with his apology, the precognition83 of the affair, which is one of the most nonsensical in this nonsensical department of the law. A certain carpenter, named William Montgomery, was so infested with cats, which, as his servant-maid reported, “spoke among themselves,” that he fell in a rage upon a party of these animals which had assembled in his house at irregular hours, and betwixt his Highland arms of knife, dirk, and broadsword, and his professional weapon of an axe, he made such a dispersion that they were quiet for the night. In consequence of his blows, two witches were said to have died. The case of a third, named Nin-Gilbert, was still more remarkable. Her leg being broken, the injured limb withered, pined, and finally fell off; on which the hag was enclosed in prison, where she also died; and the question which remained was, whether any process should be directed against persons whom, in her compelled confession, she had, as usual, informed against. The Lord Advocate, as may be supposed, quashed all further procedure.
In 1718, the well-known lawyer, Robert Dundas of Arniston, who was then the King’s Advocate, sent a harsh letter to the Sheriff-depute of Caithness. He criticized him for failing to officially report on certain investigations he had conducted regarding recent witchcraft activities in the area. The Advocate reminded this local judge that it was the duty of lower magistrates to consult with the King’s Counsel to determine whether these cases should go to trial, and if so, which court should handle it and how the process should proceed. He also pointed out a concerning report that the Sheriff-depute planned to handle the case himself; he noted that it was too complex for a lower court to try without careful deliberation. The Sheriff-depute responded with an apology and the precognition83 of the matter, which turned out to be one of the most ridiculous cases in this already absurd area of law. A carpenter named William Montgomery was so overrun by cats, which his maid claimed “talked among themselves,” that he lashed out at a group of these animals that had gathered in his home at odd hours. Armed with his Highland weapons—knife, dirk, and broadsword—as well as his tool, an axe, he created such chaos that the cats were silenced for the night. Due to his actions, two witches were reportedly killed. A third witch, named Nin-Gilbert, had an even stranger case. After suffering a broken leg, the limb withered away and eventually fell off; she was then imprisoned, where she also died. The remaining question was whether any action should be taken against those she had, in her coerced confession, accused. As expected, the Lord Advocate dismissed any further proceedings.
83 (return)
[ The precognition
is the record of the preliminary evidence on which the public officers
charged in Scotland with duties entrusted to a grand jury in England,
incur the responsibility of sending an accused person to trial.]
83 (return)
[ The precognition
is the documentation of the initial evidence that public officials
in Scotland, who have responsibilities similar to those of a grand jury in England,
take on when they decide to send someone accused to trial.]
In 1720, an unlucky boy, the third son of James, Lord Torphichen, took it into his head, under instructions, it is said, from a knavish governor, to play the possessed and bewitched person, laying the cause of his distress on certain old witches in Calder, near to which village his father had his mansion. The women were imprisoned, and one or two of them died; but the Crown counsel would not proceed to trial. The noble family also began to see through the cheat. The boy was sent to sea, and though he is said at one time to have been disposed to try his fits while on board, when the discipline of the navy proved too severe for his cunning, in process of time he became a good sailor, assisted gallantly in defence of the vessel against the pirates of Angria, and finally was drowned in a storm.
In 1720, an unfortunate boy, the third son of James, Lord Torphichen, decided, supposedly under the influence of a dishonest governor, to pretend that he was possessed and bewitched, blaming his troubles on some old witches in Calder, close to where his father had a mansion. The women were jailed, and one or two of them died; however, the Crown's lawyers decided not to bring the case to trial. The noble family also started to see through the deception. The boy was sent to sea, and although he reportedly tried to fake his fits while on board, the strict discipline of the navy was too much for his trickery. Over time, he became a skilled sailor, bravely helping defend the ship against the pirates of Angria, and ultimately drowned in a storm.
In the year 1722, a Sheriff-depute of Sutherland, Captain David Ross of Littledean, took it upon him, in flagrant violation of the then established rules of jurisdiction, to pronounce the last sentence of death for witchcraft which was ever passed in Scotland. The victim was an insane old woman belonging to the parish of Loth, who had so little idea of her situation as to rejoice at the sight of the fire which was destined to consume her. She had a daughter lame both of hands and feet, a circumstance attributed to the witch’s having been used to transform her into a pony, and get her shod by the devil. It does not appear that any punishment was inflicted for this cruel abuse of the law on the person of a creature so helpless; but the son of the lame daughter, he himself distinguished by the same misfortune, was living so lately as to receive the charity of the present Marchioness of Stafford, Countess of Sutherland in her own right, to whom the poor of her extensive country are as well known as those of the higher order.
In 1722, a Sheriff-depute of Sutherland, Captain David Ross of Littledean, took it upon himself, in blatant violation of the established legal rules at the time, to issue the last death sentence for witchcraft ever given in Scotland. The victim was an elderly woman from the parish of Loth who was insane and had so little awareness of her situation that she was happy to see the fire that would burn her. She had a daughter who was lame in both hands and feet, a condition believed to be caused by the witch having turned her into a pony so the devil could shoe her. It seems that no punishment was ever given for this cruel misuse of the law against such a helpless individual; however, the son of the lame daughter, who also had the same disability, was still alive long enough to receive help from the current Marchioness of Stafford, Countess of Sutherland in her own right, who is known for caring for the poor in her large area just as much as she is for those of higher status.
Since this deplorable action there has been no judicial interference in Scotland on account of witchcraft, unless to prevent explosions of popular enmity against people suspected of such a crime, of which some instances could be produced. The remains of the superstition sometimes occur; there can be no doubt that the vulgar are still addicted to the custom of scoring above the breath84 (as it is termed), and other counter-spells, evincing that the belief in witchcraft is only asleep, and might in remote corners be again awakened to deeds of blood. An instance or two may be quoted chiefly as facts known to the author himself.
Since this terrible action, there hasn't been any legal interference in Scotland regarding witchcraft, except to stop outbursts of public anger against people suspected of such a crime, for which some examples could be provided. The remnants of superstition still sometimes appear; there's no doubt that common people still engage in the practice of scoring above the breath84 (as it’s called), and other counter-spells, indicating that the belief in witchcraft is merely dormant and could potentially be stirred up again in remote areas, leading to violent acts. A couple of examples may be mentioned, mainly as facts known to the author himself.
84 (return)
[ Drawing blood, that is,
by two cuts in the form of a cross on the witch’s forehead, confided in
all throughout Scotland as the most powerful counter charm.]
84 (return)
[ Drawing blood, that is, by making two cuts in a cross shape on the witch’s forehead, is widely believed across Scotland to be the most potent counter charm.]
In a remote part of the Highlands, an ignorant and malignant woman seems really to have meditated the destruction of her neighbour’s property, by placing in a cow-house, or byre as we call it, a pot of baked clay containing locks of hair, parings of nails, and other trumpery. This precious spell was discovered, the design conjectured, and the witch would have been torn to pieces had not a high-spirited and excellent lady in the neighbourhood gathered some of her people (though these were not very fond of the service), and by main force taken the unfortunate creature out of the hands of the populace. The formidable spell is now in my possession.
In a remote part of the Highlands, a spiteful woman appears to have planned the destruction of her neighbor's property by placing a pot of baked clay, filled with locks of hair, nail clippings, and other nonsense, in a cow shed, or byre as we call it. This dangerous spell was discovered, its purpose guessed, and the woman would have been violently attacked if it weren't for a spirited and kind lady from the neighborhood who gathered some of her people (even though they weren’t particularly eager to help) and forcibly rescued the unfortunate woman from the angry crowd. The powerful spell is now in my possession.
About two years since, as they were taking down the walls of a building formerly used as a feeding-house for cattle, in the town of Dalkeith, there was found below the threshold-stone the withered heart of some animal stuck full of many scores of pins—a counter-charm, according to tradition, against the operations of witchcraft on the cattle which are kept within. Among the almost innumerable droves of bullocks which come down every year from the Highlands for the south, there is scarce one but has a curious knot upon his tail, which is also a precaution lest an evil eye or an evil spell may do the animal harm.
About two years ago, while they were taking down the walls of a building that was previously used as a cattle feeding house in the town of Dalkeith, they discovered beneath the threshold stone the dried heart of some animal filled with many pins—a traditional counter-charm against witchcraft affecting the cattle inside. Among the countless herds of bullocks that come down from the Highlands to the south every year, almost every one has a peculiar knot tied in its tail, serving as a precaution against an evil eye or harmful spell.
The last Scottish story with which I will trouble you happened in or shortly after the year 1800, and the whole circumstances are well known to me. The dearth of the years in the end of the eighteenth and beginning of this century was inconvenient to all, but distressing to the poor. A solitary old woman, in a wild and lonely district, subsisted chiefly by rearing chickens, an operation requiring so much care and attention that the gentry, and even the farmers’ wives, often find it better to buy poultry at a certain age than to undertake the trouble of bringing them up. As the old woman in the present instance fought her way through life better than her neighbours, envy stigmatized her as having some unlawful mode of increasing the gains of her little trade, and apparently she did not take much alarm at the accusation. But she felt, like others, the dearth of the years alluded to, and chiefly because the farmers were unwilling to sell grain in the very moderate quantities which she was able to purchase, and without which her little stock of poultry must have been inevitably starved. In distress on this account, the dame went to a neighbouring farmer, a very good-natured, sensible, honest man, and requested him as a favour to sell her a peck of oats at any price. “Good neighbour,” he said, “I am sorry to be obliged to refuse you, but my corn is measured out for Dalkeith market; my carts are loaded to set out, and to open these sacks again, and for so small a quantity, would cast my accounts loose, and create much trouble and disadvantage; I dare say you will get all you want at such a place, or such a place.” On receiving this answer, the old woman’s temper gave way. She scolded the wealthy farmer, and wished evil to his property, which was just setting off for the market. They parted, after some angry language on both sides; and sure enough, as the carts crossed the ford of the river beneath the farm-house, off came the wheel from one of them, and five or six sacks of corn were damaged by the water. The good farmer hardly knew what to think of this; there were the two circumstances deemed of old essential and sufficient to the crime of witchcraft—Damnum minatum, et malum secutum. Scarce knowing what to believe, he hastened to consult the sheriff of the county, as a friend rather than a magistrate, upon a case so extraordinary. The official person showed him that the laws against witchcraft were abrogated, and had little difficulty to bring him to regard the matter in its true light of an accident.
The last Scottish story I want to share happened around the year 1800, and I know all the details well. The hardships of those years at the end of the 18th century and the start of this one were tough for everyone, but especially for the poor. An elderly woman, living in a remote and desolate area, mainly made her living by raising chickens. This task requires so much care and attention that wealthy people and even farmers' wives often find it easier to buy grown birds rather than deal with the hassle of raising them. Since the old woman managed to get by better than her neighbors, envy led them to accuse her of having some illegal way of boosting her small business, but she didn’t seem too bothered by the accusations. However, like everyone else, she felt the weight of the scarcity during those years, particularly because farmers were reluctant to sell grain in the small amounts she could afford. Without this grain, her small flock of poultry would surely starve. Upset about this, she went to a nearby farmer—a kind, sensible, and honest man—and asked him as a favor to sell her a peck of oats, no matter the price. “Good neighbour,” he replied, “I’m sorry, but I have to refuse you. My corn is already measured out for Dalkeith market. My carts are loaded and ready to go, and reopening these sacks for such a small amount would disrupt my accounts and create a lot of trouble. I’m sure you can find what you need at such-and-such place.” After hearing this, the old woman lost her temper. She scolded the wealthy farmer and wished misfortune upon his property, which was just about to leave for market. They ended their conversation after exchanging some heated words. Sure enough, as the carts crossed the river ford near the farmhouse, one of the wheels broke off, and five or six sacks of corn were soaked by the water. The good farmer was taken aback; here were two things traditionally seen as signs of witchcraft—Damnum minatum, et malum secutum. Uncertain of what to think, he hurried to consult the county sheriff, approaching him more as a friend than a magistrate regarding such an unusual incident. The official pointed out that the laws against witchcraft had been repealed and easily helped him see the situation for what it really was—a mere accident.
It is strange, but true, that the accused herself was not to be reconciled to the sheriffs doctrine so easily. He reminded her that, if she used her tongue with so much license, she must expose herself to suspicions, and that should coincidences happen to irritate her neighbours, she, might suffer harm at a time when there was no one to protect her. He therefore requested her to be more cautious in her language for her own sake, professing, at the same time, his belief that her words and intentions were perfectly harmless, and that he had no apprehension of being hurt by her, let her wish her worst to him. She was rather more angry than pleased at the well-meaning sheriffs scepticism. “I would be laith to wish ony ill either to you or yours, sir,” she said; “for I kenna how it is, but something aye comes after my words when I am ill-guided and speak ower fast.” In short, she was obstinate in claiming an influence over the destiny of others by words and wishes, which might have in other times conveyed her to the stake, for which her expressions, their consequences, and her disposition to insist upon their efficacy, would certainly of old have made her a fit victim. At present the story is scarcely worth mentioning, but as it contains material resembling those out of which many tragic incidents have arisen.
It's strange, but true, that the accused herself wasn’t easily swayed by the sheriff’s advice. He pointed out that if she spoke so freely, she would put herself at risk for suspicion, and if something were to upset her neighbors, she might find herself in trouble with no one to protect her. He urged her to be more careful with her words for her own safety, asserting that he believed her words and intentions were completely harmless and that he had no fear of her wishing him any harm. She was more annoyed than pleased by the sheriff’s well-meaning skepticism. “I would be loath to wish any harm to you or yours, sir,” she replied, “for I don’t know how it is, but something always seems to follow my words when I’m misguided and speak too quickly.” In short, she was adamant about having an influence over the fate of others through her words and wishes, which, in another era, could have led her to the stake; her remarks, their consequences, and her insistence on their power would have made her a suitable target back then. Nowadays, the story is hardly worth mentioning, but it contains elements similar to those that have led to many tragic events.
So low, in short, is now the belief in witchcraft, that perhaps it is only received by those half-crazy individuals who feel a species of consequence derived from accidental coincidences, which, were they received by the community in general, would go near, as on former occasions, to cost the lives of those who make their boast of them. At least one hypochondriac patient is known to the author, who believes himself the victim of a gang of witches, and ascribes his illness to their charms, so that he wants nothing but an indulgent judge to awake again the old ideas of sorcery.
So low is the belief in witchcraft now that it seems to be held only by those somewhat off their rocker, who feel a sense of importance from random coincidences. If the rest of society took these beliefs seriously, it could lead to serious consequences for those who flaunt them, just like in the past. There’s at least one hypochondriac known to the author who thinks he’s the target of a group of witches and blames his illness on their spells, so all he needs is a lenient judge to revive the old notions of sorcery.
LETTER X.
Other Mystic Arts independent of Witchcraft—Astrology—Its Influence during the 16th and 17th Centuries—Base Ignorance of those who practised it—Lilly’s History of his Life and Times—Astrologer’s Society—Dr. Lamb—Dr. Forman—Establishment of the Royal Society—Partridge—Connexion of Astrologers with Elementary Spirits—Dr. Dun—Irish Superstition of the Banshie—Similar Superstition in the Highlands—Brownie—Ghosts—Belief of Ancient Philosophers on that Subject—Inquiry into the respect due to such Tales in Modern Times—Evidence of a Ghost against a Murderer—Ghost of Sir George Villiers—Story of Earl St. Vincent—Of a British General Officer—Of an Apparition in France—Of the Second Lord Lyttelton—Of Bill Jones—Of Jarvis Matcham—Trial of two Highlanders for the Murder of Sergeant Davis, discovered by a Ghost—Disturbances at Woodstock, anno 1649—Imposture called the Stockwell Ghost—Similar Case in Scotland—Ghost appearing to an Exciseman—Story of a Disturbed House discovered by the firmness of the Proprietor—Apparition at Plymouth—A Club of Philosophers—Ghost Adventure of a Farmer—Trick upon a Veteran Soldier—Ghost Stories recommended by the Skill of the Authors who compose them—Mrs. Veal’s Ghost—Dunton’s Apparition Evidence—Effect of Appropriate Scenery to Encourage a Tendency to Superstition—Differs at distant Periods of Life—Night at Glammis Castle about 1791—Visit to Dunvegan in 1814.
Other Mystic Arts aside from Witchcraft—Astrology—Its Impact during the 16th and 17th Centuries—General Ignorance of those who practiced it—Lilly’s Life and Times—Astrologer’s Society—Dr. Lamb—Dr. Forman—Formation of the Royal Society—Partridge—Connection of Astrologers with Elemental Spirits—Dr. Dun—Ireland's Banshee Superstition—Similar Beliefs in the Highlands—Brownie—Ghosts—Ancient Philosophers' Views on the Topic—Examination of the Respect Given to Such Tales in Modern Times—Evidence of a Ghost against a Murderer—Ghost of Sir George Villiers—Story of Earl St. Vincent—Of a British General Officer—Of an Apparition in France—Of the Second Lord Lyttelton—Of Bill Jones—Of Jarvis Matcham—Trial of two Highlanders for the Murder of Sergeant Davis, revealed by a Ghost—Disturbances at Woodstock, in 1649—The Hoax known as the Stockwell Ghost—Similar Case in Scotland—Ghost appearing to an Exciseman—Story of a Haunted House uncovered by the Owner’s Resolve—Apparition at Plymouth—A Society of Philosophers—Ghost Encounter of a Farmer—Prank on a Veteran Soldier—Ghost Stories praised for the Skill of their Authors—Mrs. Veal’s Ghost—Dunton’s Apparition Evidence—Impact of Suitable Scenery on Superstitious Tendencies—Differences over Various Life Stages—Night at Glamis Castle around 1791—Visit to Dunvegan in 1814.
While the vulgar endeavoured to obtain a glance into the darkness of futurity by consulting the witch or fortune-teller, the great were supposed to have a royal path of their own, commanding a view from a loftier quarter of the same terra incognita. This was represented as accessible by several routes. Physiognomy, chiromancy, and other fantastic arts of prediction afforded each its mystical assistance and guidance. But the road most flattering to human vanity, while it was at the same time most seductive to human credulity, was that of astrology, the queen of mystic sciences, who flattered those who confided in her that the planets and stars in their spheres figure forth and influence the fate of the creatures of mortality, and that a sage acquainted with her lore could predict, with some approach to certainty, the events of any man’s career, his chance of success in life or in marriage, his advance in favour of the great, or answer any other horary questions, as they were termed, which he might be anxious to propound, provided always he could supply the exact moment of his birth. This, in the sixteenth and greater part of the seventeenth centuries, was all that was necessary to enable the astrologer to erect a scheme of the position of the heavenly bodies, which should disclose the life of the interrogator, or Native, as he was called, with all its changes, past, present, and to come.
While ordinary people tried to peek into the future by consulting witches or fortune-tellers, the elite were thought to have their own privileged means, offering a view from a higher perspective of the same terra incognita. This was said to be reachable by various paths. Face reading, palmistry, and other fanciful predictive arts provided their own mystical support and direction. However, the most appealing route to human pride, while also the most tempting to human gullibility, was astrology, the reigning queen of mystical sciences, who assured her followers that the planets and stars in their orbits shape and affect the fate of mortals. A knowledgeable astrologer could predict, with a fair degree of accuracy, the course of a person's life, their likelihood of success in careers or marriages, their ascent in favor with those in power, or respond to any other specific questions—referred to as horary questions—provided they could give the exact time of their birth. During the sixteenth century and much of the seventeenth century, this was all that was needed for an astrologer to create a chart of the stars' positions, which would reveal the life history of the person asking, known as the Native, with all its changes—past, present, and future.
Imagination was dazzled by a prospect so splendid; and we find that in the sixteenth century the cultivation of this fantastic science was the serious object of men whose understandings and acquirements admit of no question. Bacon himself allowed the truth which might be found in a well-regulated astrology, making thus a distinction betwixt the art as commonly practised and the manner in which it might, as he conceived, be made a proper use of. But a grave or sober use of this science, if even Bacon could have taught such moderation, would not have suited the temper of those who, inflamed by hopes of temporal aggrandizement, pretended to understand and explain to others the language of the stars. Almost all the other paths of mystic knowledge led to poverty; even the alchemist, though talking loud and high of the endless treasures his art was to produce, lived from day to day and from year to year upon hopes as unsubstantial as the smoke of his furnace. But the pursuits of the astrologer were such as called for instant remuneration. He became rich by the eager hopes and fond credulity of those who consulted him, and that artist lived by duping others, instead of starving, like others, by duping himself. The wisest men have been cheated by the idea that some supernatural influence upheld and guided them; and from the time of Wallenstein to that of Buonaparte, ambition and success have placed confidence in the species of fatalism inspired by a belief of the influence of their own star. Such being the case, the science was little pursued by those who, faithful in their remarks and reports, must soon have discovered its delusive vanity through the splendour of its professions; and the place of such calm and disinterested pursuers of truth was occupied by a set of men sometimes ingenious, always forward and assuming, whose knowledge was imposition, whose responses were, like the oracles of yore, grounded on the desire of deceit, and who, if sometimes they were elevated into rank and fortune, were more frequently found classed with rogues and vagabonds. This was the more apt to be the case that a sufficient stock of impudence, and some knowledge by rote of the terms of art, were all the store of information necessary for establishing a conjurer. The natural consequence of the degraded character of the professors was the degradation of the art itself. Lilly, who wrote the history of his own life and times, notices in that curious volume the most distinguished persons of his day, who made pretensions to astrology, and almost without exception describes them as profligate, worthless, sharking cheats, abandoned to vice, and imposing, by the grossest frauds, upon the silly fools who consulted them. From what we learn of his own history, Lilly himself, a low-born ignorant man, with some gloomy shades of fanaticism in his temperament, was sufficiently fitted to dupe others, and perhaps cheated himself merely by perusing, at an advanced period of life, some of the astrological tracts devised by men of less cunning, though perhaps more pretence to science, than he himself might boast. Yet the public still continue to swallow these gross impositions, though coming from such unworthy authority. The astrologers embraced different sides of the Civil War, and the king on one side, with the Parliamentary leaders on the other, were both equally curious to know, and eager to believe, what Lilly, Wharton, or Gadbury had discovered from the heavens touching the fortune of the strife. Lilly was a prudent person, contriving with some address to shift the sails of his prophetic bark so as to suit the current of the time, and the gale of fortune. No person could better discover from various omens the course of Charles’s misfortunes, so soon as they had come to pass. In the time of the Commonwealth he foresaw the perpetual destruction of the monarchy, and in 1660 this did not prevent his foreseeing the restoration of Charles II. He maintained some credit even among the better classes, for Aubrey and Ashmole both called themselves his friends, being persons extremely credulous, doubtless, respecting the mystic arts. Once a year, too, the astrologers had a public dinner or feast, where the knaves were patronised by the company of such fools as claimed the title of Philomaths—that is, lovers of the mathematics, by which name were still distinguished those who encouraged the pursuit of mystical prescience, the most opposite possible to exact science. Elias Ashmole, the “most honourable Esquire,” to whom Lilly’s life is dedicated, seldom failed to attend; nay, several men of sense and knowledge honoured this rendezvous. Congreve’s picture of a man like Foresight, the dupe of astrology and its sister arts, was then common in society. But the astrologers of the 17th century did not confine themselves to the stars. There was no province of fraud which they did not practise; they were scandalous as panders, and as quacks sold potions for the most unworthy purposes. For such reasons the common people detested the astrologers of the great as cordially as they did the more vulgar witches of their own sphere.
Imagination was captivated by such a magnificent prospect, and it’s clear that in the sixteenth century, serious men devoted themselves to this intriguing science, whose knowledge and skills are beyond question. Bacon himself acknowledged the potential truth in well-regulated astrology, distinguishing between the art as typically practiced and how he believed it could be properly applied. However, a serious approach to this science, even if Bacon could have advocated for such moderation, would not have suited those who, driven by hopes of personal gain, claimed to interpret the stars for others. Nearly all other pathways of mystical knowledge led to poverty; even the alchemist, despite boasting loud and high about the endless treasures his art would yield, lived on nothing but fleeting hopes as insubstantial as the smoke from his furnace. In contrast, astrologers required immediate payment for their services. They became wealthy thanks to the eager hopes and gullible belief of their clients, thriving on deceiving others rather than suffering like others who were deceived themselves. The wisest men have fallen for the notion that some supernatural force was guiding them, and from Wallenstein's time to that of Buonaparte, ambition and success have inspired a kind of fatalism driven by their beliefs in the influence of their own stars. Given this, the science was rarely pursued by those who, dedicated to their observations and reports, would soon have recognized its deceptive vanity hidden behind its grand claims. Instead, the pursuit of truth was taken over by a group of men who were often clever, always bold, and who presented knowledge that was merely a fraud, with their answers, much like ancient oracles, rooted in deceitful desires. While some of these individuals might occasionally rise to ranks of power and wealth, most were found among con artists and drifters. This was likely due to the fact that an adequate dose of audacity and some rote knowledge of terms was all that was necessary to become a conjurer. The degrading reputation of the practitioners naturally led to the decline of the art itself. Lilly, who chronicled his own life and times, highlighted in that intriguing book many notable figures of his day who claimed to practice astrology, and almost without exception, he described them as disreputable, worthless, and conniving frauds, deeply immersed in vice while imposing the coarsest kinds of deception on the foolish clients who sought their counsel. From what we learn about Lilly himself, he was a lowly, ignorant man with some dark shades of fanaticism in his personality, which made him quite capable of tricking others, and perhaps he deceived himself simply by studying, later in life, some astrological writings created by less cunning men, though possibly with more pretensions to knowledge than he could boast. Still, the public continues to fall for these blatant deceptions, even when they come from such disreputable sources. The astrologers took various sides during the Civil War, and both the king and the Parliamentary leaders were equally eager to know what Lilly, Wharton, or Gadbury had predicted about the conflict's outcome based on their readings of the heavens. Lilly was a clever man, skillfully adjusting the direction of his prophetic ship to match the changing times and the winds of fortune. No one could better interpret signs of Charles’s troubles after they became apparent. During the Commonwealth, he foresaw the monarchy's inevitable downfall, and in 1660, he still foresaw the restoration of Charles II. He maintained a certain level of credibility even among the upper classes, as both Aubrey and Ashmole considered themselves his friends, being exceptionally gullible when it came to mystical arts. Once a year, the astrologers also held a public dinner or feast, where the tricksters were supported by an audience of fools who called themselves Philomaths—lovers of mathematics—by which title those who promoted mystical foresight, opposing true science, were still recognized. Elias Ashmole, the “most honorable Esquire” to whom Lilly dedicated his life story, rarely missed this gathering; indeed, several sensible and knowledgeable men attended this meeting. Congreve's portrayal of a man resembling Foresight, a victim of astrology and its allied arts, was widely recognized in society at the time. Yet the astrologers of the 17th century didn’t limit their deceptions to the stars. They engaged in every possible form of fraud; they acted scandalously as intermediaries and quacks peddling potions for the most disgraceful purposes. For these reasons, ordinary people despised the astrologers of the elite just as passionately as they did the more common witches of their own social standing.
Dr. Lamb, patronised by the Duke of Buckingham, who, like other overgrown favourites, was inclined to cherish astrology, was in 1640 pulled to pieces in the city of London by the enraged populace, and his maid-servant, thirteen years afterwards, hanged as a witch at Salisbury. In the villanous transaction of the poisoning of Sir Thomas Overbury, in King James’s time, much mention was made of the art and skill of Dr. Forman, another professor of the same sort with Lamb, who was consulted by the Countess of Essex on the best mode of conducting her guilty intrigue with the Earl of Somerset. He was dead before the affair broke out, which might otherwise have cost him the gibbet, as it did all others concerned, with the exception only of the principal parties, the atrocious authors of the crime. When the cause was tried, some little puppets were produced in court, which were viewed by one party with horror, as representing the most horrid spells. It was even said that the devil was about to pull down the court-house on their being discovered. Others of the audience only saw in them the baby figures on which the dressmakers then, as now, were accustomed to expose new fashions.
Dr. Lamb, who was supported by the Duke of Buckingham and, like other favored individuals, had an interest in astrology, was brutally killed by an angry mob in London in 1640. Thirteen years later, his maid was hanged as a witch in Salisbury. During the scandal involving the poisoning of Sir Thomas Overbury in King James’s era, there was a lot of talk about the practices and expertise of Dr. Forman, another practitioner like Lamb, who was consulted by the Countess of Essex on how to carry out her illicit affair with the Earl of Somerset. He had passed away before the scandal erupted, which likely saved him from the gallows, unlike everyone else involved, except for the main culprits, who were the real instigators of the crime. When the case was brought to trial, some small dolls were presented in court, which one side viewed with horror, believing they represented dreadful spells. It was even claimed that the devil would destroy the courthouse upon their discovery. Others in the audience merely saw them as the child-sized mannequins that dressmakers used to display new fashion styles back then, just like they do now.
The erection of the Royal Society, dedicated to far different purposes than the pursuits of astrology, had a natural operation in bringing the latter into discredit; and although the credulity of the ignorant and uninformed continued to support some pretenders to that science, the name of Philomath, assumed by these persons and their clients, began to sink under ridicule and contempt. When Sir Richard Steele set up the paper called the Guardian, he chose, under the title of Nestor Ironside, to assume the character of an astrologer, and issued predictions accordingly, one of which, announcing the death of a person called Partridge, once a shoemaker, but at the time the conductor of an Astrological Almanack, led to a controversy, which was supported with great humour by Swift and other wags. I believe you will find that this, with Swift’s Elegy on the same person, is one of the last occasions in which astrology has afforded even a jest to the good people of England.
The establishment of the Royal Society, focused on very different goals than astrology, naturally led to the decline of the latter’s credibility. Even though the gullibility of the uneducated and uninformed still supported some people claiming to practice that science, the title of Philomath adopted by these individuals and their followers began to lose its respectability due to mockery and scorn. When Sir Richard Steele launched the paper called the Guardian, he took on the persona of an astrologer under the name Nestor Ironside, and made predictions accordingly. One prediction, which foretold the death of a man named Partridge—who was once a shoemaker but at that time was the editor of an Astrological Almanack—sparked a humorous controversy led by Swift and other comedians. I think you'll find that this, along with Swift’s Elegy for the same person, is one of the last instances when astrology provided even a laugh for the good people of England.
This dishonoured science has some right to be mentioned in a “Treatise on Demonology,” because the earlier astrologers, though denying the use of all necromancy—that is, unlawful or black magic—pretended always to a correspondence with the various spirits of the elements, on the principles of the Rosicrucian philosophy. They affirmed they could bind to their service, and imprison in a ring, a mirror, or a stone, some fairy, sylph, or salamander, and compel it to appear when called, and render answers to such questions as the viewer should propose. It is remarkable that the sage himself did not pretend to see the spirit; but the task of viewer, or reader, was entrusted to a third party, a boy or girl usually under the years of puberty. Dr. Dee, an excellent mathematician, had a stone of this kind, and is said to have been imposed upon concerning the spirits attached to it, their actions and answers, by the report of one Kelly who acted as his viewer. The unfortunate Dee was ruined by his associates both in fortune and reputation. His show-stone or mirror is still preserved among other curiosities in the British Museum. Some superstition of the same kind was introduced by the celebrated Count Cagliostro, during the course of the intrigue respecting the diamond necklace in which the late Marie Antoinette was so unfortunately implicated.
This discredited science deserves mention in a “Treatise on Demonology” because earlier astrologers, while rejecting all forms of necromancy—meaning illegal or black magic—claimed to connect with various elemental spirits based on Rosicrucian philosophy. They insisted they could bind a fairy, sylph, or salamander to their service, trapping it in a ring, mirror, or stone, and make it appear when summoned to answer whatever questions the viewer asked. Interestingly, the sage himself did not claim to see the spirit; instead, the role of viewer or reader was given to a third party, usually a boy or girl younger than puberty. Dr. Dee, a skilled mathematician, possessed such a stone and was reportedly deceived about the spirits connected to it and their responses by one Kelly, who acted as his viewer. The unfortunate Dee was brought down by his associates, losing both wealth and reputation. His show-stone or mirror is still kept among other curiosities in the British Museum. A similar superstition was introduced by the famous Count Cagliostro during the intrigue surrounding the diamond necklace scandal that unfortunately involved the late Marie Antoinette.
Dismissing this general class of impostors, who are now seldom heard of, we come now briefly to mention some leading superstitions once, perhaps, common to all the countries of Europe, but now restricted to those which continue to be inhabited by an undisturbed and native race. Of these, one of the most beautiful is the Irish fiction which assigns to certain families of ancient descent and distinguished rank the privilege of a Banshie, as she is called, or household fairy, whose office it is to appear, seemingly mourning, while she announces the approaching death of some one of the destined race. The subject has been so lately and beautifully investigated and illustrated by Mr. Crofton Croker and others, that I may dispense with being very particular regarding it. If I am rightly informed, the distinction of a banshie is only allowed to families of the pure Milesian stock, and is never ascribed to any descendant of the proudest Norman or boldest Saxon who followed the banner of Earl Strongbow, much less to adventurers of later date who have obtained settlements in the Green Isle.
Dismissing this general group of impostors, who are now rarely mentioned, we will briefly touch on some major superstitions that were once perhaps common across all of Europe, but are now limited to areas still inhabited by indigenous people. One of the most beautiful is the Irish belief that certain families of ancient lineage and distinguished status are granted the privilege of a Banshee, or household fairy, whose role is to appear, seemingly in mourning, while announcing the imminent death of someone from their line. Mr. Crofton Croker and others have recently and beautifully explored this topic, so I won't go into too much detail. If I’m correct, the title of Banshee is only given to families of pure Milesian descent and is never attributed to any descendant of the proudest Norman or boldest Saxon who followed Earl Strongbow, much less to later arrivals who settled in the Emerald Isle.
Several families of the Highlands of Scotland anciently laid claim to the distinction of an attendant spirit who performed the office of the Irish banshie. Amongst them, however, the functions of this attendant genius, whose form and appearance differed in different cases, were not limited to announcing the dissolution of those whose days were numbered. The Highlanders contrived to exact from them other points of service, sometimes as warding off dangers of battle; at others, as guarding and protecting the infant heir through the dangers of childhood; and sometimes as condescending to interfere even in the sports of the chieftain, and point out the fittest move to be made at chess, or the best card to be played at any other game. Among those spirits who have deigned to vouch their existence by appearance of late years, is that of an ancestor of the family of MacLean of Lochbuy. Before the death of any of his race the phantom-chief gallops along the sea-beach near to the castle, announcing the event by cries and lamentations. The spectre is said to have rode his rounds and uttered his death-cries within these few years, in consequence of which the family and clan, though much shocked, were in no way surprised to hear by next accounts that their gallant chief was dead at Lisbon, where he served under Lord Wellington.
Several families in the Highlands of Scotland have long claimed the presence of a spirit that acted like the Irish banshee. However, the role of this spirit, which could take different forms, went beyond just announcing the deaths of those who were about to pass away. The Highlanders found ways to request additional services from these spirits, sometimes asking them to protect against the dangers of battle, at other times to safeguard the young heir through the perils of childhood, and even to get involved in the chieftain’s games, advising on the best chess moves or the right card to play in other games. One spirit that has recently revealed its presence is that of an ancestor from the MacLean family of Lochbuy. Before any of his descendants dies, this phantom chief rides along the beach near the castle, announcing the upcoming death with cries and laments. It is said that this specter has been seen and has issued his death cries in recent years, which left the family and clan shocked but not entirely surprised when they later learned that their brave chief had died in Lisbon while serving under Lord Wellington.
Of a meaner origin and occupation was the Scottish Brownie, already mentioned as somewhat resembling Robin Goodfellow in the frolicsome days of Old England. This spirit was easily banished, or, as it was styled, hired away, by the offer of clothes or food; but many of the simple inhabitants could little see the prudence of parting with such a useful domestic drudge, who served faithfully, without fee and reward, food or raiment. Neither was it all times safe to reject Brownie’s assistance. Thus, we are informed by Brand, that a young man in the Orkneys “used to brew, and sometimes read upon his Bible; to whom an old woman in the house said, that Brownie was displeased with that book he read upon, which, if he continued to do, they would get no more service of Brownie; but he, being better instructed from that book, which was Brownie’s eyesore and the object of his wrath, when he brewed, would not suffer any sacrifice to be given to Brownie; whereupon the first and second brewings were spoilt, and for no use; for though the wort wrought well, yet in a little time it left off working, and grew cold; but of the third broust, or brewing, he had ale very good, though he would not give any sacrifice to Brownie, with whom afterwards they were no more troubled.” Another story of the same kind is told of a lady in Uist, who refused, on religious grounds, the usual sacrifice to this domestic spirit. The first and second brewings failed, but the third succeeded; and thus, when Brownie lost the perquisite to which he had been so long accustomed, he abandoned the inhospitable house, where his services had so long been faithfully rendered. The last place in the south of Scotland supposed to have been honoured, or benefited, by the residence of a Brownie, was Bodsbeck in Moffatdale, which has been the subject of an entertaining tale by Mr. James Hogg, the self-instructed genius of Ettrick Forest.
The Scottish Brownie, mentioned earlier, had a more humble origin and role, resembling Robin Goodfellow from the playful times of Old England. This spirit could easily be driven away—or as it was called, “hired away”—by offering clothes or food. However, many simple folks didn’t see the wisdom in getting rid of such a helpful household worker who served faithfully without pay or rewards. Rejecting Brownie’s help wasn't always a safe choice. Brand tells us about a young man in the Orkneys who brewed and sometimes read his Bible. An old woman in the house warned him that Brownie was unhappy with that book, and if he continued reading it, he’d lose Brownie’s assistance. But the young man, knowing more from that book—which was the source of Brownie's anger—refused to make any offering to Brownie. Consequently, his first two brewings turned out spoiled and useless; although the wort started off well, it soon stopped working and cooled down. On the third attempt, however, he brewed some very good ale without making any sacrifices to Brownie, who then left them alone. Another similar story is about a lady in Uist who, for religious reasons, refused the usual offering to this spirit. The first and second brewings failed, but the third one succeeded. When Brownie lost the tribute he was so used to, he left the inhospitable home where his services had been consistently provided. The last place in southern Scotland believed to have been blessed by a Brownie was Bodsbeck in Moffatdale, which inspired an entertaining tale by Mr. James Hogg, the self-taught genius from Ettrick Forest.
These particular superstitions, however, are too limited, and too much obliterated from recollection, to call for special discussion. The general faith in fairies has already undergone our consideration; but something remains to be said upon another species of superstition, so general that it may be called proper to mankind in every climate; so deeply rooted also in human belief, that it is found to survive in states of society during which all other fictions of the same order are entirely dismissed from influence. Mr. Crabbe, with his usual felicity, has called the belief in ghosts “the last lingering fiction of the brain.”
These particular superstitions, however, are too limited and too forgotten to deserve special discussion. The general belief in fairies has already been addressed; however, there’s more to say about another type of superstition that is so widespread it can be considered universal to humanity in every environment. It's also so ingrained in human belief that it continues to exist even in societies where all other similar fictions have completely lost their influence. Mr. Crabbe, in his usual insightful way, referred to the belief in ghosts as “the last lingering fiction of the brain.”
Nothing appears more simple at the first view of the subject, than that human memory should recall and bring back to the eye of the imagination, in perfect similitude, even the very form and features of a person with whom we have been long conversant, or which have been imprinted in our minds with indelible strength by some striking circumstances touching our meeting in life. The son does not easily forget the aspect of an affectionate father; and, for reasons opposite but equally powerful, the countenance of a murdered person is engraved upon the recollection of his slayer. A thousand additional circumstances, far too obvious to require recapitulation, render the supposed apparition of the dead the most ordinary spectral phenomenon which is ever believed to occur among the living. All that we have formerly said respecting supernatural appearances in general, applies with peculiar force to the belief of ghosts; for whether the cause of delusion exists in an excited imagination or a disordered organic system, it is in this way that it commonly exhibits itself. Hence Lucretius himself, the most absolute of sceptics, considers the existence of ghosts, and their frequent apparition, as facts so undeniable that he endeavours to account for them at the expense of assenting to a class of phenomena very irreconcilable to his general system. As he will not allow of the existence of the human soul, and at the same time cannot venture to question the phenomena supposed to haunt the repositories of the dead, he is obliged to adopt the belief that the body consists of several coats like those of an onion, and that the outmost and thinnest, being detached by death, continues to wander near the place of sepulture, in the exact resemblance of the person while alive.
Nothing seems more straightforward at first glance than how human memory can perfectly recall and bring to mind the exact form and features of a person we've known for a long time, or whose image has been deeply etched in our minds due to some striking experiences we've had with them. A son doesn’t easily forget the face of a loving father; and for entirely different but equally strong reasons, the face of a murdered person is indelibly marked in the memory of their killer. There are countless additional factors, far too obvious to list, that make the supposed appearance of the dead a common spectral phenomenon believed to occur among the living. Everything we've previously said about supernatural appearances in general is especially relevant to the belief in ghosts; because whether the cause of the delusion comes from an overly active imagination or a disturbed physical system, it typically presents itself in this manner. Therefore, Lucretius himself, who is the ultimate skeptic, considers the existence of ghosts and their frequent appearances to be undeniable facts, so he tries to explain them despite them being incompatible with his overall beliefs. Since he doesn’t accept the existence of the human soul and at the same time can’t question the phenomena that are thought to haunt graveyards, he feels compelled to adopt the idea that the body has multiple layers like an onion, with the outermost and thinnest layer detaching at death and continuing to roam near the burial site, resembling the person while they were alive.
We have said there are many ghost stories which we do not feel at liberty to challenge as impostures, because we are confident that those who relate them on their own authority actually believe what they assert, and may have good reason for doing so, though there is no real phantom after all. We are far, therefore, from averring that such tales are necessarily false. It is easy to suppose the visionary has been imposed upon by a lively dream, a waking reverie, the excitation of a powerful imagination, or the misrepresentation of a diseased organ of sight; and in one or other of these causes, to say nothing of a system of deception which may in many instances be probable, we apprehend a solution will be found for all cases of what are called real ghost stories.
We've mentioned that there are many ghost stories that we can't dismiss as fakes because we're sure that those who share them truly believe what they're saying and may have valid reasons for their beliefs, even if there's no real ghost involved. So, we're not claiming that these stories are necessarily untrue. It's easy to think that the person having the experience could have been tricked by a vivid dream, a daydream, an overactive imagination, or a problem with their eyesight. In one way or another, not to mention the possibility of deception in many cases, we believe that these explanations can account for all instances of what are called real ghost stories.
In truth, the evidence with respect to such apparitions is very seldom accurately or distinctly questioned. A supernatural tale is in most cases received as an agreeable mode of amusing society, and he would be rather accounted a sturdy moralist than an entertaining companion who should employ himself in assailing its credibility. It would indeed be a solecism in manners, something like that of impeaching the genuine value of the antiquities exhibited by a good-natured collector for the gratification of his guests. This difficulty will appear greater should a company have the rare good fortune to meet the person who himself witnessed the wonders which he tells; a well-bred or prudent man will, under such circumstances, abstain from using the rules of cross-examination practised in a court of justice; and if in any case he presumes to do so, he is in danger of receiving answers, even from the most candid and honourable persons, which are rather fitted to support the credit of the story which they stand committed to maintain, than to the pure service of unadorned truth. The narrator is asked, for example, some unimportant question with respect to the apparition; he answers it on the hasty suggestion of his own imagination, tinged as it is with belief of the general fact, and by doing so often gives a feature of minute evidence which was before wanting, and this with perfect unconsciousness on his own part. It is a rare occurrence, indeed, to find an opportunity of dealing with an actual ghost-seer; such instances, however, I have certainly myself met with, and that in the case of able, wise, candid, and resolute persons, of whose veracity I had every reason to be confident. But in such instances shades of mental aberration have afterwards occurred, which sufficiently accounted for the supposed apparitions, and will incline me always to feel alarmed in behalf of the continued health of a friend who should conceive himself to have witnessed such a visitation.
Honestly, the evidence regarding these kinds of appearances is rarely questioned clearly or critically. Most people accept supernatural stories as a fun way to entertain themselves, and anyone who challenges their credibility would be seen as a serious moralist rather than a fun companion. It would be similar to questioning the real value of the antiques a generous collector shows off to delight his guests. This issue becomes even more complicated if a group is fortunate enough to meet someone who has actually witnessed the wonders they’re describing. A polite or sensible person would, in such situations, avoid the cross-examination techniques used in a courtroom; and if they do choose to ask questions, they risk getting answers—even from the most honest and trustworthy individuals—that are more likely to support the story they’re committed to than to seek out the plain truth. For instance, the narrator might be asked a trivial question about the apparition, and he answers based on a quick impulse from his imagination, fueled by his belief in the general idea, which often adds a detail that was previously missing, all without him even realizing it. It is indeed rare to find a chance to engage with someone who has actually seen a ghost; however, I have certainly encountered such instances myself, involving capable, wise, honest, and determined individuals, whose truthfulness I had every reason to trust. But in those cases, signs of mental disturbance have later appeared, which adequately explained the supposed apparitions, leading me to always feel concerned for the well-being of a friend who believes they have witnessed such an experience.
The nearest approximation which can be generally made to exact evidence in this case, is the word of some individual who has had the story, it may be, from the person to whom it has happened, but most likely from his family, or some friend of the family. Far more commonly the narrator possesses no better means of knowledge than that of dwelling in the country where the thing happened, or being well acquainted with the outside of the mansion in the inside of which the ghost appeared.
The closest thing we can generally rely on for exact evidence in this case is the word of someone who heard the story, perhaps from the person it happened to, but more likely from their family or a family friend. More often, the storyteller doesn’t have better knowledge than living in the area where the event occurred or being familiar with the exterior of the house where the ghost appeared.
In every point the evidence of such a second-hand retailer of the mystic story must fall under the adjudged case in an English court. The judge stopped a witness who was about to give an account of the murder upon trial, as it was narrated to him by the ghost of the murdered person. “Hold, sir,” said his lordship; “the ghost is an excellent witness, and his evidence the best possible; but he cannot be heard by proxy in this court. Summon him hither, and I’ll hear him in person; but your communication is mere hearsay, which my office compels me to reject.” Yet it is upon the credit of one man, who pledges it upon that of three or four persons, who have told it successively to each other, that we are often expected to believe an incident inconsistent with the laws of Nature, however agreeable to our love of the wonderful and the horrible.
In every instance, the testimony of a second-hand retailer of the mystical story must be judged in an English court. The judge interrupted a witness who was about to recount the murder being discussed, as it was told to him by the ghost of the murdered person. “Wait a moment, sir,” said the judge; “the ghost is an excellent witness, and his testimony is the best possible; but he cannot be represented by someone else in this court. Summon him here, and I’ll hear him personally; but your report is just hearsay, which my position requires me to dismiss.” Yet it is based on the credibility of one person, who claims it based on three or four others, who have passed it along to each other, that we are often expected to believe something that contradicts the laws of Nature, no matter how much it appeals to our fascination with the extraordinary and the terrifying.
In estimating the truth or falsehood of such stories it is evident we can derive no proofs from that period of society when men affirmed boldly, and believed stoutly, all the wonders which could be coined or fancied. That such stories are believed and told by grave historians, only shows that the wisest men cannot rise in all things above the general ignorance of their age. Upon the evidence of such historians we might as well believe the portents of ancient or the miracles of modern Rome. For example, we read in Clarendon of the apparition of the ghost of Sir George Villiers to an ancient dependant. This is no doubt a story told by a grave author, at a time when such stories were believed by all the world; but does it follow that our reason must acquiesce in a statement so positively contradicted by the voice of Nature through all her works? The miracle of raising a dead man was positively refused by our Saviour to the Jews, who demanded it as a proof of his mission, because they had already sufficient grounds of conviction; and, as they believed them not, it was irresistibly argued by the Divine Person whom they tempted, that neither would they believe if one arose from the dead. Shall we suppose that a miracle refused for the conversion of God’s chosen people was sent on a vain errand to save the life of a profligate spendthrift? I lay aside, you observe, entirely the not unreasonable supposition that Towers, or whatever was the ghost-seer’s name, desirous to make an impression upon Buckingham, as an old servant of his house, might be tempted to give him his advice, of which we are not told the import, in the character of his father’s spirit, and authenticate the tale by the mention of some token known to him as a former retainer of the family. The Duke was superstitious, and the ready dupe of astrologers and soothsayers. The manner in which he had provoked the fury of the people must have warned every reflecting person of his approaching fate; and, the age considered, it was not unnatural that a faithful friend should take this mode of calling his attention to his perilous situation. Or, if we suppose that the incident was not a mere pretext to obtain access to the Duke’s ear, the messenger may have been impressed upon by an idle dream—in a word, numberless conjectures might be formed for accounting for the event in a natural way, the most extravagant of which is more probable than that the laws of Nature were broken through in order to give a vain and fruitless warning to an ambitious minion.
In judging the truth or falsehood of such stories, it's clear that we can't take any proof from a time when people confidently believed in all kinds of wonders. The fact that serious historians believe and share these stories only shows that even the smartest people can't escape the widespread ignorance of their era. Relying on such historians might as well lead us to believe in the omens of ancient times or the miracles of modern Rome. For instance, Clarendon mentions the ghost of Sir George Villiers appearing to an old servant. This is undoubtedly a tale from a serious author, from a time when everyone believed such things. But does that mean we have to agree with a story that is clearly contradicted by the evidence of Nature itself? When Jesus was asked for a miracle to prove his mission, he refused the Jews, who already had enough reasons to believe. Since they didn't believe then, he argued that they wouldn't be convinced even if someone rose from the dead. Should we think that a miracle, denied to convert God's chosen people, was instead sent for the trivial purpose of saving the life of a reckless spendthrift? I completely set aside the not unreasonable idea that Towers, the name of the ghost-seer, may have been motivated to advise Buckingham, as an old servant of the household, impersonating his father's spirit and validating the story with some sign known to him as a past retainer of the family. The Duke was superstitious and easily tricked by astrologers and fortune-tellers. Given how he had angered the people, anyone with reflection should have noted his impending doom; considering the times, it wasn't strange for a loyal friend to use this method to alert him to his dangerous situation. Alternatively, if we assume the incident wasn't just a pretense to gain the Duke's attention, the messenger could have been affected by a meaningless dream—in short, numerous plausible explanations could account for the event in a natural way, with even the most far-fetched being more likely than the idea that the laws of Nature were violated just to offer a pointless and useless warning to an ambitious flatterer.
It is the same with all those that are called accredited ghost stories usually told at the fireside. They want evidence. It is true that the general wish to believe, rather than power of believing, has given some such stories a certain currency in society. I may mention, as one of the class of tales I mean, that of the late Earl St. Vincent, who watched, with a friend, it is said, a whole night, in order to detect the cause of certain nocturnal disturbances which took place in a certain mansion. The house was under lease to Mrs. Ricketts, his sister. The result of his lordship’s vigil is said to have been that he heard the noises without being able to detect the causes, and insisted on his sister giving up the house. This is told as a real story, with a thousand different circumstances. But who has heard or seen an authentic account from Earl St. Vincent, or from his “companion of the watch,” or from his lordship’s sister? And as in any other case such sure species of direct evidence would be necessary to prove the facts, it seems unreasonable to believe such a story on slighter terms. When the particulars are precisely fixed and known, it might be time to enquire whether Lord St. Vincent, amid the other eminent qualities of a first-rate seaman, might not be in some degree tinged with their tendency to superstition; and still farther, whether, having ascertained the existence of disturbances not immediately or easily detected, his lordship might not advise his sister rather to remove than to remain in a house so haunted, though he might believe that poachers or smugglers were the worst ghosts by whom it was disturbed.
It's the same with all those so-called accredited ghost stories usually shared around the fireplace. People want proof. It's true that the general desire to believe, rather than the actual ability to believe, has given some of these stories a certain credibility in society. One example I mention is the tale of the late Earl St. Vincent, who, according to reports, spent an entire night with a friend trying to figure out the cause of some mysterious noises happening in a particular mansion. The house was rented by Mrs. Ricketts, his sister. Supposedly, after his night of watching, he heard the noises but couldn't pinpoint their source and insisted that his sister move out of the house. This is recounted as a true story, complete with countless variations. But who has actually heard or seen a reliable account from Earl St. Vincent or his "watching companion," or from his sister? In any case, such reliable direct evidence would be necessary to prove the facts, so it seems unreasonable to accept this story on weaker terms. When the details are clear and well-known, it might be worth questioning whether Lord St. Vincent, despite being a top-notch sailor, had some inclination towards superstition; and even further, whether he might have suggested that his sister move out rather than stick around in a house that seemed haunted, even if he believed that poachers or smugglers were the real troublemakers.
The story of two highly respectable officers in the British army, who are supposed to have seen the spectre of the brother of one of them in a hut, or barrack, in America, is also one of those accredited ghost tales, which attain a sort of brevet rank as true, from the mention of respectable names as the parties who witnessed the vision. But we are left without a glimpse when, how, and in what terms, this story obtained its currency; as also by whom, and in what manner, it was first circulated; and among the numbers by whom it has been quoted, although all agree in the general event, scarcely two, even of those who pretend to the best information, tell the story in the same way.
The story of two highly respected officers in the British army, who reportedly saw the ghost of one of their brothers in a hut or barrack in America, is one of those well-known ghost stories that gain a sort of unofficial status as true because of the reputable names involved in witnessing the vision. However, we don't have any details on when, how, or in what words this story became popular; nor do we know who first shared it or how it spread. Among the many who have recounted it, even those who claim to have the best information tell the tale in different ways, despite agreeing on the main event.
Another such story, in which the name of a lady of condition is made use of as having seen an apparition in a country-seat in France, is so far better borne out than those I have mentioned, that I have seen a narrative of the circumstances attested by the party principally concerned. That the house was disturbed seems to be certain, but the circumstances (though very remarkable) did not, in my mind, by any means exclude the probability that the disturbance and appearances were occasioned by the dexterous management of some mischievously-disposed persons.
Another story, where a noblewoman claims to have seen a ghost at a country estate in France, is much better supported than the ones I've mentioned. I've actually seen an account of the events confirmed by the main person involved. It's clear that the house was disturbed, but the events—though quite striking—didn't, in my opinion, rule out the possibility that the disturbances and sightings were caused by some people with mischievous intent.
The remarkable circumstance of Thomas, the second Lord Lyttelton, prophesying his own death within a few minutes, upon the information of an apparition, has been always quoted as a true story. But of late it has been said and published, that the unfortunate nobleman had previously determined to take poison, and of course had it in his own power to ascertain the execution of the prediction. It was no doubt singular that a man, who meditated his exit from the world, should have chosen to play such a trick on his friends. But it is still more credible that a whimsical man should do so wild a thing, than that a messenger should be sent from the dead to tell a libertine at what precise hour he should expire.
The unusual situation of Thomas, the second Lord Lyttelton, predicting his own death just minutes later, based on the message from a ghost, has always been cited as a true story. Recently, however, it has been claimed and published that the unfortunate nobleman had already decided to take poison, meaning he could easily confirm the accuracy of the prediction. It's certainly odd that someone who planned to leave the world would pull such a stunt on his friends. Still, it's even more believable that a quirky person would do something so outrageous than that a spirit would be sent from the afterlife to inform a hedonist about the exact moment he would die.
To this list other stories of the same class might be added. But it is sufficient to show that such stories as these, having gained a certain degree of currency in the world, and bearing creditable names on their front, walk through society unchallenged, like bills through a bank when they bear respectable indorsations, although, it may be, the signatures are forged after all. There is, indeed, an unwillingness very closely to examine such subjects, for the secret fund of superstition in every man’s bosom is gratified by believing them to be true, or at least induces him to abstain from challenging them as false. And no doubt it must happen that the transpiring of incidents, in which men have actually seen, or conceived that they saw, apparitions which were invisible to others, contributes to the increase of such stories—which do accordingly sometimes meet us in a shape of veracity difficult to question.
To this list, many other similar stories could be added. But it's enough to show that stories like these, having gained some popularity in the world and backed by credible names, pass through society without challenge, like checks through a bank when they have respectable endorsements, even if the signatures might be fake in the end. There is, in fact, a reluctance to closely examine such topics, as the hidden desire for superstition in every person is satisfied by believing these stories to be true, or at least leads them to refrain from questioning their falsehood. And surely, when incidents occur where people claim to have seen, or thought they saw, apparitions that were invisible to others, it helps fuel the spread of such stories—which do sometimes come at us in a form that's hard to dispute.
The following story was narrated to me by my friend, Mr. William Clerk, chief clerk to the Jury Court, Edinburgh, when he first learned it, now nearly thirty years ago, from a passenger in the mail-coach. With Mr. Clerk’s consent, I gave the story at that time to poor Mat Lewis, who published it with a ghost-ballad which he adjusted on the same theme. From the minuteness of the original detail, however, the narrative is better calculated for prose than verse; and more especially as the friend to whom it was originally communicated is one of the most accurate, intelligent, and acute persons whom I have known in the course of my life, I am willing to preserve the precise story in this place.
The following story was told to me by my friend, Mr. William Clerk, the chief clerk of the Jury Court in Edinburgh, when he first heard it nearly thirty years ago from a passenger on the mail coach. With Mr. Clerk’s permission, I shared the story at that time with poor Mat Lewis, who published it along with a ghost ballad that he wrote on the same theme. However, due to the detailed nature of the original account, the story is better suited for prose than verse; especially since the friend who first shared it with me is one of the most accurate, intelligent, and sharp individuals I've encountered in my life, I want to keep the exact story here.
It was about the eventful year 1800, when the Emperor Paul laid his ill-judged embargo on British trade, that my friend Mr. William Clerk, on a journey to London, found himself in company, in the mail-coach, with a seafaring man of middle age and respectable appearance, who announced himself as master of a vessel in the Baltic trade, and a sufferer by the embargo. In the course of the desultory conversation which takes place on such occasions the seaman observed, in compliance with a common superstition, “I wish we may have good luck on our journey—there is a magpie.” “And why should that be unlucky?” said my friend. “I cannot tell you that,” replied the sailor; “but all the world agrees that one magpie bodes bad luck—two are not so bad, but three are the devil. I never saw three magpies but twice, and once I had near lost my vessel, and the second I fell from a horse, and was hurt.” This conversation led Mr. Clerk to observe that he supposed he believed also in ghosts, since he credited such auguries. “And if I do,” said the sailor, “I may have my own reasons for doing so;” and he spoke this in a deep and serious manner, implying that he felt deeply what he was saying. On being further urged, he confessed that, if he could believe his own eyes, there was one ghost at least which he had seen repeatedly. He then told his story as I now relate it.
It was around the eventful year 1800, when Emperor Paul imposed his poorly thought-out embargo on British trade, that my friend Mr. William Clerk, while journeying to London, found himself sharing a seat in the mail-coach with a middle-aged, respectable-looking sailor. The sailor introduced himself as the captain of a ship involved in the Baltic trade and mentioned that he was suffering because of the embargo. During their casual conversation, the sailor remarked, following a common superstition, “I hope we have good luck on our trip—there's a magpie.” “And why is that unlucky?” my friend asked. “I can't really tell you,” the sailor replied, “but everyone agrees that seeing one magpie brings bad luck—two aren’t so bad, but three are the devil. I've only seen three magpies twice: the first time I nearly lost my ship, and the second I fell off a horse and got hurt.” This led Mr. Clerk to suggest that he supposed the sailor also believed in ghosts since he believed in such omens. “And if I do,” the sailor responded, “I might have my own reasons for it,” saying this in a deep, serious tone that suggested he meant what he said. When prompted further, he admitted that if he could trust his own eyes, he had seen at least one ghost multiple times. He then began telling his story, which I now recount.
Our mariner had in his youth gone mate of a slave vessel from Liverpool, of which town he seemed to be a native. The captain of the vessel was a man of a variable temper, sometimes kind and courteous to his men, but subject to fits of humour, dislike, and passion, during which he was very violent, tyrannical, and cruel. He took a particular dislike at one sailor aboard, an elderly man, called Bill Jones, or some such name. He seldom spoke to this person without threats and abuse, which the old man, with the license which sailors take on merchant vessels, was very apt to return. On one occasion Bill Jones appeared slow in getting out on the yard to hand a sail. The captain, according to custom, abused the seaman as a lubberly rascal, who got fat by leaving his duty to other people. The man made a saucy answer, almost amounting to mutiny, on which, in a towering passion, the captain ran down to his cabin, and returned with a blunderbuss loaded with slugs, with which he took deliberate aim at the supposed mutineer, fired, and mortally wounded him. The man was handed down from the yard, and stretched on the deck, evidently dying. He fixed his eyes on the captain, and said, “Sir, you have done for me, but I will never leave you” The captain, in return, swore at him for a fat lubber, and said he would have him thrown into the slave-kettle, where they made food for the negroes, and see how much fat he had got. The man died. His body was actually thrown into the slave-kettle, and the narrator observed, with a naïveté which confirmed the extent of his own belief in the truth of what he told, “There was not much fat about him after all.”
Our sailor had, in his younger days, served as the first mate on a slave ship from Liverpool, which seemed to be his hometown. The captain of the ship was unpredictable, sometimes nice and respectful to his crew, but prone to outbursts of anger, dislike, and passion, during which he became extremely violent, tyrannical, and cruel. He particularly disliked one sailor on board, an older man known as Bill Jones, or something similar. He rarely spoke to this man without threats and insults, which the old sailor, as sailors often do on merchant ships, was quick to throw back. One time, when Bill Jones was slow to get up on the yard to handle a sail, the captain, following his usual pattern, called him a lazy good-for-nothing who got fat by making others do his work. The man retorted back with a sassy remark, which nearly escalated to mutiny; enraged, the captain stormed down to his cabin and came back with a loaded blunderbuss. He aimed deliberately at the so-called mutineer, fired, and severely wounded him. They brought the man down from the yard and laid him on the deck, clearly dying. He looked at the captain and said, “Sir, you’ve done this to me, but I will never leave you.” The captain, in response, cursed at him for being a fat lazy sailor and threatened to throw him into the slave-kettle where they prepared food for the slaves to see how much fat he really had. The man died. His body was indeed tossed into the slave-kettle, and the narrator observed, with a naïveté that highlighted his deep belief in what he was saying, “There wasn’t much fat on him after all.”
The captain told the crew they must keep absolute silence on the subject of what had passed; and as the mate was not willing to give an explicit and absolute promise, he ordered him to be confined below. After a day or two he came to the mate, and demanded if he had an intention to deliver him up for trial when the vessel got home. The mate, who was tired of close confinement in that sultry climate, spoke his commander fair, and obtained his liberty. When he mingled among the crew once more he found them impressed with the idea, not unnatural in their situation, that the ghost of the dead man appeared among them when they had a spell of duty, especially if a sail was to be handed, on which occasion the spectre was sure to be out upon the yard before any of the crew. The narrator had seen this apparition himself repeatedly—he believed the captain saw it also, but he took no notice of it for some time, and the crew, terrified at the violent temper of the man, dared not call his attention to it. Thus they held on their course homeward with great fear and anxiety.
The captain told the crew they needed to keep completely silent about what had happened; and since the mate wasn't willing to give a clear and absolute promise, he ordered him to be locked up below deck. After a day or two, he approached the mate and asked whether he intended to turn him in for trial when they got back home. The mate, who was fed up with being confined in that sweltering heat, spoke to his commander respectfully and gained his freedom. Once he rejoined the crew, he found they were convinced—understandably given their circumstances—that the ghost of the dead man was hanging around them during their shifts, especially when they had to handle a sail, at which time the apparition would always appear on the yard before any of the crew members. The narrator had seen this ghost himself several times—he believed the captain noticed it too, but he ignored it for quite a while, and the crew, scared of the captain's violent temper, didn’t dare bring it up. So they continued on their journey homeward with a lot of fear and anxiety.
At length, the captain invited the mate, who was now in a sort of favour, to go down to the cabin and take a glass of grog with him. In this interview he assumed a very grave and anxious aspect. “I need not tell you, Jack,” he said, “what sort of hand we have got on board with us. He told me he would never leave me, and he has kept his word. You only see him now and then, but he is always by my side, and never out of my sight. At this very moment I see him—I am determined to bear it no longer, and I have resolved to leave you.”
Finally, the captain invited the mate, who was now somewhat in his good graces, to come down to the cabin and share a drink with him. During their chat, he took on a serious and worried demeanor. “I don't need to explain to you, Jack,” he said, “what kind of situation we’re dealing with on this ship. He told me he would never leave, and he’s kept that promise. You only catch glimpses of him occasionally, but he’s always by my side, never out of my sight. Right now, I can see him—I can’t take it anymore, and I've decided to leave you.”
The mate replied that his leaving the vessel while out of the sight of any land was impossible. He advised, that if the captain apprehended any bad consequences from what had happened, he should run for the west of France or Ireland, and there go ashore, and leave him, the mate, to carry the vessel into Liverpool. The captain only shook his head gloomily, and reiterated his determination to leave the ship. At this moment the mate was called to the deck for some purpose or other, and the instant he got up the companion-ladder he heard a splash in the water, and looking over the ship’s side, saw that the captain had thrown himself into the sea from the quarter-gallery, and was running astern at the rate of six knots an hour. When just about to sink he seemed to make a last exertion, sprung half out of the water, and clasped his hands towards the mate, calling, “By——, Bill is with me now!” and then sunk, to be seen no more.
The mate said that it was impossible for him to leave the ship while they were out of sight of land. He suggested that if the captain feared any negative consequences from what had happened, he should head towards the west coast of France or Ireland, go ashore there, and leave the mate to navigate the ship back to Liverpool. The captain merely shook his head sadly and repeated his decision to abandon the ship. At that moment, the mate was called to the deck for some reason, and as soon as he climbed up the companion-ladder, he heard a splash in the water. Looking over the side of the ship, he saw that the captain had jumped into the sea from the quarter-gallery and was swimming away at about six knots an hour. Just as he was about to go under, he seemed to make one last effort, leaped partially out of the water, and reached out his hands toward the mate, shouting, “By——, Bill is with me now!” before sinking, never to be seen again.
After hearing this singular story Mr. Clerk asked some questions about the captain, and whether his companion considered him as at all times rational. The sailor seemed struck with the question, and answered, after a moment’s delay, that in general he conversationed well enough.
After hearing this unique story, Mr. Clerk asked some questions about the captain and whether his companion thought he was rational at all times. The sailor seemed taken aback by the question and replied, after a brief pause, that in general he talked well enough.
It would have been desirable to have been able to ascertain how far this extraordinary tale was founded on fact; but want of time and other circumstances prevented Mr. Clerk from learning the names and dates, that might to a certain degree have verified the events. Granting the murder to have taken place, and the tale to have been truly told, there was nothing more likely to arise among the ship’s company than the belief in the apparition; as the captain was a man of a passionate and irritable disposition, it was nowise improbable that he, the victim of remorse, should participate in the horrible visions of those less concerned, especially as he was compelled to avoid communicating his sentiments with any one else; and the catastrophe would in such a case be but the natural consequence of that superstitious remorse which has conducted so many criminals to suicide or the gallows. If the fellow-traveller of Mr. Clerk be not allowed this degree of credit, he must at least be admitted to have displayed a singular talent for the composition of the horrible in fiction. The tale, properly detailed, might have made the fortune of a romancer.
It would have been great to find out how much of this extraordinary story was based on fact; however, lack of time and other circumstances stopped Mr. Clerk from discovering the names and dates that might have verified the events to some extent. Assuming the murder happened and the story was accurately told, it’s likely that the crew would have come to believe in the apparition. The captain, being a man with a passionate and irritable nature, could very well have been a victim of remorse, sharing in the horrific visions experienced by those less affected, especially since he was forced to keep his feelings to himself. In such a case, the outcome would simply be a natural result of the superstitious guilt that has driven so many criminals to suicide or the gallows. Even if the fellow traveler of Mr. Clerk isn't given this much credit, he must at least be recognized for displaying a unique talent for crafting horror in fiction. The story, if properly narrated, could have made a writer’s fortune.
I cannot forbear giving you, as congenial to this story, another instance of a guilt-formed phantom, which made considerable noise about twenty years ago or more. I am, I think, tolerably correct in the details, though I have lost the account of the trial. Jarvis Matcham—such, if I am not mistaken, was the name of my hero—was pay-sergeant in a regiment, where he was so highly esteemed as a steady and accurate man that he was permitted opportunity to embezzle a considerable part of the money lodged in his hands for pay of soldiers, bounty of recruits (then a large sum), and other charges which fell within his duty. He was summoned to join his regiment from a town where he had been on the recruiting service, and this perhaps under some shade of suspicion. Matcham perceived discovery was at hand, and would have deserted had it not been for the presence of a little drummer lad, who was the only one of his party appointed to attend him. In the desperation of his crime he resolved to murder the poor boy, and avail himself of some balance of money to make his escape. He meditated this wickedness the more readily that the drummer, he thought, had been put as a spy on him. He perpetrated his crime, and changing his dress after the deed was done, made a long walk across the country to an inn on the Portsmouth road, where he halted and went to bed, desiring to be called when the first Portsmouth coach came. The waiter summoned him accordingly, but long after remembered that, when he shook the guest by the shoulder, his first words as he awoke were: “My God! I did not kill him.”
I can’t help but share with you, as it fits this story, another example of a guilt-driven ghost from about twenty years ago or so. I think I remember the details pretty well, even though I’ve lost track of the trial's specifics. Jarvis Matcham—if I'm not mistaken, that was my main character’s name—was a pay-sergeant in a regiment, where he was so respected as a reliable and precise person that he had the chance to embezzle a significant amount of money meant for soldiers' pay, recruitment bonuses (which was a big deal back then), and other responsibilities within his role. He was called to rejoin his regiment from a town where he had been doing recruitment work, possibly because there were some suspicions about him. Matcham realized he was about to be discovered and would have run away if it hadn’t been for a young drummer boy, the only one assigned to accompany him. In his desperation, he decided to kill the poor boy and use some of the stolen money to escape. He was more inclined to commit this evil act because he thought the drummer was watching him. He carried out the crime, changed his clothes afterward, and took a long walk across the countryside to a inn on the Portsmouth road, where he stopped and went to sleep, asking to be woken up when the first Portsmouth coach arrived. The waiter called him as requested but later recalled that when he shook the guest awake, the first words out of his mouth were: “My God! I did not kill him.”
Matcham went to the seaport by the coach, and instantly entered as an able-bodied landsman or marine, I know not which. His sobriety and attention to duty gained him the same good opinion of the officers in his new service which he had enjoyed in the army. He was afloat for several years, and behaved remarkably well in some actions. At length the vessel came into Plymouth, was paid off, and some of the crew, amongst whom was Jarvis Matcham, were dismissed as too old for service. He and another seaman resolved to walk to town, and took the route by Salisbury. It was when within two or three miles of this celebrated city that they were overtaken by a tempest so sudden, and accompanied with such vivid lightning and thunder so dreadfully loud, that the obdurate conscience of the old sinner began to be awakened. He expressed more terror than seemed natural for one who was familiar with the war of elements, and began to look and talk so wildly that his companion became aware that something more than usual was the matter. At length Matcham complained to his companion that the stones rose from the road and flew after him. He desired the man to walk on the other side of the highway to see if they would follow him when he was alone. The sailor complied, and Jarvis Matcham complained that the stones still flew after him and did not pursue the other. “But what is worse,” he added, coming up to his companion, and whispering, with a tone of mystery and fear, “who is that little drummer-boy, and what business has he to follow us so closely?” “I can see no one,” answered the seaman, infected by the superstition of his associate. “What! not see that little boy with the bloody pantaloons!” exclaimed the secret murderer, so much to the terror of his comrade that he conjured him, if he had anything on his mind, to make a clear conscience as far as confession could do it. The criminal fetched a deep groan, and declared that he was unable longer to endure the life which he had led for years. He then confessed the murder of the drummer, and added that, as a considerable reward had been offered, he wished his comrade to deliver him up to the magistrates of Salisbury, as he would desire a shipmate to profit by his fate, which he was now convinced was inevitable. Having overcome his friend’s objections to this mode of proceeding, Jarvis Matcham was surrendered to justice accordingly, and made a full confession of his guilt But before the trial the love of life returned. The prisoner denied his confession, and pleaded Not Guilty. By this time, however, full evidence had been procured from other quarters. Witnesses appeared from his former regiment to prove his identity with the murderer and deserter, and the waiter remembered the ominous words which he had spoken when he awoke him to join the Portsmouth coach. Jarvis Matcham was found guilty and executed. When his last chance of life was over he returned to his confession, and with his dying breath averred, and truly, as he thought, the truth of the vision on Salisbury Plain. Similar stories might be produced, showing plainly that, under the direction of Heaven, the influence of superstitious fear may be the appointed means of bringing the criminal to repentance for his own sake, and to punishment for the advantage of society.
Matcham took a coach to the seaport and immediately signed up as a sailor or landsman, I'm not sure which. His seriousness and focus on duty won him the same respect from his new officers that he had earned in the army. He spent several years at sea and performed remarkably well in a few battles. Eventually, the ship docked at Plymouth, was decommissioned, and some of the crew, including Jarvis Matcham, were let go for being too old for service. He and another sailor decided to walk to town, taking the route through Salisbury. It was when they were just a couple of miles from this famous city that a sudden storm hit, with striking lightning and thunder so loud that it began to shake the old sinner’s hardened conscience. He showed a level of fear that seemed unusual for someone used to nature's chaos, and he started acting and speaking so strangely that his companion noticed something was off. Finally, Matcham told his friend that the stones were rising from the ground and chasing after him. He asked his companion to walk on the other side of the road to see if they would follow him when he was alone. The sailor agreed, and Matcham claimed the stones still pursued him, but not the other man. “But worse than that,” he whispered, with a fearful and mysterious tone, “who is that little drummer boy, and why is he following us so closely?” “I don’t see anyone,” replied the sailor, now caught up in his companion's superstition. “What! You don’t see that little boy in bloody pants?” exclaimed the secret murderer, scaring his friend to the point where he urged him to clear his conscience through confession if something was troubling him. The criminal sighed deeply and admitted that he could no longer handle the life he had been living for years. He then confessed to murdering the drummer and said that since a significant reward had been offered, he wanted his companion to turn him into the Salisbury authorities, believing that a shipmate should benefit from his fate, which he now realized was unavoidable. After convincing his friend to go along with this idea, Jarvis Matcham was handed over to the law and fully confessed his guilt. But before the trial, his will to live kicked in again. The prisoner recanted his confession and pleaded Not Guilty. By then, however, enough evidence had been gathered from other sources. Witnesses from his old regiment showed up to confirm that he was indeed the murderer and a deserter, and the waiter recalled the ominous words Matcham had spoken when he woke him to catch the Portsmouth coach. Jarvis Matcham was found guilty and executed. Once his final chance at life was gone, he reverted back to his confession, and with his dying breath, he insisted, and truly believed, in the vision he had seen on Salisbury Plain. Similar stories could be told, clearly showing that, under divine guidance, the power of superstitious fear may be the intended method of leading the criminal to repentance for their own sake and to punishment for the betterment of society.
Cases of this kind are numerous and easily imagined, so I shall dwell on them no further; but rather advert to at least an equally abundant class of ghost stories, in which the apparition is pleased not to torment the actual murderer, but proceeds in a very circuitous manner, acquainting some stranger or ignorant old woman with the particulars of his fate, who, though perhaps unacquainted with all the parties, is directed by a phantom to lay the facts before a magistrate. In this respect we must certainly allow that ghosts have, as we are informed by the facetious Captain Grose, forms and customs peculiar to themselves.
There are plenty of cases like this that are easy to imagine, so I won't go into them any further; instead, I'll focus on at least an equally large group of ghost stories where the ghost doesn't directly torment the actual murderer. Instead, it takes a more roundabout approach, revealing the details of its fate to some stranger or clueless old woman who, even though she might not know all the people involved, is guided by a spirit to share the facts with a magistrate. In this way, we have to agree that ghosts, as humorously noted by Captain Grose, have their own unique forms and customs.
There would be no edification and little amusement in treating of clumsy deceptions of this kind, where the grossness of the imposture detects itself. But occasionally cases occur like the following, with respect to which it is more difficult, to use James Boswell’s phrase, “to know what to think.”
There’s not much to learn or even be entertained by when it comes to obvious tricks like this, where the blatant nature of the scam reveals itself. However, there are times when situations arise like the one below, which make it harder, to use James Boswell’s phrase, “to know what to think.”
Upon the 10th of June, 1754, Duncan Terig, alias Clark, and Alexander Bain MacDonald, two Highlanders, were tried before the Court of Justiciary, Edinburgh, for the murder of Arthur Davis, sergeant in Guise’s regiment, on the 28th September, 1749. The accident happened not long after the civil war, the embers of which were still reeking, so there existed too many reasons on account of which an English soldier, straggling far from assistance, might be privately cut off by the inhabitants of these wilds. It appears that Sergeant Davis was missing for years, without any certainty as to his fate. At length, an account of the murder appeared from the evidence of one Alexander MacPherson (a Highlander, speaking no language but Gaelic, and sworn by an interpreter), who gave the following extraordinary account of his cause of knowledge:—He was, he said, in bed in his cottage, when an apparition came to his bedside and commanded him to rise and follow him out of doors. Believing his visitor to be one Farquharson, a neighbour and friend, the witness did as he was bid; and when they were without the cottage, the appearance told the witness he was the ghost of Sergeant Davis, and requested him to go and bury his mortal remains, which lay concealed in a place he pointed out in a moorland tract called the Hill of Christie. He desired him to take Farquharson with him as an assistant. Next day the witness went to the place specified, and there found the bones of a human body much decayed. The witness did not at that time bury the bones so found, in consequence of which negligence the sergeant’s ghost again appeared to him, upbraiding him with his breach of promise. On this occasion the witness asked the ghost who were the murderers, and received for answer that he had been slain by the prisoners at the bar. The witness, after this second visitation, called the assistance of Farquharson, and buried the body.
On June 10, 1754, Duncan Terig, also known as Clark, and Alexander Bain MacDonald, two Highlanders, were tried in the Court of Justiciary in Edinburgh for the murder of Arthur Davis, a sergeant in Guise’s regiment, on September 28, 1749. This incident occurred not long after the civil war, with tensions still simmering, which meant there were many reasons for an English soldier, wandering far from help, to be secretly attacked by the local inhabitants of these wild areas. Sergeant Davis had been missing for years, with no clear information about his fate. Eventually, details of the murder came to light through the testimony of one Alexander MacPherson, a Highlander who spoke only Gaelic and was sworn in by an interpreter. He provided the following extraordinary account of how he came to know: he was in bed in his cottage when an apparition appeared at his bedside and told him to get up and follow it outside. Believing the spirit to be Farquharson, a neighbor and friend, the witness complied. Once outside, the figure revealed that it was the ghost of Sergeant Davis and asked him to go and bury his remains, which were located in a spot he indicated on a moorland called the Hill of Christie. He requested the witness to take Farquharson with him for assistance. The next day, the witness went to the designated location and discovered the bones of a decayed human body. At that time, he did not bury the remains, which led to the sergeant’s ghost appearing to him again, scolding him for breaking his promise. During this second encounter, the witness asked the ghost who the murderers were and was told that he had been killed by the men on trial. After this second visit, the witness called upon Farquharson for help and buried the body.
Farquharson was brought in evidence to prove that the preceding witness, MacPherson, had called him to the burial of the bones, and told him the same story which he repeated in court. Isabel MacHardie, a person who slept in one of the beds which run along the wall in an ordinary Highland hut, declared that upon the night when MacPherson said he saw the ghost, she saw a naked man enter the house and go towards MacPherson’s bed.
Farquharson was brought in as evidence to show that the previous witness, MacPherson, had called him to the burial of the bones and told him the same story that he repeated in court. Isabel MacHardie, someone who slept in one of the beds along the wall in a typical Highland hut, stated that on the night when MacPherson claimed he saw the ghost, she saw a naked man enter the house and head towards MacPherson’s bed.
Yet though the supernatural incident was thus fortified, and although there were other strong presumptions against the prisoners, the story of the apparition threw an air of ridicule on the whole evidence for the prosecution. It was followed up by the counsel for the prisoners asking, in the cross-examination of MacPherson, “What language did the ghost speak in?” The witness, who was himself ignorant of English, replied, “As good Gaelic as I ever heard in Lochaber.” “Pretty well for the ghost of an English sergeant,” answered the counsel. The inference was rather smart and plausible than sound, for, the apparition of the ghost being admitted, we know too little of the other world to judge whether all languages may not be alike familiar to those who belonged to it. It imposed, however, on the jury, who found the accused parties not guilty, although their counsel and solicitor and most of the court were satisfied of their having committed the murder. In this case the interference of the ghost seems to have rather impeded the vengeance which it was doubtless the murdered sergeant’s desire to obtain. Yet there may be various modes of explaining this mysterious story, of which the following conjecture may pass for one.
Yet even though the supernatural event was reinforced, and despite strong evidence against the defendants, the ghost story cast doubt on the entire case for the prosecution. The defense attorney followed up by asking MacPherson during cross-examination, “What language did the ghost speak?” The witness, who didn’t know English, replied, “As good Gaelic as I’ve ever heard in Lochaber.” The attorney retorted, “Pretty good for the ghost of an English sergeant.” This conclusion was more clever and plausible than accurate, as we know too little about the afterlife to determine if all languages might be familiar to those from it. However, it convinced the jury, who found the defendants not guilty, even though their lawyer, solicitor, and most of the courtroom believed they were guilty of the murder. In this case, the ghost’s interference seems to have hindered the revenge the murdered sergeant likely wanted to achieve. Yet there are several ways to interpret this mysterious story, and the following speculation might serve as one.
The reader may suppose that MacPherson was privy to the fact of the murder, perhaps as an accomplice or otherwise, and may also suppose that, from motives of remorse for the action, or of enmity to those who had committed it, he entertained a wish to bring them to justice. But through the whole Highlands there is no character more detestable than that of an informer, or one who takes what is called Tascal-money, or reward for discovery of crimes. To have informed against Terig and MacDonald might have cost MacPherson his life; and it is far from being impossible that he had recourse to the story of the ghost, knowing well that his superstitious countrymen would pardon his communicating the commission entrusted to him by a being from the other world, although he might probably have been murdered if his delation of the crime had been supposed voluntary. This explanation, in exact conformity with the sentiments of the Highlanders on such subjects, would reduce the whole story to a stroke of address on the part of the witness.
The reader might think that MacPherson knew about the murder, maybe as an accomplice or in some other way, and could also believe that due to feelings of guilt or anger towards the perpetrators, he wanted to see them brought to justice. However, throughout the Highlands, there is no figure more despised than an informer, or someone who takes what's called reward money for reporting crimes. Informing on Terig and MacDonald could have cost MacPherson his life; and it’s quite possible that he turned to the story of the ghost, fully aware that his superstitious countrymen would excuse him for sharing what was entrusted to him by a being from the afterlife, even though he might have been killed if they thought his report of the crime was voluntary. This explanation, perfectly aligned with the views of the Highlanders on such matters, would frame the entire story as a clever move on the part of the witness.
It is therefore of the last consequence, in considering the truth of stories of ghosts and apparitions, to consider the possibility of wilful deception, whether on the part of those who are agents in the supposed disturbances, or the author of the legend. We shall separately notice an instance or two of either kind.
It is crucial, when evaluating the truth of ghost and apparition stories, to consider the possibility of intentional deception, whether from those involved in the supposed disturbances or the creator of the legend. We will individually discuss one or two examples of each type.
The most celebrated instance in which human agency was used to copy the disturbances imputed to supernatural beings refers to the ancient palace of Woodstock, when the Commissioners of the Long Parliament came down to dispark what had been lately a royal residence. The Commissioners arrived at Woodstock, 13th October, 1649, determined to wipe away the memory of all that connected itself with the recollection of monarchy in England. But in the course of their progress they were encountered by obstacles which apparently came from the next world. Their bed-chambers were infested with visits of a thing resembling a dog, but which came and passed as mere earthly dogs cannot do. Logs of wood, the remains of a very large tree called the King’s Oak, which they had splintered into billets for burning, were tossed through the house, and the chairs displaced and shuffled about. While they were in bed the feet of their couches were lifted higher than their heads, and then dropped with violence. Trenchers “without a wish” flew at their heads of free will. Thunder and lightning came next, which were set down to the same cause. Spectres made their appearance, as they thought, in different shapes, and one of the party saw the apparition of a hoof, which kicked a candlestick and lighted candle into the middle of the room, and then politely scratched on the red snuff to extinguish it. Other and worse tricks were practised on the astonished Commissioners who, considering that all the fiends of hell were let loose upon them, retreated from Woodstock without completing an errand which was, in their opinion, impeded by infernal powers, though the opposition offered was rather of a playful and malicious than of a dangerous cast.
The most well-known example of people trying to replicate disturbances attributed to supernatural beings took place at the old palace of Woodstock when the Commissioners of the Long Parliament arrived to dispark what had recently been a royal residence. The Commissioners reached Woodstock on October 13, 1649, determined to erase any memory of monarchy in England. However, as they went about their business, they faced obstacles that seemed to come from the next world. Their bedrooms were plagued by visits from a creature resembling a dog, but it moved in ways that ordinary dogs could not. Logs from a massive tree known as the King’s Oak, which they had chopped into firewood, were thrown around the house, and chairs were rearranged. While they were in bed, the feet of their beds were lifted higher than their heads and then dropped violently. Plates “without a wish” flew at their heads of their own accord. Thunder and lightning followed, which they also attributed to the same source. Apparitions appeared before them in various forms, and one member of the group claimed to see a phantom hoof that kicked a candlestick with a lit candle into the center of the room, then politely snuffed it out. Other, more sinister tricks were played on the bewildered Commissioners, who believed that all the demons of hell were unleashed upon them and ultimately left Woodstock without finishing their task, convinced that it was thwarted by infernal forces, even though the interference was more playful and mischievous than genuinely threatening.
The whole matter was, after the Restoration, discovered to be the trick of one of their own party, who had attended the Commissioners as a clerk, under the name of Giles Sharp. This man, whose real name was Joseph Collins of Oxford, called Funny Joe, was a concealed loyalist, and well acquainted with the old mansion of Woodstock, where he had been brought up before the Civil War. Being a bold, active spirited man, Joe availed himself of his local knowledge of trap-doors and private passages so as to favour the tricks which he played off upon his masters by aid of his fellow-domestics. The Commissioners’ personal reliance on him made his task the more easy, and it was all along remarked that trusty Giles Sharp saw the most extraordinary sights and visions among the whole party. The unearthly terrors experienced by the Commissioners are detailed with due gravity by Sinclair, and also, I think, by Dr. Plott. But although the detection or explanation of the real history of the Woodstock demons has also been published, and I have myself seen it, I have at this time forgotten whether it exists in a separate collection, or where it is to be looked for.
The whole situation was, after the Restoration, revealed to be a scheme created by one of their own members, who had served as a clerk for the Commissioners under the name Giles Sharp. This man, whose real name was Joseph Collins from Oxford, nicknamed Funny Joe, was a secret loyalist and was very familiar with the old mansion of Woodstock, where he had grown up before the Civil War. Being a bold and spirited man, Joe used his local knowledge of hidden doors and secret passages to pull off his tricks on his superiors, with the help of his fellow servants. The Commissioners’ personal trust in him made his job easier, and it was often noted that the reliable Giles Sharp witnessed the most extraordinary sights and visions among the whole group. The otherworldly fears experienced by the Commissioners are described with seriousness by Sinclair, and also, I believe, by Dr. Plott. However, even though the discovery or explanation of the true story behind the Woodstock demons has also been published, and I have seen it myself, I’ve now forgotten whether it exists in a separate collection or where it can be found.
Similar disturbances have been often experienced while it was the custom to believe in and dread such frolics of the invisible world, and under circumstances which induce us to wonder, both at the extreme trouble taken by the agents in these impostures, and the slight motives from which they have been induced to do much wanton mischief. Still greater is our modern surprise at the apparently simple means by which terror has been excited to so general an extent, that even the wisest and most prudent have not escaped its contagious influence.
Similar disturbances have often been experienced when people believed in and feared the antics of the unseen world. This makes us question the extreme effort put in by those behind these deceptions and the trivial reasons that led them to cause so much unnecessary harm. We are even more surprised today by the seemingly simple ways that fear has spread so widely that even the wisest and most sensible individuals have not been able to escape its contagious impact.
On the first point I am afraid there can be no better reason assigned than the conscious pride of superiority, which induces the human being in all cases to enjoy and practise every means of employing an influence over his fellow-mortals; to which we may safely add that general love of tormenting, as common to our race as to that noble mimick of humanity, the monkey. To this is owing the delight with which every school-boy anticipates the effects of throwing a stone into a glass shop; and to this we must also ascribe the otherwise unaccountable pleasure which individuals have taken in practising the tricksy pranks of a goblin, and filling a household or neighbourhood with anxiety and dismay, with little gratification to themselves besides the consciousness of dexterity if they remain undiscovered, and with the risk of loss of character and punishment should the imposture be found out.
On the first point, I’m afraid there’s really no better reason to give than the awareness of superiority, which drives people to enjoy and use every means to exert influence over others. We can also add that the general tendency to torment is as common to our species as it is to our close relative, the monkey. This explains the excitement schoolboys feel about throwing stones into a glass shop, and it also accounts for the otherwise puzzling pleasure some individuals get from playing mischievous tricks, which can fill a household or neighborhood with worry and fear. The only reward for them is the feeling of skill if they remain undetected, along with the risk of losing their reputation and facing punishment if their trickery is discovered.
In the year 1772, a train of transactions, commencing upon Twelfth Day, threw the utmost consternation into the village of Stockwell, near London, and impressed upon some of its inhabitants the inevitable belief that they were produced by invisible agents. The plates, dishes, china, and glass-ware and small movables of every kind, contained in the house of Mrs. Golding, an elderly lady, seemed suddenly to become animated, shifted their places, flew through the room, and were broken to pieces. The particulars of this commotion were as curious as the loss and damage occasioned in this extraordinary manner were alarming and intolerable. Amidst this combustion, a young woman, Mrs. Golding’s maid, named Anne Robinson, was walking backwards and forwards, nor could she be prevailed on to sit down for a moment excepting while the family were at prayers, during which time no disturbance happened. This Anne Robinson had been but a few days in the old lady’s service, and it was remarkable that she endured with great composure the extraordinary display which others beheld with terror, and coolly advised her mistress not to be alarmed or uneasy, as these things could not be helped. This excited an idea that she had some reason for being so composed, not inconsistent with a degree of connexion with what was going forward. The afflicted Mrs. Golding, as she might be well termed, considering such a commotion and demolition among her goods and chattels, invited neighbours to stay in her house, but they soon became unable to bear the sight of these supernatural proceedings, which went so far that not above two cups and saucers remained out of a valuable set of china. She next abandoned her dwelling, and took refuge with a neighbour, but, finding his movables were seized with the same sort of St. Vitus’s dance, her landlord reluctantly refused to shelter any longer a woman who seemed to be persecuted by so strange a subject of vexation. Mrs. Golding’s suspicions against Anne Robinson now gaining ground, she dismissed her maid, and the hubbub among her movables ceased at once and for ever.
In 1772, a series of events that started on Twelfth Night caused extreme panic in the village of Stockwell, near London, leading some residents to believe they were caused by invisible forces. The plates, dishes, china, and glassware, along with various small items in the home of Mrs. Golding, an elderly woman, suddenly seemed to come to life, moving around the room, flying through the air, and shattering into pieces. The details of this chaos were as fascinating as the losses and damages were alarming and unbearable. During this turmoil, a young woman named Anne Robinson, who was Mrs. Golding’s maid, walked back and forth and could only be persuaded to sit down briefly while the family prayed, a time when no disturbances occurred. Anne had only been working for the elderly lady for a few days, and it was notable that she remained remarkably calm during the extraordinary incident that terrified others, coolly advising her mistress not to be anxious, as these events couldn’t be prevented. This sparked suspicion that she might have some reason for her calmness and possibly a connection to what was happening. The troubled Mrs. Golding, understandably upset by the chaos and destruction around her belongings, invited neighbors to stay with her, but they quickly found the supernatural events unbearable, to the point that only two cups and saucers remained from a valuable set of china. She then left her home and sought refuge with a neighbor, but when his belongings started experiencing the same strange disturbances, her landlord reluctantly refused to provide shelter to a woman seemingly tormented by such an unusual plight. As Mrs. Golding's suspicions about Anne Robinson grew, she dismissed her maid, and immediately the chaos among her belongings stopped for good.
This circumstance of itself indicates that Anne Robinson was the cause of these extraordinary disturbances, as has been since more completely ascertained by a Mr. Brayfield, who persuaded Anne, long after the events had happened, to make him her confidant. There was a love story connected with the case, in which the only magic was the dexterity of Anne Robinson and the simplicity of the spectators. She had fixed long horse hairs to some of the crockery, and placed wires under others, by which she could throw them down without touching them. Other things she dexterously threw about, which the spectators, who did not watch her motions, imputed to invisible agency. At times, when the family were absent, she loosened the hold of the strings by which the hams, bacon, and similar articles were suspended, so that they fell on the slightest motion. She employed some simple chemical secrets, and, delighted with the success of her pranks, pushed them farther than she at first intended. Such was the solution of the whole mystery, which, known by the name of the Stockwell ghost, terrified many well-meaning persons, and had been nearly as famous as that of Cock Lane, which may be hinted at as another imposture of the same kind. So many and wonderful are the appearances described, that when I first met with the original publication I was strongly impressed with the belief that the narrative was like some of Swift’s advertisements, a jocular experiment upon the credulity of the public. But it was certainly published bona fide, and Mr. Hone, on the authority of Mr. Brayfield, has since fully explained the wonder.85
This situation clearly shows that Anne Robinson was behind these unusual disturbances, as later confirmed by Mr. Brayfield, who convinced Anne to share her secrets with him long after the events took place. There was a love story tied to the case, where the only magic was Anne Robinson’s skill and the naivety of the audience. She had attached long horse hairs to some dishes and placed wires under others, allowing her to knock them over without touching them. Other objects she skillfully tossed around, which the spectators, not paying attention to her movements, attributed to some invisible force. Sometimes, when the family was away, she loosened the strings holding up hams, bacon, and similar items, so they would fall with the slightest movement. She utilized some simple chemical tricks and, thrilled with her success, took her antics further than she initially planned. This was the solution to the whole mystery, known as the Stockwell ghost, which scared many well-meaning individuals and became almost as famous as the Cock Lane case, another deception of the same kind. The descriptions of the occurrences were so numerous and extraordinary that when I first came across the original publication, I was convinced it was something like Swift’s satirical ads, a humorous test of the public's gullibility. But it was definitely published bona fide, and Mr. Hone, based on Mr. Brayfield’s account, has since fully clarified the bizarre episode.85
85 (return)
[ See Hone’s “Every-Day
Book,” p. 62.]
85 (return)
[ See Hone’s “Every-Day Book,” p. 62.]
Many such impositions have been detected, and many others have been successfully concealed; but to know what has been discovered in many instances gives us the assurance of the ruling cause in all. I remember a scene of the kind attempted to be got up near Edinburgh, but detected at once by a sheriff’s officer, a sort of persons whose habits of incredulity and suspicious observation render them very dangerous spectators on such occasions. The late excellent Mr. Walker, minister at Dunottar, in the Mearns, gave me a curious account of an imposture of this kind, practised by a young country girl, who was surprisingly quick at throwing stones, turf, and other missiles, with such dexterity that it was for a long time impossible to ascertain her agency in the disturbances of which she was the sole cause.
Many such trickery attempts have been uncovered, and many others have been successfully hidden; but knowing what has been found in many cases gives us confidence in the underlying reason in all of them. I recall an incident like this that was attempted near Edinburgh, but it was quickly noticed by a sheriff’s officer, a type of person whose skepticism and watchful nature make them very troublesome witnesses on such occasions. The late great Mr. Walker, a minister at Dunottar in Mearns, shared with me an intriguing story about a scam of this nature, carried out by a young girl from the countryside, who was surprisingly skilled at throwing stones, turf, and other objects with such precision that it was for a long time impossible to determine her role in the disturbances, of which she was the sole cause.
The belief of the spectators that such scenes of disturbance arise from invisible beings will appear less surprising if we consider the common feats of jugglers, or professors of legerdemain, and recollect that it is only the frequent exhibition of such powers which reconciles us to them as matters of course, although they are wonders at which in our fathers’ time men would have cried out either sorcery or miracles. The spectator also, who has been himself duped, makes no very respectable appearance when convicted of his error; and thence, if too candid to add to the evidence of supernatural agency, is yet unwilling to stand convicted by cross-examination, of having been imposed on, and unconsciously becomes disposed rather to colour more highly than the truth, than acquiesce in an explanation resting on his having been too hasty a believer. Very often, too, the detection depends upon the combination of certain circumstances, which, apprehended, necessarily explain the whole story.
The belief of the audience that such scenes of chaos come from invisible beings will seem less shocking if we think about the common tricks of jugglers or magicians. It's only through regularly seeing these abilities that we come to accept them as normal, even though they would have been considered either sorcery or miracles in our ancestors' time. The audience member who has been tricked doesn’t look very respectable when proven wrong; and so, if he’s too honest to support the idea of supernatural involvement, he’s still hesitant to admit he was fooled. He unconsciously tends to exaggerate the situation rather than accept that he jumped to conclusions. Often, the realization comes from a combination of specific circumstances that, once recognized, clarify the entire situation.
For example, I once heard a sensible and intelligent friend in company express himself convinced of the truth of a wonderful story, told him by an intelligent and bold man, about an apparition. The scene lay in an ancient castle on the coast of Morven or the Isle of Mull, where the ghost-seer chanced to be resident. He was given to understand by the family, when betaking himself to rest, that the chamber in which he slept was occasionally disquieted by supernatural appearances. Being at that time no believer in such stories, he attended little to this hint, until the witching hour of night, when he was awakened from a dead sleep by the pressure of a human hand on his body. He looked up at the figure of a tall Highlander, in the antique and picturesque dress of his country, only that his brows were bound with a bloody bandage. Struck with sudden and extreme fear, he was willing to have sprung from bed, but the spectre stood before him in the bright moonlight, its one arm extended so as to master him if he attempted to rise; the other hand held up in a warning and grave posture, as menacing the Lowlander if he should attempt to quit his recumbent position. Thus he lay in mortal agony for more than an hour, after which it pleased the spectre of ancient days to leave him to more sound repose. So singular a story had on its side the usual number of votes from the company, till, upon cross-examination, it was explained that the principal person concerned was an exciseman. After which eclaircissement the same explanation struck all present, viz., the Highlanders of the mansion had chosen to detain the exciseman by the apparition of an ancient heroic ghost, in order to disguise from his vigilance the removal of certain modern enough spirits, which his duty might have called upon him to seize. Here a single circumstance explained the whole ghost story.
For example, I once heard a sensible and intelligent friend at a gathering express his belief in a fascinating story told to him by a clever and daring man about a ghost. The scene took place in an old castle on the coast of Morven or the Isle of Mull, where the ghost-seer happened to live. The family made it clear to him when he was settling in for the night that the room he was sleeping in was sometimes disturbed by supernatural appearances. At that time, he didn’t believe in such tales, so he didn’t pay much attention to the warning until the witching hour, when he was jolted awake from a deep sleep by the pressure of a human hand on him. He looked up to see the figure of a tall Highlander, dressed in the traditional and picturesque attire of his people, except with a bloody bandage around his head. Overcome with sudden and intense fear, he nearly jumped out of bed, but the specter stood in the bright moonlight, one arm extended to prevent him from getting up; the other hand raised in a serious and warning gesture, threatening him if he tried to move. So he lay there in agony for more than an hour, until the ancient specter finally allowed him to rest more soundly. This unusual story initially had the usual amount of support from those present, until it was revealed during further questioning that the main character involved was an exciseman. After this clarification, it became clear to everyone there that the Highlanders of the mansion had decided to keep the exciseman occupied with the apparition of an ancient heroic ghost to distract him from noticing the removal of some more modern spirits that he was supposed to seize. Here, a single detail explained the entire ghost story.
At other times it happens that the meanness and trifling nature of a cause not very obvious to observation has occasioned it to be entirely overlooked, even on account of that very meanness, since no one is willing to acknowledge that he has been alarmed by a cause of little consequence, and which he would be ashamed of mentioning. An incident of this sort happened to a gentleman of birth and distinction, who is well known in the political world, and was detected by the precision of his observation. Shortly after he succeeded to his estate and title, there was a rumour among his servants concerning a strange noise heard in the family mansion at night, the cause of which they had found it impossible to trace. The gentleman resolved to watch himself, with a domestic who had grown old in the family, and who had begun to murmur strange things concerning the knocking having followed so close upon the death of his old master. They watched until the noise was heard, which they listened to with that strange uncertainty attending midnight sounds which prevents the hearers from immediately tracing them to the spot where they arise, while the silence of the night generally occasions the imputing to them more than the due importance which they would receive if mingled with the usual noises of daylight. At length the gentleman and his servant traced the sounds which they had repeatedly heard to a small store-room used as a place for keeping provisions of various kinds for the family, of which the old butler had the key. They entered this place, and remained there for some time without hearing the noises which they had traced thither; at length the sound was heard, but much lower than it had formerly seemed to be, while acted upon at a distance by the imagination of the hearers. The cause was immediately discovered. A rat caught in an old-fashioned trap had occasioned this tumult by its efforts to escape, in which it was able to raise the trap-door of its prison to a certain height, but was then obliged to drop it. The noise of the fall, resounding through the house, had occasioned the disturbance which, but for the cool investigation of the proprietor, might easily have established an accredited ghost story. The circumstance was told me by the gentleman to whom it happened.
At times, the pettiness and trivial nature of an issue, which isn’t obvious at first, can lead it to be completely overlooked, precisely because of that pettiness. No one wants to admit they were bothered by something insignificant and would feel embarrassed to mention it. This happened to a well-known gentleman from a prominent background in the political scene, who was caught off guard by his keen observations. Shortly after inheriting his estate and title, rumors began circulating among his servants about a strange noise heard at night in the family mansion, the source of which they couldn’t identify. The gentleman decided to investigate the matter himself, accompanied by an elderly servant who had worked in the family for years and had begun to mutter odd things about the knocking coinciding with the death of his former master. They waited until the noise was heard, listening intently, experiencing the typical uncertainty that comes with midnight sounds, which makes it hard to pinpoint where they come from. The stillness of night often makes such sounds seem more significant than they would during the day’s usual hustle and bustle. Eventually, the gentleman and his servant traced the mysterious sounds to a small storeroom where various provisions were kept, for which the old butler had the key. They entered and stayed there for a while without hearing the noises they had followed. Finally, the noise returned, but it sounded much quieter than before, influenced by their imaginations. They quickly discovered the cause: a rat trapped in an old-fashioned trap had created the commotion while trying to escape. It could lift the trap door slightly but was forced to let it drop again, causing a sound that echoed throughout the house. This disturbance, which might have easily turned into a ghost story if not for the owner's thorough investigation, was shared with me by the gentleman it happened to.
There are other occasions in which the ghost story is rendered credible by some remarkable combination of circumstances very unlikely to have happened, and which no one could have supposed unless some particular fortune occasioned a discovery.
There are other times when a ghost story seems believable due to a strange combination of circumstances that are very unlikely to have occurred, and that no one would have thought possible unless a specific stroke of luck led to a discovery.
An apparition which took place at Plymouth is well known, but it has been differently related; and having some reason to think the following edition correct, it is an incident so much to my purpose that you must pardon its insertion.
A ghost sighting that happened in Plymouth is well known, but it has been told in different ways; and since I have some reason to believe the following version is accurate, it’s so relevant to my point that you have to forgive me for including it.
A club of persons connected with science and literature was formed at the great sea-town I have named. During the summer months the society met in a cave by the sea-shore; during those of autumn and winter they convened within the premises of a tavern, but, for the sake of privacy, had their meetings in a summer-house situated in the garden, at a distance from the main building. Some of the members to whom the position of their own dwellings rendered this convenient, had a pass-key to the garden-door, by which they could enter the garden and reach the summer-house without the publicity or trouble of passing through the open tavern. It was the rule of this club that its members presided alternately. On one occasion, in the winter, the president of the evening chanced to be very ill; indeed, was reported to be on his death-bed. The club met as usual, and, from a sentiment of respect, left vacant the chair which ought to have been occupied by him if in his usual health; for the same reason, the conversation turned upon the absent gentleman’s talents, and the loss expected to the society by his death. While they were upon this melancholy theme, the door suddenly opened, and the appearance of the president entered the room. He wore a white wrapper, a nightcap round his brow, the appearance of which was that of death itself. He stalked into the room with unusual gravity, took the vacant place of ceremony, lifted the empty glass which stood before him, bowed around, and put it to his lips; then replaced it on the table, and stalked out of the room as silent as he had entered it. The company remained deeply appalled; at length, after many observations on the strangeness of what they had seen, they resolved to dispatch two of their number as ambassadors, to see how it fared with the president, who had thus strangely appeared among them. They went, and returned with the frightful intelligence that the friend after whom they had enquired was that evening deceased.
A club of people interested in science and literature was formed in the large seaside town I mentioned. During the summer months, the group met in a cave by the shore; in the fall and winter, they gathered at a tavern but held their meetings in a summer house in the garden to maintain privacy, away from the main building. Some members who lived nearby had a passkey to the garden door, allowing them to enter and reach the summer house without the noise or hassle of going through the tavern. It was the club's rule that members took turns presiding. One winter evening, the president happened to be very ill; in fact, he was said to be on his deathbed. The club met as usual and, out of respect, left his chair empty; for the same reason, they discussed his talents and the loss the society would feel if he passed away. While they were discussing this sad topic, the door suddenly opened, and the president entered the room. He wore a white robe and a nightcap that made him look like death itself. He walked into the room with unusual seriousness, took the empty ceremonial chair, lifted the glass in front of him, bowed to everyone, and sipped from it before placing it back on the table and silently leaving as he had come. The group was left in shock; eventually, after many comments about the oddity of what they had just witnessed, they decided to send two members as messengers to check on the president. They returned with the shocking news that the friend they had inquired about had passed away that evening.
The astonished party then resolved that they would remain absolutely silent respecting the wonderful sight which they had seen. Their habits were too philosophical to permit them to believe that they had actually seen the ghost of their deceased brother, and at the same time they were too wise men to wish to confirm the superstition of the vulgar by what might seem indubitable evidence of a ghost. The affair was therefore kept a strict secret, although, as usual, some dubious rumours of the tale found their way to the public. Several years afterwards, an old woman who had long filled the place of a sick-nurse, was taken very ill, and on her death-bed was attended by a medical member of the philosophical club. To him, with many expressions of regret, she acknowledged that she had long before attended Mr.——, naming the president whose appearance had surprised the club so strangely, and that she felt distress of conscience on account of the manner in which he died. She said that as his malady was attended by light-headedness, she had been directed to keep a close watch upon him during his illness. Unhappily she slept, and during her sleep the patient had awaked and left the apartment. When, on her own awaking, she found the bed empty and the patient gone, she forthwith hurried out of the house to seek him, and met him in the act of returning. She got him, she said, replaced in bed, but it was only to die there. She added, to convince her hearer of the truth of what she said, that immediately after the poor gentleman expired, a deputation of two members from the club came to enquire after their president’s health, and received for answer that he was already dead. This confession explained the whole matter. The delirious patient had very naturally taken the road to the club, from some recollections of his duty of the night. In approaching and retiring from the apartment he had used one of the pass-keys already mentioned, which made his way shorter. On the other hand, the gentlemen sent to enquire after his health had reached his lodging by a more circuitous road; and thus there had been time for him to return to what proved his death-bed, long before they reached his chamber. The philosophical witnesses of this strange scene were now as anxious to spread the story as they had formerly been to conceal it, since it showed in what a remarkable manner men’s eyes might turn traitors to them, and impress them with ideas far different from the truth.
The amazed group decided to keep completely quiet about the incredible sight they had witnessed. Their viewpoints were too rational for them to actually believe they had seen the ghost of their late brother, and they were also too wise to validate the common people's superstitions with what might seem like undeniable proof of a ghost. So, the whole incident was kept a strict secret, although, as often happens, some rumors about the story eventually circulated. Several years later, an old woman who had long been a sick-nurse fell very ill, and as she lay dying, a medical member of the philosophical club attended her. With much regret, she admitted to him that she had once cared for Mr.——, naming the president whose unexpected appearance had so shocked the club, and that she felt guilty about how he had died. She explained that since his illness included delirium, she had been instructed to keep a close eye on him during his sickness. Unfortunately, she fell asleep, and while she was sleeping, he woke up and left the room. When she awoke and found the bed empty with the patient gone, she quickly rushed out of the house to look for him, only to run into him on his way back. She said she got him back into bed, but it was only for him to die there. To convince her listener of the truth of her words, she mentioned that right after the poor gentleman passed away, two members from the club came to check on their president’s condition and were told he was already dead. This confession clarified everything. The confused patient had instinctively headed to the club, remembering his responsibilities from that night. On his way to and from the room, he had used one of the mentioned pass-keys, which made his journey shorter. On the other hand, the gentlemen sent to check on him had taken a more indirect route to his place; therefore, he had time to return to what turned out to be his deathbed long before they arrived at his room. The philosophical witnesses of this bizarre scene were now eager to share the story just as much as they had once wanted to keep it hidden, as it illustrated how people's perceptions could deceive them and lead them to beliefs that were far from the truth.
Another occurrence of the same kind, although scarcely so striking in its circumstances, was yet one which, had it remained unexplained, might have passed as an indubitable instance of a supernatural apparition.
Another event of a similar nature, though not quite as remarkable in its details, was one that, if it had gone unexplained, could easily have been considered a clear example of a supernatural sighting.
A Teviotdale farmer was riding from a fair, at which he had indulged himself with John Barleycorn, but not to that extent of defying goblins which it inspired into the gallant Tam o’Shanter. He was pondering with some anxiety upon the dangers of travelling alone on a solitary road which passed the corner of a churchyard, now near at hand, when he saw before him in the moonlight a pale female form standing upon the very wall which surrounded the cemetery. The road was very narrow, with no opportunity of giving the apparent phantom what seamen call a wide berth. It was, however, the only path which led to the rider’s home, who therefore resolved, at all risks, to pass the apparition. He accordingly approached, as slowly as possible, the spot where the spectre stood, while the figure remained, now perfectly still and silent, now brandishing its arms and gibbering to the moon. When the farmer came close to the spot he dashed in the spurs and set the horse off upon a gallop; but the spectre did not miss its opportunity. As he passed the corner where she was perched, she contrived to drop behind the horseman and seize him round the waist, a manoeuvre which greatly increased the speed of the horse and the terror of the rider; for the hand of her who sat behind him, when pressed upon his, felt as cold as that of a corpse. At his own house at length he arrived, and bid the servants who came to attend him, “Tak aff the ghaist!” They took off accordingly a female in white, and the poor farmer himself was conveyed to bed, where he lay struggling for weeks with a strong nervous fever. The female was found to be a maniac, who had been left a widow very suddenly by an affectionate husband, and the nature and cause of her malady induced her, when she could make her escape, to wander to the churchyard, where she sometimes wildly wept over his grave, and sometimes, standing on the corner of the churchyard wall, looked out, and mistook every stranger on horseback for the husband she had lost. If this woman, which was very possible, had dropt from the horse unobserved by him whom she had made her involuntary companion, it would have been very hard to have convinced the honest farmer that he had not actually performed part of his journey with a ghost behind him.
A farmer from Teviotdale was riding home from a fair where he had enjoyed some drinks, but not enough to get him into trouble like the brave Tam o’Shanter. He was nervously thinking about the dangers of traveling alone on a dark road that passed the edge of a churchyard nearby when he saw a pale female figure standing on the wall surrounding the cemetery in the moonlight. The road was very narrow, leaving no room to avoid what seemed like a ghost. Still, it was the only route back to his home, so he decided to go past the apparition, no matter the risk. He approached as slowly as he could, while the figure was still at times, and at others, waving its arms and mumbling to the moon. When the farmer got close, he spurred the horse into a gallop, but the ghost took its chance. As he rushed by, it managed to drop behind him and grabbed him around the waist, which made the horse run faster and increased the farmer's fear; the cold hand of the figure behind him felt like that of a corpse. Finally, he made it home and told the servants, “Get rid of the ghost!” They removed a woman in white, and the poor farmer was taken to bed, where he struggled for weeks with a severe nervous fever. It turned out the woman was a maniac who had suddenly lost her loving husband and, in her grief, would escape to the churchyard to either weep over his grave or stand on the wall, mistaking every horseman for her lost husband. If this woman had fallen from her horse without him noticing, it would have been tough to convince the honest farmer that he hadn’t actually traveled part of his journey with a ghost behind him.
There is also a large class of stories of this sort, where various secrets of chemistry, of acoustics, ventriloquism, or other arts, have been either employed to dupe the spectators, or have tended to do so through mere accident and coincidence. Of these it is scarce necessary to quote instances; but the following may be told as a tale recounted by a foreign nobleman known to me nearly thirty years ago, whose life, lost in the service of his sovereign, proved too short for his friends and his native land.
There’s also a large collection of stories like this, where different secrets of chemistry, sound, ventriloquism, or other skills have been used to trick the audience, or have accidentally done so through mere coincidence. It’s hardly necessary to provide examples; however, I’ll share the following as a story told by a foreign nobleman I met nearly thirty years ago, whose life, sacrificed in the service of his ruler, was too brief for his friends and his homeland.
At a certain old castle on the confines of Hungary, the lord to whom it belonged had determined upon giving an entertainment worthy of his own rank and of the magnificence of the antique mansion which he inhabited. The guests of course were numerous, and among them was a veteran officer of hussars, remarkable for his bravery. When the arrangements for the night were made this officer was informed that there would be difficulty in accommodating the company in the castle, large as was, unless some one would take the risk of sleeping in a room supposed to be haunted, and that, as he was known to be above such prejudices, the apartment was in the first place proposed for his occupation, as the person least likely to suffer a bad night’s rest from such a cause. The major thankfully accepted the preference, and having shared the festivity of the evening, retired after midnight, having denounced vengeance against any one who should presume by any trick to disturb his repose; a threat which his habits would, it was supposed, render him sufficiently ready to execute. Somewhat contrary to the custom in these cases, the major went to bed, having left his candle burning and laid his trusty pistols, carefully loaded, on the table by his bedside.
At an old castle on the outskirts of Hungary, the lord who owned it decided to throw a party that matched his status and the grandeur of the historic mansion he lived in. Naturally, there were many guests, including a seasoned hussar officer known for his bravery. When the plans for the night were finalized, this officer was told there would be some challenges in finding enough space in the castle for everyone, unless someone was willing to take a chance on sleeping in a room that was rumored to be haunted. Since he was known to be above such superstitions, they first suggested that room for him, believing he was the least likely to have a troubled night due to it. The major gratefully accepted this choice, enjoyed the festivities of the evening, and went to bed after midnight, threatening anyone who might try to disturb his sleep. His usual demeanor led them to think he was ready to uphold that threat. In a move that was somewhat unusual for such situations, the major went to bed with his candle still lit and his trusty, carefully loaded pistols on the table next to him.
He had not slept an hour when he was awakened by a solemn strain of music. He looked out. Three ladies, fantastically dressed in green, were seen in the lower end of the apartment, who sung a solemn requiem. The major listened for some time with delight; at length he tired. “Ladies,” he said, “this is very well, but somewhat monotonous—will you be so kind as to change the tune?” The ladies continued singing; he expostulated, but the music was not interrupted. The major began to grow angry: “Ladies,” he said, “I must consider this as a trick for the purpose of terrifying me, and as I regard it as an impertinence, I shall take a rough mode of stopping it.” With that he began to handle his pistols. The ladies sung on. He then get seriously angry: “I will but wait five minutes,” he said, “and then fire without hesitation.” The song was uninterrupted—the five minutes were expired. “I still give you law, ladies,” he said, “while I count twenty.” This produced as little effect as his former threats. He counted one, two, three accordingly; but on approaching the end of the number, and repeating more than once his determination to fire, the last numbers, seventeen—eighteen—nineteen, were pronounced with considerable pauses between, and an assurance that the pistols were cocked. The ladies sung on. As he pronounced the word twenty he fired both pistols against the musical damsels—but the ladies sung on! The major was overcome by the unexpected inefficacy of his violence, and had an illness which lasted more than three weeks. The trick put upon him may be shortly described by the fact that the female choristers were placed in an adjoining room, and that he only fired at their reflection thrown forward into that in which he slept by the effect of a concave mirror.
He hadn't slept for an hour when he was awakened by a solemn piece of music. He looked out and saw three ladies, dressed in elaborate green outfits, at the far end of the room, singing a somber requiem. The major listened for a while, enjoying it, but eventually grew tired. “Ladies,” he said, “this is nice, but a bit monotonous—could you please change the tune?” The ladies kept singing. He protested, but the music continued uninterrupted. The major started to get angry: “Ladies,” he said, “I have to take this as a trick to scare me, and since I see it as rude, I'm going to take some serious action to stop it.” With that, he began to handle his pistols. The ladies continued their song. He became even more furious: “I’ll give you just five more minutes,” he said, “and then I’ll fire without hesitation.” The song went on without pause—the five minutes passed. “I still give you a chance, ladies,” he said, “while I count to twenty.” This had no more impact than his previous threats. He counted one, two, three, and as he neared the end of the count, repeating that he was determined to fire, he pronounced the last few numbers—seventeen, eighteen, nineteen—with significant pauses and certainty that the pistols were cocked. The ladies kept singing. When he reached twenty, he fired both pistols at the musical ladies—but they continued their song! The major was taken aback by the unexpected failure of his violence and suffered from an illness that lasted more than three weeks. The trick played on him can be summed up by the fact that the female singers were in an adjoining room, and he fired at their reflection cast into the room where he was sleeping by a concave mirror.
Other stories of the same kind are numerous and well known. The apparition of the Brocken mountain, after having occasioned great admiration and some fear, is now ascertained by philosophers to be a gigantic reflection, which makes the traveller’s shadow, represented upon the misty clouds, appear a colossal figure of almost immeasurable size. By a similar deception men have been induced, in Westmoreland and other mountainous countries, to imagine they saw troops of horse and armies marching and countermarching, which were in fact only the reflection of horses pasturing upon an opposite height, or of the forms of peaceful travellers.
Other similar stories are many and well-known. The sight of the Brocken mountain, which once caused great awe and some fear, is now understood by scientists to be a massive optical illusion. It makes a traveler’s shadow appear as an enormous figure on the misty clouds. A similar trick of perception has led people in Westmoreland and other hilly areas to think they saw groups of soldiers and cavalry marching back and forth, which were actually just reflections of horses grazing on a nearby hill, or the shapes of peaceful travelers.
A very curious case of this kind was communicated to me by the son of the lady principally concerned, and tends to show out of what mean materials a venerable apparition may be sometimes formed. In youth this lady resided with her father, a man of sense and resolution. Their house was situated in the principal street of a town of some size. The back part of the house ran at right angles to an Anabaptist chapel, divided from it by a small cabbage-garden. The young lady used sometimes to indulge the romantic love of solitude by sitting in her own apartment in the evening till twilight, and even darkness, was approaching. One evening, while she was thus placed, she was surprised to see a gleamy figure, as of some aerial being, hovering, as it were, against the arched window in the end of the Anabaptist chapel. Its head was surrounded by that halo which painters give to the Catholic saints; and while the young lady’s attention was fixed on an object so extraordinary, the figure bent gracefully towards her more than once, as if intimating a sense of her presence, and then disappeared. The seer of this striking vision descended to her family, so much discomposed as to call her father’s attention. He obtained an account of the cause of her disturbance, and expressed his intention to watch in the apartment next night. He sat accordingly in his daughter’s chamber, where she also attended him. Twilight came, and nothing appeared; but as the gray light faded into darkness, the same female figure was seen hovering on the window; the same shadowy form, the same pale light-around the head, the same inclinations, as the evening before. “What do you think of this?” said the daughter to the astonished father. “Anything, my dear,” said the father, “rather than allow that we look upon what is supernatural.” A strict research established a natural cause for the appearance on the window. It was the custom of an old woman, to whom the garden beneath was rented, to go out at night to gather cabbages. The lantern she carried in her hand threw up the refracted reflection of her form on the chapel window. As she stooped to gather her cabbages the reflection appeared to bend forward; and that was the whole matter.
A very intriguing case like this was shared with me by the son of the lady involved, and it illustrates how even humble origins can give rise to a venerable apparition. In her youth, this lady lived with her father, a sensible and determined man. Their house was located on the main street of a fairly large town. The back of the house was adjacent to an Anabaptist chapel, separated by a small cabbage garden. The young lady sometimes enjoyed the romantic notion of solitude by sitting in her room in the evening, until twilight and even darkness approached. One evening, while she was seated, she was startled to see a shimmering figure, resembling some otherworldly being, seemingly hovering against the arched window of the Anabaptist chapel. The figure's head was surrounded by a halo similar to those given to Catholic saints by painters. As the young lady focused on this extraordinary sight, the figure gracefully bent towards her multiple times, as if acknowledging her presence, before disappearing. The witness of this striking vision urgently went to her family, so disturbed that she caught her father's attention. He got the details about her distress and planned to watch in her room the next night. So he sat in his daughter's chamber, where she joined him. Twilight arrived, and nothing happened; but as the gray light faded to darkness, the same female figure appeared hovering at the window; the same shadowy silhouette, the same pale light around the head, the same gestures as the night before. "What do you think about this?" the daughter asked her astonished father. "Anything, my dear," he replied, "except for the idea that we're witnessing something supernatural." A thorough investigation revealed a natural explanation for the apparition at the window. An old woman, who rented the garden below, had a habit of going out at night to collect cabbages. The lantern she held cast a refracted reflection of her figure onto the chapel window. As she bent down to pick her cabbages, the reflection appeared to lean forward; and that was all there was to it.
Another species of deception, affecting the credit of such supernatural communications, arises from the dexterity and skill of the authors who have made it their business to present such stories in the shape most likely to attract belief. Defoe—whose power in rendering credible that which was in itself very much the reverse was so peculiarly distinguished—has not failed to show his superiority in this species of composition. A bookseller of his acquaintance had, in the trade phrase, rather overprinted an edition of “Drelincourt on Death,” and complained to Defoe of the loss which was likely to ensue. The experienced bookmaker, with the purpose of recommending the edition, advised his friend to prefix the celebrated narrative of Mrs. Veal’s ghost, which he wrote for the occasion, with such an air of truth, that although in fact it does not afford a single tittle of evidence properly so called, it nevertheless was swallowed so eagerly by the people that Drelincourt’s work on death, which the supposed spirit recommended to the perusal of her friend Mrs. Bargrave, instead of sleeping on the editor’s shelf, moved off by thousands at once; the story, incredible in itself, and unsupported as it was by evidence or enquiry, was received as true, merely from the cunning of the narrator, and the addition of a number of adventitious circumstances, which no man alive could have conceived as having occurred to the mind of a person composing a fiction.
Another form of deception that undermines the credibility of supernatural communications comes from the skill of the authors who craft these stories in ways that are most likely to convince people. Defoe—who had an exceptional talent for making unbelievable things seem credible—clearly displayed his expertise in this type of writing. A bookseller he knew had, in typical trade language, overprinted an edition of “Drelincourt on Death” and complained to Defoe about the potential loss. The seasoned publisher suggested that to boost sales, his friend should preface the edition with the famous tale of Mrs. Veal’s ghost, which he wrote for the occasion, presenting it with such an air of authenticity that, even though it didn't provide any real evidence, people eagerly accepted it as truth. As a result, Drelincourt’s book on death, which the alleged spirit supposedly recommended to her friend Mrs. Bargrave, flew off the shelves instead of gathering dust. The story, unbelievable in itself and lacking any evidence or investigation, was accepted as real simply due to the narrator's cleverness and the addition of various details that no one could reasonably think up when creating a fictional tale.
It did not require the talents of Defoe, though in that species of composition he must stand unrivalled, to fix the public attention on a ghost story. John Dunton, a man of scribbling celebrity at the time, succeeded to a great degree in imposing upon the public a tale which he calls the Apparition Evidence. The beginning of it, at least (for it is of great length), has something in it a little new. At Mynehead, in Somersetshire, lived an ancient gentlewoman named Mrs. Leckie, whose only son and daughter resided in family with her. The son traded to Ireland, and was supposed to be worth eight or ten thousand pounds. They had a child about five or six years old. This family was generally respected in Mynehead; and especially Mrs. Leckie, the old lady, was so pleasant in society, that her friends used to say to her, and to each other, that it was a thousand pities such an excellent, good-humoured gentlewoman must, from her age, be soon lost to her friends. To which Mrs. Leckie often made the somewhat startling reply: “Forasmuch as you now seem to like me, I am afraid you will but little care to see or speak with me after my death, though I believe you may have that satisfaction.” Die, however, she did, and after her funeral was repeatedly seen in her personal likeness, at home and abroad, by night and by noonday.
It didn't take the skills of Defoe, who is unmatched in this type of writing, to grab the public's attention with a ghost story. John Dunton, who was well-known for his writing at the time, largely succeeded in convincing the public of a tale he called the Apparition Evidence. At least the beginning (since it's quite lengthy) has something a bit unusual. In Mynehead, Somersetshire, there lived an elderly lady named Mrs. Leckie, whose only son and daughter lived with her. The son traded in Ireland and was thought to be worth around eight or ten thousand pounds. They had a child about five or six years old. This family was generally well-respected in Mynehead, and especially Mrs. Leckie was so pleasant in social situations that her friends would often say to her and each other that it was a real shame such an excellent, good-natured woman would, due to her age, soon be gone from their lives. To which Mrs. Leckie often gave the somewhat shocking reply: “Since you seem to like me now, I’m afraid you won’t care to see or talk to me after I die, though I think you may find that comforting.” Nonetheless, she did die, and after her funeral, she was repeatedly seen in her physical form, both at home and out and about, by night and by day.
One story is told of a doctor of physic walking into the fields, who in his return met with this spectre, whom he at first accosted civilly, and paid her the courtesy of handing her over a stile. Observing, however, that she did not move her lips in speaking, or her eyes in looking round, he became suspicious of the condition of his companion, and showed some desire to be rid of her society. Offended at this, the hag at next stile planted herself upon it, and obstructed his passage. He got through at length with some difficulty, and not without a sound kick, and an admonition to pay more attention to the next aged gentlewoman whom he met. “But this,” says John Dunton, “was a petty and inconsiderable prank to what she played in her son’s house and elsewhere. She would at noonday appear upon the quay of Mynehead, and cry, ‘A boat, a boat, ho! a boat, a boat, ho!’ If any boatmen or seamen were in sight, and did not come, they were sure to be cast away; and if they did come, ‘twas all one, they were cast away. It was equally dangerous to please and displease her. Her son had several ships sailing between Ireland and England; no sooner did they make land, and come in sight of England, but this ghost would appear in the same garb and likeness as when she was alive, and, standing at the mainmast, would blow with a whistle, and though it were never so great a calm, yet immediately there would arise a most dreadful storm, that would break, wreck, and drown the ship and goods; only the seamen would escape with their lives—the devil had no permission from God to take them away. Yet at this rate, by her frequent apparitions and disturbances, she had made a poor merchant of her son, for his fair estate was all buried in the sea, and he that was once worth thousands was reduced to a very poor and low condition in the world; for whether the ship were his own or hired, or he had but goods on board it to the value of twenty shillings, this troublesome ghost would come as before, whistle in a calm at the mainmast at noonday, when they had descried land, and then ship and goods went all out of hand to wreck; insomuch that he could at last get no ships wherein to stow his goods, nor any mariner to sail in them; for knowing what an uncomfortable, fatal, and losing voyage they should make of it, they did all decline his service. In her son’s house she hath her constant haunts by day and night; but whether he did not, or would not own if he did, see her, he always professed he never saw her. Sometimes when in bed with his wife, she would cry out, ‘Husband, look, there’s your mother!’ And when he would turn to the right side, then was she gone to the left; and when to the left side of the bed, then was she gone to the right; only one evening their only child, a girl of about five or six years old, lying in a ruckle-bed under them, cries out, ‘Oh, help me, father! help me, mother! for grandmother will choke me!’ and before they could get to their child’s assistance she had murdered it; they finding the poor girl dead, her throat having been pinched by two fingers, which stopped her breath and strangled her. This was the sorest of all their afflictions; their estate is gone, and now their child is gone also; you may guess at their grief and great sorrow. One morning after the child’s funeral, her husband being abroad, about eleven in the forenoon, Mrs. Leckie the younger goes up into her chamber to dress her head, and as she was looking into the glass she spies her mother-in-law, the old beldam, looking over her shoulder. This cast her into a great horror; but recollecting her affrighted spirits, and recovering the exercise of her reason, faith, and hope, having cast up a short and silent prayer to God, she turns about, and bespeaks her: ‘In the name of God, mother, why do you trouble me?’ ‘Peace,’ says the spectrum; ‘I will do thee no hurt.’ ‘What will you have of me?’ says the daughter,” &c.86 Dunton, the narrator and probably the contriver of the story, proceeds to inform us at length of a commission which the wife of Mr. Leckie receives from the ghost to deliver to Atherton, Bishop of Waterford, a guilty and unfortunate man, who afterwards died by the hands of the executioner; but that part of the subject is too disagreeable and tedious to enter upon.
One story goes about a doctor who was walking in the fields. On his way back, he encountered a ghost, and he initially greeted her politely, even helping her over a stile. However, noticing that she neither spoke nor looked around, he became suspicious of her condition and wanted to get away from her. Offended by this, the old hag positioned herself at the next stile and blocked his way. Eventually, he managed to get through with some difficulty, getting a sound kick in the process, along with a reminder to pay more attention to elderly ladies he might meet in the future. “But,” says John Dunton, “this was a minor prank compared to what she pulled at her son’s house and elsewhere. She would show up at noon on the quay of Minehead and shout, ‘A boat, a boat, ho! a boat, a boat, ho!’ If any boatmen or sailors were in sight and didn’t respond, they were sure to be lost at sea; and if they did come, they were doomed just the same. It was equally dangerous to please or disappoint her. Her son had several ships sailing between Ireland and England; no sooner would they sight land than this ghost would appear, dressed just like she was in life, and standing at the mainmast, would blow a whistle. Even on the calmest day, a terrible storm would arise immediately, leading to shipwreck and drowning, with only the sailors managing to escape—Satan had no permission from God to take them away. Due to her frequent hauntings and disruptions, she ruined her son’s business, burying his wealth in the sea, and he, once wealthy, found himself in a very poor state; whether the ship was his own or rented, or whether he had goods worth just twenty shillings onboard, this troublesome ghost would reappear as before, whistling in a calm on the mainmast at noon when they spotted land, and then both the ship and goods would be lost. Eventually, he couldn’t find any ships to store his goods or any sailors willing to take them out; knowing the uncomfortable, fatal, and disastrous voyage they’d face, they all refused to work for him. In her son’s house, she continually haunted day and night, but whether he didn’t see her or wouldn’t admit it if he did, he always claimed he never saw her. Sometimes, when in bed with his wife, she would call out, ‘Husband, look, there’s your mother!’ And whenever he turned to one side, she’d vanish to the other; but one evening, their only child, a girl around five or six years old, lying in a bed below them, cried out, ‘Oh, help me, father! help me, mother! for grandmother will choke me!’ Before they could assist their child, she had already killed her; they found the poor girl dead, her throat pinched by two fingers that had cut off her breath and strangled her. This was the worst of all their sufferings; their wealth was gone, and now their child was lost too; one can only imagine their grief and sorrow. One morning after the child’s funeral, while her husband was out, Mrs. Leckie the younger went up to her room to do her hair. As she looked in the mirror, she spotted her mother-in-law, the old hag, peering over her shoulder. This sent her into a panic, but gathering her courage and regaining her rational thoughts, faith, and hope, after a brief silent prayer to God, she turned around and addressed her, ‘In the name of God, mother, why do you trouble me?’ ‘Peace,’ replied the ghost; ‘I will do you no harm.’ ‘What do you want from me?’ the daughter asks,” &c.86 Dunton, the narrator, and likely the one who crafted the story, goes on to explain the message the wife of Mr. Leckie receives from the ghost to deliver to Atherton, Bishop of Waterford, a guilty and unfortunate man who later met his end on the executioner's block; but that topic is too unpleasant and tedious to delve into.
86 (return)
[ “Apparition Evidence.”]
86 (__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__)
[ “Ghost Evidence.”]
So deep was the impression made by the story on the inhabitants of Mynehead, that it is said the tradition of Mrs. Leckie still remains in that port, and that mariners belonging to it often, amid tempestuous weather, conceive they hear the whistle-call of the implacable hag who was the source of so much mischief to her own family. However, already too desultory and too long, it would become intolerably tedious were I to insist farther on the peculiar sort of genius by which stories of this kind may be embodied and prolonged.
The story left such a strong impression on the people of Mynehead that it's said the legend of Mrs. Leckie still exists in that port. Mariners there often claim that during stormy weather, they hear the whistle of the relentless witch who caused so much trouble for her own family. However, since this discussion has already wandered too much and become too lengthy, it would be unbearable if I went on about the unique kind of creativity that allows stories like this to be told and extended.
I may, however, add, that the charm of the tale depends much upon the age of the person to whom it is addressed; and that the vivacity of fancy which engages us in youth to pass over much that is absurd, in order to enjoy some single trait of imagination, dies within us when we obtain the age of manhood, and the sadder and graver regions which lie beyond it. I am the more conscious of this, because I have been myself at two periods of my life, distant from each other, engaged in scenes favourable to that degree of superstitious awe which my countrymen expressively call being eerie.
I can add that the charm of the story depends a lot on the age of the person it's meant for; the lively imagination that captivates us in our youth allows us to overlook a lot that is silly, just to appreciate some unique element of creativity. This youthful spark fades as we reach adulthood and the more serious, sobering realities that come with it. I'm particularly aware of this because I've experienced it myself at two different times in my life, separated by a distance, involved in situations that really foster that kind of superstitious thrill that my fellow countrymen refer to as being eerie.
On the first of these occasions I was only ninteeen or twenty years old, when I happened to pass a night in the magnificent old baronial castle of Glammis, the hereditary seat of the Earls of Strathmore. The hoary pile contains much in its appearance, and in the traditions connected with it, impressive to the imagination. It was the scene of the murder of a Scottish king of great antiquity; not indeed the gracious Duncan, with whom the name naturally associates itself, but Malcolm the Second. It contains also a curious monument of the peril of feudal times, being a secret chamber, the entrance of which, by the law or custom of the family, must only be known to three persons at once, viz., the Earl of Strathmore, his heir apparent, and any third person whom they may take into their confidence. The extreme antiquity of the building is vouched by the immense thickness of the walls, and the wild and straggling arrangement of the accommodation within doors. As the late Earl of Strathmore seldom resided in that ancient mansion, it was, when I was there, but half-furnished, and that with movables of great antiquity, which, with the pieces of chivalric armour hanging upon the walls, greatly contributed to the general effect of the whole. After a very hospitable reception from the late Peter Proctor, Esq., then seneschal of the castle, in Lord Strathmore’s absence, I was conducted to my apartment in a distant corner of the building. I must own, that as I heard door after door shut, after my conductor had retired, I began to consider myself too far from the living and somewhat too near the dead. We had passed through what is called “The King’s Room,” a vaulted apartment, garnished with stags’ antlers and similar trophies of the chase, and said by tradition to be the spot of Malcolm’s murder, and I had an idea of the vicinity of the castle chapel.
On the first of these occasions, I was only nineteen or twenty years old when I spent a night in the magnificent old baronial castle of Glammis, the ancestral home of the Earls of Strathmore. The ancient structure has a lot to capture the imagination with its features and the legends surrounding it. It was the scene of the murder of a Scottish king from long ago, not the gracious Duncan that people usually associate with it, but Malcolm the Second. There is also an interesting remnant of the dangerous feudal era, a secret chamber whose entrance, by the family’s law or tradition, is known only to three people at a time: the Earl of Strathmore, his heir apparent, and any third person they choose to trust. The extreme age of the building is evident in the massive thickness of the walls and the haphazard arrangement of the rooms inside. Since the late Earl of Strathmore rarely stayed in that ancient mansion, it was only partially furnished when I was there, filled with very old furniture that, along with the pieces of chivalric armor hanging on the walls, contributed significantly to the whole atmosphere. After a very warm welcome from the late Peter Proctor, Esq., who was the castle's steward in Lord Strathmore's absence, I was shown to my room in a remote corner of the building. I have to admit that as I heard door after door close once my guide had left, I started to feel too far from the living and a bit too close to the dead. We had passed through what is known as “The King’s Room,” a vaulted space adorned with stags’ antlers and similar hunting trophies, believed by tradition to be the spot where Malcolm was murdered, and I had a sense of the castle chapel being nearby.
In spite of the truth of history, the whole night-scene in Macbeth’s castle rushed at once upon my mind, and struck my imagination more forcibly than even when I have seen its terrors represented by the late John Kemble and his inimitable sister. In a word, I experienced sensations which, though not remarkable either for timidity or superstition, did not fail to affect me to the point of being disagreeable, while they were mingled at the same time with a strange and indescribable kind of pleasure, the recollection of which affords me gratification at this moment.
Despite what history tells us, the entire night scene in Macbeth's castle flooded my mind and struck my imagination even more powerfully than when I watched its horrors performed by the late John Kemble and his unmatched sister. In short, I felt emotions that, while not particularly timid or superstitious, were still strong enough to be unpleasant, and at the same time, they were mixed with a weird and indescribable sort of pleasure, the memory of which brings me satisfaction now.
In the year 1814 accident placed me, then past middle life, in a situation somewhat similar to that which I have described.
In 1814, an accident put me, then past middle age, in a situation somewhat like the one I’ve described.
I had been on a pleasure voyage with some friends around the north coast of Scotland, and in that course had arrived in the salt-water lake under the castle of Dunvegan, whose turrets, situated upon a frowning rock, rise immediately above the waves of the loch. As most of the party, and I myself in particular, chanced to be well known to the Laird of Macleod, we were welcomed to the castle with Highland hospitality, and glad to find ourselves in polished society, after a cruise of some duration. The most modern part of the castle was founded in the days of James VI.; the more ancient is referred to a period “whose birth tradition notes not.” Until the present Macleod connected by a drawbridge the site of the castle with the mainland of Skye, the access must have been extremely difficult. Indeed, so much greater was the regard paid to security than to convenience, that in former times the only access to the mansion arose through a vaulted cavern in a rock, up which a staircase ascended from the sea-shore, like the buildings we read of in the romances of Mrs. Radcliffe.
I had been on a fun trip with some friends along the north coast of Scotland and had reached the saltwater lake under Dunvegan Castle, whose towers, perched on a sheer rock, rise right above the waves of the loch. Since most of the group, and I in particular, were well known to the Laird of Macleod, we were welcomed to the castle with traditional Highland hospitality and were happy to find ourselves in refined company after a long cruise. The newest part of the castle was built during the time of James VI; the older parts date back to a time "that tradition does not record." Until the current Macleod connected the castle to the mainland of Skye with a drawbridge, access must have been quite difficult. In fact, greater emphasis was placed on security than on convenience, as in earlier times the only way to reach the mansion was through a vaulted cave in the rock, with a staircase leading up from the shoreline, similar to the structures we read about in the stories of Mrs. Radcliffe.
Such a castle, in the extremity of the Highlands, was of course furnished with many a tale of tradition, and many a superstitious legend, to fill occasional intervals in the music and song, as proper to the halls of Dunvegan as when Johnson commemorated them. We reviewed the arms and ancient valuables of this distinguished family—saw the dirk and broadsword of Rorie Mhor, and his horn, which would drench three chiefs of these degenerate days. The solemn drinking-cup of the Kings of Man must not be forgotten, nor the fairy banner given to Macleod by the Queen of Fairies; that magic flag which has been victorious in two pitched fields, and will still float in the third, the bloodiest and the last, when the Elfin Sovereign shall, after the fight is ended, recall her banner, and carry off the standard-bearer.
Such a castle, at the edge of the Highlands, was of course filled with stories of tradition and superstitious legends, perfect for occasional breaks in the music and singing, just like when Johnson celebrated them. We checked out the weapons and ancient treasures of this notable family—saw the dirk and broadsword of Rorie Mhor, along with his horn, which could drown three chiefs of these degraded times. The solemn drinking cup of the Kings of Man shouldn't be overlooked, nor the fairy banner given to Macleod by the Queen of Fairies; that magical flag which has won in two major battles, and will still fly in the third, the bloodiest and final one, when the Elfin Sovereign will, after the fight is over, take back her banner and carry off the standard-bearer.
Amid such tales of ancient tradition I had from Macleod and his lady the courteous offer of the haunted apartment of the castle, about which, as a stranger, I might be supposed interested. Accordingly, I took possession of it about the witching hour. Except perhaps some tapestry hangings, and the extreme thickness of the walls, which argued great antiquity, nothing could have been more comfortable than the interior of the apartment; but if you looked from the windows the view was such as to correspond with the highest tone of superstition. An autumnal blast, sometimes driving mist before it, swept along the troubled billows of the lake, which it occasionally concealed, and by fits disclosed. The waves rushed in wild disorder on the shore, and covered with foam the steep piles of rock, which, rising from the sea in forms something resembling the human figure, have obtained the name of Macleod’s Maidens, and in such a night seemed no bad representatives of the Norwegian goddesses called Choosers of the Slain, or Riders of the Storm. There was something of the dignity of danger in the scene; for on a platform beneath the windows lay an ancient battery of cannon, which had sometimes been used against privateers even of late years. The distant scene was a view of that part of the Quillan mountains which are called, from their form, Macleod’s Dining-Tables. The voice of an angry cascade, termed the Nurse of Rorie Mhor, because that chief slept best ‘in its vicinity, was heard from time to time mingling its notes with those of wind and wave. Such was the haunted room at Dunvegan, and as such it well deserved a less sleepy inhabitant. In the language of Dr. Johnson, who has stamped his memory on this remote place, “I looked around me, and wondered that I was not more affected; but the mind is not at all times equally ready to be moved.” In a word, it is necessary to confess that, of all I heard or saw, the most engaging spectacle was the comfortable bed, in which I hoped to make amends for some rough nights on ship-board, and where I slept accordingly without thinking of ghost or goblin till I was called by my servant in the morning.
Amid stories of ancient traditions, Macleod and his wife kindly offered me the haunted room in the castle, which, as a stranger, I would likely find intriguing. So, I moved in around midnight. Aside from some tapestry hangings and the extremely thick walls that hinted at great age, the room was surprisingly comfortable. However, looking out the windows revealed a view that matched the height of superstition. An autumn wind, sometimes pushing mist along, swept across the turbulent waves of the lake, which it occasionally hid and revealed. The waves crashed chaotically on the shore, covering the steep rock formations that rise from the sea and resemble human figures; these are known as Macleod’s Maidens, and on a night like this, they seemed like the Norwegian goddesses called the Choosers of the Slain, or Riders of the Storm. The scene held a certain dignified danger; below the windows lay an old cannon battery that had been used against privateers even in recent years. In the distance, I could see the part of the Quillan mountains known as Macleod’s Dining-Tables, named for their shape. Occasionally, I heard the angry cascade known as the Nurse of Rorie Mhor, since that chief slept best nearby, mixing its sounds with the wind and waves. This was the haunted room at Dunvegan, and it certainly deserved a more lively occupant. In the words of Dr. Johnson, who has left his mark on this remote place, “I looked around me and wondered why I wasn’t more affected; but the mind isn’t always ready to be moved.” In short, I must admit that of everything I heard or saw, the most appealing sight was the comfortable bed, where I hoped to make up for some rough nights on the ship, and I slept soundly without thinking of ghosts or goblins until my servant called me in the morning.
From this I am taught to infer that tales of ghosts and demonology are out of date at forty years and upwards; that it is only in the morning of life that this feeling of superstition “comes o’er us like a summer cloud,” affecting us with fear which is solemn and awful rather than painful; and I am tempted to think that, if I were to write on the subject at all, it should have been during a period of life when I could have treated it with more interesting vivacity, and might have been at least amusing if I could not be instructive. Even the present fashion of the world seems to be ill suited for studies of this fantastic nature; and the most ordinary mechanic has learning sufficient to laugh at the figments which in former times were believed by persons far advanced in the deepest knowledge of the age.
From this, I gather that stories about ghosts and demons are outdated by the time we're over forty; that these feelings of superstition only come to us in our youth, making us feel a fear that is more solemn and awe-inspiring than painful. I think that if I were to write about it at all, it should have been when I was younger, when I could have approached the topic with more lively interest and might have at least entertained, even if I couldn't teach. Even the current trends in society seem poorly suited for exploring such fantastical topics; nowadays, even the most ordinary worker has enough knowledge to laugh at the ideas that people once believed during times of greater intellectual depth.
I cannot, however, in conscience carry my opinion of my countrymen’s good sense so far as to exculpate them entirely from the charge of credulity. Those who are disposed to look for them may, without much trouble, see such manifest signs, both of superstition and the disposition to believe in its doctrines, as may render it no useless occupation to compare the follies of our fathers with our own. The sailors have a proverb that every man in his lifetime must eat a peck of impurity; and it seems yet more clear that every generation of the human race must swallow a certain measure of nonsense. There remains hope, however, that the grosser faults of our ancestors are now out of date; and that whatever follies the present race may be guilty of, the sense of humanity is too universally spread to permit them to think of tormenting wretches till they confess what is impossible, and then burning them for their pains.
I can’t, however, in good conscience say that I fully believe in my countrymen’s common sense enough to completely free them from the charge of being gullible. Those who want to find evidence of this can easily see clear signs of both superstition and a tendency to believe in its ideas, making it worthwhile to compare the foolishness of our ancestors with our own. Sailors have a saying that every person must deal with a certain amount of impurity in their lifetime, and it seems even clearer that every generation must accept a certain level of nonsense. However, there is hope that the more severe mistakes of our ancestors are now outdated; and that whatever foolishness the current generation may commit, the sense of humanity is widely enough spread that it prevents them from torturing people until they confess to the impossible, and then executing them for it.
THE END.
PRINTED BY BALLANTYNE, HANSON AND CO. LONDON AND EDINBURGH.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!